This is a modern-English version of Prince Henry the Navigator, the Hero of Portugal and of Modern Discovery, 1394-1460 A.D.: With an Account of Geographical Progress Throughout the Middle Ages As the Preparation for His Work., originally written by Beazley, C. Raymond (Charles Raymond). It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling, and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.

Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.

 

 


 

Heroes of the Nations.

PER VOLUME, CLOTH, $1.50.—HALF MOROCCO, $1.75.

PER VOLUME, CLOTH, $1.50.—HALF MOROCCO, $1.75.

I.—Nelson, and the Naval Supremacy of England. By W. Clark Russell, author of "The Wreck of the Grosvenor," etc.

I.—Nelson, and the Naval Supremacy of England. By W. Clark Russell, author of "The Wreck of the Grosvenor," etc.

II.—Gustavus Adolphus, and the Struggle of Protestantism for Existence. By C.R.L. Fletcher, M.A., late Fellow of All Souls College, Oxford.

II.—Gustavus Adolphus and the Fight for the Survival of Protestantism. By C.R.L. Fletcher, M.A., former Fellow of All Souls College, Oxford.

III.—Pericles, and the Golden Age of Athens. By Evelyn Abbott, M.A., Fellow of Balliol College, Oxford.

III.—Pericles, and the Golden Age of Athens. By Evelyn Abbott, Master's degree, Fellow of Balliol College, Oxford.

IV.—Theodoric the Goth, the Barbarian Champion of Civilisation. By Thomas Hodgkin, author of "Italy and Her Invaders," etc.

IV.—Theodoric the Goth, the Barbarian Champion of Civilization. By Thomas Hodgkin, author of "Italy and Her Invaders," etc.

V.—Sir Philip Sidney: Type of English Chivalry. By H.R. Fox Bourne.

V.—Sir Philip Sidney: Example of English Chivalry. By H.R. Fox Bourne.

VI.—Julius Cæsar, and the Organisation of the Roman Empire. By Warde Fowler, M.A., Fellow of Lincoln College, Oxford.

VI.—Julius Caesar, and the Organization of the Roman Empire. By Warde Fowler, M.A., Fellow of Lincoln College, Oxford.

VII.—Wyclif, Last of the Schoolmen and First of the English Reformers. By Lewis Sergeant.

VII.—Wyclif, Last of the Schoolmen and First of the English Reformers. By Lewis Sergeant.

VIII.—Napoleon, Warrior and Ruler; and the Military Supremacy of Revolutionary France. By William O'Connor Morris.

VIII.—Napoleon, Warrior and Ruler; and the Military Supremacy of Revolutionary France. By William O'Connor Morris.

IX.—Henry of Navarre, and the Huguenots in France. By P.F. Willert, M.A., Fellow of Exeter College, Oxford.

IX.—Henry of Navarre, and the Huguenots in France. By P.F. Willert, M.A., Fellow of Exeter College, Oxford.

X.—Cicero, and the Fall of the Roman Republic. By J.L. Strachan-Davidson, M.A., Fellow of Balliol College, Oxford.

X.—Cicero, and the Fall of the Roman Republic. By J.L. Strachan-Davidson, M.A., Fellow of Balliol College, Oxford.

XI.—Abraham Lincoln, and the Downfall of American Slavery. By Noah Brooks.

XI.—Abraham Lincoln, and the Downfall of American Slavery. By Noah Brooks.

XII.—Prince Henry (of Portugal) the Navigator, and the Age of Discovery. By C.R. Beazley, Fellow of Merton College, Oxford.

XII.—Prince Henry (of Portugal) the Navigator, and the Age of Discovery. By C.R. Beazley, Fellow of Merton College, Oxford.

XIII.—Julian the Philosopher, and the Last Struggle of Paganism against Christianity. By Alice Gardner, Lecturer on Ancient History, Newnham College.

XIII.—Julian the Philosopher, and the Last Struggle of Paganism against Christianity. By Alice Gardner, Lecturer on Ancient History, Newnham College.

XIV.—Louis XIV., and the Zenith of the French Monarchy. By Arthur Hassall, M.A., Senior Student of Christ Church College, Oxford.

XIV.—Louis XIV and the Peak of the French Monarchy. By Arthur Hassall, M.A., Senior Student of Christ Church College, Oxford.

(For titles of volumes next to appear and for further details of this Series see prospectus at end of volume.)

(For titles of upcoming volumes and more details about this Series, see the prospectus at the end of the volume.)


G. P. PUTNAM'S SONS, Publishers

G. P. Putnam's Sons, Publishers

NEW YORK AND LONDON

New York and London


Heroes of the Nations

EDITED BY
Evelyn Abbot, M.A.
FELLOW OF BALLIOL COLLEGE, OXFORD

EDITED BY
Evelyn Abbot, M.A.
FELLOW OF BALLIOL COLLEGE, OXFORD


FACTA DUCIS VIVENT, OPEROSAQUE GLORIA RERUM.—OVID, IN LIVIAM, 265.

FACTA DUCIS VIVENT, OPEROSAQUE GLORIA RERUM.—OVID, IN LIVIAM, 265.

THE HERO'S DEEDS AND HARD-WON FAME SHALL LIVE.

THE HERO'S ACTIONS AND HARD-EARNED FAME WILL LAST.


PRINCE HENRY THE NAVIGATOR


GATEWAY AT BELEM. WITH STATUE, BETWEEN THE DOORS, OF PRINCE HENRY IN ARMOUR.

GATEWAY AT BELEM. WITH STATUE, BETWEEN THE DOORS, OF PRINCE HENRY IN ARMOUR.

GATEWAY AT BELEM.
with statue, between the doors, of prince henry in armour.

GATEWAY AT BELEM.
with a statue of Prince Henry in armor, located between the doors.


PRINCE HENRY THE NAVIGATOR

THE HERO OF PORTUGAL AND OF MODERN DISCOVERY

1394-1460 A.D.

WITH AN ACCOUNT OF GEOGRAPHICAL PROGRESS THROUGHOUT THE MIDDLE AGES AS THE PREPARATION FOR HIS WORK

BY

C. RAYMOND BEAZLEY, M.A., F.R.G.S.

FELLOW OF MERTON COLLEGE, OXFORD; GEOGRAPHICAL STUDENT IN THE UNIVERSITY OF OXFORD, 1894

In future years Ocean's chains of things Laxet, let a vast land appear,
Tethys, who reveals new worlds, Let Thule be the last land.

Seneca, Medea 376/380.

Seneca, Medea 376/380.


G. P. PUTNAM'S SONS

NEW YORK
27 WEST TWENTY-THIRD STREET

NEW YORK
27 W 23rd Street

LONDON
24 BEDFORD STREET, STRAND

LONDON
24 BEDFORD STREET, STRAND

The Knickerbocker Press

1895

1895


Copyright, 1894

Copyright, 1894

BY

BY

G. P. PUTNAM'S SONS

G.P. Putnam's Sons

Entered at Stationers' Hall, London


Entered at Stationers' Hall, London

Electrotyped, Printed and Bound by
The Knickerbocker Press, New York
G. P. Putnam's Sons

Electrotyped, Printed and Bound by
The Knickerbocker Press, New York
G.P. Putnam's Sons


decorative illustration

decorative illustration

CONTENTS.

PAGE
PREFACExvii
INTRODUCTION.
THE GREEK AND ARABIC IDEAS OF THE WORLD, AS THE CHIEF INHERITANCE OF THE CHRISTIAN MIDDLE AGES IN GEOGRAPHICAL KNOWLEDGE.1
CHAPTER I.
EARLY CHRISTIAN PILGRIMS (CIRCA 333-867)29
CHAPTER II.
VIKINGS OR NORTHMEN (CIRCA 787-1066)50
CHAPTER III.
THE CRUSADES AND LAND TRAVEL (CIRCA 1100-1300)76
CHAPTER IV.
MARITIME EXPLORATION (CIRCA 1250-1410)106
CHAPTER V.
GEOGRAPHICAL SCIENCE IN CHRISTENDOM FROM THE FIRST CRUSADES (CIRCA 1100-1460)114
CHAPTER VI.
PORTUGAL TO 1400 (1095-1400)123
CHAPTER VII.
HENRY'S POSITION AND DESIGNS AT THE TIME OF THE FIRST VOYAGES, 1410-15138
CHAPTER VIII.
PRINCE HENRY AND THE CAPTURE OF CEUTA (1415)147
CHAPTER IX.
HENRY'S SETTLEMENT AT SAGRES AND FIRST DISCOVERIES (1418-28)160
CHAPTER X.
CAPE BOJADOR AND THE AZORES (1428-41)168
CHAPTER XI.
HENRY'S POLITICAL LIFE (1433-41)179
CHAPTER XII.
FROM BOJADOR TO CAPE VERDE (1441-5)192
CHAPTER XIII.
THE ARMADA OF 1445228
CHAPTER XIV.
VOYAGES OF 1446-8240
CHAPTER XV.
THE AZORES (1431-60)250
CHAPTER XVI.
THE TROUBLES OF THE REGENCY AND THE FALL OF DON PEDRO (1440-9)257
CHAPTER XVII.
CADAMOSTO (1455-6)261
CHAPTER XVIII.
VOYAGES OF DIEGO GOMEZ (1458-60)289
CHAPTER XIX.
HENRY'S LAST YEARS AND DEATH (1458-60)299
CHAPTER XX.
THE RESULTS OF PRINCE HENRY'S WORK308
INDEX325

decorative illustration

decorative illustration


decorative illustration

decorative illustration

ILLUSTRATIONS.

PAGE
MAIN GATE OF THE MONASTERY CHURCH AT BELEMFrontispiece
Built on the site of an old sailor's chapel, existing in Prince Henry's day, and used by his men. In the niche between the two great entrance doors, is a statue of Prince Henry in armour.
THE MONASTERY CHURCH AT BATALHA[1]132
West front of church in which Prince Henry and his House lie buried. This church was founded by the Prince's father, King John, in memory of his victory over Castille at Aljubarrota.
BATALHA CHURCH—PORTUGAL'S WESTMINSTER[1]136
The aisle containing the tombs of Prince Henry and his brothers, the Infants of the House of Aviz.
EFFIGIES OF KING JOHN THE GREAT AND QUEEN PHILIPPA148
Henry's father and mother, from their tomb in the Abbey of Batalha.
GATEWAY OF THE CHURCH AT THOMAR154
The Mother Church of the Order of Christ, of which Henry was Grand-Master.
HENRY IN MORNING DRESS[2]258
The original forms the frontispiece to the Paris MS. of Azurara's Discovery and Conquest of Guinea.
COIMBRA UNIVERSITY298
THE RECUMBENT STATUE OF PRINCE HENRY306
From his tomb in Batalha Church; with his escutcheons (1) as titular King of Cyprus; (2) as Knight of the Garter of England; (3) as Grand Master of the Order of Christ.
ALLEGORICAL PIECE[3]310
Supposed to represent Columbus, as St. Christopher, carrying across the ocean the Christian faith, in the form of the infant Christ. From the map of Juan de la Cosa, 1500.
VASCO DA GAMA[4]314
From a portrait in the possession of the Count of Lavradio.
AFFONSO D'ALBUQUERQUE[5]318

decorative illustration

decorative illustration


decorative illustration

decorative illustration

LIST OF MAPS.[6]

PAGE
THE WORLD ACCORDING TO PTOLEMY2
From Nordenskjöld's fac-simile atlas
THE WORLD ACCORDING TO EDRISI. c. 115024
As reconstructed by M. Reinaud from the written descriptions of the Arabic geographer. This illustrates the extremely unreal and untrue conception of the earth among Moslem students, especially those who followed the theories of Ptolomy—e.g., in the extension to Africa eastward, so as practically or actually to join China, making the Indian Ocean an inland sea.
THE MAPPE-MONDE OF ST. SEVER48
(B. Mus., Map room, shelf 35 [5], sheet 6). Of uncertain date, between c. 780-980 but probably not later than the 10th century. One of the earliest examples of Christian map-making.
THE ANGLO-SAXON MAP54
(B. Mus., Cotton mss., Tib. B.V., fol. 59). This gives us the most interesting and accurate view of the world that we get in the pre-Crusading Christian science. The square, but not conventional outline is detailed with considerable care and precision. The writing, though minute, is legible; but the Nile, which, like the Red Sea in Africa, is coloured red, in contrast to the ordinary grey of water in this example, is made to wander about Africa from side to side, with occasional disappearances, in a thoroughly mythical fashion. This map, from a ms. of Priscian's Peviegesis, appears to have been executed at the end of the 10th century; it is on vellum, highly finished, and has been engraved, in outline, in Playfair's Atlas (Pl. I), and more fully in the Penny Magazine (July 22, 1837). In the reign of Henry II., it appears to have belonged to Battle Abbey.
THE TURIN MAP OF THE 11TH CENTURY76
(B. Mus., Map room. From Ottino's reproduction). One of the oldest and simplest of Christian Mappe-Mondes, giving a special prominence to Paradise, (with the figures of Adam, Eve, and the serpent), to the mountains and rivers of the world, and to the four winds of heaven. It is to be associated with the Spanish map of 1109, and the Mappe-Monde of St. Sever.
THE SPANISH-ARABIC MAP OF 110984
(B. Mus., Add. mss., 11695). The original, gorgeously coloured, represents the crudest of Christian and Moslem notions of the world. Even more crude than in the Turin map and the Mappe-Monde of St. Sever, both of which offer some resemblances to this. The earth is represented as of quadrangular shape, surrounded by the ocean. At the E. is Paradise with the figures of the Temptation. A part of the S. is cut off by the Red Sea, which is straight (and coloured red), just as the straight Mediterranean, with its quadrangular islands, divides the N.W. quarter, or Europe, from the S.W. quarter, or Africa. The Ægean Sea joins the Mediterranean at a right angle, in the centre of the map. In the ocean, bordering the whole, are square islands, e.g., Tile (Thule), Britania, Scocia, Fu(o)rtunarum insula. The Turin map occurs in another copy of the same work—A Commentary on the Apocalypse.
THE PSALTER MAP OF THE 13TH CENTURY92
(B. Mus., Add. mss., 28, 681). A good illustration of the circular type of mediæval map, which is sometimes little better than a panorama of legends and monsters. Christ at the top; the dragons crushed beneath him at the bottom; Jerusalem, the navel of the earth, in the middle as a sort of bull's-eye to a target, all show a "religious" geography. The line of queer figures, on the right side, figuring the S. coast of Africa, suggests a parallel with the still more fanciful Mappe-Monde of Hereford. (For copy see Bevan and Phillott's edition of the Hereford map).
THE S.W., OR AFRICAN SECTION OF THE HEREFORD MAP c. 1275-1300106
(B. Mus., King's Lib., XXIII). The S. coast of Africa, as in the Psalter map, is fringed with monstrous tribes; monstrous animals fill up a good deal of the interior; half of the wheel representing Jerusalem in the middle of the world appears in the N.E. corner; and the designer's idea of the Mediterranean and Atlantic islands is specially noteworthy. The Hereford map is a specimen of the thoroughly traditional and unpractical school of mediæval geographers who based their work on books, or fashionable collections of travellers' tales—such as Pliny, Solinus, or Martianus Capella—and who are to be distinguished from the scientific school of the same period, whose best works were the Portolani, or coast-charts of the early 14th century.
THE WORLD ACCORDING TO MARINO SANUTO. c. A.D. 1306114
(B. Mus., King's Lib., 149 F. 2 p. 282). The shape of Africa in this map is supposed by some to be valuable in the history of geographical advance, as suggesting the possibility of getting round from the Atlantic into the Indian Ocean.
SKETCH MAP OF DULCERT'S PORTOLANO OF 1339116
(From Nordenskjöld's fac-simile atlas). This illustrates the accuracy of the 14th century coast-charts, especially in the Mediterranean.
THE LAURENTIAN PORTOLANO OF 1351120
(From the Medicean Lib. at Florence; reproduced in B. Mus., Map room, shelf 158, 22, 23). This is the most remarkable of all the Portolani of the 14th century, as giving a view of the world, and especially Africa, which is far nearer the actual truth than could be expected. Especially its outline of S. Africa and of the bend of the Guinea coast, is surprisingly near the truth, even as a guess, in a chart made one hundred and thirty-five years before the Cape of Good Hope was first rounded.
N.W. SECTION OF THE CATALAN MAP OF 1375-6124
(B. Mus., Map room, 13, 14). This gives the British Islands, the W. coasts of Europe, N. Africa as far as Cape Boyador, and the Canaries and other islands in the Atlantic. The interior of Africa is filled with fantastic pictures of native tribes; the boat load of men off Cape Boyador in the extreme S.W. of the map probably represents the Catalan explorers of the year 1346, whose voyage in search of the "River of Gold" this map commemorates.
CHART OF THE MEDITERRANEAN SEA, BY BARENTSZOON128
(Engraved in copper 1595. Almost an unaltered copy of a Portolano from the 14th century. From Nordenskjöld's fac-simile atlas). This illustrates the remarkable correctness in the drawing of the Mediterranean basin and the coasts of W. Europe, reached by the Italian and Balearic coast-charts, or Portolani, in the 14th century.
THE BORGIAN MAP OF 1450290
(B. Mus., Map room, shelf 2 [6], 13, 14; copy of 1797). This map was executed just before the fall of Constantinople (1453), and gives a view of the world as imagined in the 15th century. It is very fantastic and unscientific, but remarkable among its kind for its comparative freedom from ecclesiastical influence.
WESTERN SECTION OF THE MAPPE-MONDE OF FRA MAURO, 1457-9302
(Cf. reproduction in B. Mus., Add. mss., 11267, and photographic copy in Map room). This map of Fra Mauro of Murano, (near Venice), is usually understood to be a sort of picture, not merely of the world as then known, but of Prince Henry's discoveries in particular on the W. African coast. From this point of view it is perhaps disappointing; the inlet of the Rio d'Ouro(?), to the S. of the Sahara, is exaggerated beyond all recognition; at the S. Cape (of Good Hope) a great island is depicted, separated from the mainland by a narrow channel—possibly Madagascar displaced.
SKETCH-MAP OF FRA MAURO'S MAPPE-MONDE304
As reduced and simplified in Lelewel's Atlas. The corners of the table are filled up with four small circles representing: (1) The Ptolemaic System in the Spheres. (2) The lunar influences over the tides. (3) The circles described in the terrestial globe. (4) A picture of the expulsion from Eden, with the four sacred rivers.
MAP OF 1492322
(B. Mus., Add. mss. 15760). This gives a general view of the Portuguese discoveries along the whole W. coast of Africa, and just beyond the Cape of Good Hope, which was rounded in 1486.

decorative illustration

decorative illustration


Preface
This volume aims at giving an account, based throughout upon original sources, of the progress of geographical knowledge and enterprise in Christendom throughout the Middle Ages, down to the middle or even the end of the fifteenth century, as well as a life of Prince Henry the Navigator, who brought this movement of European Expansion within sight of its greatest successes. That is, as explained in Chapter I., it has been attempted to treat Exploration as one continuous thread in the story of Christian Europe from the time of the conversion of the Empire; and to treat the life of Prince Henry as the turning-point, the central epoch in a development of many centuries: this life, accordingly, has been linked as closely as possible with what went before and prepared for it; one third of the text, at least, has been occupied with the history of the preparation of the earlier time, and the difference between our account of the eleventh-and fifteenth-century Discovery, for instance, will be found to be chiefly one of less and greater detail. This difference depends, of course, on the prominence in the[Pg xviii] later time of a figure of extraordinary interest and force, who is the true hero in the drama of the Geographical Conquest of the Outer World that starts from Western Christendom. The interest that centres round Henry is somewhat clouded by the dearth of complete knowledge of his life; but enough remains to make something of the picture of a hero, both of science and of action.

Preface
TThis book aims to provide an account, primarily based on original sources, of the progress of geographical knowledge and exploration in Christendom during the Middle Ages, up to the middle or even the end of the fifteenth century. It also includes the life of Prince Henry the Navigator, who brought the movement of European expansion into view of its greatest achievements. As explained in Chapter I, we have tried to present exploration as a continuous narrative in the story of Christian Europe starting from the time the Empire was converted. Prince Henry's life is treated as a turning point, a central moment in a development that spanned many centuries: his life is thus closely linked with what came before and led up to it. At least a third of the text focuses on the early historical background, and the difference between our accounts of the discoveries in the eleventh and fifteenth centuries mainly lies in the level of detail. This difference is, of course, influenced by the prominence of an extraordinary figure in the later period, who is the true hero in the story of the Geographical Conquest of the Outer World that begins with Western Christendom. The interest surrounding Henry is somewhat diminished by the lack of complete knowledge about his life; however, there is enough information to create a picture of him as both a man of science and action.

Our subject, then, has been strictly historical, but a history in which a certain life, a certain biographical centre, becomes more and more important, till from its completed achievement we get our best outlook upon the past progress of a thousand years, on this side, and upon the future progress of those generations which realised the next great victories of geographical advance.

Our topic has been purely historical, but it’s a history where a specific life, a particular biographical focus, becomes increasingly significant. From its completed achievement, we gain the clearest view of the past progress over a thousand years on this front, as well as on the future advancements of those generations who achieved the next major breakthroughs in geographical exploration.

The series of maps which illustrate this account, give the same continuous view of the geographical development of Europe and Christendom down to the end of Prince Henry's age. These are, it is believed, the first English reproductions in any accessible form of several of the great charts of the Middle Ages, and taken together they will give, it is hoped, the best view of Western or Christian map-making before the time of Columbus that is to be found in any English book, outside the great historical atlases.

The maps that accompany this account provide a continuous perspective on the geographical evolution of Europe and Christendom up to the end of Prince Henry's era. It's believed that these are the first English reproductions in an easily accessible format of several significant charts from the Middle Ages. Together, they aim to offer the best representation of Western or Christian map-making before Columbus, as found in any English publication, outside of the major historical atlases.

In the same way the text of this volume, especially in the earlier chapters, tries to supply a want—which is believed to exist—of a connected account from the originals known to us, of the expansion of Europe through geographical enterprise, from the[Pg xix] conversion of the Empire to the period of those discoveries which mark most clearly the transition from the Middle Ages to the Modern World.

In the same way, the text of this volume, particularly in the earlier chapters, aims to fill a gap—thought to exist—in providing a cohesive account from the originals we know about Europe's expansion through geographical exploration, from the[Pg xix] conversion of the Empire to the era of discoveries that most clearly signal the shift from the Middle Ages to the Modern World.


The chief authorities have been:

The main authorities have been:

For the Introductory chapter: (1) Reinaud's account of the Arabic geographers and their theories in connection with the Greek, in his edition of Abulfeda, Paris, 1848; (2) Sprenger's Massoudy, 1841; (3) Edrisi, translated by Amédée Jaubert; (4) Ibn-Batuta (abridgment), translated by S. Lee, London, 1829; (5) Abulfeda, edited and translated by Reinaud; (6) Abyrouny's India, specially chapters i., 10-14; xvii., 18-31; (7) texts of Strabo and Ptolemy; (8) Wappäus' Heinrich der Seefahrer, part 1.

For the Introductory chapter: (1) Reinaud's account of the Arabic geographers and their theories in connection with the Greek, in his edition of Abulfeda, Paris, 1848; (2) Sprenger's Massoudy, 1841; (3) Edrisi, translated by Amédée Jaubert; (4) Ibn-Batuta (abridgment), translated by S. Lee, London, 1829; (5) Abulfeda, edited and translated by Reinaud; (6) Abyrouny's India, especially chapters i., 10-14; xvii., 18-31; (7) texts of Strabo and Ptolemy; (8) Wappäus' Heinrich der Seefahrer, part 1.

I. For Chapter I. (Early Christian Pilgrims): (1) Itinera et Descriptiones Terræ Sanctæ, vols. i. and ii., published by the Société de l'Orient, Latin, Geneva, 1877 and 1885, which give the original texts of nearly all the Palestine Pilgrims' memoirs to the death of Bernard the Wise; (2) the Publications of the Palestine Pilgrims' Text Society; (3) Thomas Wright's Early Travels in Palestine (Bohn); (4) Avezac's Recueil pour Servir à l'histoire de la géographie; (5) some recent German studies on the early pilgrim records, e.g., Gildemeister on Antoninus of Placentia.

I. For Chapter I. (Early Christian Pilgrims): (1) Itinera et Descriptiones Terræ Sanctæ, vols. i. and ii., published by the Société de l'Orient, Latin, Geneva, 1877 and 1885, which provide the original texts of nearly all the Palestine Pilgrims' memoirs up to the death of Bernard the Wise; (2) the Publications of the Palestine Pilgrims' Text Society; (3) Thomas Wright's Early Travels in Palestine (Bohn); (4) Avezac's Recueil pour Servir à l'histoire de la géographie; (5) some recent German studies on the early pilgrim records, e.g., Gildemeister on Antoninus of Placentia.

II. For Chapter II. (The Vikings): (1) Snorro Sturleson's Heimskringla or Sagas of the Norse Kings; (2) Dozy's essays; (3) the, possibly spurious, Voyages of the Zeni, with the Journey of Ivan Bardsen, in the Hakluyt Society's Publications.[Pg xx]

II. For Chapter II. (The Vikings): (1) Snorro Sturleson's Heimskringla or Sagas of the Norse Kings; (2) Dozy's essays; (3) the possibly fake Voyages of the Zeni, along with the Journey of Ivan Bardsen, in the Hakluyt Society's Publications.[Pg xx]

III. For Chapter III. (The Crusades and Land Travel): (1) Publication of the Palestine Pilgrims' Text Society; (2) Avezac's edition of the originals in his Recueil pour Sevir à l'histoire de la géographie; (3) Yule's Cathay and the Way Thither; (4) Yule's Marco Polo; (5) Benjamin of Tudela and others in Wright's Early Travels in Palestine; (6) Yule's Friar Jordanus; (7) Sir John Mandeville's Travels.

III. For Chapter III. (The Crusades and Land Travel): (1) Publication of the Palestine Pilgrims' Text Society; (2) Avezac's edition of the originals in his Recueil pour Sevir à l'histoire de la géographie; (3) Yule's Cathay and the Way Thither; (4) Yule's Marco Polo; (5) Benjamin of Tudela and others in Wright's Early Travels in Palestine; (6) Yule's Friar Jordanus; (7) Sir John Mandeville's Travels.

IV. For Chapter IV. (Maritime Exploration): (1) The Marino Sanuto Map of 1306; (2) the Laurentian Portolano of 1351; (3) The Catalan Map of 1375-6; (4) scattered notices collected in early chapters of R.H. Major's Prince Henry the Navigator; (5) Béthencourt's Conquest of the Canaries (Hakluyt Society, ed., Major); (6) Wappäus' Heinrich der Seefahrer, part 2.

IV. For Chapter IV. (Maritime Exploration): (1) The Marino Sanuto Map of 1306; (2) the Laurentian Portolano of 1351; (3) The Catalan Map of 1375-6; (4) scattered notices collected in early chapters of R.H. Major's Prince Henry the Navigator; (5) Béthencourt's Conquest of the Canaries (Hakluyt Society, ed., Major); (6) Wappäus' Heinrich der Seefahrer, part 2.

V. For Chapter V. (Geographical Science): (1) Neckam's De Naturis Rerum; (2) the seven chief Mappe-Mondes of the fourteenth and early fifteenth centuries; (3) the leading Portolani; (4) scattered notices, e.g., from Guyot de Provins' "Bible," Brunetto Latini, Beccadelli of Palermo, collected in early chapters of Major's Henry the Navigator; (5) Wauwerman's Henri le Navigateur.

V. For Chapter V. (Geographical Science): (1) Neckam's De Naturis Rerum; (2) the seven main world maps from the fourteenth and early fifteenth centuries; (3) the prominent Portolani; (4) scattered references, e.g., from Guyot de Provins' "Bible," Brunetto Latini, Beccadelli of Palermo, gathered in the early chapters of Major's Henry the Navigator; (5) Wauwerman's Henri le Navigateur.

VI. For Chapter VI. (Portugal to 1400): (1) The Chronicle of Don John I.; (2) Oliveiro Martins' Sons of Don John I.; (3) A. Herculano's History of Portugal; (4) Osbernus de Expugnatione Lixbonensi.

VI. For Chapter VI. (Portugal to 1400): (1) The Chronicle of Don John I.; (2) Oliveiro Martins' Sons of Don John I.; (3) A. Herculano's History of Portugal; (4) Osbernus de Expugnatione Lixbonensi.

VII. For Chapter VII. (Henry's position in 1415): Azurara's Discovery and Conquest of Guinea.[Pg xxi]

VII. For Chapter VII. (Henry's position in 1415): Azurara's Discovery and Conquest of Guinea.[Pg xxi]

VIII. For Chapter VIII. (Ceuta): (1) Azurara's Chronicle of the Conquest of Ceuta; (2) Azurara's Discovery of Guinea.

VIII. For Chapter VIII. (Ceuta): (1) Azurara's Chronicle of the Conquest of Ceuta; (2) Azurara's Discovery of Guinea.

IX. For Chapter IX. (Henry's Settlement at Sagres): (1) Azurara's Guinea; (2) De Barro's Asia; (3) Wauwerman's Henri le Navigateur et l'École Portugaise de Sagres.

IX. For Chapter IX. (Henry's Settlement at Sagres): (1) Azurara's Guinea; (2) De Barro's Asia; (3) Wauwerman's Henri le Navigateur et l'École Portugaise de Sagres.

X. For Chapter X. (Cape Bojador and the Azores): (1) Azurara's Guinea; (2) O. Martins' Sons of Don John I.

X. For Chapter X. (Cape Bojador and the Azores): (1) Azurara's Guinea; (2) O. Martins' Sons of Don John I.

XI. For Chapter XI. (Henry's Political Life, 1433-41): (1) Pina's Chronicle of King Edward; (2) O. Martins' Sons of Don John I.; (3) Azurara's Chronicle of John I.; (4) Pina's Chronicle of Affonso V.

XI. For Chapter XI. (Henry's Political Life, 1433-41): (1) Pina's Chronicle of King Edward; (2) O. Martins' Sons of Don John I.; (3) Azurara's Chronicle of John I.; (4) Pina's Chronicle of Affonso V.

XII. For Chapter XII. (From Boyador to Cape Verde).—(1) Azurara's Guinea; (2) De Barros; (3) Pina's Chronicle of Affonso V.; (4) O. Martins' Sons of Don John I.

XII. For Chapter XII. (From Boyador to Cape Verde).—(1) Azurara's Guinea; (2) De Barros; (3) Pina's Chronicle of Affonso V.; (4) O. Martins' Sons of Don John I.

For Chapters XIII. to the end.—(1) Azurara's Discovery and Conquest of Guinea; (2) Narratives of Cadamosto and Diego Gomez; (3) Pina's Chronicle of Affonso V.; (4) Prince Henry's Charters.

For Chapters XIII. to the end.—(1) Azurara's Discovery and Conquest of Guinea; (2) Stories of Cadamosto and Diego Gomez; (3) Pina's Chronicle of Affonso V.; (4) Prince Henry's Charters.

The three modern lives of Prince Henry which I have chiefly consulted are:

The three modern accounts of Prince Henry that I've primarily referred to are:

R.H. Major's Henry the Navigator, Wappäus' Heinrich der Seeffahrer, and De Weer's Prinz Heinrich, with O. Martins' Lives of the Infants of the House of Aviz in his Sons of Don John I.

R.H. Major's Henry the Navigator, Wappäus' Heinrich der Seefahrer, and De Weer's Prinz Heinrich, along with O. Martins' Lives of the Infants of the House of Aviz in his Sons of Don John I.

The maps and illustrations have been planned in a regular series.

The maps and illustrations have been organized in a consistent series.

I. As to the former, they are meant to show in[Pg xxii] an historical succession the course of geographical advance in Christendom down to the death of Prince Henry (1460). Setting aside the Ptolemy, which represents the knowledge of the world at its height in the pre-Christian civilisation, and the Edrisi which represents the Arabic followers of Ptolemy, whose influence upon early Christian geography was very marked, all the maps reproduced belong to the science of the Christian ages and countries. The two Mappe-mondes above referred to are both placed in the introductory chapter, and are treated only as the most important examples of the science which the Græco-Roman Empire bequeathed to Christendom, but which between the seventh and thirteenth centuries was chiefly worked upon by the Arabs. Among early Christian maps, that of St. Sever, possibly of the eighth century, the Anglo-Saxon map of the tenth century, the Turin Map of the eleventh, and the Spanish map of the twelfth (1109), represent very crude and simple types of sketches of the world, in which within a square or oblong surrounded by the ocean a few prominent features only, such as the main divisions of countries, are attempted. The Anglo-Saxon example, though greatly superior to the others given here, essentially belongs to this kind of work, where some little truth is preserved by a happy ignorance of the travellers' tales that came into fashion later, but where there is only the vaguest and most general knowledge of geographical facts.

I. As for the first point, they aim to illustrate in[Pg xxii] a historical progression of geographical growth in Christendom up to the death of Prince Henry (1460). Excluding Ptolemy, which showcases the world’s knowledge at its peak during pre-Christian civilization, and Edrisi, who represents the Arabic followers of Ptolemy and had a significant impact on early Christian geography, all the maps featured belong to the scientific understanding of the Christian era and its territories. The two world maps mentioned earlier are both included in the introductory chapter and are presented as key examples of the knowledge passed down from the Greco-Roman Empire to Christendom, which was primarily developed by Arabs between the seventh and thirteenth centuries. Among the early Christian maps, St. Sever’s map, likely from the eighth century, the Anglo-Saxon map from the tenth century, the Turin Map from the eleventh century, and the Spanish map from the twelfth century (1109) all represent very basic and simple sketches of the world. These maps show a few prominent features, like the main divisions of countries, within a square or rectangular area surrounded by the ocean. Although the Anglo-Saxon example is significantly better than the others presented here, it still fits into this category of maps, where some truth is maintained due to a happy ignorance of the exaggerated travelers’ tales that became popular later, resulting in only the most vague and general understanding of geographical facts.

On the other hand, in the next group, to which the Psalter map is allied, and in which the Hereford[Pg xxiii] map is our best example, mythical learning—drawn from books like Pliny, Solinus, St. Isidore, and Martianus Capella, which collected stories of beasts and monsters, stones and men, divine, human, and natural marvels on the principle Credo quia impossible—has overpowered every other consideration, and a map of the world becomes a great picture-book of curious objects, in which the very central and primary interest of geography is lost. But by the side of and almost at the same time as these specimens of geographical mythology, geographical science had taken a new start in the coast charts or portolani of Balearic and Italian seamen, some specimens of which form our next set of maps.

On the other hand, in the next group, which is connected to the Psalter map, and where the Hereford[Pg xxiii] map serves as our best example, mythical knowledge—drawn from texts like Pliny, Solinus, St. Isidore, and Martianus Capella, which compiled tales of beasts and monsters, stones and humans, and divine, human, and natural wonders based on the principle Credo quia impossible—has dominated all other considerations, turning a world map into a large picture book of intriguing objects, where the core interest of geography is overshadowed. However, alongside and almost simultaneously with these examples of geographical mythology, geographical science had begun anew in the coast charts or portolani of Balearic and Italian sailors, some examples of which make up our next set of maps.

Dulcert's portolano of 1339 and the Laurentian of 1351 are two of the best examples of this kind of work, which gave us our first really accurate map of any part of the globe, but which for some time was entirely confined to coast drawing, and was meant to supply the practical wants of captains, pilots, and seamen. The Catalan atlas of 1375-6 shows the portolano type extended to a real Mappa Mundi; the elaborate carefulness and sumptuousness of this example prepares us for the still higher work of Andrea Bianco and of Benincasa in the fifteenth century. As the Laurentian portolano of 1351 commemorates the voyage of 1341 and marks its discoveries in the Atlantic islands, so the Catalan map of 1375-6 commemorates the Catalan voyage of 1346, and gives the best and most up-to-date picture of the N.W. African coast as it was known before Prince Henry's discoveries.[Pg xxiv]

Dulcert's portolano from 1339 and the Laurentian from 1351 are two of the best examples of this kind of work, providing us with our first truly accurate map of any part of the globe. However, for a while, it was completely focused on coastlines and was intended to meet the practical needs of captains, pilots, and sailors. The Catalan atlas from 1375-6 shows the portolano style evolved into a real Mappa Mundi; the detailed craftsmanship and opulence of this example set the stage for the even greater works of Andrea Bianco and Benincasa in the fifteenth century. Just as the Laurentian portolano of 1351 commemorates the voyage of 1341 and marks its discoveries in the Atlantic islands, the Catalan map of 1375-6 honors the Catalan voyage of 1346 and provides the best and most current depiction of the northwest African coast as it was known before Prince Henry's discoveries.[Pg xxiv]

Last of these groups of maps is that of examples from Henry's own age, such as the Fra Mauro map of 1459 or the maps of Andrea Bianco and Benincasa (e.g., 1436, 1448, 1468), among which the first-named is the only one we have been able to give here.

Last in this series of maps are examples from Henry's own time, like the Fra Mauro map from 1459 and the maps by Andrea Bianco and Benincasa (e.g., 1436, 1448, 1468), of which the Fra Mauro map is the only one we've included here.

The Borgian map of 1450 is given as an extraordinary specimen of what could be done as late as 1450, not as an example of geographical progress; and the map of 1492, recording Portuguese discoveries down to the rounding of the Cape of Good Hope, is added to illustrate the advance of explorers in the years closely following Henry's death, as it was realised at the time.

The Borgian map of 1450 is presented as an exceptional example of what was possible by that year, rather than as proof of geographical progress. The map from 1492, which captures Portuguese discoveries leading up to the rounding of the Cape of Good Hope, is included to show the advancements made by explorers in the years immediately after Henry's death, as understood at that time.

The maps have in most cases been set from the modern standpoint, but, as will readily be seen by the position of the names, the normal mediæval setting was quite different, with the S. or E. at the top.

The maps have mostly been created from a modern perspective, but as you can easily tell from the placement of the names, the usual medieval layout was quite different, with the south or east at the top.

II. The illustrations aim at giving portraits or pictures of the chief persons and places connected with the life of Prince Henry. There are three of the Prince himself; one from the Paris MS. of Azurara, one from the gateway of the great convent church of Belem, one from the recumbent statue over his tomb at Batalha. Two others give: (1) The whole group of the royal tombs of Henry's house,—of his father, mother, and brothers in the aisle at Batalha, and (2) the recumbent statues of his father and mother, John and Philippa, in detail; the exterior and general effect of the same church—Portugal's Westminster, and the mausoleum of the Navigator's[Pg xxv] own family of Aviz—comes next, in a view of this greatest of Portuguese shrines.

II. The illustrations aim to provide portraits or images of the key people and places associated with Prince Henry's life. There are three depictions of the Prince himself: one from the Paris manuscript of Azurara, one from the entrance of the grand convent church of Belem, and one from the reclining statue over his tomb at Batalha. Two additional illustrations show: (1) the entire group of royal tombs from Henry's family—his father, mother, and brothers in the aisle at Batalha, and (2) the reclining statues of his father and mother, John and Philippa, in detail; the exterior and overall look of this church—Portugal's version of Westminster, and the mausoleum of the Navigator's own Aviz family—comes next, featuring a view of this most significant of Portuguese shrines.[Pg xxv]

Coimbra University, with which as rector or chancellor or patron Prince Henry was so closely connected, for which he once provided house room, and in which his benefactions earned him the title of "Protector of the studies of Portugal" is given to illustrate his life as a student and a man of science; the mother church of the order of Christ at Thomar may remind us of another side of his life—as a military monk, grand master of an order of religious chivalry which at least professed to bind its members to a single life, and which under his lead took an active part in the exploration and settlement of the African coasts and the Atlantic islands.

Coimbra University, which Prince Henry was closely associated with as rector, chancellor, or patron, once provided him with housing. His donations earned him the title of "Protector of the studies of Portugal," illustrating his life as a student and a scholar. The mother church of the Order of Christ in Thomar serves as a reminder of another aspect of his life—as a military monk and grand master of a religious chivalry order, which at least claimed to commit its members to a single life. Under his leadership, the order played an active role in the exploration and settlement of the African coasts and the Atlantic islands.

The portraits of Columbus, Da Gama, and Albuquerque, which conclude this set of illustrations, are given as portraits of three of Prince Henry's more or less conscious disciples and followers, of three men who did most to realise his schemes. The first of these, who owed to Portuguese advance towards the south the suggestion of corresponding success in the west, and who found America by the western route to India,—as Henry had planned nearly a century before to round Africa and reach Malabar by the eastern and southern way,—was the nearest of the Prince's successful imitators in time, the greatest in achievement; he was not a mere follower of the Portuguese initiative, for he struck out a new line or at least a neglected one, made the greatest of all geographical additions to human knowledge, and took the most daring plunge into the unknown that[Pg xxvi] has ever been taken—but Columbus, beside his independent position and interest, was certainly on one side a disciple of Henry the Navigator, and drew much of his inspiration from the impulse that the Prince had started. Da Gama, the first who sailed direct from Lisbon to India round Africa, and Albuquerque, the maker, if not the founder, of the Portuguese empire in the East, were simply the realisers of the vast ambitions that take their start from the work and life of Prince Henry, and he has a right to claim them as two leading champions of his plans and policy. In many points Albuquerque, like Columbus, is more than a follower; but in the main outline of his achievement he follows upon the work of other men, and, among these men, of none so much as the Hero of Portugal and of modern discovery.

The portraits of Columbus, Da Gama, and Albuquerque, which wrap up this set of illustrations, are presented as images of three of Prince Henry's more or less aware followers, who played a significant role in bringing his ideas to life. The first of these men, who benefited from Portugal’s drive southward to suggest a similar success in the west, found America while searching for the western route to India—just as Henry had envisioned nearly a century earlier by navigating around Africa to reach Malabar from the east and south. Columbus was the closest in time to the Prince's successful imitators and achieved the greatest results; he wasn't simply a follower of Portuguese initiatives, as he charted a new path—or at least revisited a neglected one—adding significantly to human knowledge of geography and taking the boldest leap into the unknown that[Pg xxvi] has ever seen. However, alongside his independent position and aspirations, Columbus was also, in a way, a disciple of Henry the Navigator and drew much of his inspiration from the momentum the Prince had created. Da Gama, the first to sail directly from Lisbon to India around Africa, and Albuquerque, who built, if not founded, the Portuguese empire in the East, were the true executors of the grand ambitions originating from Prince Henry's work and life, and he has every right to claim them as two major supporters of his vision and policies. In many respects, Albuquerque, like Columbus, surpasses being just a follower; but overall, his achievements follow the groundwork laid by others, and among those individuals, none more so than the Hero of Portugal and modern discovery.

Lastly. I have to thank many friends generally for their constant kindness and readiness to assist in any way, and in particular several for the most generous and valuable help in certain parts.

Lastly, I want to thank all my friends for their ongoing kindness and willingness to help in any way. I especially want to acknowledge a few for their incredibly generous and valuable assistance in specific areas.

Mr. T.A. Archer, besides the benefit of his suggestions throughout, has given special aid in Chapters I., III., V., and the Introductory Chapter, especially where anything is said of the connection of geographical progress with the Crusades.[7]

Mr. T.A. Archer, along with his helpful suggestions throughout, has provided specific assistance in Chapters I, III, V, and the Introductory Chapter, particularly regarding the relationship between geographical advancement and the Crusades.[7]

Mr. F. York Powell has revised Chapter II. on the Vikings, and Professor Margoliouth has done the same for the Introductory Chapter on Greek and Arabic geography; Mr. Coote has not only given me every help in the map room of the[Pg xxvii] British Museum, but has read the proofs of Chapter V. Mr. H. Yule-Oldham in Chapter XVIII. on the Voyage of Cadamosto, and Mr. Prestage in Chapters VIII. and IX. on Prince Henry's capture of Ceuta and settlement at Sagres, have been most kind in offering suggestions. For several hints useful in Chapter I.—the early Christian pilgrims—I have also to thank Professor Sanday; and for revision of a great part of the proof-sheets of the entire book, Mr. G.N. Richardson and the Rev. W.H. Hutton.

Mr. F. York Powell has updated Chapter II on the Vikings, and Professor Margoliouth has revised the Introductory Chapter on Greek and Arabic geography. Mr. Coote has not only provided invaluable assistance in the map room of the[Pg xxvii] British Museum, but he has also reviewed the proofs of Chapter V. Mr. H. Yule-Oldham contributed to Chapter XVIII on the Voyage of Cadamosto, and Mr. Prestage helped with Chapters VIII and IX on Prince Henry's capture of Ceuta and settlement at Sagres by offering helpful suggestions. For several useful tips in Chapter I—the early Christian pilgrims—I also want to thank Professor Sanday, and for revising much of the proof-sheets of the entire book, I am grateful to Mr. G.N. Richardson and the Rev. W.H. Hutton.

As to the illustrations, of portraits and monuments, etc., I am especially obliged to the Vice-Chancellor of Oxford University (Dr. Boyd), who has allowed his water-colour paintings of Portuguese subjects to be reproduced; and to the Rev. R. Livingstone of Pembroke, and Sir John Hawkins of Oriel, for their loan of photographs.[Pg xxviii]

As for the illustrations, including portraits and monuments, I am particularly grateful to the Vice-Chancellor of Oxford University (Dr. Boyd) for allowing his watercolor paintings of Portuguese subjects to be reproduced; and to Rev. R. Livingstone of Pembroke and Sir John Hawkins of Oriel for lending their photographs.[Pg xxviii]


decorative illustration

decorative illustration

Prince Henry the Navigator.


The Lusitanian Prince who, divinely inspired,
To inspire humanity with the desire for meaningful achievement,
And in limitless trade, the world is interconnected.

Thomson: Seasons, Summer, 1010-2.

Thomson: Seasons, Summer, 1010-2.


INTRODUCTION.

THE GREEK AND ARABIC IDEAS OF THE WORLD, AS THE CHIEF INHERITANCE OF THE CHRISTIAN MIDDLE AGES IN GEOGRAPHICAL KNOWLEDGE.

Arabic science constitutes one of the main links between the older learned world of the Greeks and Latins and the Europe of Henry the Navigator and of the Renaissance. In geography it adopted in the main the results of Ptolemy and Strabo; and many of the Moslem travellers and writers gained some additional hints from Indian, Persian, and Chinese knowledge; but, however much of fact they added to Greek cartography, they did not venture to correct its postulates.[Pg 2]

AArabic science serves as a crucial connection between the ancient intellectual traditions of the Greeks and Latins and the Europe of Henry the Navigator and the Renaissance. In geography, it largely embraced the findings of Ptolemy and Strabo; many Muslim travelers and writers also drew insights from Indian, Persian, and Chinese knowledge. However, despite adding facts to Greek cartography, they didn't attempt to revise its fundamental principles.[Pg 2]

And what were these postulates? In part, they were the assumptions of modern draughtsmen, but in some important details they differed. And first, as to agreement. Three continents, Europe, Asia, and Africa, an encircling ocean, the Mediterranean, the Black Sea and Caspian, the Red Sea and Persian Gulf, the South Asiatic, and North and West European coasts were indicated with more or less precision in the science of the Antonines and even of Hannibal's age. Similarly, the Nile and Danube, Euphrates and Tigris, Indus and Ganges, Jaxartes and Oxus, Rhine and Ebro, Don and Volga, with the chief mountain ranges of Europe and Western Asia, find themselves pretty much in their right places in Strabo's description, and are still better placed in the great chart of Ptolemy. The countries and nations from China to Spain are arranged in the order of modern knowledge. But the differences were fundamental also. Never was there a clearer outrunning of knowledge by theory, science by conjecture, than in Ptolemy's scheme of the world (c. a.d. 130). His chief predecessors, Eratosthenes and Strabo, had left much blank space in their charts, and had made many mistakes in detail, but they had caught the main features of the Old World with fair accuracy. Ptolemy, in trying to fill up what he did not know from his inner consciousness, evolved a parody of those features. His map, from its intricate falsehood, backed as it was by the greatest name in geographical science, paralysed all real enlargement of knowledge till men began to question, not only his facts, but his theories. And[Pg 3] as all modern science, in fact, followed the progress of world-knowledge, or "geography," we may see how important it was for this revolution to take place, for Ptolemy to be dethroned.

And what were these basic ideas? Partly, they were the beliefs of modern mapmakers, but they also had some significant differences. First, regarding agreement. Three continents—Europe, Asia, and Africa—along with surrounding oceans like the Mediterranean, the Black Sea, the Caspian, the Red Sea, and the Persian Gulf, as well as the coasts of South Asia and North and Western Europe, were identified with varying accuracy in the science of the Antonines and even in Hannibal's time. Likewise, the Nile and Danube, Euphrates and Tigris, Indus and Ganges, Jaxartes and Oxus, Rhine and Ebro, Don and Volga, along with the major mountain ranges of Europe and Western Asia, were mostly in their correct locations in Strabo's descriptions, and were even better arranged in Ptolemy's great map. The nations and regions stretching from China to Spain were organized according to modern understanding. However, the differences were also fundamental. There has never been a clearer case of theory outpacing knowledge and science being overshadowed by speculation than in Ptolemy’s world framework (c. A.D. 130). His main predecessors, Eratosthenes and Strabo, had left many gaps on their maps and made several errors, yet they had captured the primary features of the Old World quite accurately. In an attempt to fill in what he didn’t know with his own imagination, Ptolemy created a distorted version of those features. His map, with its complex inaccuracies, hindered any real advancement in knowledge until people began to question not just his facts but his theories. And[Pg 3] since all modern science, in fact, tracked the evolution of global knowledge, or "geography," we can see how crucial it was for this change to happen, for Ptolemy to be replaced.

THE WORLD ACCORDING TO PTOLEMY.

THE WORLD ACCORDING TO PTOLEMY.

THE WORLD ACCORDING TO PTOLEMY.
(see list of maps)

THE WORLD ACCORDING TO PTOLEMY.
(see list of maps)

The Arabs, commanding most of the centres of ancient learning (Ptolemy's own Alexandria above all), riveted the pseudo-science of their predecessors on the learned world, along with the genuine knowledge which they handed down from the Greeks. In many details they corrected and amplified the Greek results. But most of their geographical theories were mere reproductions of Ptolemy's, and to his mistakes they added wilder though less important confusions or inventions of their own. The result of all this, by the tenth century a.d., was a geography, based not on knowledge, but on ideas of symmetry. It was a scheme fit for the Arabian Nights.

The Arabs, who controlled many of the ancient learning centers (especially Ptolemy's Alexandria), spread the pseudo-science of their predecessors across the scholarly world, along with the authentic knowledge they inherited from the Greeks. They corrected and expanded on Greek findings in many areas. However, most of their geographical theories were simply restatements of Ptolemy's, and to his errors, they added even more wild, though less significant, confusions or inventions of their own. By the tenth century A.D., this led to a geography based not on facts, but on ideas of symmetry. It was a framework fit for the Arabian Nights.

And how did Ptolemy lend himself to this?

And how did Ptolemy get involved in this?

His chief mistakes were only two;—but they were mistakes from which at any rate Strabo and most of the Greek geographers are free. He made the Indian Ocean an inland sea, and he filled up the Southern Hemisphere with Africa, or the unknown Antarctic land in which he extended Africa.[8] The Dark Continent, in his map, ran out on the one side to the south-east of China, and on the other to the indefinite west, though there was here no hint of[Pg 4] America or an Atlantic continent. It was a triumph of learned imagination over humdrum research. Science under Hadrian was ambitious to have its world settled and known; it was not yet settled or fully known; and so a great student constructed a mélange of fact and fancy mainly based on a guess-work of imaginary astronomical reckonings. On the far east, Ptolemy joined China and Africa; and on this imaginary western coast, fronting Malacca and Further India, he placed various gratuitous towns and rivers. Coming to smaller matters, he cut away the whole of the Indian peninsula proper, though preserving the Further or "Golden" Chersonesus of the Malays, and he enlarged Taprobane, or Ceylon, to double the size of Asia Minor. Thus the southern coast of Asia from Arabia to the Ganges ran almost due east, with a strait of sea coming through the modern Carnatic, between the continent and the Great Spice Island, which included most of the Deccan. The Persian Gulf, much greater on this map than the Black Sea, was made equal in length and breadth; the shape of the Caspian was, so to say, turned inside out and its length given as from east to west, instead of from north to south; while the coast line, even of the familiar Euxine, Ægean, and Southern Mediterranean, was anything but true. Scandinavia was an island smaller than Ireland; Scotland represented a great eastern bend of Britain, with the Shetlands and Färoes (Thule) lying a short distance to the north, but on the left-hand side of the great island. The Sea of Azov, hardly inferior to the Euxine, stretched north half way across[Pg 5] Russia. All Central Africa and the great Southern or Antarctic continent was described as pathless desert—"a land uninhabitable from the heat"; and the sources of the Nile were accounted for by the marshes and Mountains of the Moon.

His main mistakes were just two, but they were mistakes that Strabo and most Greek geographers avoided. He depicted the Indian Ocean as an inland sea and filled the Southern Hemisphere with Africa, or an unknown Antarctic land where he extended Africa.[8] On his map, the Dark Continent extended southeast toward China and indefinitely westward, with no indication of[Pg 4] America or an Atlantic continent. It was a triumph of scholarly imagination over dull research. Science during Hadrian's time aimed to have the world mapped and understood; it wasn’t fully mapped or understood yet, so a great scholar created a mix of fact and fancy largely based on guesswork from imaginary astronomical calculations. In the far east, Ptolemy connected China and Africa, and on this imaginary western coast, facing Malacca and Further India, he placed various unnecessary towns and rivers. On a smaller scale, he eliminated the entire Indian peninsula while keeping the Further or "Golden" Chersonesus of the Malays, and he doubled the size of Taprobane, or Ceylon, compared to Asia Minor. Thus, the southern coast of Asia stretched almost directly east from Arabia to the Ganges, with a sea strait running through what is now the Carnatic, between the continent and the Great Spice Island, which included most of the Deccan. The Persian Gulf was shown much larger on this map than the Black Sea, made equal in length and width; the shape of the Caspian Sea was essentially reversed, with its length oriented east to west instead of north to south; and the coastlines of the familiar Euxine, Ægean, and Southern Mediterranean were far from accurate. Scandinavia was depicted as an island smaller than Ireland; Scotland was represented as a large eastern curve of Britain, with the Shetlands and Färoes (Thule) located just north, but on the left side of the main island. The Sea of Azov, almost on par with the Euxine, stretched north halfway across[Pg 5] Russia. All of Central Africa and the vast Southern or Antarctic continent were marked as impenetrable desert—"a land uninhabitable from the heat"; and the Nile’s sources were explained by the marshes and Mountains of the Moon.

Thus all the problems of ancient geography were explained: where Ptolemy's knowledge failed him altogether, no Western of that time had ever been, or was likely to go. The whole realised and unrealised world was described with such clearness and consistency, men thought, that what was lacking in Aristotle was now supplied.

Thus, all the issues of ancient geography were clarified: where Ptolemy's understanding fell short, no Westerner of that time had ever visited or was likely to visit. The entire known and unknown world was described with such clarity and consistency that people believed what Aristotle lacked was now addressed.

Yet it is worth while observing how, centuries before Ptolemy, in the ages nearer to Aristotle himself, the geography of Eratosthenes and Strabo, by a more balanced use of knowledge and by a greater restraint of fancy, had composed a far more reliable chart.[9]

Yet it's worth noting how, centuries before Ptolemy, in times closer to Aristotle himself, the geography of Eratosthenes and Strabo, through a more balanced use of knowledge and a greater control of imagination, had created a much more reliable map.[9]

This earlier and discredited map avoided all the more serious perversions of Ptolemy. Africa was cut off at the limit of actual knowledge, about Cape Non on the west and Cape Guardafui on the east; and the "Cinnamon-bearing Coast," between these points, was fringed by the Mountains of Æthiopia, where the Nile rose. This was the theory which[Pg 6] revived on the decline of the Ptolemaic, and which encouraged the Portuguese sailors with hopes of a quick approach to India round Africa, as the great eastern bend of the Guinea coast seemed to suggest. Further, on this pre-Ptolemaic map the Southern Ocean was left untouched by a supposed Southern Continent, and except for an undue shrinkage of the Old World in general as an island in the midst of the vast surrounding ocean, a reliable description of Western Asia and Central Europe and North Africa was in the hands of the learned world two hundred years before Christ.

This earlier and discredited map avoided all the more serious mistakes of Ptolemy. Africa was cut off at the limit of known geography, around Cape Non on the west and Cape Guardafui on the east; and the "Cinnamon-bearing Coast" between these points was bordered by the Mountains of Æthiopia, where the Nile originated. This was the theory that[Pg 6] revived as the Ptolemaic system declined, encouraging Portuguese sailors with hopes of quickly reaching India by sailing around Africa, as the great eastern curve of the Guinea coast seemed to suggest. Furthermore, on this pre-Ptolemaic map, the Southern Ocean was portrayed without a supposed Southern Continent, and except for an undue shrinkage of the Old World in general as an island in the midst of the vast surrounding ocean, there was a reliable description of Western Asia, Central Europe, and North Africa available to scholars two hundred years before Christ.

It is true that Strabo's China is cramped and cut short; that his Ceylon (Taprobane) is even larger than Ptolemy's; that Ireland (Ierne) appears to the north of Britain; and that the Caspian joins the North Sea by a long and narrow channel; but the true shape of India, of the Persian Gulf and the Euxine, of the Sea of Azov and the Mediterranean, is marked rightly enough in general outline. This earlier chart has not the elaborate completeness of Ptolemy's, but it is free from his enormous errors, and it has all the advantage of science, however imperfect, over brilliant guessing.

It’s true that Strabo's depiction of China is limited and truncated; that his version of Ceylon (Taprobane) is even bigger than Ptolemy's; that Ireland (Ierne) is shown to the north of Britain; and that the Caspian Sea connects to the North Sea via a long and narrow channel. However, the general shapes of India, the Persian Gulf, the Black Sea, the Sea of Azov, and the Mediterranean are outlined accurately enough. This earlier map may not have the detailed completeness of Ptolemy's, but it avoids his massive errors and benefits from a level of scientific understanding, however flawed, over mere brilliant speculation.

Of course, even in Ptolemy, this guess-work pure and simple only comes in at intervals and does not so much affect the central and, for his day, far more important tracts of the Old World, but we have yet to see how, in the mediæval period and under Arabic imagination, all geography seemed likely to become an exercise of fancy.

Of course, even in Ptolemy, this guesswork only appears occasionally and doesn’t really impact the core areas of the Old World, which were much more significant for his time. However, we still need to explore how, during the medieval period and under Arab influence, geography seemed to transform into an exercise of imagination.

The chief Greek descriptions of the world, we[Pg 7] must clearly remember, were before the mediæval workers, Christian and Moslem, from the first; these men took their choice, and the point is that they, and specially the Arabs, chose with rare exceptions the last of these, the Ptolemaic system, because it was the more ambitious, symmetrical, and pretty.

The main Greek descriptions of the world, we[Pg 7] must keep in mind, were presented to the medieval scholars, both Christian and Muslim, from the beginning; these individuals made their selections, and the important thing is that they, especially the Arabs, primarily chose the last of these, the Ptolemaic system, because it was more ambitious, orderly, and attractive.

Let us trace for a moment the gradual development of this geographical mythology.

Let’s take a moment to follow the gradual evolution of this geographical mythology.

Starting with the notion of the world as a disc, or a ball, the centre of the universe, round which moved six celestial circles, of the Meridian, the Equator, the Ecliptic, the two Tropics, and the Horizon, the Arab philosophers on the side of the earth's surface worked out a doctrine of a Cupola or Summit of the world, and on the side of the heavens a pseudo-science of the Anoua or Settings of the Constellations, connected with the twelve Pillars of the Zodiac and the twenty-eight Mansions of the Moon.

Starting with the idea of the world as a disk or a sphere, the center of the universe, around which moved six celestial circles— the Meridian, the Equator, the Ecliptic, the two Tropics, and the Horizon— Arab philosophers developed a theory of a Dome or Peak of the world on the Earth's surface, and on the celestial side, a pseudo-science of the Anoua or Positions of the Constellations, linked to the twelve Pillars of the Zodiac and the twenty-eight Mansions of the Moon.

With Arabic astrology we are not here concerned; it is only worth noting in this connection as the possible source of early Christian knowledge of the Southern Cross and other stars famous in the story of exploration, such as Dante shows in the first canto of his Purgatorio. But the geographical doctrines of Islam, compounded from the Hebrew Pentateuch and the theoretical parts of Ptolemy, had a more immediate and reactionary effect on knowledge. The symmetrical Greek divisions of land into seven zones or climates; and of the world's surface,[10][Pg 8] into three parts water and one part terra firma; the Indian fourfold arrangement of "Romeland" and the East; the similar fourfold Chinese partition of China, India, Persia, and Tartary: all these reappeared confusedly in Arabic geography. From India and the Sanscrit "Lanka," they seem to have got their first start on the myth of Odjein, Aryn, or Arim, "the World's Summit"; from Ptolemy the sacred number of 360 degrees of longitude was certainly derived, beautifully corresponding to the days of the year, and neatly divided into 180 of land or habitable earth and 180 of sea, or unharvested desert. With the seven climates they made correspond the great Empires of the world—chief among which they reckoned the Caliphate (or Bagdad), China, Rome, Turkestan, and India.

We’re not focusing on Arabic astrology here, but it’s worth mentioning as a potential source of early Christian knowledge about the Southern Cross and other notable stars featured in exploration tales, like those Dante includes in the first canto of his Purgatorio. However, the geographical theories of Islam, which combined ideas from the Hebrew Pentateuch and Ptolemy's theoretical work, had a more direct and reactive impact on knowledge. The organized Greek divisions of land into seven zones or climates and the way the world’s surface was divided—[10][Pg 8] into three parts water and one part terra firma; the Indian fourfold classification of "Romeland" and the East; and the similar fourfold Chinese division of China, India, Persia, and Tartary— all of these reappeared in a muddled form in Arabic geography. They seem to have gotten their initial inspiration for the myth of Odjein, Aryn, or Arim, "the World’s Summit," from India and the Sanskrit "Lanka." The sacred number of 360 degrees of longitude was definitely derived from Ptolemy, beautifully aligning with the days of the year, and clearly divided into 180 degrees of land or habitable earth and 180 degrees of sea, or unproductive desert. They associated the seven climates with the major empires of the world—among which they counted the Caliphate (or Baghdad), China, Rome, Turkestan, and India.

The sacred city of Odjein had been the centre of most of the earlier Oriental systems; in the Arabic form of Arim ("The Cupola of the Earth"), it became the fixed point round which circled mediæval theories of the world's shape. "Somewhere in the Indian Ocean between Comorin and Madagascar," became the compromise when the mountain could not be found off any of the known coast-lines; it was mixed up with notions of the Roc, and the Moon Mountains in Africa, of the Magnet Island and of the Eastern Kingdom made out of one vast pearl; and even in Roger Bacon it serves as an algebraic sign for a mathematical centre of the world.

The sacred city of Odjein had been the center of most earlier Eastern systems; in Arabic, it was known as Arim ("The Cupola of the Earth"), and it became the reference point around which medieval theories about the shape of the world revolved. "Somewhere in the Indian Ocean between Comorin and Madagascar" became the compromise when the mountain couldn't be found along any of the known coastlines; it was tangled up with ideas about the Roc, the Moon Mountains in Africa, Magnet Island, and the Eastern Kingdom made from one massive pearl; even Roger Bacon used it as a mathematical symbol for the world's center.

The enlargement of knowledge, though forcing upon Arabic science a conviction of Ptolemy's mistake in over-extending the limits of the world known[Pg 9] to him, only led to the invention of a scholastic distinction between the real and the traditional East and West, while the confusion was made perfect by the travestied history always so popular among Orientals. The "Gades of Alexander and Hercules," the farthest points east and west, were named after the mythical conquests of the real Iskander and the mythical hero of Greeks and Phœnicians. Arim in the middle, with the pillars of Hercules and Alexander, and the north and south poles at equal distance from it—the centre and the four corners of the world as neatly fixed as geometry could define—this was the map, first of the Arabs, and then of their Christian scholars.

The expansion of knowledge, while leading Arabic scholars to realize Ptolemy's error in exaggerating the known boundaries of the world[Pg 9], resulted in the creation of a scholarly divide between the actual and the traditional East and West. This confusion was further complicated by the distorted histories that were always popular among Orientals. The "Gades of Alexander and Hercules," which marked the furthest points east and west, were named after the legendary conquests of the real Iskander and the mythical heroes of the Greeks and Phoenicians. Arim was positioned in the center, alongside the pillars of Hercules and Alexander, with the north and south poles equally distant from it—this defined the center and the four corners of the world as precisely as geometry could describe. This was the map first drawn by the Arabs and then adopted by their Christian scholars.

To form any idea of the complete spell thus cast over thought both in Islam and Christendom, we may look at the words of European scholars of the twelfth and thirteenth centuries, living far from Islam, long after its intellectual glory had begun to decay, and at a time when Christian scholastic philosophy had reached an independent position. Gerard of Cremona and Adelard of Bath (the translator of the great Arabic geographer, Mohammed Al-Kharizmy) in the twelfth century, Roger Bacon and Albertus Magnus in the later thirteenth, are all as clear about their geographical postulates as about their theological or ethical rules. And what concerns us here is that they exactly reflect the mind of the Arabic science or pseudo-science of the time just preceding, so that their words may represent to us the state of Mohammedan thought between the eighth and twelfth centuries, between the writers at[Pg 10] the Court of Caliph Almamoun (813-833) and Edrisi at the Court of King Roger of Sicily (1150).

To understand the complete influence that has shaped thought in both Islam and Christianity, we can look at the writings of European scholars from the twelfth and thirteenth centuries. These scholars lived far from Islam and long after its intellectual brilliance had begun to decline, during a time when Christian scholastic philosophy had become established on its own. Gerard of Cremona and Adelard of Bath (the translator of the famous Arabic geographer, Mohammed Al-Khwarizmi) in the twelfth century, along with Roger Bacon and Albertus Magnus in the later thirteenth century, were all clear about their geographical theories as well as their theological and ethical principles. What matters here is that they accurately reflect the thinking of Arabic science or pseudo-science from the period just before, so their writings may give us insight into Islamic thought from the eighth to the twelfth centuries, specifically between the scholars at[Pg 10] the Court of Caliph Almamoun (813-833) and Edrisi at the Court of King Roger of Sicily (1150).

(1.) Adelard, summarising Mohammed Al-Kharizmy with the results of his Paris education, tells us of the Arabic "Examination of planets and of time, starting from the centre of the world, called Arim, from which place to the four ends of the earth the distance is equal, viz., ninety degrees, answering to the fourth part of the world's circumference. It is tedious and unending to attempt to place all the countries of the world and to fix all the marks of time. So the meridian is taken as the measure of the latter and Arim of the former, and from this starting-point it is not hard to fix other countries." "Arim," he concludes, "is under the equator, at the point where there is no latitude," and he plainly implies that there were then existing among the Arabs tables calculating all the chief places of every country from the meridian of Arim.

(1.) Adelard, summarizing Mohammed Al-Kharizmy with the insights he gained from his education in Paris, talks about the Arabic "Examination of planets and time, beginning from the center of the world, known as Arim, from which the distance to the four corners of the earth is equal, specifically ninety degrees, representing a quarter of the world's circumference. It's tedious and never-ending to try to map out all the countries and set all the time markers. So, the meridian is used as a standard for time, and Arim for location, and from this point, it's not difficult to identify other countries." "Arim," he concludes, "is located at the equator, at the point where there is no latitude," and he clearly suggests that there were existing tables among the Arabs that calculated all the major locations of every country based on the meridian of Arim.

(2.) Gerard of Cremona, who, though for some time a resident at Toledo, is essentially an Italian, tells us about the "Middle of the World," from which longitudes were calculated, "called Arim," and "said to be in India," whose longitude from west to east or from east to west is ninety degrees.

(2.) Gerard of Cremona, who, although he lived in Toledo for a while, is fundamentally Italian, tells us about the "Middle of the World," from which longitudes were measured, "called Arim," and "said to be in India," with a longitude of ninety degrees from west to east or from east to west.

In his Theory of the Planets Gerard tells us still more wonderful things. Arim was a geographical centre known and used by Hermes Trismegistus and by Ptolemy, as well as by the great Arab geographers; Alexander of Macedon marched just as far to the east of Arim as Hercules to the west; both reached the encircling ocean, and accordingly "Arim[Pg 11] is equidistant from both the Gades, 90 degrees; likewise from each pole, north and south, the same, 90 degrees." This all recurs in the tables of Alphonso the Wise of Castille about a.d. 1260, and two of the greatest of mediæval thinkers, Albert and Roger Bacon, reproduced the essential points of this doctrine, its false symmetry, and its balance of the true and the traditional, with variations of their own.

In his Theory of the Planets, Gerard shares even more amazing insights. Arim was a geographical center recognized and utilized by Hermes Trismegistus and Ptolemy, as well as by the renowned Arab geographers. Alexander the Great marched as far east of Arim as Hercules did to the west; both reached the surrounding ocean. Therefore, "Arim[Pg 11] is equidistant from both Gades, 90 degrees; similarly from each pole, north and south, the same, 90 degrees." This concept also appears in the tables of Alphonso the Wise of Castile around AD 1260, and two of the most influential medieval thinkers, Albert and Roger Bacon, reiterated the key points of this doctrine, its flawed symmetry, and its balance of the factual and the traditional, along with their own interpretations.

(3.) Albert the Great, Albertus Magnus, second only to Aquinas among the Continental Schoolmen, in his View of Astronomy, repeats Adelard upon the question of Arim, "where there is no latitude," while (4) Roger Bacon discusses not only the true and the traditional East and West, but even a twofold Arim, one "under the solstice, the other under the equinoctial zone." Arim he finds not to be in the centre of the real world, but only of the traditional. In another passage of the Opus Majus, Bacon, our first English worker in the exact sciences, allows the world-summit not to be exactly 90 degrees from the east, although so placed by mathematicians. Yet there is no contradiction, he urges, because the men of theory are "speaking of the habitable world known to them, according to the true understanding of latitude and longitude," and this "true understanding" is "not as great as has been realised in travel by Pliny and others." "The longitude of the habitable world is more than half of the whole circuit." This, reproduced in the Imago Mundi of Cardinal Peter Ailly (1410), fell into the hands of Columbus and helped to fix his doctrines[Pg 12] of the shape of the world ("in the form of a pear") of the terrestrial paradise, and of the earth's circumference,—so enormously contracted as practically to abolish the Pacific.[11]

(3.) Albert the Great, Albertus Magnus, who is second only to Aquinas among the Continental Schoolmen, in his View of Astronomy, repeats Adelard regarding the question of Arim, "where there is no latitude," while (4) Roger Bacon not only talks about the true and traditional East and West, but also mentions a twofold Arim, one "under the solstice and the other under the equinoctial zone." He discovers that Arim is not at the center of the actual world, but only of the traditional one. In another section of the Opus Majus, Bacon, our first English contributor to the exact sciences, acknowledges that the world summit isn't precisely 90 degrees from the east, even though mathematicians have placed it so. Nevertheless, he argues there's no contradiction because theorists are "discussing the habitable world known to them, according to the true understanding of latitude and longitude," and this "true understanding" is "not as extensive as has been realized in travel by Pliny and others." "The longitude of the habitable world is more than half of the whole circuit." This, reiterated in the Imago Mundi of Cardinal Peter Ailly (1410), reached Columbus and influenced his beliefs about the shape of the world ("in the form of a pear"), the terrestrial paradise, and the earth's circumference—which he significantly minimized to nearly eliminate the Pacific.[Pg 12]

To return to the Arabs: We have seen how they not merely followed Greek theories, which their own experience as conquerors in the Further East went to discredit, but, in the great outlines of geography, added to earlier errors, put prejudice in the place of knowledge, and handed on to Christendom a half-fanciful map of the world. It only remains for us to illustrate their leading fault, of a too vivid fancy, with a few details on minor points.

To get back to the Arabs: We've seen how they not only copied Greek theories, which their own experiences as conquerors in the Far East proved wrong, but they also contributed to earlier mistakes in geography, replacing knowledge with bias and giving Christendom a somewhat imaginary map of the world. Now, we just need to highlight their main flaw of an overly vivid imagination with a few details on smaller issues.

(1.) Ptolemy's "Habitable Quarter" of the world, amounting to just half the longitude of the globe, was literally accepted by the Moslem world, as it accepted the Pentateuch from the moment when it began its study of science at the Court of Almamoun (813-833). But, as the conquests of the Caliphs disclosed districts in the east far beyond Ptolemy's limits, it was necessary, in case of keeping his data for the whole, to compress the part which alone was to be found fully described in his chart: "On the west, unhappily, there were no countries newly discovered to compensate for this[Pg 13] abridgment." By Massoudy's time,—by the tenth century,—fact and theory were thus hopelessly at variance.

(1.) Ptolemy's "Habitable Quarter" of the world, which accounted for only half the globe's longitude, was widely accepted by the Muslim world, just like it embraced the Pentateuch when it began studying science at the Court of Almamoun (813-833). However, as the Caliphs' conquests revealed areas in the east that went far beyond Ptolemy's boundaries, it became necessary to condense the part that he fully described on his map to keep his data relevant for the whole. "Unfortunately, to the west, there were no newly discovered countries to offset this[Pg 13] reduction." By Massoudy's time—by the tenth century—fact and theory were hopelessly at odds.

(2.) On the shape of Africa, the mass of Arabic opinion confirmed Ptolemy, but among the more enlightened there is traceable from Massoudy's time a tendency either to react towards Strabo's partly agnostic position, or to invent some new theory rather more in harmony with the known facts. That is, either their later map-makers cut off Africa at Cape Non or Bojador and Cape Guardafui, and gave away the rest to the "Green Sea of Darkness," or, like Massoudy, they sketched a great Southern Continent, divided from Africa by a narrow channel, which connected the Western Ocean with the Sea of Habasch—of Abyssinia or India. In either case Africa was left an island.

(2.) Regarding the shape of Africa, most Arab scholars backed Ptolemy's views, but among the more progressive thinkers, there was a noticeable shift from Massoudy’s time towards either Strabo's somewhat uncertain stance or the development of a new theory that better matched the known facts. In other words, later map-makers either portrayed Africa ending at Cape Non or Bojador and Cape Guardafui, granting the rest to the "Green Sea of Darkness," or like Massoudy, they depicted a vast Southern Continent separated from Africa by a narrow channel that connected the Western Ocean with the Sea of Habasch—of Abyssinia or India. In either scenario, Africa was considered an island.

(3.) The words "Gog and Magog" from Jeremiah, describing the nomades of Central Asia, appear in the Koran as Yadjoudj and Madjoudj. The complete story, in the tenth century and in Edrisi's day, connects them with Alexander the Great, who is also found in the Koran as Doul-Carnain, and with the Wall of China. "When the Conqueror," said the Arabs, "reached the place near where the sun rose, he was implored to build a wall to shut off the marauders of Yadjoudj and Madjoudj from the rich countries of the South." So he built a rampart of iron across the pass by which alone Touran joined Iran, and henceforth Turks and Tartars were kept outside. Till the Arabs reached the Caucasus, they generally sup[Pg 14]posed this to answer to Alexander's wall; when facts dispelled this theory, the unknown Ural or Altai Mountains served instead; finally, as the Moslems became masters of Central Asia, the Wall of China, beyond the Gobi desert, alone satisfied the conditions of shadowy but historic grandeur, beyond all practical danger of verification.

(3.) The names "Gog and Magog" from Jeremiah, referring to the nomads of Central Asia, appear in the Koran as Yadjoudj and Madjoudj. The full story, from the tenth century in Edrisi's time, connects them with Alexander the Great, who is also mentioned in the Koran as Doul-Carnain, and with the Great Wall of China. "When the Conqueror," the Arabs said, "got to the place where the sun rises, he was asked to build a wall to keep the raiders Yadjoudj and Madjoudj out of the wealthy lands in the South." So he constructed an iron barrier across the only pass that connected Touran to Iran, effectively keeping the Turks and Tartars out. Until the Arabs reached the Caucasus, they generally believed this to be Alexander's wall; when facts challenged this idea, the unknown Ural or Altai Mountains were considered instead; ultimately, as the Muslims took control of Central Asia, the Great Wall of China, beyond the Gobi desert, alone met the criteria of vague yet historic significance, with little practical risk of verification.

(4.) In striking contrast with the steady advance of Arabic exploration and trade in the Eastern Sea is the Moslem horror of the Western Ocean beyond Europe and Africa, the "Green Sea of Darkness" or the Atlantic. And what we have to note is that they imparted much of this paralysing cowardice to the Christian nations. Only the Northmen of Scandinavia, living a life apart, and forced to make their way over the wild North Sea, were untouched by this southern superstition, and ventured across the ocean by the Färoes, Iceland, and Greenland, to the coast of Labrador.

(4.) In sharp contrast to the ongoing growth of Arabic exploration and trade in the Eastern Sea is the Muslim fear of the Western Ocean beyond Europe and Africa, known as the "Green Sea of Darkness" or the Atlantic. It's important to note that they passed on much of this paralyzing fear to the Christian nations. Only the Norse of Scandinavia, living a separate life and having to navigate the rough North Sea, remained unaffected by this southern superstition, daring to cross the ocean via the Faroe Islands, Iceland, and Greenland, reaching the coast of Labrador.

The doctors of the Koran indeed thought that a man mad enough to embark for the unknown, even on a coasting voyage, should be deprived of civil rights. Ibn Said goes further, and says no one has ever done this: "whirlpools always destroy any adventurer." As late as the generation immediately before Henry the Navigator, about a.d. 1390, another light of Moslem science declared the Atlantic to be "boundless, so that ships dare not venture out of sight of land, for even if the sailors knew the direction of the winds, they would not know whither those winds would carry them, and as there is no inhabited country beyond, they would run a risk[Pg 15] of being lost in mist, fog, and vapour. The limit of the West is the Atlantic Ocean."

The doctors of the Koran really believed that anyone crazy enough to set off into the unknown, even just along the coast, should lose their civil rights. Ibn Said goes even further, stating that no one has ever done this: "whirlpools always destroy any adventurer." Even as late as the generation just before Henry the Navigator, around A.D. 1390, another prominent Muslim scholar declared the Atlantic to be "endless, so that ships don’t dare to venture out of sight of land. Even if sailors knew the direction of the winds, they wouldn't know where those winds would take them, and since there's no inhabited land beyond, they would risk[Pg 15] getting lost in mist, fog, and vapor. The edge of the West is the Atlantic Ocean."

This was the final judgment of the Arabic race and its subject allies upon the western limits of the world, and in two ways they helped to fix this belief, derived from the timid coasting-traders of the Roman Empire on Greek and Latin Christendom. First, the Spanish Caliphate cut off all access to the Western Sea beyond the Bay of Biscay, from the eighth to the twelfth centuries. Not till the capture of Lisbon in 1147, could Christian enterprise on this side gain any basis, or starting-point. Not till the conquest of the Algarve in the extreme south-west of the peninsula, at the end of the twelfth century, was this enterprise free to develop itself. Secondly, in the darkest ages of Christian depression, the seventh, the eighth, the ninth, the tenth centuries, when only the brief age of Charlemagne offered any chance of an independent and progressive Catholic Empire in the west, the Arabs became recognised along with the Byzantines as the main successors of Greek culture. The science, the metaphysic, the abstract ideas of these centuries came into Germany, France, and Italy from Cordova and from Bagdad, as much as from Byzantium. And on questions like the South Atlantic or Indian Ocean, or the shape of Africa,—where Islam had all the field to itself, and there was no positive and earlier discovery which might contradict a natural reluctance to test tradition by experiment—Christendom accepted the Arabic verdict with deference.

This was the final judgment of the Arabic people and their subject allies on the western edges of the world, and in two ways, they helped to solidify this belief, which came from the cautious trading sailors of the Roman Empire in Greek and Latin Christendom. First, the Spanish Caliphate cut off all access to the Western Sea beyond the Bay of Biscay from the eighth to the twelfth centuries. It wasn't until the capture of Lisbon in 1147 that Christian efforts in this region could establish any foundation or starting point. Not until the conquest of the Algarve in the far south-west of the peninsula at the end of the twelfth century could this effort grow freely. Secondly, during the darkest times of Christian decline, in the seventh, eighth, ninth, and tenth centuries, when only the short-lived era of Charlemagne offered any hope for an independent and progressive Catholic Empire in the west, the Arabs were recognized alongside the Byzantines as the main heirs to Greek culture. The knowledge, philosophy, and abstract ideas of these centuries flowed into Germany, France, and Italy from Cordova and Baghdad just as much as from Byzantium. And on matters like the South Atlantic or Indian Ocean, or the shape of Africa—where Islam had the field to itself and there was no earlier discovery that might challenge a natural unwillingness to test tradition through experimentation—Christianity accepted the Arabic perspective with respect.

In the same way, on still more difficult points,[Pg 16] such as the theory of a canal from the Caspian to the Black Sea, or from the Caspian to the Arctic circle, or from the Black Sea to the Baltic, Paris and Rome and Bologna and Oxford accepted the Arabic descriptions.

In the same way, on even more challenging issues,[Pg 16] like the idea of a canal from the Caspian Sea to the Black Sea, or from the Caspian to the Arctic Circle, or from the Black Sea to the Baltic Sea, Paris, Rome, Bologna, and Oxford acknowledged the Arabic descriptions.

It has been necessary for us to attend to the defects of Arabic geography, in order to understand how in the long Saracen control of the world's trade routes and of geographical tradition, science and seamanship were so little advanced. Between Ptolemy and Henry of Portugal, between the second and the fifteenth centuries, the only great extension of men's knowledge of the world was: (1) in the extreme north, where the semi-Christian, semi-Pagan Vikings reached perhaps as far as the present site of New York and founded, on another side, the Mediæval Kingdom of Russia; (2) on the south-east coast of Africa, from Cape Guardafui to Madagascar, which was opened up by the trading interest of the Emosaid family (800-1300); (3) in the far east, in Central and Further Asia, by the discoveries of Marco Polo and the Friar preachers following on the tracks of the earlier Moslem travellers. The first of these was a Northern secret, soon forgotten, or an abortive development, cut short by the Tartars; the second was an Arabic secret, jealously guarded as a commercial right; the third alone added much direct new knowledge to the main part of the civilised world.

It has been necessary for us to address the shortcomings of Arabic geography to understand why, during the long period of Saracen control over global trade routes and geographical knowledge, advancements in science and seamanship were minimal. Between Ptolemy and Henry of Portugal, spanning the second to the fifteenth centuries, the only significant expansions in our understanding of the world were: (1) in the far north, where the semi-Christian, semi-Pagan Vikings may have reached as far as modern-day New York and established, on another front, the Medieval Kingdom of Russia; (2) along the southeast coast of Africa, from Cape Guardafui to Madagascar, which was opened up by the trading activities of the Emosaid family (800-1300); (3) in the far east, in Central and Further Asia, through the discoveries of Marco Polo and the Friar missionaries who followed in the footsteps of earlier Muslim travelers. The first of these was a Northern secret, soon forgotten or an incomplete development halted by the Tartars; the second was a guarded Arabic secret, closely held as a commercial advantage; the third uniquely contributed significant new knowledge to the broader civilized world.

But throughout their period of commercial rule from the eighth to the twelfth centuries, the Arabs took a keen interest in land traffic, conquest, and exploration. They were of small account at sea; it[Pg 17] took them some time to turn to their own purposes Hippalus' discovery (in the second century a.d.) of the monsoon in the Indian Ocean; but, on land, Moslem travellers and writers—generally following in the wake of their armies, but sometimes pressing on ahead of them—did not a little to enlarge the horizon of the Mohammedan world, though it was not till Marco Polo and the Franciscan missionaries of the thirteenth and fourteenth centuries, that Christian Europe shared in this gain.

But during their time of commercial dominance from the eighth to the twelfth centuries, the Arabs were very interested in land trade, conquest, and exploration. They weren't very significant at sea; it[Pg 17] took them a while to fully utilize Hippalus' discovery (in the second century AD) of the monsoon winds in the Indian Ocean. However, on land, Muslim travelers and writers—often following their armies but sometimes forging ahead—enlarged the understanding of the Muslim world. It wasn't until Marco Polo and the Franciscan missionaries in the thirteenth and fourteenth centuries that Christian Europe benefited from this knowledge.

As the early Caliphs conquered, they made surveys of their new dominions. Thus after Tarik and Mousa had overrun Spain, Walid at Damascus required from them an account of the land and its resources. The universal obligation of the Mecca pilgrimage compelled every Moslem to travel once in his life; and many an Arab, after the Caliphate was settled in power from the Oxus to the Pyrenees, journeyed to and fro with the joy of a master going over vast estates, shewing his dreaded turban to subjects of every nation.

As the early Caliphs expanded their empire, they conducted surveys of their new territories. After Tarik and Mousa had conquered Spain, Walid in Damascus asked them for a report on the land and its resources. The pilgrimage to Mecca was a duty that required every Muslim to travel there at least once in their life; many Arabs, once the Caliphate had established its power from the Oxus to the Pyrenees, traveled back and forth with the satisfaction of a master surveying his vast estates, showing his distinguished turban to subjects from every nation.

This, however, was not geographical science, or even pseudo-science. Before Mohammed the Arabs had possessed some knowledge of the stars and used it for astrology; but it was at the Court of Almamoun (813-833) that their inquiring spirits first set themselves to answer the great question of geography—Where? Through the ninth and tenth centuries there arose a succession of travellers and thinkers who, with all their wild dreamings, preserved the best results of Greek maps and would have made much greater advances but for their helplessness in[Pg 18] original work. As they could not recast Aristotle in philosophy, so they could not with all their new knowledge of the Further East recast the geography of Ptolemy and Strabo.

This, however, was neither true geographical science nor even pseudo-science. Before Mohammed, the Arabs had some understanding of the stars, which they used for astrology; but it was at the Court of Almamoun (813-833) that their curious minds first began to tackle the big question of geography—Where? Throughout the ninth and tenth centuries, a succession of travelers and thinkers emerged who, despite their wild imaginations, preserved the best results of Greek maps and would have made much greater progress if not for their inability to create[Pg 18] original work. Just as they could not reinterpret Aristotle in philosophy, they also could not reformulate Ptolemy and Strabo's geography despite their new knowledge of the Far East.

A few great ages, the age for instance of Almamoun in Bagdad (a.d. 830), of Mahmoud in Ghazneh (a.d. 1000), of Abderrahman III. in Cordova (a.d. 950), give us the history of Arabic geography.

A few significant periods, like Almamoun's time in Baghdad (AD 830), Mahmoud's reign in Ghazneh (CE 1000), and Abderrahman III's rule in Cordova (A.D. 950), provide us with the history of Arabic geography.

Beginning in the latter years of the eighth century, Moslem science was reformed and organised, in the New Empire, by the patronage of the Caliphs of the ninth. Itineraries of victorious generals, plans and tables prepared by governors of provinces, and a freshly acquired knowledge of Greek and Indian and Persian thought, made up the subject-matter of study. The barbarism of the first believers was passing away, and Mohammed's words were recalled: "Seek knowledge, even in China." By the end of the eighth century Ptolemy's Geography and the now lost work of Marinus of Tyre had already been translated. Almamoun drew to his Court all the chief "mathematicians" or philosophers of Islam, such as Mohammed Al-Kharizmy, Alfergany, and Solyman the merchant. Further he built two observatories, one at Bagdad, one at Damascus, and procured a chart fixing the latitude and longitude of every place known to him or his savants. Al-Kharizmy interpolated the new Arabic Ptolemy with additions from the Sanscrit, and made some use of Indian trigonometry. Alfergany wrote the first Arab treatise on the Astrolabe and adopted the Greek division of the seven Climates to the new learning. Solyman, at[Pg 19] the time of closest intercourse between China, India, and the Caliphate, travelled in every country of the Further East, sailed in the "Sea of Pitchy Darkness" on the east coast of Asia, and by his voyages became the prototype of Sinbad the Sailor.

Beginning in the late eighth century, Muslim science was reformed and organized in the New Empire, thanks to the support of the ninth-century Caliphs. The study material included itineraries of victorious generals, plans and tables made by provincial governors, and a newly gained understanding of Greek, Indian, and Persian thought. The early believers' ignorance was fading, and Mohammed's words were remembered: "Seek knowledge, even in China." By the end of the eighth century, Ptolemy's Geography and the now-lost work of Marinus of Tyre had already been translated. Almamoun brought all the leading mathematicians and philosophers of Islam to his court, including Mohammed Al-Kharizmy, Alfergany, and Solyman the merchant. He also built two observatories, one in Baghdad and one in Damascus, and created a chart that established the latitude and longitude of every location known to him or his scholars. Al-Kharizmy combined the new Arabic Ptolemy with additions from Sanskrit and utilized some Indian trigonometry. Alfergany wrote the first Arab treatise on the Astrolabe and adapted the Greek division of the seven climates to the new knowledge. During the time of close interaction between China, India, and the Caliphate, Solyman traveled through various countries of the Far East, sailed in the "Sea of Pitchy Darkness" along the eastern coast of Asia, and his adventures inspired the character of Sinbad the Sailor.

The impulse given by Almamoun did not die with him. About 850 Alkendy made a fresh version of Ptolemy; as early as 840 the Caliph Vatek-Billah sent to explore the countries of Central Asia, and his results have been preserved by Edrisi. A few years later (c. 890) Ibn-Khordadbeh, "Son of the Magi," described the principal trade-routes, the Indian by the Red Sea from Djeddah to Scinde, the Russian by the Volga and North Caspian, the Persian by way of Balkh to China. It was by this last that some have thought the envoys of the English King Alfred went in 883, till they turned south to seek India and the Christians of San Thomé.

The momentum created by Almamoun didn’t end with his death. Around 850, Alkendy made a new version of Ptolemy; as early as 840, Caliph Vatek-Billah sent out expeditions to explore Central Asia, and Edrisi preserved the results. A few years later (around 890), Ibn-Khordadbeh, "Son of the Magi," outlined the main trade routes: the Indian route through the Red Sea from Djeddah to Scinde, the Russian route by the Volga and North Caspian, and the Persian route from Balkh to China. Some believe it was by this last route that the envoys of English King Alfred traveled in 883 before they turned south to search for India and the Christians of San Thomé.

The early scientific movement in Islam reached its height in Albateny and Massoudy at the beginning of the tenth century. The former determined, more exactly than before, various problems of astronomical geography.[12] The latter visited every country from Further India to Spain;—even China and Madagascar seem to have been within the compass of his later travels; and his voyages in the Indian Ocean bring us to the real Sinbad Saga of the tenth century.

The early scientific movement in Islam peaked with Albateny and Massoudy at the start of the tenth century. Albateny refined various issues in astronomical geography more precisely than ever before.[12] Massoudy traveled across every country from Further India to Spain; even China and Madagascar appear to have been part of his later journeys, and his trips in the Indian Ocean lead us to the true Sinbad Saga of the tenth century.

Sinbad, as his story appears in the Arabian Nights, has been traced to an original in the Indian tales of The Seven Sages, in the voyages of the age of Chosroes[Pg 20] Nushirvan or of Haroun-Al-Rashid, but the tale appears to be an Arabic original, the real account, with a little more of mystery and exaggeration than usual, of the ninth-and tenth-century travellers, from Solyman to Massoudy, reproduced in form of a series of novels.[13]

Sinbad, as featured in the Arabian Nights, can be traced back to an original in the Indian tales of The Seven Sages, during the voyages of the time of Chosroes[Pg 20] Nushirvan or Haroun-Al-Rashid. However, the story seems to be an Arabic original, a true account, with a bit more mystery and exaggeration than usual, about the ninth- and tenth-century travelers, from Solyman to Massoudy, presented in the form of a series of novels.[13]

With Massoudy begins also the formal discussion of geographical problems affecting Islam. Was the Caspian a land-locked sea? Did it connect with the Euxine? Did either or both of these join the Arctic Ocean? Was Africa an island? If so, was there also an unknown Southern Continent? What was the shape of South-Eastern Asia? Was Ptolemy's longitude to be wholly accepted, and if not, how was it to be bettered? By a use of Strabo and of Albateny rather than of Ptolemy, Massoudy arrived at fairly accurate and very plausible results. His chief novelties were the long river channel from the Sea of Azov to the North Sea, and the strait between South Africa and the shadowy Southern Continent. On his scheme the Indian Ocean, or Sea of Habasch, contains most of the water surface of the world, and the Sea of Aral appears for the first time in Moslem geography. Lastly his account of the Arab coasting voyages from the Persian Gulf to Socotra and Madagascar proves, implicitly, that as yet there was no use of the compass.

With Massoudy, the formal discussion of geographical issues affecting Islam also begins. Was the Caspian Sea a landlocked body of water? Did it connect with the Black Sea? Did either or both of these connect to the Arctic Ocean? Was Africa an island? If so, was there also an unknown Southern Continent? What was the shape of Southeast Asia? Should Ptolemy's longitude be fully accepted, and if not, how could it be improved? By using Strabo and Al-Battani instead of Ptolemy, Massoudy reached fairly accurate and very plausible conclusions. His main innovations included the long river route from the Sea of Azov to the North Sea and the strait between South Africa and the mysterious Southern Continent. In his map, the Indian Ocean, or Sea of Habasch, contains most of the world's water surface, and the Sea of Aral appears for the first time in Muslim geography. Finally, his account of Arab trading voyages from the Persian Gulf to Socotra and Madagascar implicitly shows that the compass was not yet in use.

Massoudy cut down the girth of the world even more than Ptolemy. The latter had left an ocean to[Pg 21] the west of Africa: the former made the Canaries or Fortunate Islands, the limit of the known Western world, abut upon India, the limit of the Eastern.

Massoudy reduced the size of the world even more than Ptolemy did. While Ptolemy had left an ocean to[Pg 21] the west of Africa, Massoudy positioned the Canaries, or Fortunate Islands, as the boundary of the known Western world, directly next to India, which was seen as the limit of the East.

The first age of Arabic geography ends with Massoudy, its greatest name, in the middle of the tenth century. The second age is summed up in the work of the Eastern sage Albyrouny and of Edrisi, the Arabic Ptolemy (a.d. 1099-1154), who found a home at the Christian Court of Roger of Sicily. In the far East and West alike, in Spain and Morocco, in Khorassan and India, Moslem science was now driven to take refuge among strangers on the decay of the Caliphates of Bagdad and Cordova. The Ghaznevides Mahmoud and Massoud in the first half of the eleventh century, attracted to their Court not only Firdusi and Avicenna, but Albyrouny, whose "Canon" became a text-book of Mohammedan science, and who, for the range of his knowledge and the trained subtlety of his mind, stands without a rival for his time.[14] The Spanish school, as resulting directly in Edrisi, half Moslem, half Christian, like his teachers, is of still more interest. One of its first traces may be found in the Latin translation of the Arab Almanack made by Bishop Harib of Cordova in 961. It was dedicated and presented to Caliph Hakem—one of our clearest proofs of the conscious interworking of Catholic and Mahometan philosophy in the age of Pope Sylvester[Pg 22] II. and of our own St. Dunstan. A century later, on the recapture of Toledo by Alfonso VI. (1084), an observatory was built, served by Jews and Moslems, who had been steadily producing, through the whole of the eleventh century, astronomical and geographical tables and dictionaries. A whole tribe of commentators on place-names, on the climates and constellations, and on geographical instruments was at work in this last age of the Spanish Caliphate, and their results are brought together by Abou Hamid of Granada and by Edrisi.

The first era of Arabic geography closes with Massoudy, its most prominent figure, in the mid-tenth century. The second era is represented by the work of the Eastern scholar Albyrouny and Edrisi, the Arabic Ptolemy (A.D. 1099-1154), who found a place at the Christian Court of Roger of Sicily. In both the East and the West, including Spain and Morocco, Khorassan and India, Muslim science was now forced to seek refuge among outsiders due to the decline of the Caliphates of Baghdad and Cordova. The Ghaznevides Mahmoud and Massoud in the early eleventh century attracted not only Firdusi and Avicenna to their Court but also Albyrouny, whose "Canon" became a textbook of Islamic science and who, for the breadth of his knowledge and the sharpness of his intellect, stands unmatched for his era.[14] The Spanish school, which directly led to Edrisi, half Muslim and half Christian, like his mentors, is even more intriguing. One of its earliest examples can be found in the Latin translation of the Arab Almanack made by Bishop Harib of Cordova in 961. This work was dedicated and presented to Caliph Hakem—one of the clearest signs of the intentional collaboration between Catholic and Islamic philosophy during the time of Pope Sylvester[Pg 22] II and our own St. Dunstan. A century later, when Toledo was recaptured by Alfonso VI. (1084), an observatory was established, staffed by Jews and Muslims, who had been consistently producing astronomical and geographical tables and dictionaries throughout the entire eleventh century. A whole group of commentators focused on place names, climates, constellations, and geographical instruments was active in this final age of the Spanish Caliphate, and their findings were compiled by Abou Hamid of Granada and Edrisi.

Born at Ceuta in 1099, this great geographer travelled through Spain, France, the Western Mediterranean, and North Africa before settling at the Norman Court of Palermo. Roger, the most civilised prince in Christendom, the final product of the great race of Robert Guiscard and William the Conqueror, valued Edrisi at his proper worth, refused to part with him, and employed men in every part of the world to collect materials for his study. Thus the Moor gained, not only for the Moslem world but for Southern Europe as well, an approximate knowledge even of Norway, Sweden, Finland, and the coasts of the White Sea. His work, dedicated to Roger and called after him, Al-Rojary, was rewarded with a peerage, and it was as a Sicilian Count that he finished his Celestial Sphere and Terrestrial Disc of silver, on which "was inscribed all the circuit of the known world and all the rivers thereof."

Born in Ceuta in 1099, this remarkable geographer traveled through Spain, France, the Western Mediterranean, and North Africa before settling at the Norman Court of Palermo. Roger, the most cultured prince in Christendom, the last legacy of the great lineage of Robert Guiscard and William the Conqueror, recognized Edrisi's true value, refused to let him go, and hired people from all over the world to gather information for his research. As a result, the Moor not only benefited the Muslim world but also provided Southern Europe with a good understanding of Norway, Sweden, Finland, and the coasts of the White Sea. His work, dedicated to Roger and named after him, Al-Rojary, earned him a title of nobility, and it was as a Sicilian Count that he completed his Celestial Sphere and Terrestrial Disc of silver, which "was inscribed all the circuit of the known world and all the rivers thereof."

Each of his great Arabic predecessors, along with Eratosthenes, Ptolemy, and Strabo, was welded into[Pg 23] his system—the result of fifteen years of abstract study, following some thirty of practical activity in travel.[15]

Each of his significant Arabic predecessors, along with Eratosthenes, Ptolemy, and Strabo, was integrated into[Pg 23] his system—after fifteen years of theoretical study, following about thirty years of hands-on experience in travel.[15]

A special note may be made on Edrisi's account of the voyage of the Lisbon "Wanderers" ("Maghrurins") some time before 1147, the date of the final Christian capture of the Portuguese capital. For this is the earliest recorded voyage, since the rise of Islam, definitely undertaken on the Western Ocean to learn what was on it and what were its limits. The Wanderers, Edrisi tells us, were eight in number, all related to one another. They built a transport boat, took on board water and provisions for many months, and started with the first east wind. After eleven days, they reached a sea whose thick waters exhaled a fetid odour, concealed numerous reefs, and were but faintly lighted. Fearing for their lives, they changed their course, steered southwards twelve days, and so reached an island, possibly Madeira,—which they called El Ghanam from the sheep found there, without shepherd or anyone to tend them. On landing, they found a spring of running water and some wild figs. They killed some sheep, but found the flesh so bitter that they could not eat it, and only took the skins. Sailing south twelve more days, they found an island with houses and cultivated fields, but as they neared it they were surrounded, made prisoners, and carried[Pg 24] in their own boats to a city on the sea-shore, to a house where were men of tall stature and women of great beauty. Here they stayed three days, and on the fourth came a man, the King's interpreter, who spoke Arabic, and asked them who they were and what they wanted. They replied they were seeking out the wonders of the ocean and its limits. At this the King laughed heartily, and said to the interpreter: "Tell them my father once ordered some of his slaves to venture out on that sea and after sailing across the breadth of it for a month, they found themselves deprived of the light of the sun and returned without having learnt anything." Then the Wanderers were sent back to their prison till a west wind arose, when they were blindfolded and put on board a boat, and after three days reached the mainland of Africa. Here they were put ashore, with their hands tied, and so left. They were released by the Berbers, and after their reappearance in Spain, a "street at the foot of the hot bath in Lisbon," concludes Edrisi, "took the name of Street of the Wanderers."

A special note can be made about Edrisi's account of the Lisbon "Wanderers" ("Maghrurins") some time before 1147, which is the date of the final Christian takeover of the Portuguese capital. This represents the earliest documented voyage, since the rise of Islam, that was definitively made on the Western Ocean to discover what was there and what its boundaries were. Edrisi tells us the Wanderers were eight in total, all related. They built a transport boat, stocked it with water and supplies for several months, and set out with the first east wind. After eleven days, they reached a sea whose murky waters gave off a foul smell, hid many reefs, and had only dim light. Fearing for their lives, they changed direction and sailed south for another twelve days, eventually reaching an island, possibly Madeira—they called it El Ghanam because of the sheep found there, which had no shepherds or anyone to care for them. Upon landing, they found a spring of fresh water and some wild figs. They killed a few sheep, but the meat was so bitter that they couldn't eat it and only took the skins. After another twelve days of sailing south, they found an island with houses and farmland, but as they approached, they were surrounded, captured, and taken in their own boats to a coastal city, to a house filled with tall men and beautiful women. They stayed there for three days, and on the fourth, a man, the King's interpreter, who spoke Arabic, came to ask them who they were and what they wanted. They replied that they were exploring the wonders of the ocean and its limits. This made the King laugh heartily, and he said to the interpreter: "Tell them my father once sent some of his slaves to venture out on that sea, and after sailing for a month, they found themselves in total darkness and returned without learning anything." The Wanderers were then sent back to their confinement until a west wind came up, at which point they were blindfolded and taken aboard a boat. After three days, they reached the mainland of Africa. Here, they were put ashore with their hands tied and left. They were freed by the Berbers, and after returning to Spain, Edrisi concludes, "a street at the foot of the hot bath in Lisbon took the name of Street of the Wanderers."

On the other extremity of the Moslem world, on the south-east coast of Africa, there was more real progress. By Edrisi's day that important addition of Arabic travellers and merchants to the geographical knowledge of the world, by the remarkable trade-ventures of the Emosaids, had been already made.

On the other end of the Muslim world, on the southeast coast of Africa, there was more genuine progress. By Edrisi's time, the significant contribution of Arabic travelers and merchants to the world's geographical knowledge, through the impressive trade ventures of the Emosaids, had already occurred.

It had taken long in the making.

It took a long time to make.

THE WORLD ACCORDING TO EDRISI.

THE WORLD ACCORDING TO EDRISI.

THE WORLD ACCORDING TO EDRISI.
(see list of maps)

THE WORLD ACCORDING TO EDRISI.
(see list of maps)

About a.d. 742, ten years after the battle of Tours, the Emosaid family, descended from Ali, cousin and son-in-law of Mahomet, tried to make Said, their[Pg 25] clan-chieftain, Ali's great-grandson, Caliph at Damascus. The attempt was foiled, and the whole tribe fled, sailed down the Red Sea and African coast, and established themselves as traders in the Sea of India. First of all, Socotra seems to have been their mart and capital, but before the end of the tenth century they had founded merchant colonies at Melinda, Mombasa, and Mozambique, which, in their turn, led to settlements on the opposite coasts of Asia. Thus the trade of the Indian Ocean was secured for Islam, the first Moslem settlements arose in Malabar, and when the Portuguese broke into this mare clausum, in 1497-8, they found a belt of "Moorish" coast towns, from Magadoxo to Quiloa, controlling both the Indian and the inland African trades, as Ibn Batuta had found in 1330.

Around A.D. 742, ten years after the Battle of Tours, the Emosaid family, which descended from Ali, the cousin and son-in-law of Muhammad, attempted to make Said, their clan leader and Ali's great-grandson, the Caliph in Damascus. This attempt failed, and the entire tribe fled, sailing down the Red Sea and along the African coast, establishing themselves as traders in the Indian Ocean. Initially, Socotra seems to have been their trading hub and capital, but by the end of the tenth century, they had founded trading colonies in Melinda, Mombasa, and Mozambique, which eventually led to settlements on the opposite shores of Asia. Thus, the trade of the Indian Ocean was secured for Islam, the first Muslim settlements emerged in Malabar, and when the Portuguese entered this mare clausum in 1497-98, they encountered a string of "Moorish" coastal towns from Mogadishu to Kilwa, controlling both the Indian and inland African trades, just as Ibn Battuta had found in 1330.

By Edrisi's day, moreover, the steady persistence and self-evident results of Arabic overland exploration had become recognised by a sort of "Traveller's Doctorate." It was not enough for the highest knowledge to study the Koran, and the Sunna, and the Greek philosophers at home; for a perfect education, a man must have travelled at least through the length and breadth of Islam. All the successors of Edrisi, in the twelfth and thirteenth centuries, shew this mingling of science and religion, of practical and speculative energy.

By Edrisi's time, the consistent effort and obvious outcomes of Arabic land exploration had led to a kind of "Traveler's Degree." It wasn't enough for someone to gain the highest knowledge just by studying the Koran, the Sunna, and Greek philosophers at home; for a complete education, a person needed to have traveled extensively throughout the Islamic world. All of Edrisi's successors in the twelfth and thirteenth centuries demonstrate this blend of science and religion, as well as practical and theoretical pursuits.

Tradition still governed Moslem thought, but there had come into being a sort of half-acknowledged appendix to tradition, made up of real observations on men and things. And in these observations, geographical interest was the main factor.[Pg 26]

Tradition still influenced Muslim belief, but there was also a partially accepted addition to tradition, consisting of genuine observations about people and the world. In these observations, geographic interest was the primary focus.[Pg 26]

The Life of Al Heravy of Herat (1173-1215), the "Doctor Ubiquitus" of Islam in the age of the Crusades, gives us a picture of another Massoudy. The friend of the Emperor Manuel Comnenus, the "first man among Christians," Heravy seems able in his own person to break down the partition wall of religious feud by the common interest of science. In 1192 he was offered the patronage of the Crusading princes, and Richard Cœur de Lion begged for the favour of an interview, and begged in vain. Heravy, who had been on one of his exploring journeys, angrily refused to see the King whose men had broken his quiet and wasted his time. Before his death, he had run over the world (men said) from China to the Pyrenees and from Abyssinia to the Danube, "scribbling his name on every wall," and his survey of the Eastern Empire was the single matter in which Turks and "Romans" made common cause,—for Greeks and Latins at Byzantium alike read Heravy, like a Christian doctor. Another example of the same catholic spirit is "Yacout the Roman,"[16] whose Dictionary, finished in the earlier half of the thirteenth century, was a summary of geographical advance since Edrisi, like the similar work of Ibn Said, of the same period.

The Life of Al Heravy of Herat (1173-1215), known as the "Doctor Ubiquitus" of Islam during the Crusades, presents a different Massoudy. A friend of Emperor Manuel Comnenus, regarded as the "first man among Christians," Heravy appears to transcend the barriers of religious conflict through a shared passion for knowledge. In 1192, he was approached for support by the Crusading princes, and Richard Cœur de Lion requested a meeting, but to no avail. Heravy, having returned from one of his explorations, angrily declined to meet the King whose soldiers had disrupted his peace and wasted his time. Before his death, it was said he had explored the world from China to the Pyrenees and from Abyssinia to the Danube, "scribbling his name on every wall." His examination of the Eastern Empire was one rare instance where Turks and "Romans" worked together—Greeks and Latins in Byzantium both read Heravy, much like a Christian scholar. Another example of this inclusive spirit is "Yacout the Roman,"[16] whose Dictionary, completed in the early thirteenth century, summarized the geographical progress since Edrisi, similar to the work of Ibn Said from the same era.

But as a matter of fact, the balance both of knowledge and power was now shifting from Islam[Pg 27] to Christendom. The most daring and successful travellers after the rise of the Mongols were the Venetian Marco Polo and the Friar Preachers who revived Chinese Christianity (1270-1350); Madeira and the Canaries (off Moslem Africa) were finally rediscovered not by Arabic enterprise, but by the Italian Malocello in 1270, by the English Macham in the reign of our Edward III., and by Portuguese ships under Genoese captains in 1341; in 1291 the Vivaldi ventured beyond Cape Bojador, where no Moor had ever been, except by force of storm, as in the doubtful story of Ibn Fatimah, who "first saw the White Headland," Cape Blanco, between Cape Bojador and Cape Verde.

But the truth is that the balance of knowledge and power was shifting from Islam[Pg 27] to Christendom. The most bold and successful travelers after the rise of the Mongols were the Venetian Marco Polo and the Friar Preachers who revived Chinese Christianity (1270-1350); Madeira and the Canary Islands (off the coast of Muslim Africa) were finally rediscovered not by Arabic explorers, but by the Italian Malocello in 1270, by the English Macham during the reign of Edward III, and by Portuguese ships led by Genoese captains in 1341; in 1291 the Vivaldi ventured beyond Cape Bojador, where no Moor had ever been except by way of storm, as in the questionable tale of Ibn Fatimah, who "first saw the White Headland," Cape Blanco, between Cape Bojador and Cape Verde.

In the fourteenth century the map of Edrisi was superseded by the new Italian plans and coast-charts, or Portolani. As the Moslem world fell into political disorder, its science declined. "Judicial astrology" seemed gaining a stronger and stronger hold over Islam, and the irruption of the Turks gradually resulted in the ruin of all the higher Moslem culture. Superstition and barbarism shared the honour and the spoils of this victory.

In the fourteenth century, Edrisi's map was replaced by new Italian plans and coast-charts, or Portolani. As the Muslim world fell into political chaos, its science declined. "Judicial astrology" seemed to gain more and more influence over Islam, and the invasion of the Turks gradually led to the destruction of all higher Muslim culture. Superstition and barbarism reaped the rewards of this victory.

But two great names close the five hundred years of Arab learning.

But two major figures mark the end of five hundred years of Arab scholarship.

1. Ibn Batuta (c. 1330), who made himself as much at home in China as in his native Morocco, is the last of Mohammedan travellers of real importance. Though we have only abridgments of his work left to us, Colonel Yule is well within his rights in his deliberate judgment, "that it must rank at least as one of the four chief guide books of the Middle[Pg 28] Ages," along with the Book of Ser Marco Polo and the journals of the two Friar-travellers, Friar Odoric and Friar William de Rubruquis.

1. Ibn Batuta (c. 1330), who felt just as at home in China as he did in his native Morocco, is the last of the important Muslim travelers. Although all we have left are shortened versions of his work, Colonel Yule is completely justified in saying, "that it must rank at least as one of the four main guidebooks of the Middle[Pg 28] Ages," along with the Book of Ser Marco Polo and the journals of the two Friar-travelers, Friar Odoric and Friar William de Rubruquis.

2. With Abulfeda the Eastern school of Moslem geography comes to an end, as the Western does with Ibn Batuta. In the early years of the fourteenth century he rewrote the "story and description of the Land of Islam," with a completeness quite encyclopædic. But his work has all the failings of a compilation, however careful, in that, or any, age. It is based upon information, not upon inspection; it is in no sense original. As it began in imitation, so it ended. If it rejects Ptolemy, it is only to follow Strabo or someone else; on all the mathematical and astronomical data its doctrine is according to the Alexandrians of twelve hundred years before, and this last précis of the science of a great race and a great religion can only be understood in the light of its model—in Greek geography.

2. With Abulfeda, the Eastern school of Muslim geography comes to a close, just as the Western school does with Ibn Batuta. In the early years of the fourteenth century, he rewrote the "story and description of the Land of Islam," with a thoroughness that is almost encyclopedic. However, his work has all the shortcomings of a compilation, no matter how careful, in that era or any other. It is based on information rather than personal observation; it is not original in any sense. It started with imitation and ended the same way. If it dismisses Ptolemy, it simply follows Strabo or another source; on all mathematical and astronomical data, its teachings align with the Alexandrians from twelve hundred years earlier, and this final précis of the knowledge of a great civilization and a major religion can only be understood in the context of its model—in Greek geography.

decorative illustration

decorative illustration


decorative illustration

decorative illustration

CHAPTER I.

EARLY CHRISTIAN PILGRIMS.

CIRCA 333-867.

The special interest of the life and work of Henry the Navigator (1394-1460) lies in the relation it bears to the general expansion of Europe and Christendom—an expansion that had been slowly gathering strength since the eleventh century. But even before the tide had turned in the age of Hildebrand and the First Crusade, even from the time that Constantine founded the Christian Empire of Rome, the Christian Capital on the Bosphorus, and the State Church of the Western World,—pilgrimage, trade, conquest, and colonisation had been successively calling out the energies of the moving races, "the motor muscles" of Europe. It is through the "generous Henry, Prince of Portugal," that this activity is brought to its third and triumphant stage—to the time of Columbus and Da Gama and Magellan,—but it is only by tracing the earlier progress of that outward movement, which has made Europe the ruling civilisation of the world, that we can[Pg 30] fairly grasp the import of that transition in which Henry is the hero.

TThe unique significance of the life and work of Henry the Navigator (1394-1460) is linked to the broader expansion of Europe and Christianity—an expansion that had been steadily building since the eleventh century. Yet, even before this momentum accelerated during the time of Hildebrand and the First Crusade, dating back to when Constantine established the Christian Roman Empire, the Christian capital on the Bosphorus, and the State Church of the Western World—pilgrimage, trade, conquest, and colonization had continually drawn out the energies of the migrating peoples, “the driving forces” of Europe. It is through "generous Henry, Prince of Portugal" that this activity reaches its third and victorious stage—leading to the era of Columbus, Da Gama, and Magellan—but we can only truly understand the significance of this change, in which Henry is a central figure, by examining the earlier progress of that outward movement that has positioned Europe as the dominant civilization of the world.[Pg 30]

More than any other single man he is the author of the discovering movement of the fifteenth, sixteenth, and seventeenth centuries,—and by this movement India has been conquered, America repeopled, the world made clear, and the civilisation which the Roman Empire left behind has conquered or utterly overshadowed every one of its old rivals and superiors—Islam, India, China, Tartary.

More than any other individual, he is the driving force behind the discovery movement of the 15th, 16th, and 17th centuries. Because of this movement, India was conquered, America was resettled, the world became more visible, and the civilization left by the Roman Empire has either conquered or completely overshadowed all of its former rivals and superiors—Islam, India, China, and Tartary.

But before the fifteenth century, before the birth of Prince Henry, Christendom, Greek and Latin, was at best only one of the greater civilising and conquering forces struggling for mastery; before the age of the Crusades, before the eleventh century, it was plainly weaker than the Moslem powers; it seemed unable to fight against Slav or Scandinavian Heathendom; it was only saved by distance from becoming a province of China; India, the world's great prize, was cut off from it by the Arabs. Even before the rise of Islam, under Constantine or Theodosius or Justinian, the Church-State of the Byzantine Cæsars, though then ruling in almost every province of Trajan's empire, was in a splendid but sure decline from the exhaustion of the southern races. Our story then begins naturally with the worst time and climbs up for a thousand years, from the Heathen and Mohammedan conquests of the fifth and seventh centuries, to the reversal of that judgment, of those conquests, in the fifteenth. The expansion of Europe is going on all this time, but at our beginning, in the years before and after Pope[Pg 31] Gregory the Great, even the legacy of Greece and Rome, in wide knowledge of the world and practical exploring energy, seemed to have passed from sight.

But before the fifteenth century, before Prince Henry was born, the Christian world, both Greek and Latin, was just one of the major civilizing and conquering forces competing for dominance. Prior to the Crusades and the eleventh century, it was clearly weaker than the Muslim powers; it struggled against Slavic or Scandinavian paganism; it was only spared from becoming a part of China due to the distance; and India, the world's ultimate prize, was cut off from it by the Arabs. Even before Islam rose, during the times of Constantine, Theodosius, or Justinian, the Church-State of the Byzantine emperors, despite ruling almost every province of Trajan's empire, was in a glorious but certain decline due to the exhaustion of the southern races. Our story begins at this low point and rises over a thousand years, from the pagan and Muslim conquests of the fifth and seventh centuries to the reversal of those conquests in the fifteenth century. Throughout this time, Europe was expanding, but at our starting point, in the years around Pope[Pg 31] Gregory the Great, even the heritage of Greece and Rome, with its broad knowledge of the world and practical spirit of exploration, seemed to have faded from view.

And in the decline of the old Empire, while Constantine and Justinian are said to receive and exchange embassies with the Court of China, there is no real extension of geographical knowledge or outlook. Christian enterprise in this field is mainly one of pilgrimage, and the pilgrims only cease to be important when the Northmen, first Heathen, then Christian, begin to lead, in a very different manner, the expansion of Europe. Into this folk-wandering of the Vikings, the first great outward movement of our Europe in the Middle Ages, is absorbed the reviving energy of trade, as well as the ever-growing impulse of pilgrimage. The Vikings are the highest type of explorers; they do not merely find out new lands and trade with them, but conquer and colonise them. They extend not merely the knowledge, but the whole state and being of Europe, to a New World.

And in the decline of the old Empire, while Constantine and Justinian are said to exchange ambassadors with the Chinese court, there isn’t a significant expansion of geographical knowledge or perspective. Christian activity in this area mostly revolves around pilgrimage, and the importance of these pilgrims diminishes when the Norse, first as pagans and then as Christians, start to lead the expansion of Europe in a very different way. This migration of the Vikings represents the first major outward movement of Europe during the Middle Ages, incorporating a revitalized energy for trade alongside the growing urge for pilgrimage. The Vikings are the ultimate explorers; they don't just discover new lands and trade with them—they conquer and colonize them. They not only broaden knowledge but also expand the entire structure and essence of Europe into a New World.

Lastly, the partial activity of commerce and religion made universal and "political" by the leading western race—for itself only—is taken up by all Christendom in the Crusades, borrowed in idea from Spain, but borrowed with the spirit of the Norse rovers, and made universal for the Latin world, for the whole federation of Rome. In the eleventh, twelfth, and thirteenth centuries we have the preparation for the discovery and colonisation of the outside world by Europeans in the fifteenth, sixteenth, and seventeenth centuries of the Christian era.[Pg 32]

Lastly, the partial influences of trade and religion, which were made universal and "political" by the dominant Western race—for their own benefit—were taken up by all of Christendom during the Crusades. These ideas were borrowed from Spain, but with the adventurous spirit of the Norse explorers, and they became universal for the Latin world and the entire Roman federation. In the eleventh, twelfth, and thirteenth centuries, we see the groundwork being laid for the discovery and colonization of the outside world by Europeans in the fifteenth, sixteenth, and seventeenth centuries of the Christian era.[Pg 32]

From the conversion of Constantine to the Reformation the story of Christendom is unbroken; the later Roman Empire is the Church-State of a Christian Prince, as modern Europe is the Church-State of a nominally Christian society. Mediæval Europe thought of itself as nothing but the old world-state under religion; from Spain to Russia men were living under a Holy Roman Empire of an Italian, or Teutonic, or Byzantine, or independent type. England and Russia were not parts of the Germanic revival of Charlemagne, but they had just the same two elements dominant in their life: the classical tradition and the Christian Church.

From Constantine's conversion to the Reformation, the history of Christendom is continuous; the later Roman Empire represents the Church-State of a Christian ruler, just like modern Europe is the Church-State of a nominally Christian society. Medieval Europe viewed itself as merely the old world-state influenced by religion; from Spain to Russia, people lived under a Holy Roman Empire of Italian, Teutonic, Byzantine, or independent kinds. England and Russia weren't parts of Charlemagne's Germanic revival, but they still had the same two dominant elements in their lives: the classical tradition and the Christian Church.

And so throughout this time, the expansion of this society—by whatever name we may call it, discovery, exploration, geographical knowledge—has a continuous history. But before the rise of Islam, in the seventh century, throws Christendom into its proper mediæval life, before the new religion begins the really new age, at the end of which lived Henry himself, we are too far from our subject to feel, for instance in the fourth and fifth-century pilgrims and in Cosmas Indicopleustes, anything but a remote preparation for Henry's work. It is only with the seventh century, and with the time of our own Bede and Wilfrid, that the necessary introduction to our subject really begins.

And so during this time, the growth of this society—whatever we choose to call it, whether discovery, exploration, or geographical knowledge—has an ongoing history. But before the rise of Islam in the seventh century, which brings Christendom into its true medieval period, and before this new religion starts the genuinely new era that culminates in the life of Henry himself, we are too far from our topic to see, for example in the pilgrims of the fourth and fifth centuries and in Cosmas Indicopleustes, anything more than a distant preparation for Henry's work. It is only with the seventh century, and with figures like our own Bede and Wilfrid, that the actual introduction to our topic really begins.

Yet as an illustration of the general idea, that discovery is an early and natural outlet of any vigorous society and is in proportion to the universal activity of the State, it is not without interest to note that Christian Pilgrimage begins with Constantine. This,[Pg 33] the first department of exploring energy, at once evidences the new settlement of religion and politics. Helena, the Emperor's mother, helped, by her visit to Palestine, her church at Bethlehem, and her discoveries of relics in Jerusalem, to make a ruling fashion out of the custom of a few devotees; and eight years after the council of Nicæa, in 333, appeared the first Christian geography, as a guide-book or itinerary, from Bordeaux to the Holy Places of Syria, modelled upon the imperial survey of the Antonines. The route followed in this runs by North Italy, Aquileia, Sirmium, Constantinople, and Asia Minor, and upon the same course thousands of nameless pilgrims journeyed in the next three hundred years, besides some eight or nine who have left an account mainly religious in form, but containing in substance the widest view of the globe then possible among Westerns.

Yet as an illustration of the overall concept that discovery is an early and natural expression of any active society, related to the overall engagement of the State, it’s notable that Christian pilgrimage began with Constantine. This, [Pg 33], the first area of exploration energy, immediately shows the new intersection of religion and politics. Helena, the Emperor's mother, contributed to this movement by visiting Palestine, establishing her church at Bethlehem, and uncovering relics in Jerusalem, turning the practice of a few devoted individuals into a popular trend. Eight years after the Nicene Council in 333, the first Christian geography appeared, serving as a guidebook or itinerary from Bordeaux to the Holy Places of Syria, inspired by the imperial survey of the Antonines. The route followed included North Italy, Aquileia, Sirmium, Constantinople, and Asia Minor, and over the next three hundred years, thousands of unnamed pilgrims traveled the same path, alongside about eight or nine who provided accounts mainly focused on religious themes but offering a broad view of the world as understood by Westerners at the time.

Most of the pilgrims, like Jerome's friend Paula, Bishop Eucherius, and Melania, tread the same path and stop at the same points, but three or four of them distinctly add some fresh knowledge to the ordinary results.

Most of the pilgrims, like Jerome's friend Paula, Bishop Eucherius, and Melania, follow the same route and visit the same locations, but three or four of them clearly bring some new insights to the usual outcomes.

St. Silvia, of Aquitaine (c. 385), not only travels through Syria, she visits Lower Egypt and Stony or Sinaitic Arabia, and even Edessa in Northern Mesopotamia, on the very borders of hostile and heathen Persia. "To see the monks" she wanders through Osrhöene, comes to Haran, near which was "the home of Abraham and the farm of Laban and the well of Rachel," to the environs of Nisibis and Ur of the Chaldees, lost to the Roman Empire since[Pg 34] Julian's defeat; thence by "Padan-aram" back to Antioch. When crossing the Euphrates the pilgrims saw the river "rush down in a torrent like the Rhone, but greater," and on the way home by the great military road, then untravelled by Saracens, between Tarsus and the Bosphorus, Silvia makes a passing note on the strength and brigand habits of the Isaurian mountaineers, who in the end saved Christendom from the very Arabs with whom our pilgrim couples them.

St. Silvia from Aquitaine (around 385) not only travels through Syria but also visits Lower Egypt, Stony or Sinaitic Arabia, and even Edessa in Northern Mesopotamia, right on the edges of hostile, pagan Persia. "To see the monks," she explores Osrhöene, arrives at Haran, which is near "the home of Abraham, the farm of Laban, and the well of Rachel," and moves to the areas around Nisibis and Ur of the Chaldees, which has been lost to the Roman Empire since[Pg 34] Julian's defeat. From there, she travels through "Padan-aram" back to Antioch. When crossing the Euphrates, the pilgrims see the river "rush down in a torrent like the Rhône, but bigger," and on the way home along the great military road, which was not yet traveled by Saracens, between Tarsus and the Bosphorus, Silvia makes a note about the strength and bandit-like behavior of the Isaurian mountaineers who ultimately saved Christendom from the very Arabs with whom she connects them.

Again, Cosmas Indicopleustes, in the time of Justinian, is at the end, as Silvia is at the beginning, of a definite period, the period of the Christian empire of Rome, while still "Cæsarean" and not merely Byzantine, "patrician" and not papal, "consular" and not Carolingian.

Again, Cosmas Indicopleustes, during the time of Justinian, marks the end, just as Silvia marks the beginning, of a specific period—the era of the Christian empire of Rome—when it was still "Cæsarean" and not just Byzantine, "patrician" and not papal, "consular" and not Carolingian.

And contemporary with Cosmas are two of the chief among the earlier or primitive pilgrims, Theodosius and Antoninus the Martyr. The first-named indulges in a few excursions—in fancy—beyond his known ground of Palestine, going as far east as Susa and Babylon, "where no one can live for the serpents and hippo-centaurs," and south to the Red Sea and its two arms, "of which the eastern is called the Persian Gulf," and the western or Arabian runs up to the "thirteen cities of Arabia destroyed by Joshua,"—but, for the rest, his knowledge is not extensive or peculiar. Antoninus of Placentia, on the other hand, is very interesting, a sort of older Mandeville, who mixes truth and its opposite in fairly even proportions and with a sort of resolute partiality to favourite legends.[Pg 35]

And around the same time as Cosmas, there are two of the main early pilgrims, Theodosius and Antoninus the Martyr. Theodosius makes a few imaginative trips beyond his familiar territory of Palestine, journeying as far east as Susa and Babylon, "where no one can live because of the snakes and hippogriffs," and south to the Red Sea and its two branches, "with the eastern one called the Persian Gulf," and the western or Arabian stretching up to the "thirteen cities of Arabia destroyed by Joshua." However, his knowledge isn't very broad or distinctive. On the other hand, Antoninus of Placentia is quite intriguing, resembling an older version of Mandeville, who blends truth with fiction in fairly equal parts and seems to have a strong preference for his favorite legends.[Pg 35]

He tells us how Tripolis has been ruined by the late earthquake (July 9, 551); how silk and various woven stuffs are sold at Tyre; how the pilgrims scratched their names on the relics shewn in Cana of Galilee—"and here I, sinner that I am, did inscribe the names of my parents"; how Bethshan, the metropolis of Galilee, "is placed on a hill," though really in the plain; how the Samaritans hate Christians and will hardly speak to them; "and beware of spitting in their country, for they will never forgive it"; how "the dew comes down upon Hermon the Little, as David says, 'The dew of Hermon that fell upon the hill of Zion'"; how nothing can live or even float in the Dead Sea, "but is instantly swallowed up"—as exact an untruth as was ever told by traveller; how the Jordan opens a way for pilgrims "and stands up in a heap every year at the Epiphany during the baptism of Catechumens, as David told, 'The sea saw that and fled, Jordan was driven back'"; how at Jericho there is a Holy Field "sown by the Lord with his own hand." A report had been spread that the salt pillar of Lot's wife had been "lessened by licking"; "it was false," said Antoninus, the statue was just the same as it had always been.

He tells us how Tripolis was destroyed in the recent earthquake (July 9, 551); how silk and various woven goods are sold in Tyre; how the pilgrims scratched their names on the relics shown in Cana of Galilee—"and here I, sinner that I am, inscribed the names of my parents"; how Bethshan, the capital of Galilee, "is situated on a hill," even though it's really in the plain; how the Samaritans dislike Christians and barely talk to them; "and be careful not to spit in their land, because they will never forgive it"; how "the dew falls on Hermon the Little, as David says, 'The dew of Hermon that fell upon the hill of Zion'"; how nothing can survive or even float in the Dead Sea, "but is immediately swallowed up"—as ridiculous a lie as has ever been told by a traveler; how the Jordan opens a path for pilgrims "and stands up in a heap every year at the Epiphany during the baptism of Catechumens, as David said, 'The sea saw that and fled, Jordan was driven back'"; how in Jericho there is a Holy Field "sown by the Lord with His own hand." A rumor had spread that the salt pillar of Lot's wife had been "reduced by licking"; "it was false," said Antoninus, the statue was just the same as it had always been.

In Jerusalem the pilgrims first went up the Tower of David, "where he sang the Psalter," and into the Basilica of Sion, where among other marvels they saw the "Corner-stone that the builders rejected," which gave out a "sound like the murmuring of a crowd."

In Jerusalem, the pilgrims first climbed the Tower of David, "where he sang the Psalter," and entered the Basilica of Sion, where they saw, among other wonders, the "Corner-stone that the builders rejected," which emitted a "sound like the murmuring of a crowd."

We come back again to fact with rather a start[Pg 36] when told in the next section of the Hospitals for 3000 sick folk near the Church of St. Mary, close to Sion; then with the footprints and relics of Christ, and the miraculous flight of the Column of Scourging—"carried away by a cloud to Cæsarea," we are taken through a fresh set of "impressions."

We return to reality with a bit of a shock[Pg 36] as we hear in the next section about the hospitals for 3000 sick people near St. Mary's Church, near Sion; then with the footprints and relics of Christ, and the miraculous flight of the Column of Scourging—"taken away by a cloud to Caesarea," we are led through a new series of "impressions."

The same wild notions of place and time and nature follow the Martyr through Galilee to Gilboa, "where David slew Goliath and Saul died, where no dew or rain ever falls, and where devils appear nightly, whirled about like fleeces of wool or the waves of the sea"—to Nazareth, where was the "Beam of Christ the Carpenter"—to Elua, where fifteen consecrated virgins had tamed a lion and trained it to live with them in a cell—to Egypt, where the Pyramids become for him the "twelve Barns of Joseph," for the legend had not yet insisted that the actual number should be made to fit the text of the seven years of plenty.

The same wild ideas about place, time, and nature follow the Martyr from Galilee to Gilboa, "where David killed Goliath and Saul died, where no dew or rain ever falls, and where devils appear every night, swirling around like bundles of wool or the waves of the sea"—to Nazareth, where stood the "Beam of Christ the Carpenter"—to Elua, where fifteen consecrated virgins had tamed a lion and trained it to live with them in a cell—to Egypt, where the Pyramids became for him the "twelve Barns of Joseph," since the legend hadn’t yet insisted that the actual number needed to fit the text of the seven years of plenty.

But with all this Antoninus now and then gives us glimpses of a larger world. In Jerusalem he meets Æthiopians "with nostrils slit and rings about their fingers and their feet." They were so marked, they told him, by the Emperor Trajan "for a sign."

But with all this, Antoninus occasionally shows us a glimpse of a bigger world. In Jerusalem, he encounters Ethiopians "with slit nostrils and rings on their fingers and toes." They explained to him that they were marked by Emperor Trajan "as a sign."

In the Sinai desert he tells us of "Saracen" beggars and idolaters; in the Red Sea ports he sees "ships from India" laden with aromatics; he travels up the Nile to the Cataracts and describes the Nilometer at Assouan, and the crocodiles in the river; Alexandria he finds "splendid but frivolous, a lover of pilgrims but swarming with heresies."

In the Sinai desert, he talks about "Saracen" beggars and idol worshipers; at the Red Sea ports, he sees "ships from India" filled with spices; he travels up the Nile to the Cataracts and describes the Nilometer at Assouan and the crocodiles in the river; he finds Alexandria "splendid but shallow, welcoming to pilgrims but full of heresies."

But far more wonderful than the practical jumble[Pg 37] of Antoninus Martyr is the systematic nonsense of Cosmas, who invented or worked out a theory and scheme of the world, a "Christian topography," which required nothing more than a complete disuse of human reason. His assurance was equal to his science.

But way more impressive than the practical mess[Pg 37] of Antoninus Martyr is the organized nonsense of Cosmas, who created or developed a theory and design of the world, a "Christian topography," that only needed a total disregard for human reason. His confidence matched his knowledge.

It may have been his voyage to India, or his monastic profession, or his study of Scripture, or something unknown that made him take up the part of a Christian Aristotle; in any case he felt himself called into the field to support the cause of St. Augustine against infidelity, and to refute the "anile fable" of the Antipodes. Cosmas referred men back to Revelation on such matters, and his system was "demonstrated from Scripture, concerning which a Christian is not allowed to doubt." Man by himself could not understand the world, but in the Bible it was all clear enough. And from the Bible this much was beyond dispute.

It could have been his journey to India, his life as a monk, his study of the Bible, or something else entirely that led him to take on the role of a Christian Aristotle; whatever the reason, he felt compelled to join the fight to defend St. Augustine's teachings against disbelief and to challenge the "old wives' tale" of the Antipodes. Cosmas directed people back to Revelation on these issues, and his arguments were "supported by Scripture, which a Christian is not allowed to doubt." On his own, man couldn't make sense of the world, but the Bible made everything clear. And from the Bible, this much was unquestionable.

The universe is a flat parallelogram; and its length is exactly double of its breadth. In the centre of the universe is our world surrounded by the ocean, and by an outer world or ring where men lived before the Flood. Noah and his Ark came over sea from this to the present earth.

The universe is a flat parallelogram, and its length is exactly twice its width. In the center of the universe is our world, surrounded by the ocean, and by an outer world or ring where people lived before the Flood. Noah and his Ark traveled over the sea from this to the present Earth.

To the north of our world is a great hill, like the later Moslem and older Hindu "Cupola of the Earth," which perhaps was Cosmas' own original. Round this the sun and moon revolve, making day and night as they appear or disappear behind it.

To the north of our world is a huge hill, similar to the later Muslim and older Hindu "Cupola of the Earth," which might have been Cosmas' original idea. The sun and moon rotate around it, creating day and night as they show up or vanish behind it.

The sky consists of four walls meeting in the "dome of heaven" over the floor on which we live,[Pg 38] and this sky is "glued" to the edges of the outer world, the world of the Patriarchs.

The sky has four walls that come together at the "dome of heaven" above the ground we live on,[Pg 38] and this sky is "sealed" at the borders of the outer world, the world of the Patriarchs.

But this heaven is also cut in two by the firmament, lying between our atmosphere and that "New Heaven and New Earth wherein dwelleth Righteousness"; and the floor of this upper world is covered by the "waters that be above the firmament"; above this is Paradise, and below the firmament live the angels, as "ministers" and "flaming fires" and "servants of God to men."

But this heaven is also divided by the sky, situated between our atmosphere and that "New Heaven and New Earth where Righteousness lives"; and the ground of this upper world is covered by the "waters that are above the sky"; above this is Paradise, and below the sky live the angels, as "ministers" and "flaming fires" and "servants of God to humans."

The proofs of this are simple, mainly resting on some five texts from the Old Testament and two passages of St. Paul.

The evidence for this is straightforward, primarily based on five texts from the Old Testament and two passages from St. Paul.

First the Book of Genesis declared itself to be the "Book of the Generation of the Heaven and the Earth"—that is, of everything in the heavens, and the earth. But the "old wives' fable of the Antipodes" would make the heaven surround and contain the earth, and God's word would have to be changed "These are the generations of the sky." For the same truth—the twofold and independent being of heaven and earth—Cosmas quotes the additional testimony of Abraham, David, Hosea, Isaiah, Zachariah, and Melchisedek, who clenched the case against the Antipodes. "For how indeed could even rain be said to 'fall' or to 'descend,' as in the Psalms and the Gospels, in those regions where it could only be said to 'come up'?"

First, the Book of Genesis identifies itself as the "Book of the Generation of the Heaven and the Earth"—meaning everything in the heavens and on earth. However, the "old wives' tale of the Antipodes" suggests that heaven surrounds and contains the earth, which would require altering God's word to "These are the generations of the sky." To support the same truth—the dual and independent existence of heaven and earth—Cosmas cites the additional evidence from Abraham, David, Hosea, Isaiah, Zachariah, and Melchisedek, who strengthened the argument against the Antipodes. "For how could rain even be said to 'fall' or 'descend,' as mentioned in the Psalms and the Gospels, in places where it could only be described as 'coming up'?"

Again, the world cannot be a globe, or sphere, or be suspended in mid-air, or in any sort of motion, for what say the Scriptures? "Earth is fixed on its foundations"; "Thou hast laid the foundations of[Pg 39] the earth and it abideth"; "Thou hast made the round world so sure, that it cannot be moved"; "Thou hast made all men to dwell upon the face of the whole earth"—not "upon every face," or upon any more than one face—"upon the face," not the back or the side, but the broad flat face we know. "Who then with these passages before him, ought even to speak of Antipodes?"

Again, the world can't be a globe, a sphere, or floating in mid-air, or in any kind of motion because what do the Scriptures say? "The earth is fixed on its foundations"; "You have laid the foundations of[Pg 39] the earth and it stands firm"; "You've made the round world so secure that it cannot be moved"; "You’ve made all people to live on the face of the whole earth"—not "on every face," or on more than one face—"on the face," not the back or the side, but the broad flat face we know. "So who, with these passages in mind, should even talk about Antipodes?"

So much against false doctrine; to establish the truth is simpler still. For the same St. Paul, who disposes of science falsely so called, does not he speak, like David, like St. Peter and St. John, of our world as a tabernacle? "If our earthly house of this tabernacle be dissolved," "We that are in this tabernacle do groan, being burdened," which points to the natural conclusion of enlightened faith, that Moses' tabernacle was an exact copy of the universe. "See thou make all things according to the pattern shewn thee in the Mount." So the four walls, the covered roof, the floor, the proportions of the Tent of the Wilderness, shewed us in small compass all that was in nature.

So much for rejecting false beliefs; establishing the truth is even easier. The same St. Paul, who dismisses so-called science, speaks, like David, St. Peter, and St. John, about our world as a temporary dwelling. "If our earthly house, this tabernacle, is destroyed," "We who are in this tabernacle groan, being burdened," which leads to the logical conclusion of enlightened faith that Moses' tabernacle was a precise replica of the universe. "Make sure you build everything according to the pattern shown to you on the mountain." Thus, the four walls, the covered roof, the floor, and the dimensions of the Tent of the Wilderness displayed on a small scale everything that exists in nature.

If any further guidance were needed, it was ready to hand in the Prophet Isaiah and the Patriarch Job. "That stretcheth out the heavens as a curtain and spreadeth them out as a tent to dwell in"; "Also can any understand the spreadings of the clouds or the noise of his tabernacle?"

If any additional guidance was needed, it was easily found in the Prophet Isaiah and the Patriarch Job. "He stretches out the heavens like a curtain and spreads them out like a tent to live in"; "Can anyone understand the spreading of the clouds or the sound of his tent?"

The whole reasoning is like the theological arguments on the effects of man's fall upon the stars and the vegetable world, or the atmospheric changes due to angels.[Pg 40]

The entire argument is similar to the theological debates about how humanity's fall impacts the stars and the plant world, or the changes in the atmosphere caused by angels.[Pg 40]

But though Cosmas states his system with the claims of an article of faith, there were not wanting men, and even saints, who stood out on the side of reason in geography in the most traditional of times. Isidore of Seville, and Vergil, the Irish missionary of the eighth century, both maintained the old belief of Basil and Ambrose, that the question of the Antipodes was not closed by the Church, and that error in this point was venial and not mortal. For the positive tabernacle-system of "the man who sailed to India" there was never much support; his work was soon forgotten, though it has been called by some paradox-makers "the great authority of the Middle Ages"—in the face of the known facts, that this was the real position of Ptolemy and Strabo, that no one can speak of the "Middle Ages" in this unqualified way any more than of the Modern or Ancient worlds; and that Cosmas is almost unnoticed in the great age of mediæval science, from the twelfth century.

But even though Cosmas presents his ideas as if they were unquestionable truths, there were still people, including saints, who advocated for rational thinking in geography during traditional times. Isidore of Seville and Vergil, the Irish missionary from the eighth century, both upheld the old belief of Basil and Ambrose that the Church had not definitively settled the issue of the Antipodes, and that being wrong about it was a minor rather than a serious offense. The well-defined tabernacle-system proposed by "the man who sailed to India" never gained much traction; his work was quickly forgotten, although some paradox enthusiasts have referred to it as "the great authority of the Middle Ages." This contrasts with the established views of Ptolemy and Strabo, and one cannot simply refer to the "Middle Ages" in such an all-encompassing way, just as one cannot do so for the Modern or Ancient worlds. Furthermore, Cosmas is hardly recognized in the significant period of medieval science starting from the twelfth century.

And whatever we may think of Cosmas and his Christian System of the Whole World, Evolved out of Holy Scripture, he is of interest to us as the last of the old Christian geographers, closing one age which, however senile, had once been in the truest sense civilised, and preparing us to enter one that in comparison is literally dark. From the age of Justinian, and from the rise of Islam in the early years of the seventh century, the geographical knowledge of Christendom is on a par with its practical contraction and apparent decline. There are travellers; but for the next five hundred years there are no[Pg 41] more theorists, cosmographers, or map-makers of the Universe or Habitable Globe.

And no matter what we think of Cosmas and his Christian System of the Whole World, Evolved out of Holy Scripture, he is important to us as the last of the old Christian geographers, marking the end of an era that, despite its age, was once truly civilized, and setting the stage for one that, in comparison, is quite dark. Since the time of Justinian and the rise of Islam in the early seventh century, the geographical knowledge in Christendom has declined alongside its practical size and influence. There are travelers, but for the next five hundred years, there are no[Pg 41] more theorists, cosmographers, or mapmakers of the Universe or Habitable Globe.

From the time that Islam, after a century of world-conquest, began to form itself into an organised state, or federation of states, in the later eighth and earlier ninth centuries a.d.,—thus making itself until the thirteenth century the principal heir of the older Eastern culture,—Christendom was content to take its geography, its ideas of the world in general, from the Arabs, who in their turn depended upon the pre-Christian Greeks.

From the moment Islam started to establish itself as a structured state or a federation of states in the late 8th and early 9th centuries CE, following a century of expanding its influence, it became the main successor of the older Eastern culture until the 13th century. During this time, Christendom relied on the geography and worldview provided by the Arabs, who, in turn, drew from the ideas of the pre-Christian Greeks.

The relation of Ptolemy and Strabo to modern knowledge is best seen through the work of the Arabic geographers, but the Saracens did much to destroy before they began to build up once more. As the northern barbarians of the fifth century interrupted the hope of a Christian revival of Pagan literature and science, so the Moslems of the seventh and eighth cut short the Catholic and Roman revival of Justinian and Heraclius, in which the new faith and the old state had found a working agreement.

The connection between Ptolemy and Strabo and modern knowledge is most clearly seen through the work of Arabic geographers, but the Saracens caused a lot of destruction before they started to rebuild. Just as the northern barbarians in the fifth century disrupted the hope for a Christian revival of classical literature and science, the Muslims in the seventh and eighth centuries halted the Catholic and Roman revival under Justinian and Heraclius, where the new faith and the old state had reached a workable agreement.

Between Cosmas and the Viking-Age, "Christian," "Roman," "Western" exploration falls within very narrow limits: the few pilgrims whose recollections represent to us the whole literature of travel in the seventh, eighth, and ninth centuries, add nothing fresh even of practical discovery; theory and theoretical work has ceased altogether, and the first stirrings of the new life in the commerce and voyages of Amalphi, and in the sudden and splendid outburst of Norse life in its age of piracy, are not[Pg 42] yet, are not really before the world until the time of Alfred of England, of Charles the Bald, of Pope Nicholas I. "the Great." Yet such as it is, this pilgrim stage of European development stands for something. Religion, as it is the first agent in forming our modern nations, is the first impulse towards their expansion. And to us there is a special interest.

Between Cosmas and the Viking Age, "Christian," "Roman," "Western" exploration is very limited: the few pilgrims whose memories give us the overall travel literature of the seventh, eighth, and ninth centuries don't add anything new in terms of practical discoveries; theory and theoretical work have completely stopped, and the early signs of new life in trade and voyages from Amalfi, along with the sudden and remarkable rise of Norse culture during its piracy era, are not[Pg 42] yet really present in the world until the time of Alfred of England, Charles the Bald, and Pope Nicholas I, "the Great." Still, this pilgrim phase of European development represents something significant. Religion, as the first force in shaping our modern nations, is the initial motivation for their expansion. And for us, this holds a special interest.

For the best known of western travellers in this darkest of the Christian ages (600-870 a.d.), Arculf and Willibald, are both connected with England and the beginnings of English science in the age of Bede.

For the most well-known western travelers during this darkest period of Christian history (600-870 CE), Arculf and Willibald are both linked to England and the start of English science in Bede's time.

Arculf, a Frank or Gallican Bishop, who about 690 visited, first of "Latin" writers since the Mohammedan conquest, Jerusalem, the Jordan valley, Nazareth, and the other holy places of Syria, was driven by storms on his return to the great Irish monastery of Iona. There he described his wonders to the Abbot Adamnan, who then sat in the seat of the Irish Apostles Patrick and Columba, and by Adamnan this narrative was presented and dedicated to Aldfrith the Wise, last of the great Northumbrian Kings, in his Court at York (c. a.d. 701). Not only does the original remain to us, but we have also two summaries of it, one longer, another shorter, made by Baeda, the Venerable Bede, as a useful manual for Englishmen, Concerning the Holy Sites. We are again reminded by this how constantly fresh life is growing up under an appearance of death. The conversion of England, which Gregory the Great, Theodore, and the Irish monks had carried through in the seventh, that darkest of Christian centuries, was now bearing its fruit in the work of[Pg 43] Bede, who was really the sign of a far more permanent intellectual movement than his own, and in that of Boniface, Wilbrord, and Willibald, who began to win for Christendom in Germany more than a counterpoise for her losses in the South and East, from Armenia to Spain.

Arculf, a Frank or Gallican Bishop, visited Jerusalem, the Jordan Valley, Nazareth, and other holy sites in Syria around 690. He was the first "Latin" writer to do so since the Muslim conquest. On his way back to the great Irish monastery of Iona, he was caught in storms. At Iona, he shared his experiences with Abbot Adamnan, who held the legacy of the Irish Apostles Patrick and Columba. Adamnan then presented this narrative to Aldfrith the Wise, the last of the great Northumbrian Kings, at his court in York (c. A.D. 701). Not only do we have the original text, but there are also two summaries by the Venerable Bede, one longer and one shorter, which serve as a useful guide for the English, titled Concerning the Holy Sites. This reminds us how life continues to thrive beneath an exterior of death. The conversion of England, completed by Gregory the Great, Theodore, and the Irish monks in the seventh—often considered the darkest—century of Christianity, was now yielding results in the work of [Pg 43] Bede, who symbolized a much more enduring intellectual movement than his own, along with Boniface, Wilbrord, and Willibald, who began to reclaim territory for Christendom in Germany, restoring more than was lost in the South and East, from Armenia to Spain.

Arculf is full of the mystical unscientific spirit of the time. He notes in Jerusalem "a lofty column, which at mid-day casts no shadow, thus proving itself to be the centre of the earth for as David says, 'God is my king of old, working salvation in the midst of the earth.'"

Arculf embodies the mystical, unscientific mindset of his era. He remarks in Jerusalem about "a tall column that casts no shadow at noon, proving to be the center of the earth, for as David says, 'God is my king of old, working salvation in the midst of the earth.'"

"At the roots of Lebanon" he comes to the place "where the Jordan has its rise from two fountains Jor and Dan, whose waters unite in the single river Jordan." In the Dead Sea a lighted lamp would float safely, and no man could sink if he tried; the bitumen of this place was almost indissoluble; the only fruit here about were the apples of Sodom, which crumbled to dust in the mouth.

"At the roots of Lebanon," he arrives at the spot "where the Jordan begins from two springs, Jor and Dan, whose waters combine into the single river Jordan." In the Dead Sea, a lit lamp would float safely, and no one could sink even if they tried; the bitumen here was nearly impossible to dissolve; the only fruit around were the apples of Sodom, which turned to dust in the mouth.

The three churches on the top of Tabor were "according to the three tabernacles described by Peter."

The three churches on top of Tabor were "based on the three tabernacles mentioned by Peter."

From Damascus Arculf made for the port of Tyre, and so came by Jaffa to Egypt. Alexandria he found so great that he was one entire day in merely passing through. Its port he thought "difficult of access and something like the human body in shape, with a narrow mouth and neck, then stretching out far and wide."

From Damascus, Arculf headed to the port of Tyre and then went through Jaffa to reach Egypt. He found Alexandria so vast that it took him an entire day just to get through it. He thought its port was "difficult to navigate and somewhat shaped like the human body, with a narrow mouth and neck, then expanding far and wide."

The great Pharos tower was still lit up every night with torches. Here was the "Emporium of the[Pg 44] whole world"; "countless merchants from all parts": the "country rainless and very fertile."

The great Pharos tower was still illuminated every night with torches. Here was the "Emporium of the[Pg 44] whole world"; "countless merchants from all parts": the "land that rarely sees rain and is very fertile."

The Nile was navigable to the Town of Elephants; beyond this, at the Cataracts, the river "runs in a wild ruin down a cliff." Its embankments, its canals, and even its crocodiles, "not so large as ravenous," are all described, and Arculf, returning home by Constantinople, concludes with an account of the capital of Christendom, "beyond doubt the metropolis of the Roman Empire, and by far the greatest city therein"; lastly, as the pilgrim sails by Sicily he sees the "isle of Vulcan vomiting smoke by day and flame by night, with a noise like thunder, which is always fiercer on Fridays and Saturdays."

The Nile was navigable up to the Town of Elephants; beyond that, at the Cataracts, the river "rushes wildly down a cliff." Its banks, its canals, and even its crocodiles, "not as big as they are hungry," are all described, and Arculf, on his way home via Constantinople, wraps up with a description of the capital of Christendom, "undoubtedly the heart of the Roman Empire, and by far the largest city in it"; finally, as the pilgrim sails past Sicily, he sees the "island of Vulcan belching smoke during the day and flames at night, with a noise like thunder, which is always louder on Fridays and Saturdays."

Willibald, a nephew of St. Boniface and related through his mother to King Ina of Wessex, started for the East about 721, passed ten years in travel, and on his return followed his countrymen to mission work and to death among the heathen of Upper Germany. He went out by Southampton and Rouen, by Lucca and the Alps, to Naples and Catania, "where is Mount Etna; and when this volcano casts itself out they take St. Agatha's veil and hold it towards the fire, which ceases at once." Thence by Samos and Cyprus to Antaradus and Emesda, "in the region of the Saracens," where the whole party, who had escaped the Moslem brigands of Southern Gaul, were thrown into prison on suspicion of being spies. A Spaniard made intercession for them and got their release; but Willibald went up country one hundred miles, and cleared[Pg 45] himself of all suspicion before the Caliph at Damascus. "We have come from the West, where the sun has his setting, and we know of no land beyond—nothing but water." This was too far for spies, he pleaded, and the Caliph agreed, and gave him a pass for all the sites of Palestine, with which he traversed the length and breadth of the Holy Land four times, finding the same trouble in leaving as he had found in entering. Like Arculf, he saw the fountains of Jor-Dan, the "glorious church" of Helena at Bethlehem, the tombs of the Patriarchs at Hebron, the wonders of Jerusalem. Especially was he moved at the sight of the columns in the Church of the Ascension on Olivet, "for that man who can creep between those columns and the wall is freed from all his sins." Tyre and Sidon he passed again and again "on the coast of the Adriatic Sea (as he calls the Levant), six miles from one another"; at last he got away to Constantinople, with some safely smuggled trophies of pilgrimage, and some "balsam in a calabash, covered with petroleum," but the customs officers would have killed all of them if the fraud had been found out—so Willibald believed. After two years of close intercourse with the Greek Christians of New Rome, living in a "cell hollowed out of the side of a church" (possibly Saint Sophia), the first of English-born travellers returned to Old Rome, as Arculf had done, by sea, noticing, like him, "Theodoric's Hell" in the Liparis. He could not get up the mountain, though curious to see "what sort of a hell it was" where the Gothic "Tyrant" was damned for the murder of Böethius[Pg 46] and Symmachus, and for his own impenitent Arianism. But though he could not be seen or heard, all the pilgrims remarked how the "pumice that writers use was thrown up by the flame from the hell, and fell into the sea, and so was cast upon the shore and gathered up."

Willibald, a nephew of St. Boniface and related through his mother to King Ina of Wessex, set out for the East around 721. He spent ten years traveling and, upon his return, joined his fellow countrymen in mission work, where he ultimately died among the pagans of Upper Germany. He traveled from Southampton and Rouen to Lucca and the Alps, reaching Naples and Catania, "where Mount Etna is located; and when this volcano erupts, they take St. Agatha's veil and hold it toward the fire, which instantly stops." From there, he went to Samos and Cyprus, then to Antaradus and Emesda, "in the region of the Saracens," where his entire group, who had managed to escape the Muslim bandits in Southern Gaul, was thrown into prison on suspicion of being spies. A Spaniard intervened on their behalf and secured their release; however, Willibald traveled a hundred miles inland to clear[Pg 45] himself of any suspicion before the Caliph in Damascus. "We have come from the West, where the sun sets, and we know of no land beyond—only water." This was too far for spies, he argued, and the Caliph agreed, granting him a pass for all the sites in Palestine, which he used to explore the Holy Land thoroughly four times, finding just as much trouble leaving as he had entering. Like Arculf, he saw the springs of Jordan, the "glorious church" of Helena in Bethlehem, the tombs of the Patriarchs in Hebron, and the wonders of Jerusalem. He was especially moved by the columns in the Church of the Ascension on Olivet, "for anyone who can squeeze between those columns and the wall is freed from all their sins." He repeatedly passed by Tyre and Sidon, "on the coast of the Adriatic Sea (as he refers to the Levant), six miles apart"; eventually, he made it to Constantinople, carrying some carefully hidden pilgrimage souvenirs and "balsam in a calabash, covered with petroleum," but the customs officers would have killed them all if the deception had been discovered—so Willibald believed. After two years closely interacting with the Greek Christians of New Rome, living in a "cell carved out of the side of a church" (possibly Saint Sophia), the first English-born traveler returned to Old Rome by sea, as Arculf had done, noting, like him, "Theodoric's Hell" in the Liparis. He couldn’t climb the mountain, although he was curious to see "what kind of hell it was" where the Gothic "Tyrant" was condemned for the murder of Böethius[Pg 46] and Symmachus, and for his own unrepentant Arianism. But even though he could not be seen or heard, all the pilgrims noted how "the pumice that writers use was thrown up by the flames from hell, fell into the sea, and was cast upon the shore to be gathered up."

Such was the philosophy of Catholicism about the countries of the known world in the eighth century, for Willibald's account was published with the imprimatur of Gregory III., and, with Arculf's, took rank as a satisfactory comment on the old Bordeaux Itinerary of four hundred years ago.

Such was the philosophy of Catholicism regarding the countries of the known world in the eighth century, as Willibald's account was published with the approval of Gregory III. Along with Arculf's account, it was considered a solid commentary on the old Bordeaux Itinerary from four hundred years earlier.

Again, the impression given by our two chief Guide-Books, Arculf and Willibald, is confirmed by the monk Fidelis, who travelled in Egypt about 750, and by Bernard the Wise of Mont St. Michel, who went over all the pilgrim ground a century later (867). Fidelis, sailing up the Nile, was astonished at the sight of the "Seven Barns of Joseph, (the Pyramids) looking like mountains, but all of stone, square at the base, rounded in the upper part and twisted at the summit like a spire. On measuring a side of one of them, it was found to be four hundred feet." From the Nile Fidelis sailed by the freshwater canal of Necho, Hadrian, and Amrou, not finally blocked up till 767, direct to the Red Sea, "near where Moses crossed with the Israelites." The pilgrim wanted to go and look for Pharaoh's chariot-wheels, but the sailors were obstinate, and took him round the Peninsula of Sinai, down one arm of the sea and up another, to Eziongeber and Edom.

Again, the impressions provided by our two main guidebooks, Arculf and Willibald, are backed up by the monk Fidelis, who traveled in Egypt around 750, and by Bernard the Wise of Mont St. Michel, who explored all the pilgrimage sites a century later (867). Fidelis, while sailing up the Nile, was amazed by the sight of the "Seven Barns of Joseph" (the Pyramids), which looked like mountains but were all made of stone, square at the base, rounded at the top, and twisted at the summit like a spire. When measuring one of the sides, it was found to be four hundred feet. From the Nile, Fidelis sailed through the freshwater canal of Necho, Hadrian, and Amrou, which was finally blocked up until 767, directly to the Red Sea, "near where Moses crossed with the Israelites." The pilgrim wanted to go and search for Pharaoh's chariot wheels, but the sailors were stubborn and took him around the Sinai Peninsula, traveling down one arm of the sea and up another, to Eziongeber and Edom.

Bernard, "the French Monk" of Mont St. Michel,[Pg 47] took the straight route overland by Rome to Bari, then a Saracen city, whose Emir forwarded the pilgrims in a fleet of transports carrying some nine thousand Christian slaves to Alexandria. Here, like Willibald, Bernard found himself "suspect"—thrown into prison till Backsheesh had been paid, then only allowed to move stage by stage as fees were prompt and sufficient, for a traveller must pay, as an infidel, not only the ordinary tribute of the subject Christians of Egypt, but the "money of the road" as well. Islam has always made of strangers a fair mark for extortion.

Bernard, "the French Monk" from Mont St. Michel,[Pg 47] took a direct route overland through Rome to Bari, which was then a Saracen city. The Emir there sent the pilgrims off in a fleet of ships carrying around nine thousand Christian slaves to Alexandria. Like Willibald, Bernard found himself in a tough spot—he was thrown into prison until a bribe was paid, and after that, he could only move from place to place as long as the fees were paid promptly and were enough. A traveler had to pay, as a nonbeliever, not only the usual taxes expected from subject Christians in Egypt but also the "money of the road." Throughout history, Islam has often targeted outsiders for extortion.

Safe at last in Jerusalem, the party (Bernard himself and two friends, one a Spaniard, the other a monk of Beneventum) were lodged "in the Hostel of the glorious Emperor Charles, founded for all the pilgrims who speak the Roman tongue," and after making the ordinary visits of devotion, and giving us their account of the Easter Miracle of the Holy Fire at the Church of the Sepulchre, they took ship for Italy, and landed at Rome after sixty days of misery at sea.

Safe at last in Jerusalem, the group (Bernard himself and two friends, one a Spaniard and the other a monk from Beneventum) stayed at "the Hostel of the glorious Emperor Charles, established for all the pilgrims who speak the Roman tongue." After making the usual visits of devotion and sharing their experience of the Easter Miracle of the Holy Fire at the Church of the Sepulchre, they boarded a ship for Italy and arrived in Rome after sixty days of hardship at sea.

Bernard's account closes with the Roman churches—the Lateran, where the "keys of the whole city are given every night into the hands of the Apostolic Pope," and St. Peter's on the "West side of Rome, that for size has no rival in the world."

Bernard's account wraps up with the Roman churches—the Lateran, where the "keys of the whole city are handed over every night to the Apostolic Pope," and St. Peter's on the "West side of Rome, which has no equal in size anywhere in the world."

At the same time, or a little earlier than the Breton traveller (c. 808-850), another Latin had written a short tract On the Houses of God in Jerusalem, which, with Bernard's note-book, is our last geographical record before the age of the Northmen.[Pg 48]

At the same time, or a little earlier than the Breton traveler (c. 808-850), another Latin writer had composed a brief text On the Houses of God in Jerusalem, which, along with Bernard's notebook, is our final geographical record before the era of the Northmen.[Pg 48]

A new time was coming—a time not of timid creeping pilgrims only, but of sea-kings and seamen, who made the ocean their home, and, for the North of Europe at least, broke the tradition of land journeys and coasting voyages.

A new era was arriving—a time not just for timid, slow-moving travelers, but for sea kings and sailors who made the ocean their home and, at least for Northern Europe, changed the tradition of land journeys and coastal voyages.

But the early pilgrims after all have their place. It is of no use insisting that the mental outlook of these men is infantile;—that is best proved by their own words, their own scale of things; but it is necessary to insist that in these travellers we have comparatively enlarged experience and knowledge; and as comparison is the only test of any age, or of any man therein, the very blunders and limitations of the past, as we see them to be, have a constant, as well as an historical, value to us. That is, we are always being reminded, first, how we have come to the present mastery over nature, over ourselves, over all being; and, secondly, how imperfect, how futile, our work is still, and seems always doomed to be, if judged from a really final standpoint, or rather from our own dreams of the ultimately possible.

But the early pilgrims definitely have their place. It doesn’t help to argue that their way of thinking was immature; that’s best shown by their own words and their own perspective. However, it’s important to point out that these travelers had a relatively broader experience and knowledge. Since comparison is the only way to evaluate any era or individual within it, the very mistakes and limitations of the past, as we recognize them, hold both a constant and historical significance for us. In other words, we are constantly reminded, first, of how we have achieved our current dominance over nature, ourselves, and existence; and, second, of how imperfect and inadequate our efforts still are, and how they always seem destined to fall short when evaluated from a truly ultimate perspective, or rather from our own aspirations of what's possible.

So if in the case of our mediæval travellers their interests are the very reverse of ours; if they take delight in brooding over thoughts which to us do not seem worth the thinking; if their minds seem to rest as much on fable implicitly accepted as on the little amount of experienced fact necessary for a working life, it will not be for us to judge, or to pity, or to despise the men who were making our world for us, and through whose work we live.

So if our medieval travelers had interests that are completely different from ours; if they found joy in contemplating thoughts that we don’t consider worthwhile; if their minds seemed to focus as much on accepted myths as on the minimal amount of practical experience needed for daily life, it's not our place to judge, pity, or look down on the people who were shaping our world for us, and through whose efforts we thrive.

THE MAPPE-MONDE OF ST. SEVER.

THE MAPPE-MONDE OF ST. SEVER.

THE MAPPE-MONDE OF ST. SEVER.
(see list of maps)

THE MAPPE-MONDE OF ST. SEVER.
(see list of maps)

Especially we cannot afford to forget this as we reach the lowest point of the fortunes, the mental[Pg 49] and material work and position and outlook, of Europe and Christendom. A half-barbarised world had entered upon the inheritance of a splendid past, but it took centuries before that inheritance was realised by the so altered present. In this time of change we have men writing in the language of Cæsar and Augustine, of Alexander and Plato and Aristotle, who had been themselves, or whose fathers had been, pirates, brigands, nomades,—"wolves of the land or of the sea"—to Greeks or Romans of the South; who had been even to the Romanised provincials of the North, as in Britain, mere "dogs," "whelps from the kennel of barbarism," the destroyers of the order of the world. The boundless credulity and servile terror, the superstition and feudal tyranny of the earlier Middle Ages, mark the first stage of the reconstruction of society, when savage strong men who had conquered were set down beside the overworked and outworn masters of the Western world, to learn of them, and to make of them a more enduring race.

Especially, we can't forget this as we hit the lowest point of fortunes, the mental[Pg 49] and material state, position, and outlook of Europe and Christendom. A partially barbaric world had taken on the legacy of a magnificent past, but it took centuries for that legacy to be understood in the so altered present. In this time of change, we have men writing in the language of Cæsar and Augustine, of Alexander and Plato and Aristotle, who had been themselves, or whose fathers had been, pirates, brigands, nomads—“wolves of the land or of the sea”—to the Greeks or Romans of the South; who had even been to the Romanized provincials of the North, like in Britain, mere “dogs,” “whelps from the kennel of barbarism,” the destroyers of the order of the world. The boundless gullibility and fearful servitude, the superstition and feudal tyranny of the earlier Middle Ages, mark the first stage of rebuilding society, when powerful savage men who had conquered were placed alongside the overworked and worn-out masters of the Western world, to learn from them and create a more enduring race.

decorative illustration

decorative illustration


decorative illustration

decorative illustration

CHAPTER II.

VIKINGS OR NORTHMEN.

CIRCA 787-1066.

The discoveries and conquests and colonies of the Norse Vikings, from the White Sea to North America, are the first glimpses of light on the sea of darkness round the little island of the known world that made up Christendom. And from the needs of the time these were the natural, the only natural beginnings of European expansion. From the rise of Islam, Saracens controlled the great trade-routes of the South and East. It was only on the West and North that the coast was clear—of all but natural dangers.

TThe discoveries, conquests, and colonies of the Norse Vikings, from the White Sea to North America, are the first signs of hope in the dark sea surrounding the small island of the known world that made up Christendom. Given the needs of the time, these were the natural and only real beginnings of European expansion. With the rise of Islam, the Saracens took control of the major trade routes in the South and East. Only to the West and North was the coast clear—aside from some natural dangers.

In the Moslem Caliphate men were now busy in following up the old lines of trade, the immemorial traditions of the East, or as in southern Africa, extending the sphere of commercial activity and so of civilisation; men of science were commenting on the ancient texts of Greeks and Latins, or adapting them to enlarged knowledge.

In the Muslim Caliphate, men were heavily engaged in pursuing established trade routes, the long-standing traditions of the East, or, like in southern Africa, broadening the scope of commercial activity and thus civilization; scholars were analyzing ancient Greek and Latin texts or updating them to reflect greater knowledge.

But in Christendom, in the atrophy both of[Pg 51] mental and physical activity, broken for short periods and in certain lands by the revivals of Charles the Great, of the Isaurian Emperors, of Otto I., of Alfred and his House, the practical energy of Heathen enemies,—for the Northmen were not seriously touched by Christianity till about the end of the first millennium,—was the first sign of lasting resurrection. After the material came the spiritual revival; the whole life of the Middle Ages awoke on the conversion of the Northern nations and of Hungary; but in the abundant and brilliant energy of the eleventh, the twelfth, the thirteenth centuries, we must recognise the offspring of the irrepressible Norsemen as well as of the Irish and Frank and English missionaries, who in the Dark Ages of Christendom were working out the empire of Innocent III.

But in Christendom, during the decline of both[Pg 51] mental and physical activity, there were brief revivals in certain places led by figures like Charles the Great, the Isaurian Emperors, Otto I, Alfred and his House, and the practical energy of non-Christian enemies. The Northmen didn't really embrace Christianity until around the end of the first millennium. This was the first sign of a lasting comeback. After the material revival came the spiritual one; the entire life of the Middle Ages was revitalized by the conversion of the Northern nations and Hungary. However, we should recognize that the abundant and dynamic energy of the eleventh, twelfth, and thirteenth centuries was fueled by not only the relentless Norsemen but also the Irish, Frankish, and English missionaries who were developing the empire of Innocent III during the Dark Ages of Christendom.

In exploration, especially, it was true that theory followed achievement. Flavio Gioja, of Amalphi, did not apply the magnet to navigation—did not "give sailors the use of the magnet"—till navigation itself had begun to venture into the unknown Atlantic. The history of geographical advance in the earlier Middle Ages is thus rather a chronicle of adventure than of science.

In exploration, especially, it was true that theory followed achievement. Flavio Gioja, from Amalfi, didn't apply the magnet to navigation—didn't "give sailors the use of the magnet"—until navigation itself had started to venture into the unknown Atlantic. The history of geographical progress in the earlier Middle Ages is therefore more of an adventure story than a scientific one.

But the Norse discoveries are not only the first, they are the leading achievements of Western travel and enterprise in the true Unknown, between the time of Constantine and the Crusades. The central fact of European expansion in the Dark Ages (from the seventh to the eleventh century) is the advance of the Vikings to the Arctic Continent and to America[Pg 52] about the year 1000. All that precedes this on the same line is doubtful and unimportant. For, of the other voyages to the West in the sixth, the eighth, the tenth centuries, which, on Columbus' success, turned into prior claims to the finding of the New World, there is not one that deserves notice.

But the Norse discoveries aren't just the first; they represent the major accomplishments of Western exploration and ventures into the true Unknown, between the time of Constantine and the Crusades. The key aspect of European expansion during the Dark Ages (from the seventh to the eleventh century) is the Vikings' journey to the Arctic and to America[Pg 52] around the year 1000. Everything that came before this is questionable and insignificant. As for other westward voyages in the sixth, eighth, and tenth centuries, which later turned into claims of prior discovery of the New World after Columbus' success, none of them are worth mentioning.

St. Brandon in 565, the Seven Spanish Bishops in 734, the Basques in 990 may or may not have sighted their islands of "Antillia," of "Atlantis," of the "Seven Cities." They cannot be verified or valued, any more than the journeys of the Enchanted Horse or the Third Calendar. We only know for certain a few unimportant, half-accidental facts, such as the visits of Irish hermits to Iceland and the Färoes during the eighth century, and the traces of their cells and chapels—in bells and ruins and crosses—found by the Northmen in the ninth.

St. Brandon in 565, the Seven Spanish Bishops in 734, and the Basques in 990 may or may not have seen their islands of "Antillia," "Atlantis," or the "Seven Cities." These accounts can't be confirmed or valued, just like the adventures of the Enchanted Horse or the Third Calendar. What we know for sure are a few minor, somewhat random facts, like the visits of Irish hermits to Iceland and the Faroe Islands during the eighth century, and the remnants of their cells and chapels—in bells, ruins, and crosses—found by the Norse in the ninth century.

It was in 787 that the Vikings first landed in England; by the opening of the next century they were threatening the whole coast line of Christendom, from Gallicia to the Elbe; in 874 they began to colonise Iceland; in 877 they sighted Greenland; in 922 Rolf the Ganger won his "Normandy" from Charles the Simple, by the Treaty of Clair-sur-Epte; as early as 840 was founded the first Norse or Ostman kingdom in Ireland, and in 878 the Norse earldom of the Orkneys, while about the same time the first Vikings seem to have reached the White Sea and the extreme North of Europe.

It was in 787 that the Vikings first landed in England; by the beginning of the next century, they were threatening the entire coastline of Christendom, from Galicia to the Elbe. In 874, they started colonizing Iceland; in 877, they sighted Greenland; in 922, Rolf the Ganger won his "Normandy" from Charles the Simple through the Treaty of Clair-sur-Epte. As early as 840, the first Norse or Ostman kingdom was established in Ireland, and in 878, the Norse earldom of the Orkneys was formed. Around the same time, the first Vikings seem to have reached the White Sea and the far North of Europe.

This advance is almost as rapid as that of the early Saracens; within a hundred years from the[Pg 53] first disturbance of Danes and Northmen by the growing, all-including power of the new national kingdoms,—within three generations from Halfdan the Black,—first the flying rebels, and then the royalists in pursuit of them, had reached the farthest western and northern limits of the known world, from Finisterre in "Spanland" to Cape Farewell in Greenland, from the North Cape in Finland to the Northwest Capes of "Irland," from Novgorod or "Holmgard" in Russia to "Valland," between the Garonne and the Loire.

This advancement is almost as quick as that of the early Saracens; within a hundred years from the[Pg 53] initial disruption caused by the Danes and Northmen due to the rise of powerful national kingdoms,—within three generations from Halfdan the Black,—first the fleeing rebels, and then the royalists chasing after them, had reached the furthest western and northern edges of the known world, from Finisterre in "Spain" to Cape Farewell in Greenland, from North Cape in Finland to the Northwest Capes of "Ireland," from Novgorod or "Holmgard" in Russia to "Valland," located between the Garonne and the Loire.

The chief lines of Northern advance were three—by the north-west, south-west, and north-east, but each of these divided, after a time, with important results.

The main routes of the Northern advance were three—northwest, southwest, and northeast—but each of these eventually split, leading to significant outcomes.

The first sea-path, running by Caithness, Orkneys, Shetlands, and Färoes, reached Iceland, Greenland, and at last Vinland on the North American Continent; but from the settlements on the coasts and islands of northern Scotland, a fresh wave of pirate colonists swept down south-west into the narrow seas of St. George's Channel and beat upon the east and north and south of Ireland and the western coasts of England and of "Bretland."

The first sea route, passing by Caithness, Orkneys, Shetlands, and the Faroe Islands, reached Iceland, Greenland, and finally Vinland on the North American continent; however, from the settlements along the coasts and islands of northern Scotland, a new wave of pirate settlers moved down southwest into the narrow waters of St. George's Channel and attacked the east, north, and south of Ireland, as well as the western coasts of England and "Bretland."

The second invasion ran along the North German coast, and on reaching the Straits of Dover, fell upon both sides of the English Channel, according as the resistance was stronger or weaker in Wessex or in Frankland. The advanced guard reunited with Ostmen and Orkneyers in the Scilly Isles, and in Cornwall, and pressed on to the plunder of the Bay of Biscay and its coasts. The most restless of all[Pg 54] were not long in finding out the wealth of the Moslem Caliphate of Cordova, and trying to force their way up the Douro and the Tagus.

The second invasion went along the North German coast, and upon reaching the Straits of Dover, attacked both sides of the English Channel, depending on whether the resistance was stronger or weaker in Wessex or in Frankland. The advance party rejoined with Ostmen and Orkneyers in the Scilly Isles and in Cornwall, and continued on to loot the Bay of Biscay and its coastlines. The most restless of all[Pg 54] quickly discovered the riches of the Muslim Caliphate of Cordova and attempted to navigate their way up the Douro and the Tagus.

The expansion on this side was not to stop till it had founded, from the Norman colony on the Seine, a Norman kingdom of England, and a dominion in the Two Sicilies, but this was the work of the eleventh century, the time of organisation and settled empire.

The expansion on this side wouldn’t stop until it had established, from the Norman colony on the Seine, a Norman kingdom in England and a territory in the Two Sicilies. But that was the work of the eleventh century, which was a time of organization and a settled empire.

On the third side of northern expansion, to east and north-east, there were two separate roads from the first; one taking the Baltic for its track, and dividing northwards to Finland, up the Gulf of Bothnia, eastwards to Russia and Novgorod ("Gardariki" and "Holmgard"), the other coasting along "Halogaland" to Biarmaland, along Lapland to Perm and the Archangel of later time.

On the northern expansion's third side, to the east and northeast, there were two distinct roads from the first; one followed the Baltic for its route, branching northwards to Finland, up the Gulf of Bothnia, and eastwards to Russia and Novgorod ("Gardariki" and "Holmgard"). The other ran along "Halogaland" to Biarmaland, through Lapland to Perm and later Archangel.

Of these three lines of movement by far the most vital to our subject is the first, which is also the earliest; the second, to south and south-west, hardly gives any direct results for our story; and the third, to east and north, is mainly concerned with Russian history. While King Alfred was yet unborn, Norse settlements had been permanently founded in the outlying points, coasts, and islands of Scotland and Ireland, and in the years of his boyhood, about 860, Nadodd the Fäeroe Jarl sighted Iceland, which had been touched at by the Irish monks in 795 but was now to be first added as a lasting gain to Europe, as a new country, "Snowland"—something more than a hermitage for religious exiles from the world. Four years later (in 864) Gardar the Swede[Pg 55] reached this new Ultima Thule, and re-named it from himself "Gardar's Holm." Yet another Viking, Raven Floke, followed the track of the first explorer in 867, before Iceland got its final name and earliest colonisation from the Norsemen Ingolf and Leif and the sheep-farmers of the Färoes in 874, the third year of Alfred's reign in Wessex.

Of these three movements, the most important for our topic is the first one, which is also the earliest. The second one, heading south and southwest, doesn’t provide any direct results for our story. The third one, going east and north, mainly relates to Russian history. While King Alfred had not yet been born, Norse settlements had already been established in the far-off points, coasts, and islands of Scotland and Ireland. During his boyhood, around 860, Nadodd the Färoese Jarl spotted Iceland, which had previously been visited by Irish monks in 795, but now was to be recognized as a permanent addition to Europe, a new land called "Snowland"—more than just a refuge for religious exiles. Four years later, in 864, Gardar the Swede[Pg 55] reached this new Ultima Thule and named it after himself, "Gardar's Holm." Another Viking, Raven Floke, retraced the steps of the first explorer in 867, before Iceland received its final name and first Norse settlers Ingolf and Leif, along with the sheep farmers from the Färoes, arrived in 874, the third year of Alfred's reign in Wessex.

THE ANGLO-SAXON MAP.

THE ANGLO-SAXON MAP.

THE ANGLO-SAXON MAP.
(see list of maps)

THE ANGLO-SAXON MAP.
(see list of maps)

Three years later, 877-8, at the very time of the farthest Danish advance in England, when Guthrum had driven the English King into the Isle of Athelney, the Norsemen reached their farthest point of northern advance in Europe; Gunnbiorn sighted a new land to the north-west, which he called "White Shirt," from its snow-fields, and which Red Eric a century later re-named Greenland—"for there is nothing like a good name to attract settlers." By this the Old World had come nearer than ever before to the discovery of a new one.

Three years later, in 877-8, at the peak of the Danish advance in England, when Guthrum had forced the English King into the Isle of Athelney, the Norsemen reached their furthest northern point in Europe. Gunnbiorn spotted a new land to the northwest, which he named "White Shirt" because of its snowy fields. A century later, Red Eric renamed it Greenland—"because a good name really helps attract settlers." With this, the Old World was closer than ever to discovering a new one.

Geographically, this side of the Arctic Continent falls to the share of North America, and once its fiords had been made in their turn centres of colonisation and of further progress, the actual reaching of Newfoundland and Cape Cod was natural enough. The real voyage lay between Cape Farewell and the European mainland; it was a stormy and dangerous passage from the Greenland Bays to Labrador, but not a long one, and, as far as can be judged from scanty records, neither so cold nor so icebound as at present.

Geographically, this part of the Arctic Continent belongs to North America, and once its fjords became centers of colonization and progress, it was only natural to reach Newfoundland and Cape Cod. The true journey was between Cape Farewell and the European mainland; it was a stormy and risky route from the Greenland Bays to Labrador, but it wasn't long, and from what limited records exist, it seems it was neither as cold nor as icebound as it is now.

But exploration had outrun settlement. It was not till 986, more than one hundred years after Gunnbiorn's discovery, that Eric the Red, one of the[Pg 56] chiefs of the Iceland colonists, led a band of followers and friends into a permanent exile in the unknown land. The beginnings of several villages were made in the next few years, and the first American discoveries followed at once. About 989 one Bjarni Herjulfson, following his father from Iceland to Eric's Fiord in Greenland, was driven west by storms first to a flat, well-wooded country, then to a mountainous island, covered with glaciers. He bore away with a fresh breeze and reached his home in Eric's Fiord in four days.

But exploration had outpaced settlement. It wasn’t until 986, more than a hundred years after Gunnbiorn's discovery, that Eric the Red, one of the[Pg 56] leaders of the Icelandic colonists, took a group of followers and friends into permanent exile in the uncharted land. In the next few years, several villages began to develop, and the first American discoveries followed immediately. Around 989, a man named Bjarni Herjulfson, following his father from Iceland to Eric's Fiord in Greenland, was blown west by storms, first to a flat, wooded area, and then to a mountainous island covered in glaciers. He sailed back with a good breeze and reached his home in Eric's Fiord in four days.

But his report aroused great interest; the time had come, and the men, and Norse rovers, who after so much in the past were ready to dare anything in the future, eagerly volunteered to follow up the new route; Bjarni himself visiting Norway and telling his story, was blamed for his slackness, and when he went back to Greenland there was "much talk of finding unknown lands." In the year 1000 Leif, a son of Red Eric, started with a definite purpose of discovery. He bought Bjarni's ship, manned it with five and twenty men and put out. First they came to the land Bjarni had sighted last, and went on shore. There was no grass to be seen, but great snowy ridges far inland, "and all the way from the coast to these mountains was one field of snow, and it seemed to them a land of no profit,"—so they left, calling it Helluland, or Slate-land, perhaps the Labrador of the sixteenth century.

But his report sparked a lot of interest; the time had come, and the men, along with Norse explorers, who had endured so much in the past were ready to take on anything in the future, eagerly volunteered to explore the new route. Bjarni himself traveled to Norway to share his story but was criticized for being lazy. When he returned to Greenland, there was a lot of talk about finding unknown lands. In the year 1000, Leif, the son of Red Eric, set out with the specific goal of exploration. He bought Bjarni's ship, crewed it with twenty-five men, and headed out. First, they reached the land Bjarni had previously seen and went ashore. There was no grass in sight, only towering snowy ridges far inland. "From the coast to these mountains was just one vast field of snow, and it seemed like a land of no value,"—so they left, naming it Helluland, or Slate-land, which might have been the Labrador of the sixteenth century.

They put to sea again and found another land, flat and wooded, with a white sand shore, low-lying towards the sea. This, said Leif, we will call after[Pg 57] its nature, Markland (Woodland). Thence driving for two days before a north-east wind, they came to an island, where they landed to wait for good weather. They tasted the dew on the grass and thought they had never known anything so sweet. Sailing on again into a sound between the island and a ness, they reached a place where a river came out of a lake; into this they towed the ship and anchored, carrying their beds out on the shore and setting up their tents, with a large hut in the middle, and made all ready for wintering there.

They set sail again and discovered another land, flat and wooded, with a white sandy shore that gently sloped toward the sea. “This,” Leif said, “we will name Markland (Woodland) after its nature.” After two days sailing with a northeast wind, they arrived at an island, where they landed to wait for better weather. They sampled the dew on the grass and thought they had never tasted anything so sweet. Continuing their journey into a sound between the island and a headland, they reached a spot where a river flowed out of a lake; they towed the ship into it and anchored, carrying their beds onto the shore and setting up their tents, with a large hut in the center, preparing everything for wintering there.

There was no want of fish food—"the largest salmon in the lake they had ever seen"—and the country seemed to them so good that they would need no fodder for cattle in the winter. There was no frost; the grass seemed fresh enough all the year round, and day and night were more equal than in Iceland or in Greenland. The crew were divided in two parts: one worked at the huts and the other explored the country, returning every night to the camp. From the wild vines found by the foragers, the whole district was called Vinland, and samples of these, enough to fill the stern boat, and of the trees and "self-sown wheat" found in the fields were taken back to Eric's Fiord. Thereafter Leif was called the Lucky, and got much wealth and fame, but Thorwald Ericson, his brother, thought he had not explored enough, and "determined to be talked about" even more than the first settler of Vinland.

There was no shortage of fish food—"the largest salmon in the lake they'd ever seen"—and they thought the land was so rich that they wouldn’t need to provide hay for cattle in the winter. There was no frost; the grass looked fresh all year round, and day and night were more balanced than in Iceland or Greenland. The crew was split into two groups: one worked on building huts while the other explored the area, returning to camp every night. Because of the wild grapes found by the foragers, the entire region was named Vinland, and they brought back enough samples of those, along with trees and "self-sown wheat" from the fields, to fill the stern boat to take back to Eric's Fiord. After that, Leif became known as the Lucky and gained a lot of wealth and fame, but his brother Thorwald Ericson thought he hadn’t explored enough and "decided to be even more talked about" than the first settler of Vinland.

He put to sea with thirty men and came straight to Leif's Booths in Vinland, where he stayed the winter. On the first signs of spring Thorwald[Pg 58] ordered his vessel to be rigged, and sent his longboat on ahead to explore.

He set off to sea with thirty men and headed directly to Leif's Booths in Vinland, where he spent the winter. As soon as spring arrived, Thorwald[Pg 58] had his ship prepared and sent his longboat ahead to scout the area.

All alike thought the land beautiful and well-wooded; they noticed that the distance was small between the forest and the sea, that the beach was all of white sand, and that there were many islands off the shore and very shallow water; but they saw no trace of man or beast, except a wooden corn-barn on an island far to the west. After coasting all the summer they came back in the autumn to the booths.

All of them thought the land was beautiful and full of trees; they noticed that the distance between the forest and the sea was short, that the beach was made of white sand, and that there were many islands offshore with very shallow water; but they saw no sign of people or animals, except for a wooden corn barn on an island far to the west. After spending the summer along the coast, they returned to the booths in the autumn.

The next spring Thorwald went eastwards, and "towards the north along the land they drove upon a cape and broke their keel and stayed long to repair, and called the place Keel-Ness (Kjalarness) from this." Then they sailed away eastwards along the country, everywhere thickly wooded, till at one place Thorwald drew up his ships to the land and laid out gangways to the shore, saying, "I would gladly set up my farm here."

The next spring, Thorwald headed east and “traveled north along the coast, where they ran into a cape and damaged their keel, spending a long time repairing it, naming the place Keel-Ness (Kjalarness) because of this.” Then they sailed further east along the densely wooded shoreline until Thorwald decided to pull his ships up on land, setting up gangways to the shore, and said, “I would happily establish my farm here.”

But now they came upon the first traces of other men; far off upon the white sandy beach three specks were sighted—three skin boats of the Skrælings or Esquimaux, with three men hiding under each. Thorwald's men captured and killed eight of them, but one escaped "to where within the fiord were several dwellings like little lumps on the ground." A heavy drowsiness now fell upon the Norsemen, in the Saga, till a "sudden scream came to them, and a countless host from up the fiord came in skin boats and laid themselves alongside."

But now they found the first signs of other people; far off on the white sandy beach, they spotted three small shapes—three skin boats belonging to the Skrælings or Eskimos, with three men hiding under each one. Thorwald's men captured and killed eight of them, but one got away "to where inside the fjord there were several homes like little bumps on the ground." A heavy drowsiness then settled over the Norsemen, in the Saga, until a "sudden scream reached them, and a countless crowd from up the fjord arrived in skin boats and lined up alongside."

The Vikings put up their shield-wall along the[Pg 59] gunwale and kept off the arrows of the Esquimaux till they had shot them all away, and "fled off as fast as they could," leaving Thorwald with a mortal wound under the arm. He had time just to bid his men "carry him to the point he had wished to dwell at, for it was true that he would stay there awhile, but with a cross at head and feet; and so died and was buried as he had said." The place was called Crossness from the dead chief, but the crew stayed all the winter and loaded the ship with vines and grapes, and in the spring came back to Eric in Greenland.

The Vikings formed their shield-wall along the[Pg 59] edge of the ship and fended off the arrows from the Esquimaux until they had shot them all. Then they "fled as quickly as they could," leaving Thorwald with a fatal wound under his arm. He had just enough time to tell his men to "take him to the spot he wanted to stay at, because it was true he would remain there for a while, but with a cross at his head and feet; and so he died and was buried as he requested." The place was named Crossness in honor of the deceased chief, but the crew stayed there all winter, loading the ship with vines and grapes, and in the spring returned to Eric in Greenland.

And now, after the first mishap, discovery became more serious—not to be undertaken but by strong and well-armed fleets. It was this that checked the expansion of these Arctic colonies; at their best they were too small to do more than hold their own against nature and the Skræling savages in their tiny settlements along the coast, where the ice-fields have long since pushed man slowly but surely into the sea, with his painfully won patches of hay and corn and pasturage.

And now, after the first incident, exploration became more serious—not to be attempted except by strong and well-armed fleets. This is what limited the growth of these Arctic colonies; at their best, they were too small to do anything more than survive against nature and the indigenous people in their small settlements along the coast, where the ice fields have long pushed humans slowly but surely into the sea, taking their hard-won patches of grass, corn, and grazing land with them.

But the colonists would never say die till they were utterly worn out; now they only roused themselves to conquer the new lands they had found, and found disputed.

But the colonists would never give up until they were completely exhausted; now they only rallied themselves to conquer the new lands they had discovered and contested.

First a third son of Red Eric, Thorstein, bethought him to go to Vinland for his brother Thorwald's body. He put to sea and lost all sight of land, beating about in the ocean the whole summer, till he came back to Greenland in the first week of winter. (1004-6.)[Pg 60]

First, the third son of Red Eric, Thorstein, decided to go to Vinland for his brother Thorwald's body. He set sail and lost sight of land, drifting around in the ocean all summer until he returned to Greenland in the first week of winter. (1004-6.)[Pg 60]

He was followed by the greatest of the Vinland sailors, Thorfinn Karlsefne, who really took in hand the founding of a new settlement over the Western Sea. He came from Norway to Iceland soon after Thorwald's death in 1004, passed on to Greenland about 1005, "when, as before, much was talked about a Vinland voyage," and in 1006 made ready to start with one hundred and sixty men and five women, in three ships. They had with them all kinds of cattle, meaning to settle in the land if they could, and they made an agreement, Karlsefne and his people, that each should have an equal share in the gain. Leif lent them his houses in Vinland, "for he would not give them outright," and they sailed first to Helluland (Labrador), where they found a quantity of foxes, then to Markland, well-stocked with forest animals, then to an island at the mouth of a fiord, unknown before, covered with eyder ducks. They called the new discoveries Stream Island and Stream Fiord, from the current that here ran out into the sea, and sent off a party of eight men, in search of Vinland, in a stern boat. This was driven by westerly gales back to Iceland, but Thorfinn, with the rest, sailed south till he came to Leif Ericson's "river that fell into the sea from a lake, with islands lying off the mouth of the stream, low grounds covered with wheat growing wild, and rising grounds clad with vines."

He was followed by the greatest of the Vinland sailors, Thorfinn Karlsefne, who took the lead in establishing a new settlement across the Western Sea. He traveled from Norway to Iceland shortly after Thorwald's death in 1004, moved on to Greenland around 1005, "when, as before, there was a lot of talk about a Vinland voyage," and in 1006 prepared to set sail with one hundred and sixty men and five women, in three ships. They brought all kinds of livestock, planning to settle in the land if possible, and made an agreement that each person would have an equal share of the profits. Leif offered them his houses in Vinland, "because he wouldn’t give them away outright," and they first sailed to Helluland (Labrador), where they encountered many foxes, then to Markland, rich with forest animals, and then to an unknown island at the mouth of a fiord, covered with eider ducks. They named the new discoveries Stream Island and Stream Fiord, after the current that flowed out to sea, and sent a party of eight men in a small boat to search for Vinland. This crew was blown back to Iceland by western gales, but Thorfinn, with the others, continued south until he reached Leif Ericson's "river that flowed into the sea from a lake, with islands lying off the mouth of the stream, lowlands filled with wild wheat, and rising lands covered in vines."

Here they settled, re-named the country "Hope, from the good hope they had of it," and began to fell the wood, to pasture their cattle in the upland, and to gather the grapes.[Pg 61]

Here they settled, renamed the country "Hope," reflecting the optimism they had for it, and started to cut down the trees, pasture their cattle in the hills, and harvest the grapes.[Pg 61]

After the first winter the Skrælings came upon them, at first to traffic with furs and sables against milk and dairy produce, and then to fight; for as neither understood the other, and the natives tried to force their way into Thorfinn's houses, and to get hold of his men's weapons, a quarrel was bound to come.

After the first winter, the Skrælings showed up, initially to trade furs and sables for milk and dairy products, but then things turned hostile. Since neither side understood the other, and the natives attempted to break into Thorfinn's houses and grab his men's weapons, a conflict was inevitable.

Fearing this, Karlsefne put a fence round the settlement and made all ready for battle, "and at this very time was a child born to him in the village, called Snorre, of Gudrid his wife, the widow of Thorstein Eric-son, whom he had brought with him." Then the Esquimaux came down upon them, "many more than before, and there was a battle, and Thorfinn's men won the day and saved the cattle," and their enemies fled into the forest.

Fearing this, Karlsefne set up a fence around the settlement and prepared for battle. "At that very time, a child was born to him in the village, named Snorre, with Gudrid his wife, the widow of Thorstein Eric-son, whom he had brought with him." Then the Esquimaux attacked them, "in greater numbers than before, and there was a battle, and Thorfinn's men won the day and saved the cattle," while their enemies fled into the forest.

Thorfinn stayed all the winter, but towards spring he grew tired of his enterprise, and returned to Greenland, "taking much goods," vines, wood for timber, and skin-wares, and so came back to Eric's Fiord in the summer of 1008.

Thorfinn stayed all winter, but by spring, he got tired of his venture and went back to Greenland, "taking a lot of goods," including vines, timber, and leather goods, and returned to Eric's Fiord in the summer of 1008.

Thus ends the story of the last serious effort to colonise Vinland, and the Saga, while giving no definite cause for this failure upon failure, seems to show that even the trifling annoyance of the Skrælings was enough to turn the scale. Natural difficulties were so immense, men were so few, that a pigmy enemy had all the power of the last straw in a load, the odd man in a council. The actual resistance of American natives to European colonists was never very serious in any part of the continent, but the distance from the starting-point and the difficulties[Pg 62] of life in the new country were able, even in the time of Raleigh and De Soto, to keep in check men who far more readily founded and kept up European empires in the Indian seas.

Thus ends the story of the last serious attempt to colonize Vinland, and the Saga, while not providing a clear reason for this repeated failure, suggests that even the minor irritations caused by the Skrælings were enough to tip the balance. The natural challenges were enormous, the number of men was limited, so a small enemy had the same impact as the last straw on a heavy load or an extra person in a meeting. The actual resistance from American natives to European colonists was never particularly serious anywhere on the continent, but the distance from their starting point and the challenges[Pg 62] of living in the new land were enough, even during the times of Raleigh and De Soto, to discourage those who were much more successful at establishing and maintaining European empires in the Indian seas.

So now, though on Thorfinn's return the "talk began to turn again upon a Vinland voyage, as both gainful and honourable," and a daughter of Red Eric, named Freydis, talked men over—especially two brothers, Helge and Finnboge—to a fresh attempt in the country where all the House of Eric had tried and failed; though Leif lent his booths as before, and sixty able-bodied men, besides women, were found willing to go, the colony could never be firmly planted. Freydis and her allies sailed in 1011, reached the settlement, which was now for the third time recolonised, and wintered there;—but jealousies soon broke up the camp, Helge and Finnboge were murdered with all their followers, and the rest came back in 1013 to Greenland, "where Thorfinn Karlsefne was just ready for sailing back to Norway, and it was common talk that never did a richer ship leave Eric's Fiord than that which he steered." It was that same Karlsefne who gave the fullest account of all his travels, concludes the Saga, but whether Thorfinn ever returned to Vinland, whether there were any more attempts to settle at Leif's Booths or elsewhere, whether the account we have of these voyages is really an Eric Saga, only telling the deeds of Red Eric and his House—for after Bjarni, almost every Vinland leader is of this family—we cannot tell. We can only fancy that all these suggestions are probable, by the side of the few addi[Pg 63]tional facts known to the Norse Skalds or Bards. The first of these is, that in 983-4, Are Marson of Reykianes in Iceland was driven by storms far West to White Man's Land, where he was followed by Bjarni Asbrandson in 999, and by Gudleif Gudlangson in 1029. This was the tale of his friend Rafn, "the Limerick trader," and of Are Frode, his great-great-grandson, who called the unknown land Great Ireland.[17] True or untrue, in whatever way, this would be a later discovery than those of Eric and his sons, if the news of it did not come into Iceland or Norway till after Thorfinn Karlsefne's voyage, as is generally supposed. Again, the length of the voyage is a difficulty, and the whole matter has a doubtful look—an attempt to start a rival to the Eric Saga, by a far more brilliant success a few years earlier.

So now, when Thorfinn returned, the conversation started up again about a voyage to Vinland, which was seen as both profitable and honorable. Freydis, a daughter of Red Eric, convinced some men—especially two brothers, Helge and Finnboge—to make another attempt in the land where the House of Eric had previously tried and failed. Leif offered his booths again, and sixty able-bodied men, along with some women, were eager to go, but the colony could never be properly established. Freydis and her allies set sail in 1011, reached the settlement which was now being resettled for the third time, and spent the winter there. However, tensions quickly fractured the camp, Helge and Finnboge were murdered along with all their followers, and the rest returned to Greenland in 1013, just as Thorfinn Karlsefne was preparing to sail back to Norway, with the common talk being that no ship had ever left Eric's Fiord richer than the one he was steering. It was Karlsefne who provided the most detailed account of all his travels, concluding the Saga, but whether Thorfinn ever went back to Vinland, whether there were any further attempts to settle at Leif's Booths or elsewhere, and whether the account we have of these voyages is truly an Eric Saga—only recounting the deeds of Red Eric and his family—remains unclear. We can only speculate that all these possibilities seem likely, given the few additional facts known to the Norse Skalds or Bards. One fact is that in 983-4, Are Marson from Reykianes in Iceland was blown off course by storms far west to White Man's Land, followed by Bjarni Asbrandson in 999 and Gudleif Gudlangson in 1029. This was the story shared by his friend Rafn, "the Limerick trader," and Are Frode, his great-great-grandson, who named the unknown land Great Ireland. True or false, this would have been a later discovery than those of Eric and his sons, provided the news didn’t reach Iceland or Norway until after Thorfinn Karlsefne’s voyage, as is commonly believed. Additionally, the length of the voyage poses a challenge, and the whole situation seems uncertain—an attempt to rival the Eric Saga with a much more notable success a few years earlier.

We seem to be on more certain ground in our next and last chapter of Viking exploration in the north-west, in the fragmentary notices of Greenland and Vinland voyages to the middle of the fourteenth century, and in the fairly clear and continuous account of the two Greenland settlements of the western and the eastern Bays.

We appear to have a more solid understanding in our next and final chapter on Viking exploration in the northwest, based on the scattered reports of Greenland and Vinland voyages up to the mid-fourteenth century, as well as the fairly clear and continuous description of the two Greenland settlements in the western and eastern Bays.

We hear, for instance, of Bishop Eric going over from Eric's Fiord to Vinland in 1121; of clergy from the Eastern Bay diocese of Gardar sailing to lands in the West, far north of Vinland, in 1266; of the two Helgasons discovering a country west of Iceland in 1285; of a voyage from Greenland to[Pg 64] Markland in 1347 by a crew of seventeen men, recorded in 1354.

We hear, for example, about Bishop Eric traveling from Eric's Fiord to Vinland in 1121; about clergy from the Eastern Bay diocese of Gardar sailing to lands in the West, well north of Vinland, in 1266; about the two Helgasons discovering a country west of Iceland in 1285; and about a voyage from Greenland to[Pg 64] Markland in 1347 by a crew of seventeen men, noted in 1354.

Unless these are pure fabrications, they would seem to prove something of constant intercourse between the mother and daughter colonies of north-west Europe and north-east America, and something of a permanent Christian settlement of Northmen in the New Continent is made probable by assuming such intercourse. Between 981-1000, both Iceland and Greenland had become "Catholic in name and Christian in surname"; in 1126 the line of Bishops of Gardar begins with Arnold, and the clergy would hardly have ventured on the Vinland voyage to convert Skrælings in an almost deserted country.

Unless these are complete fabrications, they seem to support the idea of ongoing interactions between the mother and daughter colonies of northwest Europe and northeast America, and it becomes likely that there was a lasting Christian settlement of Norse people in the New World due to this interaction. Between 981 and 1000, both Iceland and Greenland had become "Catholic in name and Christian in surname"; in 1126, the line of Bishops of Gardar begins with Arnold, and the clergy likely would not have undertaken the Vinland voyage to convert the Skrælings in an almost deserted land.

The later story of the Greenland colonies, interesting as it is, and traceable to the year 1418, is not part of the expansion but of the contraction of Europe and Christendom. And the voyages of the Zeni in 1380-95 to Greenland and the Western islands Estotiland and Drogeo, belong to another part; they are the last achievements of mediæval discovery before Henry of Portugal begins his work, and form the natural end of an introduction to that work.

The later history of the Greenland colonies, while fascinating, and dating back to 1418, is not part of the expansion but the contraction of Europe and Christendom. The voyages of the Zeni between 1380 and 1395 to Greenland and the western islands of Estotiland and Drogeo belong to a different chapter; they are the final accomplishments of medieval exploration before Henry of Portugal starts his endeavors, and they naturally conclude the lead-up to that work.

But it is curious to notice that just as the ice and the Esquimaux between them were bringing to an end the last traces of Norse settlement in the Arctic Continent, and just as all intercourse between Vinland, Greenland, Iceland, and Norway entirely ceases—at any rate to record itself—the Portuguese sailors, taking up the work of Eric and Leif and[Pg 65] Thorfinn, on another side, were rounding Cape Verde and nearing the southern point of Africa, and so providing for the mind of Columbus suggestions which resulted in the lasting discovery of the world that the Vikings had sighted and colonised, but were not able to hold.

But it's interesting to see that just as the ice and the Inuit were wrapping up the last signs of Norse settlement in the Arctic, and just as all communication between Vinland, Greenland, Iceland, and Norway completely stopped—at least from being recorded—the Portuguese sailors, continuing the work of Eric, Leif, and Thorfinn, were rounding Cape Verde and getting close to the southern tip of Africa. This was giving Columbus ideas that led to the lasting discovery of the world that the Vikings had seen and settled but couldn't maintain.

The Venetian, Welsh, and Arabic claims to have followed the Norsemen in visits to America earlier than the voyage of 1492, belong rather to the minute history of geographical controversy. It is a fairly certain fact that the north-west line of Scandinavian migration reached about A.D. 1000 to Cape Cod and the coasts of Labrador. It is equally certain that on this side the Norsemen never made any further advance, lasting or recorded. Against all other mediæval discoveries of a Western Continent, one only verdict can stand:—Not Proven.

The claims from the Venetians, Welsh, and Arabs that they visited America before 1492 are more about a detailed debate in geographical history. It's pretty well established that the north-west migration from Scandinavia reached Cape Cod and the Labrador coasts around A.D. 1000. It's also clear that the Norsemen never made any lasting or documented progress beyond that point in this region. When comparing all other medieval discoveries of a Western continent, only one conclusion can be reached: Not Proven.

The other lines of Northern advance, though marked by equal daring and far greater military exploits, have less of original discovery. There was fighting in plenty, the giving and taking of hard knocks with every nation from Archangel to Cordova and from Limerick to Constantinople; and the Vikings, as they reached fresh ground, re-named most of the capes and coasts, the rivers and islands and countries of Europe, of North Africa, of Western Asia. Iberia became "Spanland"; Gallicia, "Jacobsland"[18]; Gallia, "Frankland"; Britannia, "England," "Scotland," "Bretland"; Hibernia, "Irland"; Islam, outside "Spanland," passed into "Serkland" or Saracenland.[Pg 66] Greece was "Grikland"; Russia, "Gardariki"; the Pillars of Hercules, the Straits of Gibraltar, were "Norva's Sound," which later days derived from the first Northman who passed through them. The city of Constantine was the Great Town—"Miklagard"; Novgorod was "Holmgard," the town of all others that most touched and influenced the earlier, the Viking age, of Northern expansion. For was it not their own proudest and strongest city-state, and "Who can stand before God, or the Great Novgorod?" except the men who had built it, and would rush to sack it if it turned against them?

The other routes of Northern expansion, while marked by equal boldness and even greater military achievements, involve less original discovery. There was plenty of fighting, with each country trading hard blows from Archangel to Cordova and from Limerick to Constantinople; and the Vikings, as they reached new lands, renamed most of the capes and coasts, rivers, islands, and countries of Europe, North Africa, and Western Asia. Iberia became "Spanland"; Galicia, "Jacobsland"; Gallia, "Frankland"; Britannia, "England," "Scotland," "Bretland"; Hibernia, "Irland"; Islam, outside "Spanland," became "Serkland" or Saracenland. Greece was "Grikland"; Russia, "Gardariki"; the Pillars of Hercules, the Straits of Gibraltar, were known as "Norva's Sound," named after the first Northman who passed through them. The city of Constantine was the Great Town—"Miklagard"; Novgorod was "Holmgard," the city that most influenced the earlier Viking age of Northern expansion. After all, it was their proudest and strongest city-state, and "Who can stand before God, or the Great Novgorod?" except for those who built it and would rush to sack it if it turned against them?

But all this was only the passing of a more active race over ground which had once been well known to Rome and to Christendom, even if much of this was now being forgotten. It was only in upland Russia and in the farthest North that the Norsemen sensibly enlarged the Western world to east or north-east, as they did through their Iceland settlements on the north-west.

But all this was just the movement of a more active people across land that had once been familiar to Rome and Christendom, even if much of it was now being forgotten. Only in upland Russia and the farthest North did the Norsemen truly expand the Western world to the east or northeast, as they did through their Iceland settlements in the northwest.

On the south and south-west no Vikings or Royalist followers of Vikings, like Sigurd the Crusader, sailed the seas beyond Norva's Sound and Serkland,[19] and as pilgrims, traders, travellers, and conquerors in the Mediterranean, their work was of course not one of exploration. They bore a foremost share in breaking down the Moslem incubus on southern Europe; they visited the Holy sites[Pg 67]

On the south and southwest, no Vikings or Royalist supporters of Vikings, like Sigurd the Crusader, sailed the seas beyond Norva's Sound and Serkland,[19] and as pilgrims, traders, travelers, and conquerors in the Mediterranean, their efforts were not really about exploration. They played a major role in breaking down the Muslim grip on southern Europe; they visited the holy sites[Pg 67]

"When they relieved sacred Jerusalem" And gazed at the sacred waters of Jordan's river
"Which the beloved body of the Lord God had washed";[20]

they fought as Varangian body-guards in the armies of the great Byzantines, Nikephoros Phokas, John Tzimiskes, Basil II. or Maniakes; but in all this they discovered for themselves rather than for Europe.

they fought as Varangian bodyguards in the armies of the great Byzantines, Nikephoros Phokas, John Tzimiskes, Basil II, or Maniakes; but in all this, they discovered for themselves rather than for Europe.

But Russia, that is, Old Russia round Novgorod and Kiev, the White Sea, the North Cape and Finland coasts, as well as the more outlying parts of Scotland and Ireland, were first clearly known to Europe through the Northmen. The same race did much to open up the modern Lithuania and Prussia, and the conversion of the whole of Scandinavia, mother country and colonies alike, in the tenth and eleventh centuries added our Norway, Sweden, and Denmark, with all the Viking settlements, to the civilised world and church of Rome.

But Russia, specifically Old Russia around Novgorod and Kiev, the White Sea, the North Cape, and the coasts of Finland, as well as the more remote areas of Scotland and Ireland, were first clearly recognized by Europe through the Northmen. This same group significantly contributed to the development of modern Lithuania and Prussia, and the conversion of all of Scandinavia, including the mother country and its colonies, in the tenth and eleventh centuries added Norway, Sweden, and Denmark, along with all the Viking settlements, to the civilized world and the church of Rome.

First, on the eastern side, it was in 862 that the Russians invited help from their less dreaded neighbours around Upsala against their more vexatious neighbours around Kiev, and in September of the same year Ruric arrived at Novgorod and founded the Mediæval Kingdom of Russia, which in the tenth century under Oleg, Igor, and Vladimir was first the plunderer, then the open enemy, and finally the ally in faith and in arms of the Byzantine Empire.[Pg 68]

First, on the eastern side, it was in 862 that the Russians sought help from their less feared neighbors around Upsala against their more troublesome neighbors around Kiev. In September of the same year, Ruric arrived in Novgorod and established the Medieval Kingdom of Russia, which in the tenth century, under Oleg, Igor, and Vladimir, was initially a raider, then an outright enemy, and finally a partner in faith and arms with the Byzantine Empire.[Pg 68]

All through this time and afterwards, till the time of the Tartar deluge, the intercourse of Swedes, Danes, and Northmen with Gardariki was constant and close, and not least in the time of the Vinland voyages, when Vladimir and Jaroslav reigned at Novgorod, and the two Olafs, the son of Trygve and the Saint, found refuge at their court before and after their hard rule in Norway.

All during this time and afterwards, until the Tartar invasion, the interactions between the Swedes, Danes, and Northmen with Gardariki were steady and close, especially during the Vinland voyages, when Vladimir and Jaroslav ruled in Novgorod, and the two Olafs, the son of Trygve and the Saint, sought refuge at their court before and after their harsh rule in Norway.

Olaf Trygveson's uncle had grown old in exile at Novgorod when young Olaf and his mother fled from Norway to join him there and were captured by Vikings in the Baltic and kept six years in the Gulf of Riga before they got to Holmgard (972).

Olaf Trygveson's uncle had grown old in exile in Novgorod when young Olaf and his mother escaped from Norway to join him there. They were captured by Vikings in the Baltic and kept for six years in the Gulf of Riga before they finally reached Holmgard (972).

In 1019 Ingigerd of Sweden was married to Jaroslav; ten years later St. Olaf was driven from Norway by revolt, and flying into Russia, was offered a Kingdom called Volgaria—the modern Casan, whose old metropolis of Vulghar was known to the Arab travellers of the ninth century, and whose ruins can still be seen. Olaf hesitated between this and a pilgrim's death in Jerusalem and at last preferred to fight his way back to Norway.

In 1019, Ingigerd of Sweden married Jaroslav. Ten years later, St. Olaf was driven out of Norway due to a revolt. He fled to Russia, where he was offered a kingdom called Volgaria—the modern-day Kazan, whose ancient capital, Vulghar, was known to Arab travelers in the ninth century, and whose ruins can still be seen today. Olaf struggled to choose between this option and a pilgrim's death in Jerusalem, ultimately deciding to fight his way back to Norway.

The next King of the Norsemen, Magnus the Good, came from Novgorod by Ladoga to Trondhjem, when Olaf's son Harold Hardrada fled back to his father's refuge, to the court of Jaroslav; while Magnus had been in exile, men had asked news of him from all the merchants that traded to Novgorod.

The next King of the Norsemen, Magnus the Good, arrived in Trondhjem from Novgorod via Ladoga, just as Olaf's son Harold Hardrada ran back to his father’s safe haven, the court of Jaroslav; during Magnus's time in exile, people had sought updates about him from all the merchants who traded in Novgorod.

Last of these earlier kings, Harold Hardrada, during all the time of his wild romance in East and South, before he went to Miklagard, and after his flight, and all the time of his service in the Varangian[Pg 69] Guard of the Empress Zoe, made Novgorod his home. His pilgrim relics from Holy Land and his war spoils from Serkland—Africa and Sicily—were all sent back to Jaroslav's care till their master could come and claim them, and when he came at last, flying from Byzantine vengeance across the Black Sea into the Sea of Azov and "all round the Eastern Realm" of Kiev, he found his wealth untouched and Princess Elizabeth ready to be his wife and to help him with Russian men and money to win back Norway and to die at Stamford Bridge for the Crown of England (1066).

Last of these earlier kings, Harold Hardrada, throughout his adventurous journeys in the East and South, before heading to Miklagard, and after his escape, as well as during his time in the Varangian[Pg 69] Guard of Empress Zoe, made Novgorod his home. His relics from the Holy Land and his war spoils from Serkland—Africa and Sicily—were all sent back to Jaroslav's care until their master could return to claim them. When he finally arrived, fleeing from Byzantine retribution across the Black Sea into the Sea of Azov and "all around the Eastern Realm" of Kiev, he discovered his wealth intact and Princess Elizabeth ready to be his wife, assisting him with Russian support to reclaim Norway and to die at Stamford Bridge for the Crown of England (1066).

Harold is the type of all Vikings, of the Norse race in its greatest, most restless energy. William the Conqueror, or Cnut the Great, or Robert Guiscard, or Roger of Sicily, are all greater and stronger men, but there is no "ganger," no rover, like the man who in fifty years, after fighting in well-nigh every land of Christians or of the neighbours and enemies of Christendom, yet hoped for time to sail off to the new-found countries and so fulfil his oath and promise to perfect a life of unmatched adventure by unmatched discovery. He had fought with wild beasts in the Arena of Constantinople; he had bathed in the Jordan and cleared the Syrian roads of robbers; he had stormed eighty castles in Africa; he had succoured the Icelanders in famine and lived as a prince in Russia and Northumberland; by his own songs he boasts that he had sailed all round Europe; but he fell, the prototype of sea-kings like Drake or Magellan, without one discovery. Men of his own nation and time had been before him everywhere,[Pg 70] but he united in himself the work and adventures, the conquests and discoveries of many. He was the incarnation of Northern spirit, and it was through the lives and records of such as he that Europe became filled with that new energy of thought and action, that new life and knowledge, which was the ground and impulse of the movement led by Henry the Navigator, by Columbus, and the Cabots.

Harold is the quintessential Viking, embodying the Norse spirit at its most vibrant and restless. William the Conqueror, Cnut the Great, Robert Guiscard, and Roger of Sicily were all greater and stronger men, but there’s no wanderer, no explorer, quite like him. After fighting in nearly every Christian land and against the neighbors and enemies of Christendom for fifty years, he still dreamed of sailing off to the newly discovered lands to fulfill his oath and complete a life of unmatched adventure through unprecedented discovery. He fought wild beasts in the Arena of Constantinople, bathed in the Jordan, and cleared the roads in Syria of bandits. He stormed eighty castles in Africa, helped the Icelanders during a famine, and lived like a prince in Russia and Northumberland. He claimed in his own songs that he had sailed around all of Europe, yet he fell, the archetype of sea-kings like Drake or Magellan, without making a single discovery. Men from his own nation and time had been everywhere before him, but he combined the achievements and adventures, the conquests and discoveries of many. He was the embodiment of the Northern spirit, and it was through the lives and records of people like him that Europe was infused with a new energy of thought and action, a new life and knowledge, which fueled the movement led by Henry the Navigator, Columbus, and the Cabots.[Pg 70]

Harold's wars kept him from becoming a great explorer, but Norse captains who took service under peaceful kings did something of what he aimed at doing.

Harold's wars stopped him from becoming a great explorer, but Norse captains who served under peaceful kings achieved some of what he wanted to do.

We must retrace our steps to the voyages of Ohthere and Wulfstan under King Alfred about the year 890, about the time when a Norse King, Harold Fair-hair, was first seen in the Scotch and Irish seas. Their discovery of the White Sea, the North Cape, and the gulfs of Bothnia and Finland was followed up by many Norsemen, such as Thorer Hund under St. Olaf, in the next one hundred and fifty years,[21] but Ohthere's voyage was the first and chief of these adventures both in motive and result.

We need to go back to the journeys of Ohthere and Wulfstan during King Alfred's reign around the year 890, when Norse King Harold Fair-hair was first seen in the Scottish and Irish seas. Their discovery of the White Sea, the North Cape, and the gulfs of Bothnia and Finland sparked follow-up expeditions by many Norsemen, like Thorer Hund under St. Olaf, in the following one hundred and fifty years,[21] but Ohthere's voyage was the first and most significant of these adventures in both purpose and outcome.

"He told his lord King Alfred that he dwelt northmost of all Northmen on the land by the Western Sea and he wished to find how far the land lay right north, or whether any man dwelt north of the waste. So he went right north near the land;—for three days he left the waste land on the right and the wide sea on the left, as[Pg 71] far as the whale hunters ever go"; and still he kept north three days more (to the North Cape of Europe).

"He told his lord King Alfred that he lived furthest north of all the Northmen on the land by the Western Sea and he wanted to find out how far the land stretched straight north, or if anyone lived north of the wasteland. So he traveled directly north along the land; for three days he kept the wasteland on his right and the wide sea on his left, as [Pg 71] far as the whale hunters ever go"; and still he continued north for three more days (to the North Cape of Europe).

"Then the land bent right east, and with a west wind he sailed four days till the land bent south, and he sailed by it five days more to a great river—the Dwina—that lay up into the land, and where beyond the river it was all inhabited"—the modern country of Perm and Archangel.

"Then the land curved sharply to the east, and with a west wind, he sailed for four days until the land turned south. He continued sailing by it for another five days to a large river—the Dwina—that flowed inland, and beyond the river, the area was fully populated"—the modern regions of Perm and Archangel.

Here he trafficked with the people, the first he had met, except the Finn hunters, since leaving his fiord. Besides his wish to see the country, he was looking for walrus-ivory and hides.

Here he interacted with the people, the first he had encountered, besides the Finnish hunters, since leaving his fjord. Besides wanting to explore the area, he was searching for walrus ivory and hides.

The Finns and Biarma-men (men of Archangel), it seemed to him, spoke nearly the same language, but between his home and this Biarmaland no human being lived in any fixed dwelling, and all the Northman's land was long and narrow and thinly peopled, decreasing in breadth as it stretched northward, from sixty to three days' journey.

The Finns and the Biarma-men (people of Archangel) seemed to speak almost the same language to him, but between his home and Biarmaland, there wasn't a single person living in a permanent home. All of the Northman's land was long, narrow, and sparsely populated, getting narrower as it extended northward, from a journey of sixty days to just three days.

Again Alfred told how Ohthere, sailing south for a month from his house, having Ireland on his right and coasting Norway all the time on his left, came to Jutland, "where a great sea runs up into the land, so vast that no man can see across it," whence in five days more he reached the coast, "from which the English came to Britain."

Again, Alfred recounted how Ohthere, sailing south for a month from his home, with Ireland on his right and the coast of Norway on his left, arrived at Jutland, "where a huge sea extends into the land, so wide that no one can see across it." From there, in another five days, he reached the coast, "from which the English arrived in Britain."

Wulfstan, in the service of the same king, told him how he sailed in seven days from Sleswick to Truso and the Vistula, having Wendland (or Pomerania and Prussia) on his right all the way. He described "Witland near the Vistula and Estland and[Pg 72] Wendland and Estmere and the Ilfing running from the Truso lake into Eastmere," but neither the king nor his captains knew enough to contradict the old idea, found in Ptolemy and Strabo, of Scandinavia as one vast island.

Wulfstan, serving the same king, told him how he sailed in seven days from Sleswick to Truso and the Vistula, with Wendland (or Pomerania and Prussia) on his right the whole way. He described "Witland near the Vistula and Estland and[Pg 72] Wendland and Estmere and the Ilfing running from the Truso lake into Eastmere," but neither the king nor his captains had enough knowledge to challenge the old belief, found in Ptolemy and Strabo, of Scandinavia as one huge island.

Thus it was for the satisfaction of their Saxon Lord that Wulfstan and Ohthere, by their voyages along the coasts of Norway and Lapland, of Pomerania and Prussia, round the White Sea and the Gulf of Riga and southern Finland, added a more coherent view of north-east Europe, and specially of the Baltic Gulf, to Western geography; but these Norse discoveries, though in the service of an English king, were scarcely used save by Norsemen, and they must partly go to the credit of Vikings, as well as of Alfred the Great. Thus in 965 King Harold Grayskin of Norway "went and fought with the folk on the banks of the Dwina," and plundered them, and in 1026 Thorer Hund joined himself to a fleet sent by St. Olaf to the White Sea, pillaged the temple of the idol Jomala, and destroyed his countrymen by treachery on their way home. Where two expeditions are recorded they may well stand for twenty unknown and uneventful ones, and the same must be equally granted as to the gradual advance of knowledge through the unceasing attacks of the Norse kings and pirates on the lands to the south of the Baltic, where lived the Wends.

So, to satisfy their Saxon Lord, Wulfstan and Ohthere, through their journeys along the coasts of Norway and Lapland, Pomerania and Prussia, around the White Sea and the Gulf of Riga and southern Finland, provided a clearer understanding of northeast Europe, especially the Baltic Gulf, to Western geography. However, these Norse discoveries, although made for an English king, were mainly utilized by Norsemen and should partly be credited to the Vikings, as well as to Alfred the Great. For instance, in 965, King Harold Grayskin of Norway "went and fought with the folk on the banks of the Dwina," and plundered them, and in 1026, Thorer Hund joined a fleet sent by St. Olaf to the White Sea, raided the temple of the idol Jomala, and betrayed his fellow countrymen on their way home. Where two expeditions are noted, they could represent twenty unknown and uneventful ones, and this must also be acknowledged regarding the gradual increase of knowledge through the relentless attacks of the Norse kings and pirates on the lands south of the Baltic, where the Wends lived.

Thus on the west and east, north-west and north-east, the Northmen could and did make a definite advance into the unknown; even the south-west lines of Northern invasion and settlement,[Pg 73] though they hardly yield any general results to discovery, certainly led to a more thorough inclusion of every part of the British isles in the civilised West, through the Viking earldoms in Caithness, in the Orkneys and the Shetlands, in Man and the Hebrides, and on the coast of Ireland, where the Ostman colonies grew into kingdoms. From about 840, when the first of these settlements was fairly and permanently started, to the eleventh century, when a series of great defeats,—by Brian Boru at Clontarf in 1014, by Godwine and Harold in England from 1042 to 1066, and by the Norman and Scottish kings in the next generation,—practically destroyed the Norse dominion outside the Orkneys,—for those two hundred years, Danes and Northmen not only pillaged and colonised, but ruled and reorganised a good half of the British isles.

Thus, in the west, east, northwest, and northeast, the Northmen were able to make a clear advance into the unknown; even the southwest routes of Northern invasion and settlement,[Pg 73] although they hardly produced any overall discoveries, certainly contributed to a more comprehensive integration of every part of the British Isles into the civilized West, through the Viking earldoms in Caithness, the Orkneys, the Shetlands, Man, the Hebrides, and along the coast of Ireland, where the Ostman colonies developed into kingdoms. From around 840, when the first of these settlements was established permanently, to the eleventh century, when a series of major defeats—by Brian Boru at Clontarf in 1014, by Godwine and Harold in England from 1042 to 1066, and by the Norman and Scottish kings in the following generation—virtually eliminated Norse dominance outside the Orkneys. For those two hundred years, Danes and Northmen not only raided and settled but also governed and reorganized a significant portion of the British Isles.

By the time of Alfred the Viking principalities were scattered up and down the northern and western coasts of the greater of our two islands, and were fringing three sides of the lesser. About a.d. 900 the pioneer of the Norse kings, Harold Fair-hair, pursued his traitors, first to Shetlands and Orkneys, then to Caithness, the Hebrides, and Man. His son Eric, who followed him, ranged the Northern seas from Archangel to Bordeaux, and so Hakon the Good in 936 and other Norse princes in 946, 961, 965, above all, the two great Kings Olaf in 985-9 and 1009-14, fought and triumphed through most of the world as known to the Northmen. Thus, Frankland, England, Ireland, Scotland were brought into a closer unity through the common danger, while as[Pg 74] the sea-kings founded settled states, and these grew by alliance, first with one another and then with their older Christian victims, as the Norse kingdoms themselves became parts of Latin Christendom, after Latin Christendom had itself been revived and re-awakened by their attacks, the full value of the time of trial came out on both sides, to conquered and to conquerors.

By the time of Alfred, Viking principalities were spread out along the northern and western coasts of our larger island and bordered three sides of the smaller one. Around A.D. 900, the first of the Norse kings, Harold Fair-hair, chased his traitors to the Shetlands and Orkneys, then to Caithness, the Hebrides, and Man. His son Eric continued the pursuit, navigating the Northern seas from Archangel to Bordeaux. Similarly, Hakon the Good in 936 and other Norse princes in 946, 961, and 965, especially the two great Kings Olaf from 985-9 and 1009-14, fought and won battles across most of the known world of the Northmen. As a result, Frankland, England, Ireland, and Scotland became more unified due to this common threat, while the sea-kings established settled states that expanded through alliances, first with one another and later with their older Christian subjects. Eventually, the Norse kingdoms merged into Latin Christendom, which had been revived and reinvigorated by their invasions, leading to a shared understanding of the value of this challenging period for both the conquered and the conquerors.

For the effects—formative, invigorative, provocative,—of the Northern invasions had a most direct bearing on the expansion that was to come in the next age even for those staid and sober Western countries, England and France and Italy, which had long passed through their time of migration, and where the Vikings could not, as in the far north-east and north-west, extend the area of civilisation or geographical knowledge.

For the impacts—shaping, energizing, challenging—of the Northern invasions had a direct influence on the expansion that would follow in the next era, even for the stable and serious Western countries, England, France, and Italy, which had already moved past their migration period and where the Vikings couldn’t, as they did in the far northeast and northwest, broaden the reach of civilization or geographical knowledge.

Lastly, the new start made by England in exploration, and trade, and even in pilgrimage, is plainly the result—in action and reaction—of the Norse and Danish attacks, waking up the old spirit of a kindred race, of elder cousins that had sunk into lethargy and forgotten their seamanship.

Lastly, England's fresh initiatives in exploration, trade, and even pilgrimage are clearly the outcome—both in action and reaction—of the Norse and Danish invasions, reviving the old spirit of a related people, their older cousins who had fallen into apathy and forgotten their skills in navigating the seas.

But from the Peace of Wedmore (878) Alfred first of all began to build an English navy able to meet and chase and run down the Viking keels; then established a yearly pilgrimage and alms-giving at the Threshold of the Apostles in Rome; then sent out various captains in his service to explore as much of the world as was practicable for his new description of Europe. His crowning effort in religious extension was in 883, when Sigehelm[Pg 75] and Athelstan bore Alfred's gifts and letters to Jerusalem and to India, to the Christians of San Thomé; the corresponding triumph of the King's scientific exploration, the discoveries in the White Sea and the Baltic, seem to have happened nearer the end of the reign, somewhere before 895.

But after the Peace of Wedmore (878), Alfred started to build an English navy capable of confronting and pursuing the Viking ships. He also established an annual pilgrimage and charity at the Threshold of the Apostles in Rome. Additionally, he sent out various captains under his command to explore as much of the world as possible for his new mapping of Europe. His greatest achievement in expanding religion happened in 883, when Sigehelm[Pg 75] and Athelstan delivered Alfred's gifts and letters to Jerusalem and to the Christians of San Thomé in India. The corresponding triumph of the King's scientific exploration, with discoveries in the White Sea and the Baltic, occurred closer to the end of his reign, around 895.

decorative illustration

decorative illustration


decorative illustration

decorative illustration

CHAPTER III.

THE CRUSADES AND LAND TRAVEL.

CIRCA 1100-1300.

The pilgrims were the pioneers of the growth of Europe and of Christendom until Charlemagne, in one sense, in another and a broader sense until the Crusades.

TThe pilgrims were the trailblazers of Europe's expansion and of Christianity, at least until Charlemagne, and in a wider sense, until the Crusades.

Their original work, as far as it can be called original at all, was entirely overshadowed by the Vikings, who made real discoveries of the first importance in hunting for new worlds to conquer; but when first the Viking rovers themselves, and then the Northmen, settled in the colonies and the old home, took up Christianity as the Arabs had taken up Islam, the pilgrim spirit was translated, as it were, into new and more powerful forms. Through the conversion of Hungary and of Scandinavia,[22]—Europe, Christian Europe, was compacted together in a stronger Empire than that of Constantine or of Charlemagne—a spiritual federation, not a political unity—one and undivided not in visible[Pg 77] subordination, but in a common zeal for a common faith. This was the state of the Latin world, and in a measure of the Greek and Russian world as well, by the middle of the eleventh century, when the Byzantine Emperors had broken the strength of the Eastern Caliphate, and recovered most of the realm of Heraclius; when the Roman Papacy under Leo IX., Hildebrand, and Urban began its political stage, aiming, and in great part successfully aiming, at an Imperial Federation of Europe under religion; when on every side, in Spain, in France, in England, in Germany, and in Italy, the nations that had been slowly built into that Domus Dei were filled with fresh life and purpose from the Norsemen, who, as pirates, or conquerors, or brothers, had settled among them. The long crusade that had gone on for four hundred years in Spain and in southern Italy and in the Levant, which had raged round the islands of the Mediterranean, or the passes of the Alps and Pyrenees, or the banks of the Loire and the Tiber,—was now, on the eve of the first Syrian Crusade of 1096, rapidly tending to decisive victory. Toledo was won back in 1084; the Norman dominion in the Two Sicilies had already taken the place of a weak and halting Christian defence against Arab emirs; pilgrims were going in thousands where there had been tens or units by the reopened land route through Hungary; only in the far East the first appearance of the Turks as Moslem champions,[23] threatened an ebb of the tide. Christendom had seen[Pg 78] a wonderful expansion of the Heathen North; now that it had won the Northmen to itself, it was ready to imitate their example. The deliberate purpose of the Popes only gave direction to the universal feeling of restless and abundant energy longing for wider action. But it was not the crusading movement itself which brought so much new light, so much new knowledge of the world, to Europe, as the results of that impulse in trade, in travel, and in colonisation.

Their original work, if you can even call it original, was completely overshadowed by the Vikings, who made significant discoveries while searching for new worlds to conquer. However, when the Viking explorers and later the Northmen settled in new colonies and their homelands, adopting Christianity just as the Arabs took up Islam, the spirit of pilgrimage transformed into new and more powerful forms. Through the conversion of Hungary and Scandinavia,[22]—Europe, Christian Europe, came together in a stronger Empire than that of Constantine or Charlemagne—a spiritual federation rather than a political unity—unified not in visible hierarchies, but in a shared passion for a common faith. This was the situation in the Latin world, and to some extent in the Greek and Russian worlds as well, by the middle of the eleventh century. At that time, the Byzantine Emperors had weakened the Eastern Caliphate and reclaimed most of the territory of Heraclius; the Roman Papacy under Leo IX., Hildebrand, and Urban had begun its political agenda, largely aiming at an Imperial Federation of Europe based on religion; and all around, in Spain, France, England, Germany, and Italy, the nations that had slowly formed into that Domus Dei were injected with new life and purpose from the Norsemen, who, as pirates, conquerors, or settlers, became part of their communities. The long crusade that had unfolded for four hundred years in Spain, southern Italy, and the Levant, which had swirled around the Mediterranean islands, the Alpine and Pyrenean passes, and the banks of the Loire and the Tiber—was now, on the brink of the first Syrian Crusade in 1096, rapidly heading towards a decisive victory. Toledo was reclaimed in 1084; the Norman control in the Two Sicilies had replaced a weak and faltering Christian defense against Arab leaders; pilgrims were now traveling in thousands where previously there had only been a handful before the reopened land route through Hungary; only in the far East did the initial emergence of the Turks as Muslim champions,[23] threaten to reverse the progress. Christendom had witnessed a remarkable expansion from the Heathen North; now that it had embraced the Northmen, it was ready to follow their example. The intentional efforts of the Popes merely provided direction to the widespread feeling of restless and abundant energy seeking broader actions. However, it was not the crusading movement itself that brought so much new insight and knowledge of the world to Europe, but rather the results of that urge in trade, travel, and colonization.

THE TURIN MAP OF THE ELEVENTH CENTURY.

THE TURIN MAP OF THE ELEVENTH CENTURY.

THE TURIN MAP OF THE ELEVENTH CENTURY.
(see list of maps)

THE TURIN MAP OF THE ELEVENTH CENTURY.
(see list of maps)

(1) From the eleventh century, from the beginning of this period, all the greater pilgrims, Sæwulf the English-merchant, King Sigurd of Norway, Abbot Daniel of Kiev, and their followers, have something more in view than piety; they have a general interest in travel; some of them a special interest in trade; most of them go to fight as well as to pray.

(1) Since the eleventh century, at the start of this period, all the major pilgrims, like Sæwulf the English merchant, King Sigurd of Norway, Abbot Daniel of Kiev, and their followers, had more on their minds than just piety; they were generally interested in travel. Some had a particular interest in trade; most went to fight as much as to pray.

(2) But as the warlike spirit of the Church Militant seems to grow tired, and its efforts at founding new kingdoms—in Antioch, in Jerusalem, in Cyprus, in Byzantium—more and more fruitless, the direct expansion of European knowledge, begins in scientific travel. Vinland and Greenland and the White Sea and the other Norse discoveries were discoveries made by a great race for itself; unconnected as they were with the main lines of trade or with religious sentiment, they were unrealised by the general consciousness of the West. A full account of the Norse voyages to America was lying at the Vatican when Columbus was searching for proofs of land within reach,—of India, as he expected, in the place where he found an unknown continent and a new world. But no one knew of these; even the Greenland col[Pg 79]ony had been lost and forgotten in the fifteenth century; in 1553 the English sailors reached the land of Archangel without a suspicion that Ohthere or Thorer Hund had been there six hundred years before; Russia from the thirteenth to the sixteenth centuries was almost out of sight and mind under the Tartar and Moslem rule; but the missionaries and merchants and travellers who followed the crusading armies to the Euphrates, and crept along the caravan routes to Ceylon and the China Sea, added Further and Central Asia—"Thesauri Arabum et divitis Indiæ"—to the knowledge of Christendom.

(2) But as the combative spirit of the Church Militant seems to be fading, and its attempts to establish new kingdoms—in Antioch, Jerusalem, Cyprus, and Byzantium—become increasingly futile, the direct expansion of European knowledge begins through scientific exploration. Vinland, Greenland, the White Sea, and other Norse discoveries were made by a remarkable people for themselves; since they weren’t tied to the main trade routes or religious beliefs, they went unnoticed by the general awareness of the West. A detailed record of the Norse voyages to America was stored at the Vatican while Columbus was searching for evidence of land nearby—India, as he presumed, in the area where he encountered an unknown continent and a new world. But no one was aware of these; even the Greenland colony had been lost and forgotten by the fifteenth century. In 1553, English sailors reached the land of Archangel without realizing that Ohthere or Thorer Hund had been there six hundred years earlier; from the thirteenth to the sixteenth centuries, Russia was largely out of sight and mind under Tartar and Muslim rule. However, the missionaries, merchants, and travelers who followed the crusading armies to the Euphrates and traveled along the caravan routes to Ceylon and the China Sea contributed to the knowledge of Christendom about Further and Central Asia—“Thesauri Arabum et divitis Indiæ.”

And as this knowledge was bound up with gain; as the Polos and their companions had really opened to the knowledge of the West those great prizes of material wealth which even the Rome of Trajan had never fully grasped, and which had been shared between Arabs and natives without a rival for so long; it was not likely to be easily forgotten. From that time, at the end of the thirteenth century, to the success of the Portuguese on another road, at the end of the fifteenth, European interest was fairly engaged in pressing in upon the old land-routes and getting an ever larger share of their profits.

And since this knowledge was tied to profit; since the Polos and their companions had truly introduced the West to the great treasures of material wealth that even Rome during Trajan's time had never fully realized, and which had long been divided between Arabs and locals without any competition; it was unlikely to be easily overlooked. From that point, at the end of the thirteenth century, until the Portuguese found success along another route at the end of the fifteenth century, European interest was genuinely focused on pushing into the old trade routes and securing an even larger share of their profits.

(3) There was another side of the same problem, a still brighter hope for men who could dare to try it. By finding a sea-path to the Indian store-house, mariners like the Venetians and Genoese, or their Spanish pupils, might cut into the treasuries of the world at their very source, found a trade-empire for their country, and gain the sole command of heaven on earth, of the true terrestrial paradise.[Pg 80]

(3) There was another aspect of the same issue, a brighter hope for those willing to take the risk. By discovering a sea route to the Indian treasure trove, sailors like the Venetians and Genoese, or their Spanish students, could tap into the world’s riches right at their source, establish a trade empire for their nation, and gain complete control over the bounty of the earth, the true earthly paradise.[Pg 80]

Then masters of the wealth of the East and of the fighting power of the West, the Christian nations might crush their old enemy, Islam, between two weights, hammer and anvil; might fairly strike for the rule of the entire habitable globe.

Then, with the riches of the East and the military strength of the West, the Christian nations could defeat their old enemy, Islam, between two forces, like a hammer and anvil; they could rightfully strive for control over the entire inhabited world.

It was with thoughts of this kind, vaguely inspired by the Crusades and their legacy of discovery from Bagdad to Cathay, that the Vivaldi left Genoa to find an ocean way round Africa in 1281-91, "with the hope of going to the parts of the Indies"; that Malocello reached the Canary Islands about 1270; and that volunteers went on the same quest nearly twenty times in the next four generations before their spasmodic efforts were organised and pressed on to achievement by Henry and his Portuguese (1412-1497).

It was with these kinds of thoughts, vaguely inspired by the Crusades and their legacy of exploration from Baghdad to China, that the Vivaldi left Genoa to find a sea route around Africa between 1281 and 1291, "hoping to reach the regions of the Indies"; that Malocello arrived at the Canary Islands around 1270; and that volunteers embarked on the same quest nearly twenty times over the next four generations before their sporadic efforts were organized and pushed to success by Henry and his Portuguese crew (1412-1497).

(4) Lastly, the renaissance of Europe in the crusading age was not only practical but spiritual. Science was at last touched and changed by the new life scarcely less than the art of war, or the social state of the towns, or the trade of the commercial republics. And geography and its kindred were not long in feeling some change, though it was very slowly realised and made useful. The first notice of the magnet in the West is of about 1180; the use of this by sailors is perhaps rightly dated from the thirteenth century and the discoveries of Amalphi.

(4) Finally, the revival of Europe during the crusading era was not just practical but also spiritual. Science was finally influenced and transformed by this new energy, much like the art of war, the social structure of towns, and the trade of the commercial republics. Geography and related fields soon began to experience some changes, although it took a while for these to be recognized and utilized effectively. The first mention of the magnet in the West dates back to around 1180; its use by sailors is likely accurately credited to the thirteenth century and the discoveries made in Amalfi.

But to return. We must trace more definitely the preparation which has been generally described for the work of Prince Henry first in the pilgrim-warriors, and the travellers of the New Age, merchants or preachers or sight-seers, who follow out the East[Pg 81]ern land-routes; next in the seamen who begin to break the spell of the Western Ocean and to open up the high seas, the true high-roads of the world; lastly in the students who most of all, in their maps and globes and instruments and theories, are the trainers and masters and spiritual ancestors of the Hero of Discovery.

But to go back. We need to take a closer look at the groundwork that has been broadly outlined for the work of Prince Henry, starting with the pilgrim-warriors and the explorers of the New Age—whether they are merchants, preachers, or tourists—who are charting the Eastern land routes; then the sailors who begin to break the mystery of the Western Ocean and open up the high seas, which are the true highways of the world; and finally the students who, more than anyone else, with their maps, globes, instruments, and theories, act as the trainers, masters, and spiritual forebears of the Hero of Discovery.[Pg 81]

The first of these classes supplied the matter, the attractions and rewards of the exploring movement; the others may be said to provide the form by which success was reached, genius in seamanship.

The first of these classes provided the substance, the appeal and benefits of the exploration movement; the others can be seen as offering the structure through which success was achieved, talent in navigation.

And the one was as much needed as the other.

And one was just as necessary as the other.

Human reason did its work so well because of a reasonable hope; men crept round Africa in face of the Atlantic storms because of the golden East beyond.

Human reason worked effectively because of a realistic hope; people navigated around Africa despite the Atlantic storms because of the promise of the wealth in the East beyond.

It was as we have seen the land travellers of the twelfth and thirteenth and fourteenth centuries who laid open that golden East to Europe, and added inspiring knowledge to a dream and a tradition. And of these land travellers the first worth notice are Sæwulf of Worcester, Adelard of Bath, and Daniel of Kiev, three of that host of peaceful pilgrims who followed the conquerors of the First Crusade (1096-9). All of these left their recollections and all of them are of the new time, in sharp contrast with the hordes of earlier pilgrims, even the most recent, like Bishop Ealdred of Worcester and York, who crowned William the Conqueror, or Sweyn Godwineson or Thorer Hund, whose visits are all mere visits of penitence. Every fresh conversion of the Northern nations brought a fresh stream of devotees to Italy and to[Pg 82] Syria, a fresh revival of the fourth century habit of pilgrimage; but when mediæval Christendom had been formed, and religious passion was more steady and less unworldly, the discoverer and observer blends with the pilgrim in all the records left to us.

It was the land travelers of the twelfth, thirteenth, and fourteenth centuries who revealed the golden East to Europe and contributed valuable knowledge to a dream and a tradition. Among these land travelers, the first worth mentioning are Sæwulf of Worcester, Adelard of Bath, and Daniel of Kiev, three of the peaceful pilgrims who followed the conquerors of the First Crusade (1096-9). They all left behind their memories, and they represent a new era, in sharp contrast with earlier groups of pilgrims, even those more recent ones like Bishop Ealdred of Worcester and York, who crowned William the Conqueror, or Sweyn Godwineson or Thorer Hund, whose visits were simply acts of penance. Every new conversion of the Northern nations brought a fresh wave of devotees to Italy and to[Pg 82] Syria, reviving the pilgrimage habits of the fourth century; but once medieval Christendom had developed, and religious fervor became more stable and less otherworldly, the roles of the discoverer and observer blended with that of the pilgrim in all the records we have left.

Sæwulf was a layman and a trader, who went on a pilgrimage (1102), and became a monk at the instance of his confessor, Wulfstan, Bishop of Worcester. But though his narrative has been called an immense advance on all earlier guide-books, it ends with the Holy Land and does not touch even the outlying pilgrim sites, in Mesopotamia or Egypt, visited and described by Silvia or Fidelis.

Sæwulf was a layperson and a trader who went on a pilgrimage in 1102 and became a monk at the urging of his confessor, Wulfstan, Bishop of Worcester. Although his account has been considered a significant improvement over earlier guidebooks, it concludes with the Holy Land and doesn't even mention the more distant pilgrimage sites in Mesopotamia or Egypt, which were visited and described by Silvia or Fidelis.

Starting some three years after the Latin capture of Jerusalem in 1099, the English traveller takes us up six different routes from Italy to Syria, evidence of the vast development of Mediterranean intercourse and of practical security against pirates, gained very largely since the second millennium began.

Starting about three years after the Latin capture of Jerusalem in 1099, the English traveler guides us through six different routes from Italy to Syria, showing the significant growth of Mediterranean trade and the practical safety from pirates that has greatly improved since the beginning of the second millennium.

His own way, by Monopoli, Corfu, Corinth, and Athens, took him to Rhodes "which once had the Idol called Colossus, one of the Seven Wonders of the World, but destroyed by the Persians, with nearly all the land of Roumania, on their way to Spain. These were the Colossians to whom St. Paul wrote."

His journey took him to Rhodes via Monopoli, Corfu, Corinth, and Athens, "where the Colossus once stood, one of the Seven Wonders of the World, destroyed by the Persians along with much of Roumania as they made their way to Spain. These were the Colossians that St. Paul wrote to."

Thence to Myra in Lycia, "the port of the Adriatic as Constantinople is of the Ægean."

Thence to Myra in Lycia, "the port of the Adriatic like Constantinople is of the Aegean."

Landing at Jaffa, after a sail of thirteen weeks, Sæwulf was soon among the wonders of Jerusalem, that had not grown less since Arculf's day. At the head of the Sepulchre Church was the famous[Pg 83] Navel of the Earth, "now called Compas, which Christ measured with his own hands, working salvation in the midst, as say the Psalms." For the same legends were backed by the same texts as in the sixth or seventh century.

Landing at Jaffa after a thirteen-week voyage, Sæwulf quickly found himself among the wonders of Jerusalem, which had not diminished since Arculf's time. At the entrance of the Church of the Holy Sepulchre was the famous[Pg 83] Navel of the Earth, "now called Compas, which Christ measured with his own hands, bringing salvation in the midst, as the Psalms say." The same legends were supported by the same texts as in the sixth or seventh century.

Going down to the Jordan, "four leagues east of Jericho," Arabia was seen beyond "hateful to all who worship God, but having the Mount whence Elias was carried into Heaven in a chariot of fire."

Going down to the Jordan, "four leagues east of Jericho," Arabia could be seen beyond, "hateful to all who worship God, but having the Mount from where Elias was taken into Heaven in a chariot of fire."

Eighteen days journey from the Jordan is Mount Sinai, by way of Hebron, where "Abraham's Holm Oak" was still standing, and where, as pilgrims said, he "sat and ate with God," but Sæwulf himself did not go outside Palestine, on this side. After travelling through Galilee and noting the House of Saint Archi-Triclin (Saint "Ruler-of-the-Feast"), at Cana, he made his way to Byzantium by sea, escaping the Saracen cruisers and weathering the storms that wrecked in the roads of Jaffa before his eyes some twenty of the pilgrim and merchant fleet then lying at anchor. But not only can we see from this how the religious and commercial traffic of the Mediterranean had been increased by the Crusades; the main lines of that traffic had been changed. Since the Moslem conquest, visitors had mostly come to Palestine through Egypt; the Christian conquest of Syria re-opened the direct sea route as the conversion of Hungary and north-east Europe had re-opened the direct land route one hundred years before (c. 1000-1100). The lines of the Danube valley and of the "Roman Sea" were both cleared, and the West again poured itself into the East as it had not done[Pg 84] since Alexander's conquest, since the Oriental reaction had set in about the time of the Christian era, rising higher and higher into the full tide of the Persian and Arabian revivals of Asiatic Empire.

Eighteen days' journey from the Jordan is Mount Sinai, passing through Hebron, where "Abraham's Holm Oak" was still standing, and where, as pilgrims said, he "sat and ate with God." However, Sæwulf himself did not venture outside Palestine on this side. After traveling through Galilee and noting the House of Saint Archi-Triclin (Saint "Ruler-of-the-Feast") at Cana, he made his way to Byzantium by sea, avoiding the Saracen cruisers and braving the storms that wrecked about twenty of the pilgrim and merchant ships anchored in the harbor of Jaffa before his eyes. This not only shows how much the religious and commercial traffic in the Mediterranean increased due to the Crusades but also how the main routes of that traffic had changed. Since the Muslim conquest, most visitors had come to Palestine through Egypt; the Christian conquest of Syria reopened the direct sea route, just as the conversion of Hungary and northeast Europe had reopened the direct land route about a hundred years earlier (c. 1000-1100). The routes through the Danube valley and the "Roman Sea" were both cleared, and the West once again flowed into the East as it hadn't since Alexander's conquest, before the Oriental reaction began around the time of the Christian era, rising ever higher into the full tide of the Persian and Arabian revivals of the Asiatic Empire.

Among the varied classes of pilgrim-crusaders in Sæwulf's day were student-devotees like Adelard and Daniel from the two extremes of Christendom, England and Russia, Bath and Kiev; northern sea-kings like Sigurd, or Robert of Normandy; even Jewish travellers, rabbis, or merchants like Benjamin of Tudela. All these, as following in the wake of the First Crusade, and for the most part stopping at the high-water mark of its advance, belong to the same group and time and impulse as Sæwulf himself, and are clearly marked off from the great thirteenth century travellers, who acted as pioneers of the Western Faith and Empire rather than as camp-followers of its armies.

Among the various types of pilgrim-crusaders in Sæwulf's time were student-devotees like Adelard and Daniel from opposite ends of Christendom, England and Russia, Bath and Kiev; northern sea-kings like Sigurd and Robert of Normandy; and even Jewish travelers, rabbis, or merchants like Benjamin of Tudela. All of these individuals, who followed in the wake of the First Crusade and mostly stopped at its furthest advance, belong to the same group, era, and motivation as Sæwulf himself, and they are clearly distinguished from the great thirteenth-century travelers, who acted as pioneers of the Western Faith and Empire instead of just being followers of its armies.

But except Abbot Daniel (c. 1106) and Rabbi Benjamin (c. 1160-73) who stand apart, none of our other pilgrim examples of twelfth century exploration have anything original or remarkable about them.

But aside from Abbot Daniel (c. 1106) and Rabbi Benjamin (c. 1160-73), who are unique, none of our other examples of twelfth-century pilgrims have anything original or noteworthy about them.

Adelard or Athelard, the countryman of Sæwulf and Willibald, is still more the herald of Roger Bacon and of Neckam. He is a theorist far more than a traveller, and his journey through Egypt and Arabia (c. 1110-14) appears mainly as one of scientific interest. "He sought the causes of all things and the mysteries of Nature," and it was with "a rich spoil of letters," especially of Greek and Arab manuscripts, that he returned to England to translate into Latin one of the chief works of Saracen astronomy, the[Pg 85] Kharizmian tables. We have already met with him in trying to follow the transmission of Greek and Indian geography or world-science through the Arabs to Europe and to Christendom.

Adelard or Athelard, a contemporary of Sæwulf and Willibald, is much more of a forerunner for Roger Bacon and Neckam. He is more of a theorist than a traveler, and his journey through Egypt and Arabia (c. 1110-14) mainly holds scientific significance. "He sought the causes of everything and the mysteries of Nature," and he returned to England with "a rich collection of letters," particularly Greek and Arab manuscripts, to translate into Latin one of the key works of Saracen astronomy, the[Pg 85] Kharizmian tables. We've already encountered him while tracing the flow of Greek and Indian geography or world science through the Arabs to Europe and Christendom.

THE SPANISH-ARABIC MAP OF 1109.

THE SPANISH-ARABIC MAP OF 1109.

THE SPANISH-ARABIC MAP OF 1109.
(see list of maps)

THE SPANISH-ARABIC MAP OF 1109.
(see list of maps)

Abbot Daniel of Kiev in himself is a very ordinary and rather mendacious traveller, a harmless, devout pilgrim, as careless in all matters of fact as Antonine the Martyr. But, as representing the beginnings of Russian expansion, he is of almost unique interest and value. His tract upon the Holy Road is one of the first proofs of his people's interest in the world beyond their steppes, and of that nation's readiness and purpose to expand Christian civilisation in the East as the Franks, after breaking through the Western Moslems, were now doing. Mediæval Russia, Russia before the Tartars, after the Northmen, was now a very different thing from the "people fouler than dogs" of the Arab explorers. The House of Ruric had guided and organised a nation second to none in Europe, till it had fallen into the general lines of Christian development. Jury trial and justices in assize it had taken from the West; its church and faith and architecture, its manners and morals came to it from the court of the Roman Empire on the Bosphorus. Daniel and the other Russians, who passed through that Empire in the age of Nestor for trade or for religion, were the vanguard of a great national and race expansion that is now just beginning to "bestride the world."

Abbot Daniel of Kiev is a pretty ordinary and somewhat dishonest traveler, a harmless, devout pilgrim who is as careless about facts as Antonine the Martyr. However, in terms of representing the beginnings of Russian expansion, he holds almost unique interest and value. His work on the Holy Road is one of the first signs of his people’s interest in the world beyond their steppes and shows that the nation was ready and eager to spread Christian civilization in the East, similar to what the Franks were doing after breaking through the Western Muslims. Medieval Russia, before the Tartars and after the Northmen, was very different from the "people fouler than dogs" described by Arab explorers. The House of Rurik had led and organized a nation that was second to none in Europe until it aligned itself with the broader lines of Christian development. It had adopted jury trials and justices in assize from the West, and its church, faith, architecture, manners, and morals came from the court of the Roman Empire on the Bosphorus. Daniel and other Russians who traveled through that Empire during Nestor’s time for trade or religion were the vanguard of a significant national and racial expansion that is just beginning to "bestride the world."

In 1022 and 1062 two monks of Kiev are recorded, out of a crowd of the unknown, as visitors to Syria, and about 1106, probably through the news of the[Pg 86] Frankish conquest, Daniel left his native river, the Snow, in Little Russia, and passed through Byzantium and by way of the Archipelago and Cyprus to Jaffa and Jerusalem, describing roughly in versts or half-miles the whole distance and that of every stage.

In 1022 and 1062, two monks from Kiev are mentioned among many unknown individuals as having visited Syria. Around 1106, likely due to the news of the[Pg 86] Frankish conquest, Daniel left his home by the Snow River in Little Russia. He traveled through Byzantium and then via the Archipelago and Cyprus to Jaffa and Jerusalem, roughly detailing the entire distance and each stage in versts or half-miles.

His tone is much like Sæwulf's and his mistakes are quite as bad, though he tells of "nothing but what was seen with these self-same eyes." The "Sea of Sodom exhales a burning and fetid breath that lays waste all the country, as with burning sulphur, for the torments of Hell lie under it." This, however, he did not see; Saracen brigands prevented him, and he learnt that "the very smell of the place would make one ill."

His tone is very similar to Sæwulf's, and his mistakes are just as bad, even though he claims to talk about "only what was seen by these very eyes." The "Sea of Sodom gives off a burning and rotten smell that devastates the entire region, as if it were burning sulfur, because the torments of Hell lie beneath it." However, he didn't see this; Saracen bandits stopped him, and he learned that "just the smell of the place would make someone sick."

His measurements of distance are all his own. Capernaum is "in the desert, not far from the Great Sea (Levant) and eight versts (four miles) from Cæsarea," half the distance given in the next chapter as between Acre and Haifa, and less than half the breadth of the Sea of Tiberias. The Jordan reminds Daniel of his own river, the Snow, especially in its sheets of stagnant water.

His measurements of distance are all his own. Capernaum is "in the desert, not far from the Great Sea (Levant) and eight versts (four miles) from Caesarea," which is half the distance mentioned in the next chapter between Acre and Haifa, and less than half the width of the Sea of Tiberias. The Jordan reminds Daniel of his own river, the Snow, especially because of its patches of stagnant water.

Samaria, or "Sebastopol," he confuses with Nablous; Bethshan with Bashan; Lydda with Ramleh; Cæsarea Philippi with the greater Cæsarea on the coast. Not far from Capernaum and the Jordan is "another large river that comes out of the Lake of Gennesaret, and falls into the Sea of Tiberias, passing by a large town called Decapolis." From Mt. Lebanon "six rivers flow east into the Lake of Gennesaret and six west towards great Antioch, so that this is called[Pg 87] Mesopotamia, or the land between the rivers, and Abraham's Haran is between these rivers that feed the Lake of Gennesaret."

Samaria, or "Sebastopol," he mixes up with Nablous; Bethshan with Bashan; Lydda with Ramleh; Cæsarea Philippi with the larger Cæsarea on the coast. Not far from Capernaum and the Jordan is "another big river that comes from the Lake of Gennesaret and flows into the Sea of Tiberias, passing by a large town called Decapolis." From Mt. Lebanon "six rivers flow east into the Lake of Gennesaret and six west toward great Antioch, making this area called [Pg 87] Mesopotamia, or the land between the rivers, and Abraham's Haran is between these rivers that supply the Lake of Gennesaret."

Daniel has left us also an account of his visits to Mar Saba Convent in the Kedron gorge near the Dead Sea, to Damascus in the train of Prince Baldwin, and to the Church of the Holy Sepulchre in Jerusalem, to witness the miracle of the Holy Fire, noticed by Bernard the Wise, as a sort of counterpart to the wonder of Beth-Horon, also retold by Daniel "when the sun stood still while Joshua conquered King Og of Bashan."

Daniel has also shared his experiences visiting Mar Saba Convent in the Kedron gorge near the Dead Sea, traveling to Damascus with Prince Baldwin, and going to the Church of the Holy Sepulchre in Jerusalem to witness the miracle of the Holy Fire, which Bernard the Wise noted as a kind of parallel to the miracle of Beth-Horon, also recounted by Daniel "when the sun stood still while Joshua defeated King Og of Bashan."

It is not in outlook nor in knowledge nor even in the actual ground traversed that these later pilgrims shew any advance on the chief of the earlier travellers; it is in the new life and movement, in the new hope they give us of greater things than these. This is the interest—to us—in King Sigurd of Norway (1107-11), a Crusader-Norseman in the new age that owed so much of its very life to the Northmen, but who is only to be noticed here as a possible type of the explorer-chief—possible, not actual—for his voyage added nothing definite to the knowledge or expansion of Christendom. His campaign in Jacob's Land or Gallicia, and his attack on Moslem Lisbon, some forty years before it became the head and heart of Portugal, like his exploits in the Balearics, shew us a point in the steady decline of western Islam, and so far may be called a preparation for Prince Henry's work, but properly as a chapter of Portuguese, not of general European, growth.[Pg 88]

It’s not in their perspective, knowledge, or even in the actual land they covered that these later explorers show any progress compared to the earlier travelers; it’s in the new life and movement, in the fresh hope they offer us for greater things. This is what makes King Sigurd of Norway (1107-11) interesting to us—a Crusader and Norseman from a new era that owes much of its very existence to the Northmen. However, he is only worth noting here as a potential example of an explorer leader—potential, not actual—since his journey didn’t contribute anything significant to the understanding or expansion of Christendom. His campaign in Jacob's Land or Galicia, along with his attack on Muslim Lisbon, about forty years before it became the center of Portugal, as well as his actions in the Balearics, highlight a moment in the steady decline of western Islam and may be regarded as a precursor to Prince Henry's efforts. However, these actions should be understood as part of Portuguese history rather than general European progress.[Pg 88]

There were many others like Sigurd,—Robert of Normandy, Godric the English pirate, who fought his way through the Saracen fleets with a spear-shaft for his banner, Edgar the Ætheling, grandson of Edmund Ironside, the Dartmouth fleet of 1147 which retook Lisbon,—but the Latin conquest of Syria has now brought us past the Crusades, in the narrower sense, to their results, in the exploration of the Further East.

There were many others like Sigurd—Robert of Normandy, Godric the English pirate, who battled through the Saracen fleets with a spear as his banner, Edgar the Ætheling, grandson of Edmund Ironside, and the Dartmouth fleet of 1147 that retook Lisbon—but the Latin conquest of Syria has now moved us beyond the Crusades, in a more specific sense, to their outcomes, in the exploration of the Far East.

The first great name of this time, of our next main chapter of Preparation, is Benjamin of Tudela, but standing as he does well within the earlier age, when the primary interest was the Holy War itself, he is also the last of the Palestine travellers—of those Westerns whose real horizon was the sacred East of Syria. He is a little before the awakening of universal interest in the unknown world, for the Christian Northmen lost with the new definiteness of the new faith much of their old infinite unrest and fierce inquisitive love of wandering, and their spirit, though related to the whole Catholic West by the crusading movement, was not fully realised till the world had been explored and made known, till the men of Europe were at home in every country and on every sea.

The first big name from this era, as we move into our next chapter on Preparation, is Benjamin of Tudela. While he fits into the earlier period, when the main focus was the Holy War, he is also the last of the travelers to Palestine—those Westerners whose true perspective was the sacred East of Syria. He comes just before the rise of a worldwide interest in the unknown, as the Christian Northmen, with the newfound clarity of their faith, lost much of their old restlessness and passionate curiosity for exploration. Their spirit, although connected to the wider Catholic West through the crusading movement, didn't fully emerge until the world had been explored and revealed, until Europeans felt at home in every country and on every sea.

Benjamin, as a Jew and a rabbi, has the interest of a sectary, and his work was not of a kind that would readily win the attention of the Christian world. So the value of his travels was hidden till religious divisions had ceased to govern the direction of progress. He visited the Jewish communities from Navarre to Bagdad, and described those[Pg 89] beyond from Bagdad to China, but he wrote for his own people and none but they seem to have cared about him. What he discovered (c. 1160-73) was for himself and for Judaism, and only his actual place in the twelfth century makes him a fore-runner of the Polos or of Prince Henry. We may see this from his hopeless strangeness and confusion in Rome, like a Frank in Pekin or Delhi. "The Church of St. Peter is on the site of the great palace of Julius Cæsar, near which are eighty Halls of the eighty Kings called Emperors from Tarquin to Pepin the father of Charles, who first took Spain from the Saracens.... In the outskirts of the city is the palace of Titus, who was deposed by three hundred senators for wasting three years over the siege of Jerusalem which he should have finished in two."

Benjamin, as a Jew and a rabbi, had the perspective of a sectarian, and his work wasn't the type that would easily attract the interest of the Christian world. So, the importance of his travels was overlooked until religious divides no longer influenced the course of progress. He visited Jewish communities from Navarre to Baghdad and described those beyond Baghdad to China, but he wrote for his own people, and only they seemed to appreciate him. What he uncovered (c. 1160-73) was meant for himself and for Judaism, and only his actual position in the twelfth century makes him a forerunner of the Polos or Prince Henry. This is evident from his bewildering strangeness and confusion in Rome, much like a Frank in Beijing or Delhi. "The Church of St. Peter is on the site of the great palace of Julius Caesar, near which are eighty Halls of the eighty Kings called Emperors from Tarquin to Pepin, the father of Charles, who first took Spain from the Saracens.... On the outskirts of the city is the palace of Titus, who was deposed by three hundred senators for spending three years on the siege of Jerusalem, which he should have completed in two."

And so on—with the "Hall of Galba, three miles round and having a window for each day in the year," with St. John Lateran and its Hebrew trophies, "two copper pillars from the temple of Solomon, that sweat at the anniversary of the burning of the Temple," and the "statues of Samson and of Absalom" in the same place. So with Sorrento, "built by Hadarezer when he fled before King David," with the old Roman tunnel between Naples and Pozzuoli, "built by Romulus who feared David and Joab," with Apulia, "which is from King Pul of Assyria"—in all this we have as it were Catholic mythology turned inside out, David put into Italy when the West put Trajan at the sources of the Nile. It was not likely that writing of this sort would be read in[Pg 90] the society of the Popes and the Schoolmen, the friars and the crusaders, any more than the Buddhist records of missionary travel from China one thousand years before. The religious passion which had set the crusaders in motion, would keep Catholics as long as it might from the Jews, Turks, infidels, and heretics they conquered and among whom they settled.

And so on—with the "Hall of Galba, three miles around and with a window for each day of the year," with St. John Lateran and its Hebrew trophies, "two copper pillars from Solomon's temple, that sweat on the anniversary of the Temple's destruction," and the "statues of Samson and Absalom" in the same place. Likewise with Sorrento, "built by Hadarezer when he fled from King David," with the old Roman tunnel between Naples and Pozzuoli, "built by Romulus who feared David and Joab," with Apulia, "which is named after King Pul of Assyria"—in all this we have, so to speak, Catholic mythology flipped upside down, with David placed in Italy just as the West placed Trajan at the sources of the Nile. It was unlikely that writing of this kind would be read in[Pg 90] the society of the Popes and the Schoolmen, the friars and the crusaders, any more than the Buddhist records of missionary journeys from China a thousand years before. The religious fervor that inspired the crusaders would keep Catholics separated for as long as possible from the Jews, Turks, infidels, and heretics they conquered and among whom they settled.

But with the final loss of Jerusalem by the Latins, and the overthrow of the Bagdad Caliphate by the Mongol Tartars (1258), the barrier of fanatic hatred was weakened, and Central Asia became an attraction to Christendom instead of a dim horror, without form and void, except for Huns and Turks and demons. The Papal court sent mission after mission to convert the Tartars, who were wavering, as men supposed, between Islam and the Church, and with the first missionaries to the House of Ghenghiz went the first Italian merchants who opened the court of the Great Khan to Venice and to Genoa.

But with the final loss of Jerusalem by the Latins and the fall of the Baghdad Caliphate by the Mongol Tartars in 1258, the barrier of intense hatred weakened, and Central Asia became appealing to Christendom instead of a vague nightmare filled only with Huns, Turks, and demons. The Papal court sent mission after mission to convert the Tartars, who were thought to be wavering between Islam and the Church. With the first missionaries to the House of Genghis came the first Italian merchants who opened the court of the Great Khan to Venice and Genoa.

As early as 1243 an Englishman is noticed as living among the Western Horde, the conquerors of Russia; but official intercourse begins in 1246 with John de Plano Carpini. This man, a Franciscan of Naples, started in 1245 as the Legate of Pope Innocent IV. to the Tartars, took the northern overland route through Germany and Poland, reached Kiev, "the metropolis of Russia," through help of the Duke of Cracow, and at last appeared in the camp of Batou, on the Volga. Hence by the Sea of Aral, "of moderate size with many islands," to the court of Batou's brother, the Great Khan[Pg 91] "Cuyuc" himself, where the Christian stranger found himself one of a crowd of four thousand envoys from every part of Asia (1246).

As early as 1243, an Englishman was noted to be living among the Western Horde, the conquerors of Russia; however, official communication began in 1246 with John de Plano Carpini. This man, a Franciscan from Naples, set out in 1245 as the envoy of Pope Innocent IV to the Tartars. He took the northern overland route through Germany and Poland, reached Kiev, "the capital of Russia," with the help of the Duke of Cracow, and finally arrived at the camp of Batou on the Volga. From there, he traveled by the Sea of Aral, "of moderate size with many islands," to the court of Batou's brother, the Great Khan "Cuyuc" himself, where the Christian stranger found himself among a crowd of four thousand envoys from all over Asia (1246).

After sixteen months Carpini made his way back by the same route, "over the plains" and through Kiev, to give at Rome the first genuine account of Tartary, in its widest sense, from the Dnieper to China (1247).

After sixteen months, Carpini returned by the same route, "across the plains" and through Kiev, to provide Rome with the first real account of Tartary, in its broadest sense, from the Dnieper to China (1247).

The great rivers and lakes and mountains of Russia and Turkestan, the position and distribution of the land and its peoples, "even from the Caspian to the Northern Ocean, where men are said to have dogs' faces," are now first described by an honest and clear-headed and keen-eyed observer, neither timid nor credulous.

The vast rivers, lakes, and mountains of Russia and Turkestan, the layout and spread of the land and its people, “even from the Caspian Sea to the Arctic Ocean, where people are said to have dog-like faces,” are now being described for the first time by a straightforward, clear-minded, and sharp-eyed observer, who is neither fearful nor gullible.

Carpini really begins the reliable western map of Further Asia. His personal knowledge did not reach China or India, but in his Book of the Tartars, Europe was told nearly the whole truth, and almost nothing but the truth, about the vast tract and the great races between the Carpathians and the Gobi Desert. In the same was included the first fair account of the manners and history of the "Mongols whom we call Tartars," and the simple truthfulness of the Friar stands out in all the allusions that make his work so human;—his interviews with the Tartar Chiefs and with brother-travellers, his dangers and difficulties from Lettish robbers and abandoned or guarded ferries, his passage of the Dnieper on the ice, his last three weeks on "trotting"[24] hacks over the steppes.

Carpini really starts the reliable Western map of Further Asia. His personal experience didn't extend to China or India, but in his Book of the Tartars, Europe learned nearly the whole truth, and almost nothing but the truth, about the vast area and the great people between the Carpathians and the Gobi Desert. This book also included the first decent account of the customs and history of the "Mongols whom we call Tartars," and the straightforward honesty of the Friar shines through in all the details that make his work feel so human—his meetings with Tartar chiefs and fellow travelers, his dangers and challenges from Lettish bandits and risky or guarded ferries, his crossing of the Dnieper on the ice, and his last three weeks on "trotting"[24] hacks across the steppes.

We have gone a good way from Abbot Daniel, for in John de Plano Carpini Christian Europe has at last a real explorer, a real historian, a genuine man of science, in the service of the Church and of discovery.

We have come a long way from Abbot Daniel, because in John de Plano Carpini, Christian Europe finally has a true explorer, a real historian, and a genuine scientist, serving both the Church and the pursuit of discovery.

Carpini was followed after six years by William de Rubruquis, a Fleming sent by St. Louis of France on the same errand of conversion and discovery (1253), but by a different route, through the Black Sea, and Cherson, over the Don "at the Head of Azov, that divides Europe and Asia, as the Nile divides Asia and Africa," to the great camp on the Volga, "the greatest river I had ever seen, which comes from Great Bulgaria in the north and falls into a lake (the Caspian Sea), that would take four months to journey round." Higher in their course the Don and the Volga "are not more than ten days' journey apart, but diverge as they run south." The Caspian is "made out of the Volga and the rivers that flow into it from Persia." Thence through the Iron Gates of Derbend, between the Caspian and the Caucasus, "which Alexander made to shut the barbarians out of Persia." Helped by a Nestorian, who possessed influence at the Tartar Court, like so many of his Church, Rubruquis reached the "Alps" of the Altai country, where he found a small Nestorian lordship, governed like the Papal States, by a priest, who was at least one original of the great mediæval phantom—Prester John.

Carpini was followed six years later by William de Rubruquis, a Fleming sent by St. Louis of France on the same mission of conversion and exploration (1253), but he took a different route, traveling through the Black Sea and Cherson, over the Don "at the Head of Azov, which separates Europe and Asia, just like the Nile separates Asia and Africa," to the large camp on the Volga, "the biggest river I had ever seen, which flows from Great Bulgaria in the north and empties into a lake (the Caspian Sea), which would take four months to circle." Further along, the Don and the Volga "are no more than ten days' journey apart, but they separate as they head south." The Caspian is "fed by the Volga and the rivers that flow into it from Persia." From there, he passed through the Iron Gates of Derbend, situated between the Caspian Sea and the Caucasus, "which Alexander built to keep the barbarians out of Persia." With help from a Nestorian who had influence at the Tartar Court, like many of his Church, Rubruquis reached the "Alps" of the Altai region, where he discovered a small Nestorian lordship, ruled like the Papal States by a priest, who was at least one inspiration for the great medieval legend—Prester John.

Crossing the great steppes of eastern "Tartary," "like the rolling sea to look at," Rubruquis at last reached the Mongol headquarters at Caracorum, satisfied on the way that the Caspian had no northern[Pg 93] outlet, as Strabo and Isidore had imagined. Thence he made his way home without much fresh result.

Crossing the vast steppes of eastern "Tartary," "like the rolling sea to look at," Rubruquis finally reached the Mongol headquarters at Caracorum, confirming along the way that the Caspian Sea had no northern outlet, contrary to what Strabo and Isidore had thought. From there, he made his way home without discovering much new information.

THE PSALTER MAP OF THE THIRTEENTH CENTURY.

THE PSALTER MAP OF THE THIRTEENTH CENTURY.

THE PSALTER MAP OF THE THIRTEENTH CENTURY.
(see list of maps)

THE PSALTER MAP OF THE THIRTEENTH CENTURY.
(see list of maps)

Though Rubruquis is well called the most brilliant and literary of the mediæval travellers, his mission was fruitless, and the interest of his work lay rather in recording custom and myth—in sociology—than in adding anything definite to the geographical knowledge of the West. John de Plano had already been over the ground to Caracorum, and recorded all the main characteristics of the lands west of the Gobi Desert. The further advance, east to China, south to India, was yet to come.

Though Rubruquis is often regarded as the most insightful and literary of the medieval travelers, his mission ended up being unproductive, and the value of his work was more in documenting customs and myths—in sociology—than in contributing anything substantial to the geographical knowledge of the West. John de Plano had already traveled to Caracorum and noted all the key features of the lands west of the Gobi Desert. The further exploration, east to China and south to India, was still ahead.

But while Rubruquis was still among the Tartars, Nicolo and Matteo Polo, the uncles of the more famous Marco, were trading (1255-65) to the Crimea and the districts of southern Russia that were now under the Western Horde,—and soon after, following the caravans to Bokhara, they were drawn on to the court of Kublai Khan, then somewhere near the wall of China. After a most friendly reception they were sent back to Europe with presents and a letter to Pope Clement IV., offering a welcome and maintenance to Christian teachers. Kublai "had often questioned the Polos of the Western lands," and now he asked for one hundred "Latins, to shew him the Christian faith, for Christ he held to be the only God." Furnished with the imperial passport of the Golden Tablet, our merchants made their way back to Acre in April, 1269.

But while Rubruquis was still with the Tartars, Nicolo and Matteo Polo, the uncles of the more famous Marco, were trading (1255-65) in the Crimea and the areas of southern Russia that were now under the Western Horde. Soon after, they followed the caravans to Bokhara and ended up at the court of Kublai Khan, who was then near the wall of China. After being received very warmly, they were sent back to Europe with gifts and a letter to Pope Clement IV, inviting Christian teachers to come and offering them support. Kublai "had often asked the Polos about the Western lands," and now he requested one hundred "Latins to show him the Christian faith, for he believed Christ to be the only God." Equipped with the imperial passport of the Golden Tablet, our merchants made their way back to Acre in April, 1269.

They found the old pope dead, Gregory X. in his place, and he shewed a coolness in answering the Khan's requests, but in 1271 they set out on their[Pg 94] second journey to the furthest East, taking with them two friar preachers and their nephew Marco, now nineteen years of age.

They discovered that the old pope, Gregory X, had died, and in his stead, he displayed a cool attitude when responding to the Khan's requests. However, in 1271, they embarked on their[Pg 94] second journey to the far East, bringing along two friar preachers and their nephew Marco, who was now nineteen years old.

In Armenia the friars took alarm at the troubled state of the nearer East and turned back, just as Augustine of Canterbury tried to find a way out of the mission to the English that Pope Gregory I. laid upon him in 597. For the Church it was perhaps as momentous a time now as then; the thirteenth century, if it had ended in the Christianising of the Mongol Empire, would have turned the Catholic victory of the fourth and sixth centuries in the West, the victory that had been worked out in the next seven hundred years to fuller and fuller realisation, into a world empire,—which did come at last for European civilisation, but not for Christendom.

In Armenia, the friars got worried about the unstable situation in the nearby East and decided to turn back, just like Augustine of Canterbury tried to find a way out of the mission to the English that Pope Gregory I assigned to him in 597. For the Church, this might have been as significant a moment now as it was back then; if the thirteenth century had resulted in the Christianization of the Mongol Empire, it would have transformed the Catholic victories of the fourth and sixth centuries in the West—victories that had progressively developed over the next seven hundred years—into a world empire. This did eventually happen for European civilization, but not for Christendom.

The Polos however kept on their way north-east for more than "one thousand days," three years and a half, till they stood in the presence of Kublai Khan; beyond Gobi and the Great Wall and the mountain barriers of China, in Cambaluc or Pekin, "princess encrowned of cities capital."

The Polos, however, continued northeast for over "one thousand days," or three and a half years, until they came face-to-face with Kublai Khan; beyond the Gobi Desert, the Great Wall, and the mountain ranges of China, in Cambaluc or Beijing, "the crowned princess of capital cities."

Their journey was first through Armenia Lesser and Greater, then through Mosul (Nineveh) to Bagdad, where the last "Caliph and Pope of the Saracens" had been butchered by Holgalu and his Tartars, sewn in a sack and thrown into the Tigris by one account, walled up alive by another, in 1258. But though the stories in Marco's journal are a main interest of his work, as a summary and reflection of the science and history and general culture of the Christian world of his time, we must not here[Pg 95] look outside his geography. And his first place-note of value is on the Caspian, "which containeth in circuit twenty-eight hundred miles and is like a lake, having no union with other seas and in which are many islands, cities, and castles." The extent of the Nestorian missions, "through all parts of India and to Cairo and Bagdad, and wherever Christians dwell," strikes him even now at the beginning of his travels—much more when he finds their churches on the Hoang Ho and the Yang-Tse-Kiang—declining indeed, but still living to witness to the part which that great heresy had played as an intermediary between the further and the nearer East—a part which history has never yet worked out. Entering Persia as traders, the Polos went naturally to Ormuz, already the great mart of Islam for the Indian trade, where Europeans really entered the third, and, to them, unknown belt of the world, after passing from a zone of known home-land through one of enemies' country, known and only known as such. Failing to take the sea route at Ormuz for China, as they had hoped, our Italians were obliged to strike back north-east, through Persia and the Pamir, the Kashgar district and the Gobi steppes, to Cathay and the pleasure domes of Kublai, visiting Caracorum and the Altai country on the way, by a turn due north. In 1275 they were in Shang-tu, the Xanadu[25][Pg 96] of Coleridge—the summer capital of Kublai Khan—and not till 1292 did they get leave to turn their faces to the West once more.

Their journey first took them through Lesser and Greater Armenia, then through Mosul (Nineveh) to Baghdad, where the last "Caliph and Pope of the Saracens" was killed by Holgalu and his Tartars, reportedly sewn into a sack and thrown into the Tigris by one account, or walled up alive by another, in 1258. Although the stories in Marco's journal are a key interest in his work, summarizing and reflecting the science, history, and general culture of the Christian world of his time, we shouldn't stray from his geographic insights here.[Pg 95] His first notable observation is about the Caspian Sea, "which has a circumference of twenty-eight hundred miles and resembles a lake, having no connection to other seas and containing many islands, cities, and castles." The reach of the Nestorian missions, "through all parts of India and to Cairo and Baghdad, and wherever Christians dwell," impresses him even at the start of his travels—much more when he discovers their churches along the Hoang Ho and the Yang-Tse-Kiang—declining but still existing to testify to the role that great heresy played as a bridge between the farther and nearer East—a role that history has yet to fully analyze. Entering Persia as traders, the Polos naturally headed to Ormuz, already a major trade hub for Islam in the Indian trade, where Europeans truly entered the third and unknown region of the world, having passed from a familiar homeland through a territory of enemies, known only as such. Failing to take the sea route at Ormuz to China as they had hoped, our Italians were forced to turn back northeast through Persia and the Pamir, the Kashgar district, and the Gobi steppes to Cathay and Kublai's pleasure domes, visiting Karakorum and the Altai region along the way, by a route that led due north. In 1275, they arrived in Shang-tu, the Xanadu[25][Pg 96] of Coleridge—the summer capital of Kublai Khan—and it wasn't until 1292 that they were allowed to turn their faces westward once again.

Here the Polos became what may be called consulting engineers to the Mongol Court; Marco was even made in 1277 a commissioner of the Imperial Council, and soon after sent upon government missions to Yunnan in extreme south-west China and to Yangchow city.

Here, the Polos became what could be described as consulting engineers for the Mongol Court; Marco was even appointed in 1277 as a commissioner of the Imperial Council and was soon sent on government missions to Yunnan in the far southwest of China and to Yangchow city.

The greater part of Marco's own memoirs is taken up with his account of the thirty-four provinces of the Tartar Empire that centred round the "six parts of Cathay and the nine parts of Mangi," the districts of northern and southern China as we know them,—an account of the roads, rivers, and towns, the trade, the Court and the Imperial Ports, the customs and manner of life among the subject peoples in that Empire, perhaps the largest ever known. Especially do the travellers dwell on the public roads from Pekin or Cambaluc through all the provinces, the ten thousand Royal inns upon the highways, the two hundred thousand horses kept for the public service, the wonderful speed of transit in the Great Khan's embassages, "so that they could go from Pekin to the wall of China in two days."

The majority of Marco's memoirs focus on his experiences in the thirty-four provinces of the Tartar Empire, which revolved around the "six parts of Cathay and the nine parts of Mangi," the areas of northern and southern China as we recognize them today. He describes the roads, rivers, and towns, the trade, the Court and the Imperial Ports, as well as the customs and lifestyles of the people living under that Empire, possibly the largest ever known. The travelers particularly emphasize the main roads from Beijing or Cambaluc through all the provinces, the thousands of Royal inns along the highways, the two hundred thousand horses maintained for public service, and the incredible speed of travel in the Great Khan's messengers, "so that they could go from Beijing to the Great Wall of China in two days."

But scarcely less is said about the great rivers—the arteries of Chinese commerce, even more than the caravan routes,—above all, the Yang-Tse-Kiang, "the greatest stream in the world, like an arm of the sea, flowing above one hundred days' journey from its source into the ocean, and into which flow countless others, making it so great that incredible[Pg 97] quantities of merchandise are brought by this river. It flows," exclaims Marco, "through sixteen provinces, past the quays of two hundred cities, at one of which I saw at one time five thousand vessels, and there are other marts that have more."

But just as much is said about the great rivers—the lifelines of Chinese trade, even more than the caravan routes—especially the Yangtze River, "the longest river in the world, like an arm of the sea, flowing more than a hundred days' journey from its source to the ocean, and into which countless others flow, making it so vast that unbelievable[Pg 97] amounts of goods are transported by this river. It flows," exclaims Marco, "through sixteen provinces, past the docks of two hundred cities, where I witnessed five thousand vessels at one point, and other markets have even more."

The breadth and depth and length and merchandise of the Pulisangan and the Caramaran are only less than the Kiang's; from the point where Marco crossed the second of these, there was not another bridge till it reached the ocean, hundreds of miles away, "by reason of its exceeding greatness."

The size, variety, and quantity of goods in the Pulisangan and Caramaran are only surpassed by the Kiang; from the spot where Marco crossed the second one, there wasn't another bridge until it reached the ocean, hundreds of miles away, "due to its immense scale."

Lastly Pekin, the capital of the Empire, with Quinsai and the other provincial capitals of Mangi and Cathay, call out the unbounded admiration of the Polos as of every other Western traveller, from the Moslem Ibn Batuta to the Christian friars of the fourteenth century.

Lastly, Beijing, the capital of the Empire, along with Quinsai and the other provincial capitals of Mangi and Cathay, elicits boundless admiration from the Polos and every other Western traveler, from the Muslim Ibn Batuta to the Christian friars of the fourteenth century.

Pekin, two days' journey from the ocean, the residence of the Court in December, January, and February, in the extreme north-east of Cathay, had been lately rebuilt in a "central square of twenty-four miles in compass, and twelve suburbs, three or four miles long, adjoining each of the twelve gates," where merchants and strangers lived, each nation with separate "burses" or store-houses, where they lodged. From this centre to the land of Gog and Magog and the champaign-land of Bargu, the Great Khan travelled every year in midsummer for the fresh air of the plateau country of central Asia, as well as for a better view of the great Russian and Bactrian sub-kingdoms of his House. The six months of spring and autumn were spent in slow[Pg 98] progresses through central and southern China to Thibet on one side, and to Tonquin on the other. But greater even than Pekin, Quinsai, or Kansay, the City of Heaven, in southern China, though no longer the capital even of a separate Kingdom of Mangi, was the crowning work of Chinese civilisation. It surpassed the other cities of Kublai, as much as these overshadowed the Rome or Venice of the thirteenth century.

Peking, a two-day journey from the ocean, was the Court's residence during December, January, and February, located in the far northeast of China. It had recently been rebuilt in a "central square that was twenty-four miles around, with twelve suburbs, each three or four miles long, next to each of the twelve gates," where merchants and visitors lived, with each nation having its own "burses" or storage facilities. From this center, the Great Khan traveled every summer to the land of Gog and Magog and the open lands of Bargu for fresh air from the plateau region of central Asia and to get a better look at the major Russian and Bactrian territories of his empire. He spent the six months of spring and autumn moving slowly through central and southern China towards Tibet on one side and Tonkin on the other. But even greater than Peking was Quinsai, or Kansay, the City of Heaven in southern China, which, although no longer the capital of a separate Kingdom of Mangi, represented the pinnacle of Chinese civilization. It outshone Kublai's other cities just as much as they surpassed the Rome or Venice of the thirteenth century.

"In the world there is not its like, for by common report it is one hundred miles in circuit, with a lake on one side and a river on the other, divided in many channels and upon these and the canals adjoining twelve thousand bridges of stone; there are ten market places, each half a mile square; great store-houses of stone, where the Indian merchants lay by their goods; palaces and gardens on both sides of the main street, which, like all the highways in Mangi, is paved with stone on each side, and in the midst full of gravel, with passages for the water, which keeps it always clean." Salt, silk, fruit, precious stones, and cloth of gold are the chief commodities; the paper money of the Great Khan is used everywhere; all the people, except a few Nestorians and Moslems, are "idolaters, so luxurious and so happy that a man would think himself in Paradise."

"In the world, there’s nothing like it, as it’s commonly reported to be one hundred miles around, with a lake on one side and a river on the other, divided into many channels, and along these and the nearby canals are twelve thousand stone bridges. There are ten market places, each half a mile square; large stone warehouses where Indian merchants store their goods; palaces and gardens lining both sides of the main street, which, like all the roads in Mangi, is paved with stone on both sides and filled with gravel in the middle, featuring drainage for water to keep it clean. The main goods are salt, silk, fruit, precious stones, and gold cloth; the paper money issued by the Great Khan is accepted everywhere; and except for a few Nestorians and Muslims, everyone else are 'idolaters, so luxurious and happy that a man would think he’s in Paradise.'"

It was only in recent years that Kublai, or his general, Baian, had captured Quinsai and driven out the King of Mangi with his seraglio and his friends. The exile till then had only thought of pleasure, of wine, women, and song, the "sweet meat which cost him the sour sauce ye have heard," on the approach[Pg 99] of danger, had fled on board the ships he had prepared to "certain impregnable isles in the ocean," and if these impregnable islands may be identified with Zipangu or Japan, the conquerors pursued him even here. There is nothing more interesting in Polo's book than his story of the Mongol failure in the Eastern islands, fifteen hundred miles from the coast of Mangi, now first discovered to Christian knowledge.

It was only in recent years that Kublai, or his general, Baian, had captured Quinsai and driven out the King of Mangi along with his harem and friends. The exile had previously only focused on pleasure—wine, women, and song, the "sweet pleasures that came with the bitter consequences you've heard about." As danger approached[Pg 99], he fled aboard the ships he had prepared to head to "certain impregnable islands in the ocean." If these impregnable islands are identified as Zipangu or Japan, the conquerors pursued him even there. There is nothing more captivating in Polo's book than his account of the Mongol failure in the Eastern islands, fifteen hundred miles from the coast of Mangi, which were just now discovered to Christian knowledge.

This country of Japan, "very great, the people white, of gentle manners, idolaters in religion, under a King of their own," was attacked by Kublai's fleet in 1264 for the gold they had, and had in such plenty that "the King's house, windows, and floors were covered with it, as churches here with lead, as was reported by merchants—but these were few and the King allowed no exportation of the gold."

This country of Japan, "very great, the people fair-skinned, with gentle manners, practicing idolatry in their religion, under their own King," was attacked by Kublai's fleet in 1264 for the gold they possessed, which was so abundant that "the King's house, windows, and floors were covered with it, like churches here with lead, as reported by merchants—but these were few and the King permitted no export of the gold."

The expedition was as disastrous a failure as the old Athenian attack upon Sicily, and was not repeated, although fleets were sent by the Great Khan after this into the Southern Seas, which were supposed to have made a discovery of Papua, if not of the Australian Continent. "In this Sea of China, over against Mangi," Marco reported, from hearsay "of mariners and expert pilots, are 7440 islands, most of them inhabited, whereon grows no tree that yields not a pleasant smell—spices, lignum-aloes, and pepper, black and white." The ships of Zaitum (the great Chinese mart for Indian trade) knew this sea and its islands, "for they go every winter and return every summer, taking a year on the voyage, and all this though it is far from India and not subject to the Great Khan."[Pg 100]

The expedition was a complete failure, much like the old Athenian attack on Sicily, and it wasn't attempted again, although the Great Khan sent fleets to the Southern Seas afterward, which were thought to have discovered Papua, if not the Australian continent. "In this Sea of China, across from Mangi," Marco reported, based on what he heard from sailors and expert navigators, "there are 7,440 islands, most of which are inhabited, where no tree grows that doesn't have a pleasant scent—spices, lignum-aloes, and black and white pepper." The ships from Zaitum (the major Chinese hub for Indian trade) were familiar with this sea and its islands, "since they travel there every winter and come back every summer, taking a year for the journey, even though it's far from India and not under the Great Khan's control."[Pg 100]

But not only did Polo in these sections of his Guide Book or Memories of Travel, record the main features of a coast and ocean scarcely guessed at by Europeans, and flatly denied by Ptolemy and the main traditional school of Western geography. In his service under Kublai, and in his return by sea to Aden and Suez, he opened up the eight provinces of Thibet, the whole of south-east Asia from Canton to Bengal, and the great archipelago of further India.

But not only did Polo in these parts of his Guide Book or Memories of Travel, document the key aspects of a coast and ocean that Europeans barely understood and were outright denied by Ptolemy and the main traditional school of Western geography. During his service under Kublai, and on his return by sea to Aden and Suez, he explored the eight provinces of Tibet, all of Southeast Asia from Canton to Bengal, and the vast archipelago of the East Indies.

Four days' journey beyond the Yang-Tse-Kiang, Marco entered "the wide country of Thibet, vanquished and wasted by the Khan for the space of twenty days' journey, and become a wilderness wanting inhabitants, where wild beasts are excessively increased." Here he tells us of the Yak-oxen and great Thibetan dogs as great as asses, of the musk deer, and spices, "and salt lakes having beds of pearls," and of the cruel and bestial idolatry and social customs of the people.

Four days' journey past the Yang-Tse-Kiang, Marco arrived in "the vast land of Tibet, conquered and ravaged by the Khan for the span of twenty days' journey, now a barren wilderness lacking inhabitants, where wild animals have greatly multiplied." Here he describes the Yak-oxen and enormous Tibetan dogs as big as donkeys, the musk deer, and spices, "and salt lakes with beds of pearls," as well as the brutal and barbaric idol worship and social customs of the locals.

Still farther to the south-west, Commissioner Polo came to the Cinnamon river, called Brius, on the borders of the province of Caindu, to the porcelain-making districts of Carazan, governed by Kublai's son, and so to Bengal, "which borders upon India," and where Marco laughs at the tattoo customs of "flesh embroidery for the dyeing of fools' skins."

Still further to the southwest, Commissioner Polo reached the Cinnamon River, known as Brius, on the borders of the province of Caindu, leading to the porcelain-making areas of Carazan, ruled by Kublai's son, and then to Bengal, "which borders on India," where Marco jokes about the tattoo traditions of "flesh embroidery for dyeing fools' skins."

Thence back to China, the richest and most famous country of all the East, where was "peace so absolute that shops could be left open full of wares all night and travellers and strangers could walk day and night through every part, untouched and fearing none."[Pg 101]

Thence back to China, the richest and most famous country in the East, where there was "such absolute peace that shops could be left open full of goods all night, and travelers and strangers could walk through every part at any time, untouched and without fear."[Pg 101]

But the Polos wearied even of the Court favours and their celestial home; they longed to come back to earth, to Frankland and Christendom, where life was so rough, and poor, and struggling, but for whose sake they had come so far and braved so much. But the Khan was hurt at the least hint of their wishes, and it was only a fortunate chance that restored them to Europe. Twenty years after their outward start, they were dismissed for a time and under solemn promise of return, as the guides of an embassy in charge of a Mongol bride for a Persian Khan, living at Tabrez and related to Kublai himself. So, in 1292, they embarked for India at Zaitum, "one of the fairest ports in the world, where is so much pepper that what comes by Alexandria to the West is little to it, and, as it were, one of a hundred." Then striking across the Gulf of Cheinan, for fifteen hundred miles, and passing "infinite islands, with gold and much trade,"—a gulf "seeming in all like another world"—they reached Ziambar and, after another run of the same distance, Java, then supposed by mariners to be the greatest island in the world, "above three thousand miles round and under a king who pays tribute to none, the Khan himself not offering to subject it, because of the length and danger of the voyage."

But the Polos grew tired of the Court's favors and their heavenly home; they longed to return to the earthly realm, to Frankland and Christendom, where life was tough, poor, and full of struggles, but for whom they had journeyed so far and faced so much. However, the Khan felt hurt by even the slightest hint of their desires, and it was only a lucky chance that brought them back to Europe. Twenty years after their departure, they were temporarily released under a solemn promise to return, serving as guides for an embassy carrying a Mongol bride to a Persian Khan living in Tabrez, who was related to Kublai himself. So, in 1292, they set sail for India from Zaitum, "one of the fairest ports in the world, where there is so much pepper that what comes through Alexandria to the West is small in comparison, and, as if it were, one of a hundred." Then they crossed the Gulf of Cheinan for fifteen hundred miles, passing "infinite islands, with gold and much trade,"—a gulf "seeming in all like another world"—and they reached Ziambar and, after another similar distance, Java, which sailors of that time believed to be the largest island in the world, "over three thousand miles around and under a king who pays tribute to no one, with the Khan himself not daring to subdue it, due to the length and danger of the journey."

One hundred miles south-east the fleet touched at Java the Less "in compass about two thousand miles, with abundance of treasure and spices, ebony, and brazil, and so far to the south that the North Star cannot be seen, and none of the stars of the Great Bear." Here they were in great fear of[Pg 102] "those brutish man eaters," with whom they traded for victuals and camphire and spices and precious stones, being forced to stay for five months by stress of weather—till they got away into the Bay of Bengal, the extreme point of European knowledge until this time, "where there are savages living in the deep sea islands with dogs' heads and teeth, as I was told, all naked, both men and women, and living the life of beasts (Andamans)."[26]

One hundred miles southeast, the fleet stopped at Java the Less, which is about two thousand miles around, filled with treasures and spices, ebony, and brazil wood, and so far south that the North Star isn't visible, along with the stars of the Great Bear. Here they were very afraid of "those brutish man-eaters," with whom they traded for food, camphor, spices, and precious stones, and were forced to stay for five months due to bad weather—until they finally made it to the Bay of Bengal, which was the furthest point of European exploration at that time, "where there are savages living on the remote islands with dog-like heads and teeth, as I was told, completely naked, both men and women, living like beasts (Andamans)."[26]

Sailing hence a thousand miles to the west, adds Marco, is Ceylon, "the finest island in the world, 2400 miles in circuit, and once 3600, as is seen in old maps, but the north winds have made great part of it sea."

Sailing a thousand miles to the west, Marco adds, is Ceylon, "the most beautiful island in the world, 2400 miles around, and once 3600, as shown in old maps, but the north winds have turned a large part of it into sea."

Again west for sixty miles, to Malabar, "which is firm continent in India the Greater," and where the Polos re-entered as it were the horizon of Western knowledge, at the shrine of St. Thomas, the Apostle of India.

Again west for sixty miles, to Malabar, "which is a solid continent in Greater India," and where the Polos re-entered, as if they were crossing into the horizon of Western knowledge, at the shrine of St. Thomas, the Apostle of India.

Here we must leave the Venetians, with only a bare mention of their homeward route from Malabar by Murfili and the Valley of Diamonds, by Camari, where they had a glimpse of the Pole-Star once more, and by Guzerat and Cambay to Socotra, where Marco, in his stay, heard and wrote down the first news ever brought to Europe of the "great isle Magaster," or Madagascar, and of Zensibar or Zanzibar.[27]

Here we must leave the Venetians, with just a quick mention of their journey back home from Malabar via Murfili and the Valley of Diamonds, passing through Camari, where they caught a glimpse of the Pole Star again, and through Guzerat and Cambay to Socotra. During Marco's stay there, he heard and recorded the first news ever brought to Europe about the "great isle Magaster," or Madagascar, and about Zensibar or Zanzibar.[27]

Of Polo's account of Hindu customs,—self-immolation and especially Suttee, of Caste, of the Brahminical "thread with one hundred and four beads by which to pray"; of their etiquette in eating, drinking, birth, marriage, and death—only the simple fact can be noticed here, that the first serious and direct Christian account of India, as of China, is also among the most accurate and well judged, and that both in what he says and what he leaves unsaid, Messer Marco is a true Herodotus of the Middle Ages.

Of Polo's account of Hindu customs—self-immolation and especially Suttee, Caste, the Brahminical "thread with one hundred and four beads for prayer," and their etiquette around eating, drinking, birth, marriage, and death—it's worth noting that the first serious and direct Christian perspective on India, as with China, is among the most accurate and well-considered. In both what he includes and what he omits, Messer Marco stands out as a true Herodotus of the Middle Ages.

But not only does his account discover for Europe the extreme east and south of Asia; in his last chapter he returns to the Tartars, and after adding a few words on the nomades of the central plains, gives us our first "Latin" account of Siberia, "where are found great white bears, black foxes, and sables; and where are great lakes, frozen except for a few months in the year, and crossed in sledges by the fur-traders."

But not only does his account reveal the far east and south of Asia to Europe; in his final chapter, he goes back to the Tartars, and after mentioning a few things about the nomads of the central plains, he provides us with our first "Latin" description of Siberia, "where there are large white bears, black foxes, and sables; and where there are vast lakes, frozen except for a few months each year, and crossed by sleds used by the fur traders."

Beyond this the Obscure Land reaches to the furthest North, "near which is Russia, where for the most of winter the sun appears not, and the air is thick and dark as betimes in the morning with us, where the men are pale and squat and live like the beasts, and where on the East men come again to the Ocean Sea and the islands of the Falcons."

Beyond this, the Obscure Land stretches to the far North, "close to Russia, where for most of winter the sun doesn’t show up, and the air is dense and dark like early morning here, where the people are pale and short and live like animals, and where in the East people encounter the Ocean Sea and the islands of the Falcons."

The work of Marco Polo is the high-water mark of mediæval land travel; the extension of Christendom after him was mainly by the paths of the sea; the Roman missions to the Tartars and to Malabar, vigorously and stubbornly pressed as they were, ended in unrelieved collapse; only by the revolt and[Pg 104] resurrection of the Russian kingdom did the European world permanently and markedly expand on the side of Asia. But a crowd of missionaries followed the first traders to Cathay and to Mangi—Friar Odoric, John de Monte Corvino, John de Cora; statesmen like Marignolli the Papal Legate, sight-seers like Mandeville followed these; Bishop Jordanus of Capua worked for years in Coulam near Cape Comorin (c. 1325-35); the martyrdom of four friars on April 1, 1322, at Tana, in India, became one of the great commemorations of the Latin Church; there seemed no cause why Christian missions which had won north and north-east Europe should not win central and eastern Asia, whose peoples seemed as indifferent, as agnostic, as our own Norse or English pagans.

The work of Marco Polo is the pinnacle of medieval land travel; the spread of Christianity after him mainly occurred through the seas. The Roman missions to the Tartars and Malabar, although pursued vigorously and stubbornly, ended in complete failure. It was only through the uprising and[Pg 104] revival of the Russian kingdom that the European world expanded permanently and significantly toward Asia. However, a number of missionaries followed the first traders to Cathay and Mangi—Friar Odoric, John de Monte Corvino, and John de Cora; statesmen like Marignolli, the Papal Legate, and sightseers like Mandeville also joined them. Bishop Jordanus of Capua spent years working in Coulam near Cape Comorin (c. 1325-35); the martyrdom of four friars on April 1, 1322, at Tana in India became one of the major commemorations of the Latin Church. There seemed to be no reason why Christian missions, which had succeeded in northern and northeastern Europe, could not succeed in central and eastern Asia, whose people appeared just as indifferent and agnostic as our own Norse or English pagans.

"The fame of the Latins," says Jordanus, about 1330—and he is borne out by Marino Sanuto—"is greater in India than among ourselves. Here our arrival is always looked for, and said to be predicted in their books. Once gain Egypt and launch a fleet even of two galleys on this sea and the battle is won." As Egypt could not be gained by arms, it was turned by seamanship. Before Polo returned from China, the coasting of Africa had begun, and Italian mariners were already in search of the longer way to the East.

"The reputation of the Latins," says Jordanus, around 1330—and he is supported by Marino Sanuto—"is more prominent in India than it is here. In our case, our arrival is always anticipated and said to be foretold in their literature. If we manage to conquer Egypt and send out even just two galleys into this sea, the victory is ours." Since Egypt couldn't be taken by force, they tried to conquer it through navigation. Before Polo got back from China, the exploration of Africa had already started, and Italian sailors were actively looking for a longer route to the East.

But there is no work of land travel after that of Messer Marco which really adds anything decisive to European knowledge before the fifteenth century; the advance of trade intercourse between India and the Italian Republics, the gradual liberation of Rus[Pg 105]sia the use made of the caravan routes by some of the most active of the Western clergy, are the chief notes of the time between the Polos and Prince Henry; and the flimsy fabrications of Mandeville—"of all liars that type of the first magnitude"—would be fairly left without a word even in a minute history of discovery, if he had not, like Ktesias with Herodotus, won a hearing for himself and drawn men's minds away from the truth-telling original that he travestied, by the sheer force of impudence.

But there is no travel account after Messer Marco's that really contributes anything significant to European knowledge before the fifteenth century; the growth of trade between India and the Italian Republics, the gradual independence of Rus[Pg 105]ia, and the way some of the most active Western clergy utilized the caravan routes are the main highlights of the period between the Polos and Prince Henry. The flimsy fabrications of Mandeville—"of all liars, he is the most notable"—would be justly ignored even in a brief history of discovery, if he hadn't, like Ktesias with Herodotus, managed to capture attention and divert people's minds from the truthful original he distorted, purely through his boldness.

The Indian travels of the Italian Nicolo Conti and the Russian merchant Athanasius Nikitin belong to a later time, to the age of the Portuguese voyages; they are not part of the preparation for our central subject, they are only a somewhat obscure parallel to that subject.

The travels of the Italian Nicolo Conti and the Russian merchant Athanasius Nikitin in India come from a later period, during the era of Portuguese exploration; they aren't directly related to our main topic, but serve as a somewhat unclear parallel to it.

For in the later Middle Ages the chief interest lies elsewhere. The expansion of Christendom in the fourteenth century, and still more in the fifteenth (Prince Henry's own), is the story of the ventures and the successes, not so much of landsmen, as of mariners.

For in the later Middle Ages, the main focus shifted. The expansion of Christianity in the fourteenth century, and even more in the fifteenth (Prince Henry's own time), is the tale of the adventures and successes, not so much of land-based travelers, but of sailors.

decorative illustration

decorative illustration


decorative illustration

decorative illustration

CHAPTER IV.

MARITIME EXPLORATION.

CIRCA 1250-1410.

Italian, Catalan, French, and English sailors were the forerunners of the Portuguese in the fourteenth century, and the latter years of the thirteenth. And as in land travel, so in maritime, the republics of Italy, Amalphi, Pisa, Venice, and Genoa, were the leaders and examples of Europe. Just as the Italian Dante is the first great name in the new literatures of the West, so the Italian Dorias and Vivaldi and Malocelli are the first to take up again the old Greek and Phœnician enterprise in the ocean. Since Hanno of Carthage and Pharaoh Necho's Tyrians, there had been nothing in the nature of a serious trial to find a way round Africa, and even the knowledge of the Western or Fortunate Islands, so clear to Ptolemy and Strabo, had become dim. The Vikings and their crusader-followers had done nothing south of Gibraltar Straits.

IItalian, Catalan, French, and English sailors were the pioneers of the Portuguese in the fourteenth century, as well as the later years of the thirteenth. Just like in land travel, the Italian republics of Amalfi, Pisa, Venice, and Genoa were the leaders and examples for Europe on the sea. Just as the Italian Dante stands out as the first great figure in the new Western literatures, so the Italian Dorias, Vivaldi, and Malocelli were the first to revive the ancient Greek and Phoenician ventures in the ocean. Since Hanno of Carthage and Pharaoh Necho's Tyrians, there hadn't been any serious attempts to find a way around Africa, and even the knowledge of the Western or Fortunate Islands, so clear to Ptolemy and Strabo, had become vague. The Vikings and their crusader followers had achieved nothing south of the Gibraltar Straits.

THE S.W., OR AFRICAN SECTION OF THE HEREFORD MAP. C. 1275-1300.

THE S.W., OR AFRICAN SECTION OF THE HEREFORD MAP. C. 1275-1300.

THE S.W., OR AFRICAN SECTION OF THE HEREFORD MAP. C. 1275-1300.
(see list of maps)

THE S.W., OR AFRICAN SECTION OF THE HEREFORD MAP. C. 1275-1300.
(see list of maps)

But while the Crusades were still dragging along a weary and hopeless warfare under St. Louis of[Pg 107] France and Prince Edward of England, discovery began again in the Atlantic. In 1270 Lancelot Malocello found the Canaries; in 1281 or 1291 the Genoese galleys of Tedisio Doria and the Vivaldi, trying to "go by sea to the ports of India to trade there," reached Gozora or Cape Non in Barbary, the southern Ultima Thule, and according to a later story "sailed the Sea of Ghinoia (Guinea) to a city of Æthiopia," where even legend lost sight of them, for in 1312 nothing more had been heard. From the frequent and emphatic references to this attempt in the literature of the later Middle Ages, it is clear that the daring Genoese drew upon themselves the attention of the learned and mercantile worlds, as much as one would naturally expect. For these men are the pioneers of Christian explorations in the southern world—the precursors of all the ocean voyages that led to the discoveries of Prince Henry, Da Gama, Columbus, and Magellan,—the first who directly challenged the disheartening theories of geographers, such as Ptolemy, the inaction and traditionalism of the Arabs, and the elaborate falsities of story tellers, who, in the absence of real knowledge, had a grand opening for terrible fairy tales.

But while the Crusades were still dragging through a tired and hopeless warfare under St. Louis of [Pg 107] France and Prince Edward of England, exploration in the Atlantic began to pick up again. In 1270, Lancelot Malocello discovered the Canaries; in 1281 or 1291, the Genoese ships of Tedisio Doria and the Vivaldi, attempting to "go by sea to the ports of India to trade there," reached Gozora or Cape Non in North Africa, the southern Ultima Thule, and according to later accounts, "sailed the Sea of Ghinoia (Guinea) to a city of Ethiopia," where even legends eventually lost track of them, as nothing more was heard from them by 1312. From the frequent and strong mentions of this attempt in the literature of the later Middle Ages, it’s clear that these daring Genoese captured the attention of both the scholarly and business communities, just as one would expect. These men are the pioneers of Christian explorations in the southern world—the forerunners of all the ocean voyages that led to the discoveries of Prince Henry, Da Gama, Columbus, and Magellan—being the first to directly challenge the discouraging theories of geographers like Ptolemy, the inaction and traditionalism of the Arabs, and the elaborate fabrications of storytellers, who, in the absence of real knowledge, had a grand opportunity for terrible fairy tales.

The first age, if so it may be called, of South Atlantic and African voyages was purely Italian; the second was chiefly marked by the efforts of the Spanish States to equip fleets and send out explorers under Genoese captains. In 1317 the Genoese Emmanuel Pessanha became Admiral of Portugal; in 1341 three ships manned by Portuguese and "other Spaniards"[Pg 108] with some Italians put out from Lisbon in search of Malocello's "Rediscovered" islands, granted by the Pope to Don Luis of Spain in a Bull of November 15, 1334, and now described, from the original letters of Florentine merchants and partners in the venture of 1341, by Boccaccio. "Land was found on the fifth day after leaving the Tagus" (July 1); the fleet stayed till November, and then brought back four natives and products of the islands. The chief pilot thought these were near nine hundred miles from Seville, and we may fully suppose that the archipelago of thirteen, now first explored and described, represents the Fortunate Islands of Greek geography, the Canaries of modern maps, and that the five chief islands with their naked but not quite savage people, with excellent wood houses, and flocks of goats, palms, and figs, gardens and corn patches, rocky mountains and pine forests, were our Ferro, Palma, Gomera, Grand Canary, and Teneriffe. The last they took to be thirty thousand feet high, with its white scarped sides looking like a fortress, but terrified at signs of enchantment they did not dare to land, and returned to Spain, leaving the Islands of the Rediscovered to be visited as a convenient slave depot by merchants and pirates from the Peninsula till the Norman Conquest of Béthencourt in 1402.

The first era of South Atlantic and African voyages, if that’s what we can call it, was entirely Italian. The second era was mainly characterized by the Spanish states working to equip fleets and send out explorers led by Genoese captains. In 1317, the Genoese Emmanuel Pessanha became Admiral of Portugal; in 1341, three ships crewed by Portuguese and other Spaniards[Pg 108] along with some Italians set sail from Lisbon in search of Malocello's "Rediscovered" islands, which the Pope had granted to Don Luis of Spain in a Bull on November 15, 1334, and were later described from the original letters of Florentine merchants involved in the 1341 venture by Boccaccio. "Land was found on the fifth day after leaving the Tagus" (July 1); the fleet remained until November and returned with four natives and products from the islands. The chief pilot estimated these were about nine hundred miles from Seville, and we can reasonably assume that the archipelago of thirteen, newly explored and described, represents the Fortunate Islands of Greek geography, the Canaries on modern maps. The five main islands, inhabited by people who were not completely savage, had well-built wooden houses, flocks of goats, palms, figs, gardens, corn patches, rocky mountains, and pine forests. These were our Ferro, Palma, Gomera, Grand Canary, and Teneriffe. The last one was thought to be thirty thousand feet high, with its steep white sides resembling a fortress, but they were frightened by signs of magic and didn’t dare to land, returning to Spain and leaving the Rediscovered Islands to be used as a convenient slave depot by merchants and pirates from the Peninsula until the Norman Conquest of Béthencourt in 1402.

The voyage of 1341 gained much by attempting little; the Catalan voyage of 1346, which followed close upon it, was something of a return to the wilder and larger schemes of the first Genoese. On August 10, 1346, Jayme Ferrer left Majorca "to go to the River of Gold," but of the said galley, says the Cata[Pg 109]lan map of 1375, no news has since been heard. On the same map, however, the explorers' boat is sketched off the "Cape Finisterre of west Africa," and there is, after all, some ground for supposing this to be nothing more than a mercantile venture to the Gold Coast of Guinea, which was becoming known to the traders of Nismes, Marseilles, and the Christian Mediterranean by the caravan traffic across the Sahara. Even Prince Henry began in the same way; Guinea was his half-way house for India.

The voyage of 1341 accomplished a lot with minimal effort; the Catalan voyage of 1346, which came shortly after, marked a return to the more ambitious plans of the earlier Genoese explorers. On August 10, 1346, Jayme Ferrer departed from Majorca "to go to the River of Gold," but according to the Catalan map of 1375, there has been no news about the mentioned galley since. That same map, however, shows the explorers' boat off the "Cape Finisterre of west Africa," leading to some speculation that this was simply a trading mission to the Gold Coast of Guinea, which was becoming known to traders from Nismes, Marseilles, and the Christian Mediterranean through caravan routes across the Sahara. Even Prince Henry started off similarly; Guinea was his stopover on the way to India.

About the same date (c. 1350) as the Catalan voyage is the Book of the Spanish Friar, "of the voyage south to the River of Gold," which gives a more than half fabulous story of travel, first by sea beyond Capes Non and Bojador, then by land across the heart of Africa to the Mountains of the Moon, the city of Melli, where dwelt Prester John, and "the Euphrates, which comes from the terrestrial Paradise," where behind some real notes of Barbary coasting, perhaps gained from the Catalans of 1346, there is little but a confused transcript of Edrisi's geography. Yet this was one of the books which helped to fix the notion of a double Nile, Northern and Western, a Nile of Egypt and a Nile of the Blacks, with a common source in the Mountains of the Moon, upon the Christian science of the time, as the Arab geographers had fixed it upon Islam.

Around the same time (c. 1350) as the Catalan voyage, there is the Book of the Spanish Friar, "of the voyage south to the River of Gold," which presents a mostly mythical tale of travel, initially by sea beyond Capes Non and Bojador, and then by land through the heart of Africa to the Mountains of the Moon, the city of Melli, where Prester John lived, and "the Euphrates, which flows from the earthly Paradise." Behind some genuine references to Barbary coasting, possibly obtained from the Catalans of 1346, there's mostly a mixed-up version of Edrisi's geography. Nevertheless, this was one of the books that contributed to the idea of a double Nile, Northern and Western, one Nile in Egypt and another for the Blacks, all sharing a common source in the Mountains of the Moon, influencing Christian knowledge of the time, just as the Arab geographers had shaped it according to Islam.

The next piece of Atlantic exploration was a romantic accident. In the reign of Edward III., an Englishman named Robert Machin eloped with Anne d'Arfet from Bristol (c. 1370), was driven from the coast of France by a north-east wind, and after[Pg 110] thirteen days sighted an island, Madeira, where he landed. His ship was swept away by the storm, his mistress died of terror and exhaustion, and five days after Machin was laid beside her by his men, who had saved the ship's boat and now ran her upon the African coast. They were enslaved, like other Christian captives of the Barbary corsairs, but in 1416 a fellow-prisoner, one Morales of Seville, an old pilot, was ransomed with others and sent back to Spain. On his way Morales was captured by a Portuguese captain, Zarco, the servant of Prince Henry, the rediscoverer of Madeira, and through this the full story of Machin and his island, came to be known in the court of the Navigator Prince, who promptly made his gain of the new knowledge a lasting one, by the voyage of Zarco in 1420.

The next chapter of Atlantic exploration was a romantic accident. During the reign of Edward III, an Englishman named Robert Machin ran away with Anne d'Arfet from Bristol (c. 1370). They were blown off course by a northeast wind, and after[Pg 110] thirteen days, they spotted an island, Madeira, where he landed. His ship was lost in the storm, his lover died from fear and exhaustion, and five days later, Machin was buried beside her by his crew, who had saved the ship's boat and navigated it to the African coast. They were enslaved, like other Christian captives of the Barbary corsairs, but in 1416, a fellow prisoner, Morales of Seville, an experienced pilot, was ransomed with others and returned to Spain. On his journey, Morales was captured by a Portuguese captain, Zarco, who served Prince Henry, the man who rediscovered Madeira. Because of this, the full story of Machin and his island became known at the court of the Navigator Prince, who quickly turned this new knowledge into a lasting achievement with Zarco's voyage in 1420.

Last among the immediate predecessors of Prince Henry's seamen come the French. In the seventeenth century it was claimed, on newly found evidence, that between 1364 and 1410 the men of Dieppe and Rouen opened a regular trade in gold, ivory, and malaguette pepper with the coast of Guinea, and built stations at Petit Paris, Petit Dieppe, and La Mine, which they named from the precious metal found there. But all this is more than doubtful, and the genuine Norman voyage of De Béthencourt in 1402 shows us nothing but the Canaries and the north-west coast of Morocco. Cape Non, or Cape Bojador, was still the European Furthest on the African coast.

Last among the immediate predecessors of Prince Henry's sailors are the French. In the seventeenth century, it was claimed, based on new evidence, that between 1364 and 1410, the men from Dieppe and Rouen established a regular trade in gold, ivory, and malaguette pepper with the coast of Guinea, and built stations at Petit Paris, Petit Dieppe, and La Mine, which they named after the precious metal found there. However, this is highly questionable, and the authentic Norman voyage of De Béthencourt in 1402 reveals nothing but the Canaries and the north-west coast of Morocco. Cape Non, or Cape Bojador, was still the furthest point reached by Europeans on the African coast.

The French Seigneur was stirred up to attack the Fortunate Islands by two events. First in 1382 one[Pg 111] Lopez, a captain of Seville sailing to Gallicia, was driven by a tempest to Grand Canary, and lived among the natives seven years till he and his men were denounced for writing home and inviting rescue. To stop this intrigue they, the "thirteen Christian brothers" whose testament reached Béthencourt twelve years later, were all massacred. News of this and of the voyage of a Spaniard named Becarra to the same islands at the same time, reached Rochelle about 1400, and found several French adventurers ready for a trial. The chief of these, Jean de Béthencourt, Lord of Grainville, and Gadifer de la Salle, a needy knight, started in July, 1402, to conquer in the sea a new kingdom for themselves. Though the leaders quarrelled and Grand Canary beat off all attacks, the enterprise was successful in the main, and several of the islands became Christian colonies,—a first step towards the colonial empires of the great European expansion, as the record of Béthencourt's chaplains is the first chapter of modern colonial history.

The French Seigneur was motivated to attack the Fortunate Islands by two events. First, in 1382, a captain from Seville named Lopez, who was sailing to Galicia, was caught in a storm and ended up in Grand Canary. He lived among the natives for seven years until he and his men were exposed for writing home and asking for help. To prevent this situation from escalating, the "thirteen Christian brothers," whose testament reached Béthencourt twelve years later, were all killed. News of this, along with the journey of a Spaniard named Becarra to the same islands around the same time, reached Rochelle around 1400, leading several French adventurers to seek their own fortunes. Among them, Jean de Béthencourt, Lord of Grainville, and a broke knight named Gadifer de la Salle set out in July 1402 to conquer a new kingdom for themselves. Although the leaders had disagreements and Grand Canary successfully defended against all assaults, the endeavor was largely successful, and several of the islands became Christian colonies—marking the beginning of the colonial empires during Europe's great expansion, as recorded by Béthencourt's chaplains, which serves as the first chapter of modern colonial history.

But nothing is clearer in this tract than its limitations. The French colonists as late as 1425 seem to know nothing of the African coast beyond Cape Bojador; they look upon the Canaries rather as an extension of Spain and of Europe than as the beginning of a new world. They are anxious to get to the River of Gold and traffic there, but they do not know the way, save by report. De Béthencourt had been to Bojador himself, and "if things in that country are such as they are described in the Book of the Spanish Friar," he meant to open a way to the River[Pg 112] of Gold, for, the Friar says, "it is only one hundred and fifty leagues from Cape Bojador, and the map proves the same—which is only a three days' voyage for sailing boats—whereby access would be gained to the land of Prester John, whence come so many riches." But as yet our Normans are only "eager to know the state of the neighbouring countries, both islands and terra firma:" they do not know the coast beyond the "Utmost Cape" of Bojador, which had taken the place of the first Arab Finisterre, Cape Non,[28] Nun, or Nam, as the limit of navigation.

But nothing is clearer in this document than its limitations. The French colonists as late as 1425 seem to know nothing of the African coast beyond Cape Bojador; they consider the Canaries more as an extension of Spain and Europe than as the start of a new world. They are eager to reach the River of Gold and trade there, but they only know the way through hearsay. De Béthencourt had traveled to Bojador himself, and "if things in that country are as the Book of the Spanish Friar describes," he intended to find a route to the River of Gold, for the Friar says, "it is only one hundred and fifty leagues from Cape Bojador, and the map confirms this—which is just a three days' voyage for sailing boats—allowing access to the land of Prester John, from which so many riches come." But for now, our Normans are only "eager to learn about the condition of the neighboring countries, both islands and terra firma:" they do not know the coast beyond the "Utmost Cape" of Bojador, which has replaced the first Arab Finisterre, Cape Non,[28] Nun, or Nam, as the limit of navigation.

We are now at the very time of Prince Henry himself; his first voyage was in 1412. De Béthencourt died in 1425, and it is quite needless to follow out at length the stories, however interesting, of sporadic navigation in other parts of the European Seas. Between 1380-95 the Venetian Zeni sailed in the service of Henry Sinclair, Earl of the Orkneys, to Greenland, and brought back fisher stories, which read like those of Central America, of its man-eating Caribs and splendid barbarism. Somewhat earlier, about 1349, Ivar Bardsen of Norway paid one of the last of Christian visits to the Arctic colonies of Greenland, the legacy of the eleventh century, now sinking into ruin; but neither of these voyages gives us any new knowledge of the Unknown which was[Pg 113] now being pierced, not from the North and East, but from the South and West.

We are now at the precise time of Prince Henry himself; his first voyage happened in 1412. De Béthencourt passed away in 1425, and it’s unnecessary to delve deeply into the stories, no matter how interesting, of sporadic navigation in other areas of the European Seas. Between 1380 and 1395, the Venetian Zeni sailed under Henry Sinclair, Earl of the Orkneys, to Greenland and brought back fishing tales that are reminiscent of Central America, featuring its man-eating Caribs and remarkable savagery. A bit earlier, around 1349, Ivar Bardsen from Norway made one of the last Christian visits to the Arctic colonies of Greenland, a heritage from the eleventh century, now falling into decay; however, neither of these voyages provides us with any new insights into the Unknown that was[Pg 113] now being explored, not from the North and East, but from the South and West.

Both in land travel and sea voyages we have traced the progress of Western exploration and discovery up to its Hero, the real central figure both in the history of Portugal and of the European expansion. A little remains to be said on the other lines of preparation for his work in scientific theory and national development from the Age of the Crusades.

Both in land travel and sea voyages, we have followed the advancements of Western exploration and discovery up to its hero, the true central figure in both the history of Portugal and European expansion. There’s just a bit left to mention about the other aspects of preparation for his work in scientific theory and national development since the Age of the Crusades.

decorative illustration

decorative illustration


decorative illustration

decorative illustration

CHAPTER V.

GEOGRAPHICAL SCIENCE IN CHRISTENDOM FROM THE FIRST CRUSADES.

CIRCA 1100-1460.

Before the Crusades of the eleventh and twelfth centuries, the scientific geography of Christendom, as we have seen, was mainly a borrowed thing. From the ninth century to the time of the Mediæval and Christian Renaissance, in the eleventh, twelfth, and thirteenth centuries, the Arabs were the recognised heirs of Greek science, and what Franks or Latins knew of Ptolemy or Strabo was either learnt or corrected in the schools of Cordova and Bagdad.

BBefore the Crusades of the eleventh and twelfth centuries, the scientific geography of Christendom, as we've seen, was mostly borrowed. From the ninth century until the Medieval and Christian Renaissance in the eleventh, twelfth, and thirteenth centuries, the Arabs were recognized as the rightful heirs of Greek science, and whatever the Franks or Latins knew about Ptolemy or Strabo was either learned or corrected in the schools of Cordova and Baghdad.

But when the Northmen and the Holy War with Islam had once thoroughly aroused the practical energies of Christendom, it began to expand in mind as well as in empire, and in the time of Prince Henry, in the fifteenth century, a Portuguese could say: "Our discoveries of coasts and islands and mainland were not made without foresight and knowledge. For our sailors went out very well[Pg 115] taught, and furnished with instruments and rules of astrology and geometry, things which all mariners and map-makers must know."

But when the Norsemen and the Holy War against Islam had fully energized Christendom, it began to grow in both knowledge and territory. During the time of Prince Henry in the fifteenth century, a Portuguese person could say: "Our discoveries of coasts, islands, and mainland were made with careful planning and knowledge. Our sailors set out very well[Pg 115] trained and equipped with tools and principles of astrology and geometry, which are things that all sailors and mapmakers need to know."

THE WORLD ACCORDING TO MARINO SANUTO. C. 1306.

THE WORLD ACCORDING TO MARINO SANUTO. C. 1306.

THE WORLD ACCORDING TO MARINO SANUTO. C. 1306.
(see list of maps)

THE WORLD ACCORDING TO MARINO SANUTO. C. 1306.
(see list of maps)

In fact, compass, astrolabe, timepiece, and charts, were all in use on the Mediterranean about 1400, just as they were to be found among the Arab traders of the Indian Ocean.

In fact, the compass, astrolabe, clock, and maps were all being used in the Mediterranean around 1400, just like they were among the Arab traders in the Indian Ocean.

In this section it will be enough to glance hastily at the later and growingly independent science of Christendom, from the time that it ceased merely to follow the lead of Islam, and thought and even invented for itself. In another chapter we have seen something of the lasting and penetrating influence of Greek and Moslem and Hindu tradition upon the Western thought, which has conquered by absorbing all its rivals; we must not forget that some original self-reliant work in geographical theory not less than in practical exploration is absolutely needed to explain the very fact of Prince Henry and his life—a student's life, far more even than a statesman's. And after all, the invention of instruments, the drawing of maps and globes, the reckoning of distances, is not less practical than the most daring and successful travel. For navigation, the first and prime demand is a means of safety, some power of knowing where you stand and where to go, such as was given to sailors by the use of the magnet.

In this section, it will be enough to quickly look at the later and increasingly independent science of the Western world, from the time it stopped just following Islam’s lead and started to think and invent for itself. In another chapter, we’ve seen a bit about the lasting and deep influence of Greek, Muslim, and Hindu traditions on Western thought, which has triumphed by absorbing all its rivals. We must remember that some original, self-reliant work in geographical theory, as well as in practical exploration, is essential to explain the very existence of Prince Henry and his life—a student’s life, much more than a statesman’s. After all, the invention of instruments, the creation of maps and globes, and the calculation of distances are just as practical as the boldest and most successful travels. For navigation, the primary need is for safety, some ability to know where you are and where to go, like what sailors gained from using the magnet.

"Prima dedit nautis usum magnetis Amalphis," says Beccadelli of Palermo, but the earliest mention of the "Black ugly stone" in the West is traced to an Englishman. Alexander Neckam, a monk of St.[Pg 116] Albans, writing about 1180 on "The Natures Of Things," tells us of it as commonly used by sailors, not merely as the secret of the learned. "When they cannot see the sun clearly in cloudy weather, or at night, and cannot tell which way their prow is tending, they put a Needle above a Magnet which revolves till its point looks North and then stops." So the satirist, Guyot de Provins, in his Bible of about 1210, wishes the Pope were as safe a point to steer by in Faith as the North Star in sailing, "which mariners can keep ahead of them, without sight of it, only by the pointing of a needle floating on a straw in water, once touched by the Magnet."

"First, the sailors got to use the magnet from Amalfi," says Beccadelli of Palermo, but the earliest reference to the "Black ugly stone" in the West comes from an Englishman. Alexander Neckam, a monk of St.[Pg 116] Albans, wrote around 1180 in "The Natures Of Things," describing it as something commonly used by sailors, not just a secret known by scholars. "When they're unable to see the sun clearly in cloudy weather, or at night, and can’t determine which way their boat is heading, they place a needle above a magnet that spins until its tip points North and then stops." Similarly, the satirist Guyot de Provins, in his Bible from about 1210, wishes that the Pope were as reliable a guide in Faith as the North Star is for sailors, "which mariners can keep ahead of them, without seeing it, just by the direction of a needle floating on a straw in water, once influenced by the Magnet."

It might be supposed from this not merely that the magnet was in use at the end of the twelfth century, but that it had been known to a few savants much earlier; yet when Dante's tutor, Brunetto Latini, visits Roger Bacon at Oxford about 1258, and is shown the black stone, he speaks of it as new and wonderful, but certain, if used, to awake suspicion of magic. "It has the power of drawing iron to it, and if a needle be rubbed upon it and fastened to a straw so as to swim upon water, the needle will instantly turn towards the Pole-Star. But no master mariner could use this, nor would the sailors venture themselves to sea under his command if he took an instrument so like one of infernal make."

It might be assumed from this not just that the magnet was used at the end of the twelfth century, but that a few scholars had known about it much earlier; yet when Dante's teacher, Brunetto Latini, visits Roger Bacon at Oxford around 1258 and is shown the black stone, he describes it as new and amazing, but certainly, if used, it would raise suspicions of magic. "It has the ability to attract iron to it, and if a needle is rubbed on it and attached to a straw to float on water, the needle will immediately point towards the North Star. But no skilled sailor could use this, nor would the crew dare to set sail under his command if he used an instrument that looks so much like something from the underworld."

SKETCH-MAP OF DULCERT'S PORTOLANO OF 1339.

SKETCH-MAP OF DULCERT'S PORTOLANO OF 1339.

SKETCH-MAP OF DULCERT'S PORTOLANO OF 1339.
(see list of maps)

SKETCH-MAP OF DULCERT'S PORTOLANO OF 1339.
(see list of maps)

It was possibly after this that the share of Amalphi came in; it may have been Flavio Gioja, or some other citizen of that earliest commercial republic[Pg 117] of the Middle Ages, which filled up so large a part of the gap between two great ages of progress, who fitted the magnet into a box, and by connecting it with the compass-card, made it generally and easily available. This it certainly was before Prince Henry's earliest voyages, where he takes its use for granted even by merchant coasters, "who, beyond hugging the shore, know nothing of chart or needle." In any case it would seem that prejudice was broken down, and the mariner's compass taken into favour, at least by Italian seamen and their Spanish apprentices, in the early years of the fourteenth century, or the last years of the thirteenth, and that when the Dorias set out for India by the ocean way in 1291, and the Lisbon fleet sailed for the western islands in 1341, they had some sort of natural guide with them, besides the stories of travellers and their own imaginings. About the same time (c. 1350) mathematics and astronomy began to be studied in Portugal, and two of Henry's brothers, King Edward and the Great Regent Pedro, left a name for observations and scientific research. Thus Pedro, in his travels through most of Christendom, collected invaluable materials for discovery, especially an original of Marco Polo and a map given him at Venice, "which had all the parts of the earth described, whereby Prince Henry was much furthered."

It was probably after this that the share from Amalphi came in; it might have been Flavio Gioja, or another citizen from that early commercial republic[Pg 117] of the Middle Ages, which bridged a significant gap between two major eras of progress, who fitted the magnet into a box and, by connecting it to the compass card, made it widely and easily accessible. This certainly happened before Prince Henry's earliest voyages, where he assumes its use by merchant coastal sailors, "who, beyond hugging the shore, know nothing of chart or needle." In any case, it seems that prejudice against the mariner's compass was overcome, and it gained acceptance, at least among Italian sailors and their Spanish apprentices, in the early years of the fourteenth century or the late years of the thirteenth, so that when the Dorias set out for India via ocean routes in 1291, and the Lisbon fleet sailed for the western islands in 1341, they had some sort of natural guide with them, in addition to the stories of travelers and their own imaginations. Around the same time (c. 1350), mathematics and astronomy started being studied in Portugal, and two of Henry's brothers, King Edward and the Great Regent Pedro, became known for their observations and scientific research. Thus, Pedro, during his travels across much of Christendom, gathered invaluable materials for exploration, especially an original of Marco Polo and a map he received in Venice, "which had all the parts of the earth described, thereby greatly aiding Prince Henry."

Good maps indeed were almost as valuable to him as good instruments, and they are far clearer landmarks of geographical knowledge. There are at least seven famous charts (either left to us or described[Pg 118] for us) of the fourteenth and early fifteenth centuries, which give a pretty clear idea of what Henry's own age and his father's thought and knew of the world—some of which we believe to have been used by the Prince himself, and each of which follows some advance in actual exploration.

Good maps were almost as valuable to him as good instruments, and they are much clearer markers of geographical knowledge. There are at least seven famous maps (either left to us or described[Pg 118] for us) from the fourteenth and early fifteenth centuries, which provide a pretty clear idea of what Henry's own time and his father's thought and knew about the world—some of which we believe the Prince himself used, and each of which reflects some progress in actual exploration.

First of all comes the Venetian map of Marino Sanuto, drawn about 1306, and putting into map-form the ideas that inspired the first Italian voyages in the Atlantic. On this the south of Africa is washed by the sea as the Vivaldi had hoped to find it, but the old story of a central zone "uninhabitable from the heat" still finds a place, helping to keep up the notion of the Tropical Seas, "always kept boiling by the sun," that held its own so long. Besides this, in Sanuto's map there is no evidence that anyone had really been coasting Africa; Henry is not anticipated and can hardly have been much helped by this very hypothetical leap in the dark.

First of all, there’s the Venetian map by Marino Sanuto, created around 1306, which visually represents the ideas that drove the first Italian voyages across the Atlantic. On this map, the southern part of Africa is surrounded by ocean, just as the Vivaldi explorers hoped to find it, but the old story about a central zone being "uninhabitable from the heat" still appears, helping to maintain the idea of the Tropical Seas, "constantly boiling under the sun," that persisted for so long. Additionally, Sanuto’s map shows no signs that anyone had actually sailed along the coast of Africa; Henry's explorations aren't considered, and he likely wouldn’t have gained much from this very speculative guesswork.

But the Florentine map of 1351, called the Laurentian Portolano, is to all appearance a record of the actual discoveries of 1341 and 1346, and a wonderful triumph of guess-work if it is nothing better. For Africa is not only made an island, but the main outline of its coast is fairly drawn; in its western corner the headlands, bays, and rivers are laid down as far as Bojador, and the three groups of Atlantic islands, Azores, Canaries, and Madeira, appear together for the first time. Beyond this names grow scarce, and on the great indent of the Gulf of Guinea, enormously exaggerated as it is, there is nothing to show for certain any past[Pg 119] discovery, which suggests that this map was made for two purposes. First, to record the results of recent travel; secondly, and chiefly, to put forward geographical theories based upon tradition and inference, what men of old had told and what men of the present could fancy.

But the Florentine map of 1351, known as the Laurentian Portolano, appears to be a record of the actual discoveries from 1341 and 1346, and it’s an impressive feat of guessing if it's nothing more. Africa is depicted as an island, and its coastlines are fairly outlined; in its western corner, the headlands, bays, and rivers are marked as far as Bojador, and for the first time, the three groups of Atlantic islands—Azores, Canaries, and Madeira—are shown together. Beyond this point, names become scarce, and along the large indentation of the Gulf of Guinea, which is greatly exaggerated, there is nothing to confirm any earlier[Pg 119] discoveries, suggesting that this map was created for two main reasons. First, to document the results of recent journeys; and second, primarily, to present geographical theories based on tradition and speculation—what ancient people had said and what people today could imagine.

Long after the Italian leadership in exploration had passed westward, Italian science kept control of geographical theory; the Venetian maps of the brothers Pizzigani in 1367, and of the Camaldolese convent at Murano in 1380 and 1459, and the work of Andrea Bianco in 1436 and 1448, are the most important of mediæval charts, after the Laurentian, and along with these must be reckoned that mentioned above as given in 1425-8 to Henry's brother, Don Pedro, on his visit to Venice. This treasure has disappeared, but it was said by men of Henry's day and aftertime, who saw it in the monastery of Alçobaça, to show "as much or more discovered in time past than now." If their account is even an approach to the truth, it was in itself proof sufficient of the supremacy and almost monopoly of Italians in geographical theory.

Long after Italy had lost its lead in exploration to the west, Italian science still dominated geographic theory. The Venetian maps created by the Pizzigani brothers in 1367, along with those from the Camaldolese convent at Murano in 1380 and 1459, as well as Andrea Bianco's work from 1436 and 1448, are the most significant medieval maps after the Laurentian. Additionally, we should also consider the map mentioned earlier that was given to Henry's brother, Don Pedro, during his visit to Venice in 1425-8. This treasure has since vanished, but people in Henry's time and later, who saw it in the monastery of Alçobaça, claimed it displayed "as much or more discovered in the past than now." If their account holds even a fraction of the truth, it serves as clear evidence of the supremacy and near-monopoly of Italians in geographic theory.

With 1375 and the Catalan map of that year, which specially refers to the Catalan voyage of 1346 and may be taken as one result of the same, we come to Spanish parallels; but until the death of Henry in 1460, Italian draughtsmen were in possession, and Fra Mauro's great map of 1459, the evidence and result, in great measure, of the Navigator's work, could only be drawn by Venetians for the men whose discoveries it recorded.[Pg 120]

With 1375 and the Catalan map from that year, which specifically references the Catalan voyage of 1346 and can be seen as a result of it, we arrive at Spanish parallels; however, until Henry's death in 1460, Italian draftsmen held the reins. Fra Mauro's great map of 1459, which is largely based on the Navigator's work, could only be created by Venetians for the people whose discoveries it documented.[Pg 120]

But there is one other point in Italian map-science which is worth remembering. At a time when most schemes of the world were covered with monsters and legends, when cartography was half mythical and half miscalculated, the coasting voyagers of the Mediterranean had brought their Portolani or sea charts to a very different result. And how was this? Did they get right, as it were, by chance? "They never had for their object," says the great Swedish explorer and draughtsman, Baron Nordenskjold, "to illustrate the ideas of some classical author, of some learned prelate, or the legends and dreams of feats of Chivalry within the Court circle of some more or less lettered feudal lord." They were simply guides to mariners and merchants in the Mediterranean seaports; they were seldom drawn by learned men, and small enough, in return, was the attention given them by the learned geographers, the men of theory, in the fifteenth and sixteenth centuries.

But there’s one more thing in Italian map-making that’s worth noting. At a time when most world maps were filled with monsters and legends, when cartography was mostly mythical and partly inaccurate, the coastal travelers of the Mediterranean had created their Portolani or sea charts to a very different outcome. How did they do this? Was it all just luck? “They never aimed,” says the great Swedish explorer and mapmaker, Baron Nordenskjold, “to reflect the ideas of some classical author, some learned bishop, or the legends and fantasies of chivalric feats within the court circle of some more or less educated feudal lord.” They were simply practical guides for sailors and merchants in Mediterranean ports; they were rarely made by scholars, and the academic geographers—the theoretical thinkers—of the fifteenth and sixteenth centuries paid them little attention.

But these plans of practical seamen are a wonderful contrast in their almost present-day accuracy to the results of theory let loose, as we see them in Ptolemy and the Arabian geographers, and in such fantastics as the Hereford Mappa Mundi, so well known in England. Map-sketches of this sort, were unknown to Greeks and Romans, as far as we can tell. The old Peripli were sailing directions, not drawn but written, and the only Arabian coast-chart known to us was copied from an Italian one. But from the opening of the twelfth century, if not before, the western Mediterranean was known to Christian seamen—to those at least concerned in the trade and[Pg 121] intercourse of the great inland sea,—by the help of these practical guides.

But these practical plans from experienced sailors show a striking contrast in their almost contemporary accuracy compared to the theories we see in Ptolemy and the Arabian geographers, as well as in fanciful maps like the Hereford Mappa Mundi, which is quite famous in England. Sketch maps like this were unknown to the Greeks and Romans, as far as we can tell. The old Peripli were written sailing directions, not drawn, and the only known Arabian coast chart was copied from an Italian one. However, beginning in the early twelfth century, if not earlier, Christian sailors—especially those involved in the trade and[Pg 121] commerce of the great inland sea—were familiar with the western Mediterranean thanks to these practical guides.

THE LAURENTIAN PORTOLANO OF 1351.

THE LAURENTIAN PORTOLANO OF 1351.

THE LAURENTIAN PORTOLANO OF 1351.
(see list of maps)

THE LAURENTIAN PORTOLANO OF 1351.
(see list of maps)

From the middle of the thirteenth century, when the use of the compass began on the coasts of southern Europe, the Portolani began to be drawn with its aid, and by the end of the same century, by the time of our Hereford map (c. 1300), these charts had reached the finish that we see and admire in those left to us from the fourteenth century. For, of the 498 specimens of this kind of practical map now left to us, there is not one of earlier date than the year 1311. Among these specimens not merely the mass of materials, but the most important examples, not merely 413 out of 498, but all the more famous and perfect of the 498 are Italian. The course begins with Vesconte's chart, of the year 1311, and with Dulcert's of 1339, and the outlines of these two are faithfully reproduced, for instance, in the great Dutch map of the Barentszoons (c. 1594), for the type once fixed in the fourteenth century, recurs steadily throughout the fifteenth, and sixteenth. The type was so permanent because it was so reliable; every part of the Mediterranean coast was sketched without serious mistake or disproportion, even from a modern point of view, while the fulness and detail of the work gave everything that was wanted by practical seamen. Of course this detail was in the coast lines, river mouths, and promontories; it only touched the land features as they touched the seas. For the Portolani were never meant to be more than mariners' charts, and became less and less trustworthy if they tried to fill up the inland spaces usually left blank.[Pg 122] For this, we must look to the highest class of mediæval theoretical maps, those founded on Portolani, but taking into their view land as well as water and coast line. And such were the celebrated examples[29] we have noticed already.

From the mid-thirteenth century, when the compass started being used along the southern European coasts, the Portolani maps began to be created with its help. By the end of the same century, around the time of our Hereford map (c. 1300), these charts had developed into the impressive forms we see and admire in the examples from the fourteenth century that have survived. Of the 498 known practical maps that remain, not a single one dates earlier than 1311. Among these examples, not only the majority of materials but also the key pieces—413 out of 498, including all the most notable and complete ones—are Italian. The sequence starts with Vesconte's chart from 1311 and Dulcert's from 1339, and the outlines of these two are faithfully replicated, for instance, in the major Dutch map by the Barentszoons (c. 1594). The style established in the fourteenth century continued to appear consistently throughout the fifteenth and sixteenth centuries. This style remained so prevalent because it was highly dependable; every section of the Mediterranean coast was depicted accurately, even by today's standards, with the detail and thoroughness providing everything practical sailors needed. This detail focused primarily on coastlines, river mouths, and promontories and only briefly addressed land features where they met the sea. Portolani were never intended to be more than navigational charts, and they became less reliable when they attempted to fill in the inland areas that were usually left blank.[Pg 122] For that, we need to look at the highest quality medieval theoretical maps, which were based on Portolani but included both land and water in their scope. And those were the celebrated examples[29] we have already mentioned.


Note.—It was a man of theory, Raymond Lulli (1235-1315), of Majorca, the famous Alchemist, who is credited with the first suggestion of the idea of seeking a way to India by rounding Africa on the West and South.

Notice.—It was a theorist, Raymond Lulli (1235-1315), from Majorca, the well-known Alchemist, who is recognized for being the first to suggest finding a route to India by navigating around Africa from the West and South.

decorative illustration

decorative illustration


decorative illustration

decorative illustration

CHAPTER VI.

PORTUGAL TO 1400.

1095-1400.

Henry the Navigator is the Hero of Portugal, as well as of discovery, the chief figure in his country's history, as well as the first leader of the great European expansion; and the national growth of three hundred years is quite as much a part of his life, quite as much a cause of his forward movement, as the growth of Christendom towards a living interest in the unknown or half-known world around.

HHenry the Navigator is a national hero of Portugal and a key figure in exploration, playing a central role in his country's history and being the first leader of the major European expansion. The national development over three hundred years is just as much tied to his life and motivations as the rise of Christianity's engagement with the unknown or partially known world around them.

The chief points of interest in the story of Portugal are first the stubborn restless independence of the people, always rising into fresh vigour after a seeming overthrow, and secondly their instinct for seamanship, which Henry was able to train into exploring and colonising genius. There was no physical justice in the separate nationality of the Western Kingdom of Lisbon any more than of the Eastern Kingdom of Barcelona. Portugal[30] was essentially part of Spain, as the United Provinces of William of[Pg 124] Orange were essentially part of the Netherlands; in both cases it was only the spirit and endurance of the race that gave to some provincials the right to become a people, while that right was denied to others.

The main points of interest in the story of Portugal are, first, the stubborn and restless independence of its people, who always bounce back with renewed strength after a setback, and second, their natural talent for seamanship, which Henry was able to develop into a talent for exploration and colonization. There was no real justification for the separate nationality of the Western Kingdom of Lisbon any more than there was for the Eastern Kingdom of Barcelona. Portugal[30] was fundamentally part of Spain, just as the United Provinces of William of[Pg 124] Orange were fundamentally part of the Netherlands; in both instances, it was only the spirit and resilience of the people that allowed some regions to become recognized as a distinct nation, while that same recognition was denied to others.

And Portugal gained that right by a struggle of three hundred years, which was first a crusade against Islam; then a war of independence against brother Christians of Castille; last of all a civil strife against rebels and anarchists within.

And Portugal earned that right through a struggle of three hundred years, which began as a crusade against Islam; then a war of independence against fellow Christians from Castile; and finally a civil conflict against rebels and anarchists from within.

In the twelfth century the five kingdoms of Spain were clearly marked off from the Moslem States and from one another; by the end of the fifteenth there is only the great central Realm of Ferdinand and Isabella, and the little western coast-kingdom of Emanuel the Fortunate, the heir of Prince Henry. Nations are among our best examples of the survival of the fittest, and by the side of Poland and Aragon we may well see a meaning in the bare and tiresome story of the mediæval kingdom of Portugal. The very fact of separate existence means something for a people which has kept on ruling itself for ten generations. Though its territory was never more than one fourth of the peninsula, nor its numbers more than one third of the Spanish race—from the middle of the twelfth century, Portugal has stood alone, with less right to such independence from any distinction of place or blood, than Ireland or Navarre, fighting incessantly against foes without, from north, east, and south, and keeping down the still worse foes of its own household.

In the twelve hundreds, the five kingdoms of Spain were clearly separated from the Muslim states and from each other; by the end of the fifteen hundreds, there was only the major central realm of Ferdinand and Isabella, along with the small western coastal kingdom of Emanuel the Fortunate, the heir of Prince Henry. Nations provide some of our best examples of survival of the fittest, and alongside Poland and Aragon, we can find meaning in the dull and tedious history of the medieval kingdom of Portugal. The mere fact of existing separately signifies something for a people that has managed to govern itself for ten generations. Although its land was never more than a quarter of the peninsula, nor its population more than a third of the Spanish population—since the middle of the twelve hundreds, Portugal has remained independent, with less justification for this independence based on geography or heritage than Ireland or Navarre, constantly battling external foes from the north, east, and south, while also suppressing the even greater enemies within its own borders.

N.W. SECTION OF THE CATALAN MAP OF 1375-6.

N.W. SECTION OF THE CATALAN MAP OF 1375-6.

N.W. SECTION OF THE CATALAN MAP OF 1375-6.
(see list of maps)

N.W. SECTION OF THE CATALAN MAP OF 1375-6.
(see list of maps)

But the meaning of the growth of the Portuguese power is not in its isolation, its stubbornly defended[Pg 125] national distinction from all other powers, but in its central and as it were unifying position in modern history—as the guide of Europe and Christendom into that larger world which marks the real difference between the Middle Ages and our own day.

But the significance of the rise of Portuguese power isn't in its isolation or its fiercely protected[Pg 125] unique identity compared to other nations. Instead, it lies in its central and unifying role in modern history—serving as the guide for Europe and Christendom into the broader world that signifies the true distinction between the Middle Ages and today.

For Henry the Navigator breathed into his countrymen the spirit of the old Norse rovers, that boundless appetite for new knowledge, new pleasures, new sights and sounds, which underlay the exploration of the fifteenth and sixteenth centuries—the exploration of one half of the world's surface, the finding of a new continent in the south and in the west, and the opening of the great sea-routes round the globe. The scientific effects of this, starting from the new proof of a round world won by a Portuguese seaman, Magellan; and the political effects, also beginning with the first of modern colonial empires, founded by Da Gama, Cabral, and Albuquerque, are too widespread for more than a passing reference in this place, but this reference must be connected with the true author of the movement. For if the industrial element rules modern development; if the philosophy of utility, as expressing this element, is now our guide in war and peace; and if the substitution of this for the military spirit[31] is to be dated from that dominion in the Indian seas which realised the designs of Henry—if this be so, the Portuguese become to us, through him, something like the founders of our commercial civilisation, and of the European empire in Asia.

For Henry the Navigator inspired his fellow countrymen with the adventurous spirit of the old Norse explorers—a relentless pursuit for new knowledge, experiences, and sights—that drove the explorations of the 15th and 16th centuries. This era marked the discovery of half the world's surface, the finding of new continents in the south and west, and the establishment of major sea routes around the globe. The scientific outcomes of this, beginning with the evidence of a round world provided by the Portuguese sailor Magellan, and the political outcomes, starting with the modern colonial empires established by Da Gama, Cabral, and Albuquerque, are extensive enough that we can only briefly mention them here. However, this mention must link back to the true driving force behind the movement. If industrial factors shape modern development; if the philosophy of utility, embodying this element, now guides us in both war and peace; and if we can trace the replacement of military spirit to that dominion in the Indian seas, which fulfilled Henry's vision—then the Portuguese, through him, become akin to the founders of our commercial civilization and the European empire in Asia.

By the opening years of the fifteenth century, Portugal—in a Catholic rather than a Classical Renaissance—had already entered upon its modern life, some three generations before the rest of Christendom. But its mediæval history is very much like that of any other of the Five Spanish Kingdoms. Like the rest, Portugal had joined in driving the Moors from the Asturias to Andalusia, in the two hundred years of successful Western Crusade (1001-1212). In the same time, between the death of the great vizier Almanzor, the last support of the old Western Caliphate (1001), and the overthrow of the African Moors, who had supplanted that Western Caliphate,—between those two points of Moslem triumph and Christian reaction, the Portuguese kingdom had been formed out of the County granted in 1095 by Alfonso VI. of Leon to the free-lance Henry of Burgundy.

By the early 15th century, Portugal—instead of experiencing a Classical Renaissance, was already embracing its modern era, about three generations before the rest of Europe. However, its medieval history closely resembles that of the other Five Spanish Kingdoms. Like the others, Portugal participated in pushing the Moors from Asturias to Andalusia during the two hundred years of successful Western Crusades (1001-1212). During the same period, from the death of the great vizier Almanzor, the last supporter of the old Western Caliphate (1001), to the defeat of the African Moors, who had taken over the Western Caliphate—between these two moments of Muslim dominance and Christian resurgence, the Portuguese kingdom was established from the County granted in 1095 by Alfonso VI of Leon to the mercenary Henry of Burgundy.

For the next three hundred years (1095-1383), under his descendants who reigned as kings in Guimaraëns or Lisbon, we may trace a gradual but chequered national rise, to the Revolution of 1383 with two prominent movements of expansion and two relapses of contraction and decline.

For the next three hundred years (1095-1383), under his descendants who ruled as kings in Guimaraëns or Lisbon, we can observe a slow but uneven national growth, leading up to the Revolution of 1383, marked by two major expansion phases and two downfalls of contraction and decline.

First comes the formation of a national spirit by Count Henry's widow Donna Theresa and her son Affonso Henriquez, who from a Lord of Coimbra and Oporto, dependent on the Kingdom of Gallicia or of Leon, becomes the first free King of Portugal. His victories over the Moors in taking Lisbon (1147) and winning the day of Ourique (1139), are followed by the first wars with Castille and by the time of quiet[Pg 127] organisation in his last years under the regency of his son Sancho, the City Builder. The building and planting of Sancho is again followed by the first relapse, into the weakness of Affonso II., and the turbulent minority of Sancho II. Constitutional troubles begin with the First Sancho's quarrel with Innocent III. and with the appearance of the first national Cortés under Chancellor Julian.

First, we see the emergence of a national spirit led by Count Henry's widow, Donna Theresa, and her son Affonso Henriquez. He transitions from being a Lord of Coimbra and Oporto, subject to the Kingdom of Galicia or Leon, to becoming the first free King of Portugal. His victories against the Moors in capturing Lisbon (1147) and winning the Battle of Ourique (1139) are succeeded by the initial conflicts with Castile, followed by a period of stability[Pg 127] under the regency of his son Sancho, known as the City Builder. Sancho’s construction and development efforts lead to a setback during the weakened reign of Affonso II and the tumultuous early years of Sancho II. The beginnings of constitutional issues arise from the First Sancho's dispute with Innocent III and the formation of the first national Cortés under Chancellor Julian.

The second forward movement starts with Affonso III., "of Boulogne," who saves the kingdom from anarchy and conquers the Algarves, on the south coast, from Islam; who first organises the alliance of Crown and people against nobles and clergy, and, in the strength of this, defies the interdict of Urban IV.

The second forward movement begins with Affonso III, "of Boulogne," who saves the kingdom from chaos and conquers the Algarve region on the southern coast from Islam; he is the first to unite the Crown and the people against the nobles and clergy, and with this strength, he stands against the interdict of Urban IV.

Diniz, his bastard son, for whose legitimation he had made this same struggle with Rome, follows Affonso III., in 1279, and with him begins the wider life of Portugal, her navy and her literature, her agriculture, justice, and commerce.

Diniz, his illegitimate son, for whose legitimation he had fought so hard with Rome, succeeded Affonso III in 1279, marking the start of a broader era for Portugal, including its navy and literature, agriculture, justice, and trade.

The second relapse may be dated from the Black Death (1348), which threatened the very life of the nation, and left behind a sort of chronic weakness. National spirit seemed worn out; Court intrigue and political disaster the order of the day; the Church and Cortés alike effete and useful only against themselves.

The second relapse can be traced back to the Black Death (1348), which threatened the very existence of the nation and left a lasting sense of weakness. The national spirit appeared drained; court intrigue and political disasters were the norm; both the Church and Cortés seemed ineffective, only serving to undermine themselves.

But in the revival under a new leader, John, the father of Prince Henry, and a new dynasty—the House of Aviz—and its "Royal Race of Famous Infants," in the years that follow the Revolution of 1383, the older religious and crusading fervour is[Pg 128] joined with the new spirit of enterprise, of fierce activity, and the Portugal thus called into being is a great State because the whole nation shares in the life and energy of a more than recovered liberty.

But in the revival under a new leader, John, the father of Prince Henry, and a new dynasty—the House of Aviz—and its "Royal Race of Famous Infants," during the years following the Revolution of 1383, the older religious and crusading passion is[Pg 128] combined with a new spirit of enterprise and intense activity. The Portugal that emerges is a great nation because the entire population engages in the life and energy of a fully restored freedom.

Before the age of King Diniz, before the fourteenth century, there is little enough in the national story to suggest the first state-profession of discovery and exploration in Christian history. But we must bring together a few of the suggestive and prophetic incidents of the earlier time, if we are to be fully prepared for the later.

Before King Diniz's reign, prior to the fourteenth century, there's not much in the national narrative that highlights the initial formal endeavor of discovery and exploration in Christian history. However, we need to compile some notable and prophetic events from that earlier period to be completely ready for what comes next.

(1.) Oporto, the "port" of Gallicia, from the formation of the county or "march" of Henry of Burgundy, seems to have given the district its name of "Portugallia," at one time as a military frontier against Islam, then as an independent State, lastly as an imperial Kingdom. Also, as the earliest centre of Portugal was a harbour, and its earliest border a river, there was a sort of natural, though slumbering, fitness for seamanship in the people.

(1.) Oporto, the "port" of Galicia, has likely given the region its name "Portugallia" since the time of the count or "march" of Henry of Burgundy. It started as a military boundary against Islam, then became an independent state, and finally an imperial kingdom. Additionally, since the earliest center of Portugal was a harbor and its first border was a river, there was a natural, though dormant, inclination towards seafaring in the people.

(2.) Again, in the alliance of the Crown with the towns, first formed by Count Henry's wife Theresa in her regency after his death, 1114-28, and renewed by her grandson Sancho, the City Builder, and by Affonso III., the "Saviour of the Kingdom," we have an early example of the power of that class, which was the backbone of the great movement of expansion, when the meaning of this was fairly brought home to them.

(2.) Once again, in the partnership between the Crown and the towns, initially established by Count Henry's wife Theresa during her regency after his death, 1114-28, and revived by her grandson Sancho, the City Builder, and by Affonso III., the "Savior of the Kingdom," we see an early example of the strength of that class, which was the backbone of the significant movement of expansion, when they truly understood what it meant.

(3.) In the capture of Lisbon, in 1147, by Affonso Henriquez, Theresa's son, at the head of the allied forces of native militia and northern Crusaders—Flemish,[Pg 129] French, German, and English—we have brought clearly before us, not merely the facts of the gain of a really great city by a rising Christian State, not merely the result of this in the formation of a kingdom out of a county, but the more general connection of the crusading spirit with the new nations of Europe. Portugal is the most lasting monument of crusading energy; it was this that strengthened the "Lusitanians" to make good their stand both against the Moors and against Castille; and it was this which brought out the maritime bent of the little western kingdom, and drew out its interest on the one and only side where that could be of great and general usefulness. The Crusades without and the policy of statesmen within, we may fairly say, made the Portuguese ready to lead the expansion of Christendom, made possible the work of Henry the Navigator. The foreign help given at Lisbon in 1147 was only a repetition on a grand scale of what had long been done on a smaller, and it was offered again and again till the final conquest of the southern districts, between Cape St. Vincent and the Guadiana (c. 1250), left the European kingdom fully formed, and the recovery of Western Spain from the Moslem had been achieved.

(3.) In 1147, Affonso Henriquez, the son of Theresa, led a coalition of local militias and northern Crusaders—Flemish, French, German, and English—to capture Lisbon. This event highlights not just the significant achievement of a burgeoning Christian State securing a major city, and not just the establishment of a kingdom from a county, but also the broader connection between the crusading spirit and the emerging nations of Europe. Portugal stands as the most enduring testament to the energy of the Crusades; it empowered the "Lusitanians" to defend against both the Moors and Castille. It also stimulated the little western kingdom's maritime focus, directing its interests toward areas of significant and widespread importance. The Crusades abroad and the strategies of local leaders, we can say, prepared the Portuguese to spearhead the expansion of Christendom, paving the way for the endeavors of Henry the Navigator. The foreign assistance at Lisbon in 1147 was merely a large-scale version of what had previously occurred on a smaller scale, and it was offered repeatedly until the complete conquest of the southern regions, between Cape St. Vincent and the Guadiana (c. 1250), fully established the European kingdom and led to the recovery of Western Spain from Muslim control.

Chart of the Mediterranean Sea by Willem Barentszoon.

Chart of the Mediterranean Sea by Willem Barentszoon.

Chart of the Mediterranean Sea by Willem Barentszoon. Engraved in copper 1595.
Almost unaltered copy of a Portolano from the 14th century. (Orig. size 418 x 855 m.m.).
(see list of maps)

Chart of the Mediterranean Sea by Willem Barentsz. Engraved in copper 1595.
Almost unchanged copy of a Portolano from the 14th century. (Orig. size 418 x 855 m.m.).
(see list of maps)

(4.) And when the Crusading Age passed away, it left behind an intercourse of Portugal with England, Flanders, and the North Sea coasts, which was taken up and developed by Diniz and the kings of the fourteenth century, till under the new Royal House of Aviz, in the boyhood of Henry the Navigator, this maritime and commercial element had[Pg 130] clearly become the most important in the State, the main interest even of Government.

(4.) When the Crusading Age ended, it established connections between Portugal and England, Flanders, and the North Sea coasts. This was further developed by Diniz and the kings of the fourteenth century, until under the new Royal House of Aviz, during the youth of Henry the Navigator, this maritime and commercial aspect had[Pg 130] clearly become the most important part of the State, even the main focus of the Government.

So, from the first mercantile treaty of 1294, between the traders of Lisbon and London, we feel ourselves beyond the mere fighting period, and before the death of Diniz (1325), there is a good deal more progress in the same direction. The English treaty of exchange is followed by similar ones with France and with Flanders, while for the protection of this commerce, as well as to prove his fellowship or his rivalry with the maritime republics of Italy, Diniz,[32] the "Labourer King," built the first Portuguese navy, founded a new office of state for its command, and gave the post to a great Genoese sailor, Emanuel Pessanha, 1317. With the new Lord High Admiral begins the Spanish-Italian age of ocean voyages, and the rediscovery of the Canaries in 1341 is the first result of the alliance. In 1353 the old treaty of 1294 is enlarged and safeguarded by fresh clauses signed in London, as if to guard against future trouble in the dark days then hanging over Portugal.

So, starting with the first trade agreement in 1294 between the merchants of Lisbon and London, we move beyond just the fighting era, and before Diniz's death in 1325, there's quite a bit more progress in that direction. The English trade agreement is followed by similar ones with France and Flanders. To protect this trade and to assert his partnership or rivalry with the maritime republics of Italy, Diniz, [32] the "Labourer King," established the first Portuguese navy, set up a new state office to oversee it, and appointed a notable Genoese sailor, Emanuel Pessanha, in 1317. With this new Lord High Admiral, we enter the Spanish-Italian era of ocean voyages, and the rediscovery of the Canaries in 1341 is the first outcome of this alliance. In 1353, the original treaty from 1294 is expanded and secured with new clauses signed in London, as if to protect against possible trouble during the ominous times that were looming over Portugal.

For the next generation (1350-1380), the national politics are bound up with Spanish intrigues and lose nearly all reference to that larger world, to which the kingdom was recalled by the Revolution of 1383, the overthrow of Castille on the battle-field of Aljubarrota, and the accession of John of Aviz. Once more intensely, narrowly national, one might almost say provincial, in peninsular matters, Portugal then returned to its older ambition of being, not a make[Pg 131] weight in Spanish politics, but a part of the greater whole of commercial and maritime Europe. Almost ceasing to be Spanish, she was, by that very transfer of interest from land to sea, fitted for her special part,—

For the next generation (1350-1380), national politics were entangled with Spanish intrigues and almost completely disconnected from the broader world, which the kingdom was reminded of by the Revolution of 1383, the defeat of Castile on the battlefield of Aljubarrota, and the rise of John of Aviz. Once again, Portugal became intensely focused on national, or you could say provincial, matters, and then returned to its previous goal of being not just a player in Spanish politics, but a part of the larger commercial and maritime Europe. Nearly shedding its Spanish identity, it became suited for its unique role by shifting its focus from land to sea,—

"to open up those tidal wastelands
No generation opened before.

It was through a love affair that the crisis came about. Ferdinand the Handsome, the last of the House of Burgundy to reign in Lisbon, became the slave of the worst of his subjects, the evil genius of himself and his kingdom, Leonora Telles. For her sake he broke his marriage treaty with Castille (1372), and brought down the vengeance of Henry of Trastamara, whom the Black Prince of England had fought and seemed to conquer at Navarette, but who in the end had foiled all his enemies—Pedro the Cruel, Ferdinand of Portugal, and Prince Edward of Creçy and Poictiers.

It was a love affair that caused the crisis. Ferdinand the Handsome, the last ruler of the House of Burgundy in Lisbon, became a pawn of the worst of his subjects, the destructive force of both himself and his kingdom, Leonora Telles. For her, he broke his marriage agreement with Castile (1372), bringing down the wrath of Henry of Trastamara, whom the Black Prince of England had fought and seemed to defeat at Navarrete, but who ultimately outsmarted all his enemies—Pedro the Cruel, Ferdinand of Portugal, and Prince Edward of Crécy and Poitiers.

For Leonor's sake Ferdinand braved the great riot of the Lisbon mob, when Fernan Vasquez the Tailor led his followers to the palace, burst in the gates, and forced from the King an oath to stand by the Castilian marriage he had contracted. For her sake he broke his word to his artisans, as he had broken it to his nobles and his brother monarch.

For Leonor, Ferdinand faced the huge uproar of the Lisbon mob when Fernan Vasquez the Tailor rallied his followers to the palace, smashed through the gates, and compelled the King to swear to support the Castilian marriage he had entered into. For her, he went back on his promise to his craftsmen, just as he had with his nobles and his fellow king.

Leonor herself the people hunted for in vain through the rooms and corridors of the palace; she escaped from their lynch law to Santarem. The same night Ferdinand joined her. Safe in his strongest fortress, he gathered an army and forced his way back into the capital. The mob was scattered;[Pg 132] Vasquez and the other leaders beheaded on the spot. Then at Oporto, without more delay, the King of Portugal married his paramour, in the face of her husband, of Castille, and of his own people.

Leonor was hunted in vain by the people through the rooms and hallways of the palace; she escaped their mob justice to Santarem. That same night, Ferdinand joined her. Safe in his strongest fortress, he gathered an army and fought his way back into the capital. The mob was dispersed; [Pg 132] Vasquez and the other leaders were beheaded on the spot. Then, without any hesitation at Oporto, the King of Portugal married his mistress, right in front of her husband from Castille and his own people.

"Laws are nil," said the rhyme, "when kings will," but though nobles and people submitted in the lifetime of Ferdinand, the storm broke out again on his death in October, 1383. During the last ten years the Queen had practically governed, and the kingdom seemed to be sinking back into a province of Spain. Ferdinand's bastard brother, John, Master of the Knights of Aviz, and father of Henry the Navigator, was the leader of the national party, and Leonor had in vain tried to get rid of him, silent and dangerous as he was. She forged some treasonable letters in his name, and procured his arrest; then as the King would not order him to execution without trial, she forged the warrant, too, and sent it promptly to the Governor of Evora Castle, where the Master lay in prison. But he refused to obey without further proof, and John escaped to lead the national restoration.

"Laws mean nothing," said the rhyme, "when kings want." Although nobles and the people went along with things during Ferdinand's life, chaos erupted again after his death in October 1383. For the last ten years, the Queen had effectively been in charge, and the kingdom seemed to be slipping back into a province of Spain. Ferdinand's illegitimate brother, John, Master of the Knights of Aviz, and father of Henry the Navigator, led the national party, and Leonor had unsuccessfully tried to get rid of him, as he was quiet yet threatening. She fabricated some treasonous letters in his name and arranged for his arrest; when the King refused to execute him without a trial, she forged the execution warrant too and sent it quickly to the Governor of Evora Castle, where the Master was imprisoned. However, the Governor refused to act without more evidence, and John managed to escape to lead the national restoration.

On the death of Ferdinand his widow took the regency in the name of her daughter Beatrice, just married to the King of Castille. It was only a question of time, this coming subjection of Portugal, unless the whole people rose and made monarchy and government national once more. And in December, 1383, they did so. Under John of Aviz the patriots cut to pieces the Queen's friends, and made ready to meet her allies from Castille. On the battle field of Aljubarrota (August 14, 1385), the struggle[Pg 133] was decided. Castille was finally driven back, and the new age, of the new dynasty, was fairly started. The Portuguese people under King John I. and his sons Edward, Pedro, Henry, and Ferdinand, passed out of the darkness of their slavery into the light and life of their heroic age.

Upon Ferdinand's death, his widow took control in the name of her daughter Beatrice, who had just married the King of Castille. It was only a matter of time before Portugal fell under control, unless the entire population rose up to reclaim national monarchy and government. In December 1383, they did just that. Led by John of Aviz, the patriots defeated the Queen's supporters and prepared to confront her allies from Castille. The conflict was resolved on the battlefield of Aljubarrota (August 14, 1385). Castille was finally pushed back, marking the beginning of a new era with a new dynasty. The Portuguese people, under King John I and his sons Edward, Pedro, Henry, and Ferdinand, emerged from the darkness of their oppression into the light and vitality of their heroic age.

WEST FRONT OF THE MONASTERY CHURCH OF BATALHA WHERE PRINCE HENRY LIES BURIED.

WEST FRONT OF THE MONASTERY CHURCH OF BATALHA WHERE PRINCE HENRY LIES BURIED.

WEST FRONT OF THE MONASTERY CHURCH OF BATALHA WHERE PRINCE HENRY LIES BURIED.

WEST FRONT OF THE MONASTERY CHURCH OF BATALHA WHERE PRINCE HENRY IS BURIED.

The founder of the House of Aviz, John, the King of Good Memory, is the great transition figure in his country's history, for in his reign the age of the merely European kingdom is over, and that of discovery and empire begins. That is, the limits of territory and of population, as well as the type of government and of policy, both home and foreign, secured by his victory and his reign, are permanent in themselves, and as the conditions of success they lie at the root of the development of the next hundred years.

The founder of the House of Aviz, John, the King of Good Memory, is a key figure in his country's history, marking the end of the purely European kingdom era and the start of an age of discovery and empire. His victory and reign established lasting boundaries for territory and population, along with the types of government and policies—both domestic and foreign—that became fundamental to the success and growth of the next hundred years.

Even the drift of Portuguese interests, seawards and southwards, is decided by his action, his alliance with England, his encouragement of trade, his wars against the Moors. For, by the middle of his reign, by the time of the Ceuta conquest (1415), his third son, Prince Henry, had grown to manhood.

Even the shift of Portuguese interests towards the sea and the south is influenced by his actions, his alliance with England, his support for trade, and his wars against the Moors. By the middle of his reign, around the time of the Ceuta conquest (1415), his third son, Prince Henry, had reached adulthood.

Yet, King John's personal work (1383-1433) is rather one of settlement and the providing of resources for future action than the taking of any great share in that action. His mind was practical rather than prophetic, common-sense rather than creative; but in his regeneration of the Court and trade and society and public service of the kingdom, he fitted his people to play their part, to be for a time the "very foremost men of all this world."[Pg 134]

Yet, King John's personal work (1383-1433) is more about establishing order and providing resources for future actions than actively participating in those actions. His thinking was practical rather than visionary, grounded in common sense rather than creativity; however, in revitalizing the Court, trade, society, and public service of the kingdom, he prepared his people to play their part, to be for a time the "very foremost men of all this world."[Pg 134]

First of all, he founded a strong centralised monarchy, like those which marked the fifteenth century in France and England and Russia. The spirit, the aim of Louis XI., of the Tudors, of Ivan III., was the same as that of John I. of Portugal—to rule as well as govern in every department, "over all persons, in all causes, as well ecclesiastical as civil, within their dominions supreme." The Master of Aviz had been the people's choice; the Lisbon populace and their leaders had been among the first who dared to fight for him; but he would not be a simple King of Parliaments. He preferred to reign with the help of his nobles. For though he distrusted feudalism, he dreaded Cortés still more. So, while in most of the new monarchies of Europe the subjection or humiliation of the baronage was a primary article of policy, John tried to win his way by lavish gifts of land, while resolutely checking feudalism in government, curtailing local immunities, and guarding the liberties of the towns against noble usurpers.

First of all, he established a strong centralized monarchy, similar to those that emerged in the fifteenth century in France, England, and Russia. The spirit and goals of Louis XI., the Tudors, and Ivan III. were aligned with those of John I. of Portugal—to have rule and authority in every area, "over all persons, in all causes, both ecclesiastical and civil, supreme within their territories." The Master of Aviz had been chosen by the people; the Lisbon populace and their leaders were among the first to bravely support him; however, he didn't want to be a mere King of Parliaments. He preferred to reign with the assistance of his nobles. Although he mistrusted feudalism, he feared the Cortés even more. Thus, while in many of the new monarchies of Europe, the subjugation or humiliation of the barons was a top priority, John sought to gain their loyalty through generous land grants, while firmly limiting feudalism in governance, reducing local privileges, and protecting the towns' freedoms against noble encroachment.

We shall see the results of this in the life of Prince Henry; at present there is only space to notice the general fact. The other lines of John's home government—his reform of criminal procedure, his sanction of the vernacular in legal and official business in place of Latin, his attempt to publish the first collection of Portuguese laws, his settlement of the Court in the true national capital of Lisbon—are only to be linked with the life of his son, as helping one and all of them towards that conscious political unity on which Henry's work was grounded.

We will see how this plays out in the life of Prince Henry; for now, we can only mention the overall idea. The other aspects of John's domestic policies—his reform of criminal procedures, his approval of using Portuguese instead of Latin in legal and official matters, his effort to publish the first collection of Portuguese laws, and his establishment of the Court in the real national capital of Lisbon—are all connected to his son's life, as they all contributed to the conscious political unity that Henry's work was based on.

The same was the result of his foreign policy,[Pg 135] which was nothing more than the old state-rules of Diniz. Systematic neutrality in Spain and a commercial alliance with England and the northern nations, were but the common-sense securities of the restored kingdom; but they played another part than one of mere defence, in drawing out the seamanship and worldly knowledge, and even the greed of Portuguese traders. In the marts of Bruges and London, "the Schoolmasters of Husbandry to Europe," Henry's countrymen met the travellers and merchants of Italy and Flanders and England and the Hanse Towns, and gained some inkling of the course and profits of the overland trade from India and the further East, first as in Nismes and Montpellier they saw the Malaguette pepper and other merchandise of the Sahara and Guinea caravans.

The same outcome applied to his foreign policy,[Pg 135] which was basically just the old strategies of Diniz. Maintaining a neutral stance in Spain and forming a trade alliance with England and the northern nations were simply practical measures for the restored kingdom; however, they also served a greater purpose beyond mere defense, fostering the skills and worldly knowledge, as well as the ambition of Portuguese traders. In the markets of Bruges and London, "the Schoolmasters of Husbandry to Europe," Henry's countrymen interacted with travelers and merchants from Italy, Flanders, England, and the Hanse Towns, gaining insight into the routes and profits of the overland trade from India and the Far East, first noticing, in Nismes and Montpellier, the Malaguette pepper and other goods from the Sahara and Guinea caravans.

The Windsor and Paris treaties of 1386 and 1389; the marriage of John himself with Philippa, daughter of old "John of Gaunt, time-honoured" and time-serving "Lancaster," and the consequent alliance between the House of Aviz and the House of our own Henry IV., are proofs of an unwritten but well understood Triple Alliance of England, Flanders, and Portugal, which had been fostered by the Crusades and by trade and family politics. And through this friendship had come into being what was now the chief outward activity of Portuguese life, an interest in commerce, which was the beginning of a career of discovery and colonisation. Lastly, besides good government, besides saving the kingdom and keeping it safely in the most prosperous path, Portugal owed to King John and his English wife[Pg 136] the training of their five sons, Edward the Eloquent, Pedro the Great Regent, Henry the Navigator, John the Constable, Ferdinand the Saint—the cousins of our own Henry V., Henry of Azincourt.

The Windsor and Paris treaties of 1386 and 1389; the marriage of John himself to Philippa, the daughter of the old "John of Gaunt, time-honored" and opportunistic "Lancaster," and the resulting alliance between the House of Aviz and our own Henry IV., are evidence of an unwritten but well-understood Triple Alliance of England, Flanders, and Portugal, which had been nurtured by the Crusades, trade, and family politics. This friendship led to what became the main external focus of Portuguese life—an interest in commerce, which sparked a journey of discovery and colonization. Lastly, in addition to good governance, in saving the kingdom, and keeping it on a prosperous path, Portugal also owed King John and his English wife[Pg 136] the upbringing of their five sons: Edward the Eloquent, Pedro the Great Regent, Henry the Navigator, John the Constable, and Ferdinand the Saint—the cousins of our own Henry V., Henry of Azincourt.

Edward, the heir of John the Great and his unfortunate successor (1433-8), unlucky as most literary princes, but deserving whatever courage and honesty and the best gifts can deserve, was a good ruler, a good son, a good brother, a good lawyer, and one of the earliest writers in his own Portuguese. As a pupil of his father's great Chancellor, John of the Rules, he has left a tract on the Ordering of Justice; as a king, two others, on Pity and A Loyal Councillor; as a cavalier, A Book of Good Riding. Still more to our purpose, he was always at the side of his brother Henry, helped him in his schemes and brought his movement into fashion at a critical time, when enterprise seemed likely to slacken in the face of unending difficulties.

Edward, the heir of John the Great and his unfortunate successor (1433-8), was as unlucky as most literary princes, but he deserved all the courage, honesty, and the best qualities one can have. He was a good ruler, a good son, a good brother, a good lawyer, and one of the earliest writers in Portuguese. As a student of his father’s great Chancellor, John of the Rules, he wrote a treatise on the Ordering of Justice; as king, he authored two more on Pity and A Loyal Councillor; and as a knight, he created A Book of Good Riding. More importantly, he was always there for his brother Henry, aiding him in his plans and making his efforts popular at a crucial time when enthusiasm was fading in the face of ongoing challenges.

But the Navigator's right-hand man was his next brother Pedro the Traveller, who, after visiting all the countries of Western Europe and fighting with the Teutonic knights against the heathen Prussians, brought back to Portugal for the use of discovery that great mass of suggestive material, oral and written, in maps and plans and books, which was used for the first ocean voyages of Henry's sailors.

But the Navigator's right-hand man was his next brother Pedro the Traveller, who, after visiting all the countries of Western Europe and fighting alongside the Teutonic knights against the pagan Prussians, brought back to Portugal a huge amount of valuable information, both spoken and written, in maps, plans, and books, which was used for the first ocean voyages of Henry's sailors.

On his judgment and advice, more than of any other man, Henry relied, and after Edward's death it was due to him as Regent that the generous support of the past was more than kept up, that so many ships and men were found for the rounding of [Pg 137]Cape Verde, and that Edward's son and heir Affonso V., was trained in the mind of his father and his uncle, to be their successor in leading the expansion of Portugal and of Christendom.

Henry relied heavily on his judgment and advice, more than anyone else's, and after Edward's death, it was thanks to him as Regent that the generous support from the past continued strong. He was responsible for securing so many ships and men to round [Pg 137] Cape Verde, and he ensured that Edward's son and heir, Affonso V, was raised with the same mindset as his father and uncle to prepare him to lead the expansion of Portugal and Christendom.

AISLE IN BATALHA CHURCH CONTAINING THE TOMBS OF HENRY AND HIS BROTHERS.

AISLE IN BATALHA CHURCH CONTAINING THE TOMBS OF HENRY AND HIS BROTHERS.

AISLE IN BATALHA CHURCH CONTAINING THE TOMBS OF HENRY AND HIS BROTHERS.

AISLE IN BATALHA CHURCH HOLDING THE TOMBS OF HENRY AND HIS BROTHERS.

John and Ferdinand, Henry's two younger brothers, are not of much importance in his work, though they were both of the same rare quality as the elder Infantes, and the worst disaster of Henry's life, the Tangier campaign, is closely bound up with the fate of "Fernand the Constant Prince," but as we pass from the earlier story of Portugal to the age of its great achievements, it would be hard to doubt or to forget that the mother of the Navigator was also of some account in the shaping of the heroes of her house. Through her at least the Lusitanian Prince of Thomson's line is half an Englishman:

John and Ferdinand, Henry's two younger brothers, don't play a significant role in his work, even though they shared the same rare qualities as their older brothers. The worst moment in Henry's life, the Tangier campaign, is closely linked to the fate of "Fernand the Constant Prince." However, as we transition from the earlier stories of Portugal to the era of its great achievements, it's hard to ignore or forget that the mother of the Navigator was also important in shaping the heroes of her family. Through her, at least, the Lusitanian Prince from Thomson's line is partly an Englishman:

"The Lusitanian prince, divinely inspired," To inspire people with a passion for meaningful achievements,
"And in limitless trade, the world was intertwined."

[Note 1.—The Old Roman Lusitania, but with a wider stretch on the North, and a narrower stretch on the East. So the Portuguese are "Lusians," "Lusitanians," etc., in poetry. Cf. Camoëns, Lusiads.]

[Note 1.—The ancient Roman Lusitania, but covering a larger area to the North and a smaller area to the East. So, the Portuguese are referred to as "Lusians," "Lusitanians," etc., in poetry. See Camoëns, Lusiads.]

[Note 2.—

[Note 2.—

What Diniz wanted He always fulfilled

—said the popular rhyme.]

—said the famous rhyme.]

decorative illustration

decorative illustration


decorative illustration

decorative illustration

CHAPTER VII.

HENRY'S POSITION AND DESIGNS AT THE TIME OF THE FIRST VOYAGES, 1410-15.

Then from ancient darkness emerged
The emerging world of trade: the genius then,
Of Navigation, stuck in hopeless laziness,
Had slept on the vast Atlantic ocean For countless years of inactivity, finally starting to be heard The Lusitanian Prince, who was inspired by Heaven, To inspire humanity to seek meaningful glory,
And in limitless trade, the world was intertwined.

Thomson, Seasons, Summer, 1005-1012.

Thomson, Seasons, Summer, 1005-1012.

The third son of John the Great and of Philippa was the Infant Henry, Duke of Viseu, Master of the Order of Christ, Governor of the Algarves, born March 4, 1394, who might have travelled from Court to Court like his brother Pedro, but who refused all offers from England, Italy, and Germany, and chose the life of a student and a seaman,—retiring more and more from the known world that he might open up the unknown.

TThe third son of John the Great and Philippa was Henry, Duke of Viseu, Master of the Order of Christ, and Governor of the Algarve, born on March 4, 1394. Unlike his brother Pedro, who traveled from court to court, Henry turned down offers from England, Italy, and Germany. He chose instead to dedicate himself to studying and sailing, retreating further from the known world to explore the unknown.

After the capture of Ceuta, in 1415, he planted himself in his Naval Arsenal at Sagres, close to Lagos[Pg 139] town and Cape St. Vincent, and for more than forty years, till his death in 1460, he kept his mind upon the ocean that stretched out from that rocky headland to the unknown West and South. Twice only for any length of time did he come back into political life; for the rest, though respected as the referee of national disputes and the leader and teacher of the people, his time was mainly spent in thinking out his plans of discovery—drawing his maps, adjusting his instruments, sending out his ships, receiving the reports of his captains. His aims were three: to discover, to add to the greatness and wealth of Portugal, and to spread the Christian Faith.

After capturing Ceuta in 1415, he established himself in his Naval Arsenal at Sagres, near Lagos[Pg 139] and Cape St. Vincent. For more than forty years, until his death in 1460, he focused on the ocean that stretched from that rocky headland to the unknown West and South. He only returned to political life for a significant amount of time twice; otherwise, although respected as an arbiter of national issues and a leader and mentor to the people, he mainly spent his time planning his exploration—creating maps, fine-tuning his instruments, sending out ships, and receiving reports from his captains. His goals were threefold: to discover new lands, to increase the greatness and wealth of Portugal, and to spread the Christian Faith.

(1.) First of all, he was trying to find a way round Africa to India for the sake of the new knowledge itself and for the power which that knowledge would give. As his mind was above all things interested in the scientific question, it was this side which was foremost in his plans. He was really trying to find out the shape of the world, and to make men feel more at home in it, that the dread of the great unknown round the little island of civilised and habitable world might be lightened. He was working in the mist that so long had hung round Christendom, chilling every enterprise.

(1.) First of all, he was looking for a way around Africa to get to India, driven by the pursuit of new knowledge and the power that would come with it. His main focus was on the scientific questions, which were the priority in his plans. He was genuinely trying to discover the shape of the world and help people feel more at ease within it, so that the fear of the vast unknown surrounding the small, civilized, and habitable part of the world could be eased. He was operating in the fog that had long surrounded Christendom, dampening every venture.

Thus the whole question of the world and its shape, its countries and climates, its seas and continents, on every side of practical exploration, was bound to be before Prince Henry as a theorist; the practical question which he helped to solve was only a part of this wider whole. Did this Africa stretching opposite to him in his retreat at Sagres never[Pg 140] end till it reached the Southern pole, or was it possible to get round into the Eastern ocean? Since Ptolemy's map had held the field, it had been heresy to suppose this; but in the age of Greek and Phœnician voyages it had been guessed by some, and perhaps even proved by others.

Thus the entire question of the world and its shape, its countries and climates, its seas and continents—on every side of practical exploration—was inevitably on Prince Henry's mind as a theorist; the practical question he helped to solve was just a part of this bigger picture. Did the Africa stretching before him during his retreat at Sagres never[Pg 140] end until it reached the South Pole, or was it possible to go around to the Eastern Ocean? Since Ptolemy's map had dominated the field, it had been considered heresy to think this; but in the age of Greek and Phoenician voyages, some had guessed it, and perhaps even proven it.

The Tyrians whom Pharaoh Necho sent down the Red Sea more than six hundred years before Christ, brought back after three years a story of their finding Africa an island, and so returning by the west and north through the Straits of Gibraltar.

The Tyrians that Pharaoh Necho sent down the Red Sea more than six hundred years before Christ returned after three years with a story that they discovered Africa was an island, and they came back through the west and north via the Straits of Gibraltar.

The same tradition, after a long time of discredit, was now reviving upon the maps of the fourteenth century, and, in spite of the terrible stories of the Arabs, Henry was able in the first years of the fifteenth to find men who would try the forlorn hope of a direct sea-route from Europe to the Indies. We have seen how far the charts and guide-books of the time just before this had advanced Christian knowledge of the world; how the southern coastline of Asia is traced by Marco Polo, and how even Madagascar is named, though not visited, by the same traveller; the Florentine map of 1351 proves that a fairly true guess of the shape of Africa could be made even before persistent exploration began with Henry of Portugal; the Arab settlements on the east coast of Africa and their trade with the Malabar coast, though still kept as a close monopoly for Islam, had thoroughly opened up a line of navigation, that was ready, as it were, for the first Europeans who could strike into it and press the Moorish pilots into a new service. Discovery was[Pg 141] thus anticipated when the coasts of West and South had once been rounded.

The same tradition, after a long period of being dismissed, was now coming back on the maps of the fourteenth century. Despite the frightening stories about the Arabs, Henry was able to find people willing to take on the risky challenge of a direct sea route from Europe to the Indies in the early years of the fifteenth century. We’ve seen how much the charts and guidebooks just before this period had improved Christian understanding of the world; Marco Polo mapped the southern coastline of Asia, and even named Madagascar, though he never visited it. The Florentine map from 1351 shows that a fairly accurate guess of Africa’s shape could be made even before serious exploration started with Henry of Portugal. The Arab settlements on the east coast of Africa and their trade with the Malabar coast, although kept as a close monopoly for Islam, had already established a navigation route that was ready for the first Europeans willing to pursue it and enlist Moorish pilots for a new purpose. Therefore, discovery was[Pg 141] anticipated once the coasts of West and South had been rounded.

Beyond this, the vague knowledge of the Guinea coast already gained through the Sahara Caravan Trade was improved by the Prince himself, during his stay at Ceuta, into the certainty that if the great western hump of Africa beyond Bojador could be passed, his caravels would come into an eastern current, passing the gold and ivory coast, which might lead straight to India, and at any rate would be connected by an overland traffic with the Mediterranean.

Beyond this, the unclear information about the Guinea coast, which was already acquired through the Sahara Caravan Trade, was clarified by the Prince himself during his time in Ceuta. He became certain that if the great western bulge of Africa beyond Bojador could be navigated, his caravels would enter an eastern current, moving past the gold and ivory coast, which could potentially lead directly to India, and in any case, would be linked by overland routes to the Mediterranean.

(2.) Again, Henry was founding upon his work of exploration an empire for his country. At first perhaps only thinking of the straight sea-passage as the possible key of the Indian trade, it became clearer with every fresh discovery that the European kingdom might and must be connected by a chain of forts and factories with the rich countries for whose sake all these barren coasts were passed. In any case, and in the eyes of ordinary men, the riches of the East were the plain and primary reason of the explorations. Science had its own aims, but to gain an income for its work it must promise some definite gain. And the chief hope of Henry's captains was that the wealth now flowing by the overland routes to the Levant would in time, as the prize of Portuguese daring, go by the water way, without delay or fear of plunder or Arab middlemen, to Lisbon and Oporto. This would repay all the trouble and all the cost, and silence all who murmured. For this Indian trade was the prize of the world, and for the sake of this Rome had destroyed Palmyra, and at[Pg 142]tacked Arabia and held Egypt, and struggled for the mastery of the Tigris. For the same thing half the wars of the Levant had been waged, and by this the Italian republics, Venice, Genoa, and Pisa, had grown to greatness.

(2.) Once again, Henry was building an empire for his country through his exploration work. Initially, he might have only viewed the direct sea route as the key to the Indian trade, but with each new discovery, it became increasingly clear that the European kingdom needed to be linked by a network of forts and trading posts to the wealthy lands that motivated these journeys along the barren coasts. For most people, the lure of the East’s riches was the obvious and primary reason for these explorations. Science had its own goals, but to fund its endeavors, it had to ensure some tangible return. The main hope of Henry's captains was that the wealth currently traveling overland to the Levant would eventually, as a reward for Portuguese bravery, be transported by sea—without delays, threats of theft, or Arab middlemen—straight to Lisbon and Oporto. This would compensate for all the trouble and expense and quiet any dissenters. The Indian trade was the ultimate prize of the world; for its sake, Rome destroyed Palmyra, attacked Arabia, controlled Egypt, and fought for dominance over the Tigris. The same motivations fueled half of the wars in the Levant, and from this trade, the Italian city-states of Venice, Genoa, and Pisa rose to power.

(3.) Lastly, Henry was a Crusader with Islam and a missionary with the heathen. Of him fully as much as of Columbus, it may be said, that if he aimed at an empire, it was a Christian one, and from the time of the first voyages his captains had orders not merely to discover and to trade, but to convert. Till his death he hoped to find the land of Prester John, the half-true, half-fabulous Christian Priest-King of the outer world, so long cut off from Christendom by the Mohammedan states.

(3.) Lastly, Henry was a Crusader against Islam and a missionary to the nonbelievers. Just like Columbus, it can be said that if he sought an empire, it was a Christian one, and from the time of the first voyages, his captains were instructed not just to explore and trade, but to convert. Until his death, he hoped to discover the land of Prester John, the semi-mythical Christian Priest-King of the distant world, long separated from Christendom by the Muslim states.

At this time many things were drawing western Europe towards the East and towards discovery. The progress of science and historic knowledge, the records and suggestions of travellers, the development of the Christian nations, the position of Portugal and the spirit of her people,—all these lines met, as it were, in Henry's time and nation and person, and from that meeting came the results of Columbus and Da Gama and Magellan.

At this time, many factors were pulling Western Europe toward the East and encouraging exploration. The advancement of science and historical knowledge, the accounts and ideas shared by travelers, the rise of Christian nations, the role of Portugal, and the enthusiasm of its people—all these elements came together in Henry's era and in his identity, and from this convergence emerged the achievements of Columbus, Da Gama, and Magellan.

In the earlier chapters we have tried to trace the preparation along these slowly converging paths, for the discoveries of the fifteenth century. We started with that body of knowledge and theory about the world which the Roman Empire bequeathed to Christendom, and which in the earlier Middle Ages was worked upon by the Arabs, and we gained some idea, from the[Pg 143] sayings of Moslem geographers and from the doings of Moslem warriors, of the hindrance as well as of the help that Islam gave to European expansion. We saw that during the great struggle of Christianity and of the old Order with barbarism, the chief energy of our Western world in discovery or extension of any sort took the shape of pilgrimage. Then, as time went on, it was possible to see that the Saracens, who had begun as destroyers in the South, were acting as teachers and civilisers upon Europe, and that the Vikings, who as pirates in the North seemed raised up to complete the ruin of Latin civilisation, were really waking it into a new activity.

In the earlier chapters, we tried to trace the preparation along these slowly converging paths leading to the discoveries of the fifteenth century. We began with the body of knowledge and theories about the world that the Roman Empire passed down to Christendom, which the Arabs developed further during the early Middle Ages. From the[Pg 143] accounts of Muslim geographers and the actions of Muslim warriors, we got an idea of both the obstacles and the support that Islam provided for European expansion. We observed that during the significant conflict between Christianity and the old order against barbarism, the primary drive for discovery and expansion in the Western world took the form of pilgrimage. Then, as time went on, it became clear that the Saracens, who initially appeared as destroyers in the South, were actually serving as teachers and civilizers to Europe, and that the Vikings, who seemed like they were there to complete the downfall of Latin civilization through their piracy in the North, were in fact awakening it to new activities.

In the Crusades this activity, which had already founded the kingdom of Russia on one side and touched America on the other, seemed to pass from the Northern seamen into every Christian nation and every class of society, and with the conversion of the Northmen their place as the discoverers and leaders of the Christian world fitted in with the other movements of Mediterranean commerce and war and devotion. Even the pilgrims of the Crusading Age were now no longer distinctive: they were often, as individuals, members of other classes, traders, fighters, or travellers who, after gaining a firm foothold in Syria, began the exploration of the further East.

During the Crusades, this activity, which had already established the kingdom of Russia on one side and reached America on the other, seemed to spread from the Northern seamen to every Christian nation and every social class. With the conversion of the Northmen, their role as the explorers and leaders of the Christian world connected with the other movements of Mediterranean trade, warfare, and devotion. Even the pilgrims of the Crusading Age were no longer unique; they often included individuals from different classes—traders, warriors, or travelers—who, after securing a strong presence in Syria, began to explore farther East.

The three great discovering energies of the thirteenth and fourteenth centuries—in land-travel, navigation, and science—were all seen to be results, in whole or in part, of the Crusades themselves, and[Pg 144] in following the more important steps of European travel and trade and proselytism from the Holy Land to China, it became more and more evident that this practical finding out of the treasures of Cathay and the Indies was the necessary preparation for the attempts of Genoese and Portuguese to open up the sea route as another and a safer way to the source of the same treasures.

The three major driving forces behind discoveries in the thirteenth and fourteenth centuries—in overland travel, navigation, and science—were largely seen as outcomes of the Crusades themselves, and[Pg 144] as we trace the key milestones of European travel, trade, and missionary work from the Holy Land to China, it became increasingly clear that uncovering the riches of Cathay and the Indies was essential preparation for the efforts of the Genoese and Portuguese to establish a sea route as another, safer path to access these same treasures.

Lastly, the intermittent and uncertain ventures of the fourteenth-century seamen, Italian, Spanish, French, or English, to coast round Africa or to find the Indies by the Southern route—to reach a definite end without any clear plan of means to that end—and the revival in theoretical geography, which was trying at the same time to fill up the gaps of knowledge by tradition or by probability—seemed to offer a clear contrast and a clear foreshadowing also of Prince Henry's method. Even his nearest forerunners, in seamanship or in map-making[33] were strikingly different from himself. They were too much in the spirit of Ptolemy and of ancient science; they neglected fact for hypothesis, for clever guessing, and so their work was spasmodic and unfruitful, or at least disappointing.

Lastly, the sporadic and uncertain attempts of fourteenth-century sailors—whether Italian, Spanish, French, or English—to navigate around Africa or to reach the Indies via the Southern route, aimed to achieve a goal without having a clear strategy for how to get there. At the same time, the revival of theoretical geography was attempting to fill in the gaps in knowledge through tradition or speculation, creating a stark contrast and a clear preview of Prince Henry's approach. Even his closest predecessors in sailing or map-making[33] were remarkably different from him. They were too influenced by Ptolemy and ancient science; they prioritized hypothesis over factual evidence, relying on clever guesses, which rendered their efforts sporadic and unproductive, or at least disappointing.

It was true enough that each generation of Christian thought was less in fault than the one before it; but it was not till the fifteenth century, till Henry had set the example, that exploration became systematic and continuous. To Marco Polo and men like him we owe the beginnings of the art and science[Pg 145] of discovery among the learned; to the Portuguese is due at least the credit of making it a thing of national interest, and of freeing it from a false philosophy. To find out by incessant and unwearying search what the world really was, and not to make known facts fit in with the ideas of some thinker on what the world ought to be, this we found to be the main difference between Cosmas or even Ptolemy and any true leader of discovery. For a real advance of knowledge, fancy must follow experiment, and no merely hypothetical system or Universe as shewn in Holy Scripture, would do any longer. We have come to the time when explorers were not Ptolemaics or Strabonians or Scripturists, but Naturalists—men who examined things afresh, for themselves.

It was true that each generation of Christian thought was less at fault than the one before it, but it wasn't until the fifteenth century, when Henry set the example, that exploration became systematic and continuous. We owe the beginnings of the art and science[Pg 145] of discovery among intellectuals to Marco Polo and others like him; the Portuguese at least deserve credit for making it a national concern and freeing it from a misguided philosophy. The goal was to find out through constant and tireless investigation what the world really was, rather than forcing new facts to fit the ideas of any thinker about what the world should be. This was the main difference between Cosmas or even Ptolemy and any true pioneer of discovery. For knowledge to advance, imagination must follow experimentation, and no purely hypothetical system or Universe as depicted in Holy Scripture would suffice anymore. We have reached a time when explorers were not Ptolemaics or Strabonians or Scripturists, but Naturalists—people who examined things independently, for themselves.

These various objects are all involved in the one central aim of discovery, but they are not lost in it. To know this world we live in and to teach men the new knowledge was the first thing, which makes Henry what he is in universal history; his other aims are those of his time and his nation, but they are not less a part of his life.

These various objects all contribute to the main goal of discovery, but they still hold their own significance. Understanding the world we live in and sharing that new knowledge was Henry's primary focus, which is what defines him in universal history; his other goals reflect those of his era and his nation, but they are also an important part of his life.

And he succeeded in them all; if in part his work was for all time and in part seemed to pass away after a hundred years, that was due to the exhaustion of his people. What he did for his countrymen was realised by others, but the start, the inspiration, was his own. He persevered for fifty years (1412-60) till within sight of the goal, and though he died before the full result of his work was seen, it was none the less his due when it came.[Pg 146]

And he succeeded in everything; even if some of his work lasted for all time and some seemed to fade away after a hundred years, that was because of the weariness of his people. What he accomplished for his fellow countrymen was recognized by others, but the initial spark, the inspiration, was his own. He kept at it for fifty years (1412-60) until he was close to the finish line, and even though he died before the full impact of his work was visible, it was still rightfully his when it emerged.[Pg 146]

We find these results put down to the credit of others, but if Columbus gave Castille and Leon a new world in 1492, if Da Gama reached India in 1498, if Diaz rounded the Cape of Tempests or of Good Hope in 1486, if Magellan made the circuit of the globe in 1520-2, their teacher and master was none the less Henry the Navigator.

We attribute these achievements to others, but if Columbus opened up a new world for Castille and Leon in 1492, if Da Gama reached India in 1498, if Diaz rounded the Cape of Tempests or Good Hope in 1486, if Magellan circumnavigated the globe between 1520 and 1522, their mentor and leader was still Henry the Navigator.

decorative illustration

decorative illustration


decorative illustration

decorative illustration

CHAPTER VIII.

PRINCE HENRY AND THE CAPTURE OF CEUTA.

1415.

We have seen how the kingdom of Portugal itself was almost an offspring of the Crusades. They had left behind them a thirst for wealth and for a wider life on one side, and a broken Moslem power on the other, which opened the way and stirred the enterprise of every maritime state. We know that Lisbon had long been an active centre of trade with the Hanse Towns, Flanders, and England. And now the projected conquest of Ceuta and the appeal of the conqueror of Aljubarrota for a great national effort found the people prepared. A royal prince could do what a private man could not; and Portugal, more fully developed than any other of the Christian kingdoms, was ready to expand abroad without fear at home.

WWe have seen how the kingdom of Portugal was almost born out of the Crusades. They left behind a desire for wealth and a broader life on one side and a weakened Muslim power on the other, which opened the doors and inspired the ambitions of every maritime nation. We know that Lisbon had long been an important trading hub with the Hanse Towns, Flanders, and England. Now, the planned conquest of Ceuta and the call from the conqueror of Aljubarrota for a major national effort found the people ready. A royal prince could achieve what an individual could not; and Portugal, being more developed than any other Christian kingdom, was prepared to expand overseas without fearing domestic issues.

Even before the conquest of Ceuta, in 1410 or 1412, Henry had begun to send out his caravels past Cape Non, which had so long been with C. Bojador the Finisterre of Africa. The first object of these[Pg 148] ships was to reach the Guinea coast by outflanking the great western shoulder of the continent. Once there, the gold and ivory and slave trade would pass away from the desert caravans to the European coasters. Then the eastern bend of Africa, along the bights of Benin and Biafra, might be followed to the Indies, if this were possible, as some had thought; if not, the first stage of the work would have to be taken up again till men had found and had rounded the Southern Cape. The outflanking of Guinea proved to be only a part of the outflanking of Africa, but it was far more than half the battle; just as India was the final prize of full success, so the Gold Coast was the reward of the first chapter in that success.

Even before the conquest of Ceuta, around 1410 or 1412, Henry had started sending out his caravels past Cape Non, which had long been seen as the end of Africa. The primary goal of these[Pg 148] ships was to reach the Guinea coast by going around the vast western edge of the continent. Once they reached the coast, the gold, ivory, and slave trade would shift from the desert caravans to European traders. Then, it might be possible to follow the eastern curve of Africa, around the areas of Benin and Biafra, to the Indies, as some believed; if not, they would have to return to the initial phase of the journey until someone found and navigated past the Southern Cape. Navigating around Guinea turned out to be just a part of the larger journey around Africa, but it was a significant milestone; just as India was the ultimate goal of complete success, the Gold Coast marked the achievement of the first stage in that journey.

But of these earlier expeditions nothing is known in detail; the history of the African voyages begins with the war of 1415, and the new knowledge it brought to Henry of the Sahara and the Guinea Coast and of the tribes of tawny Moors and negroes on the Niger and the Gambia.

But nothing is known in detail about these earlier expeditions; the history of the African voyages starts with the war of 1415, along with the new information it provided to Henry about the Sahara, the Guinea Coast, and the tribes of light-skinned Moors and Black people on the Niger and the Gambia.

In 1414, when Edward was twenty-three, Pedro twenty-two, and Henry twenty, King John planned an attack on Ceuta, the great Moorish port on the African side of the Straits of Gibraltar. The three princes had all asked for knighthood; their father at first proposed to celebrate a year of tournaments, but at the suggestion of the Treasurer of Portugal, John Affonso de Alemquer, he decided on this African crusade instead. For the same strength and money might as well be spent in conquests from the Moslem as in sham-fights between Christians. So after reconnoitring the place, and lulling the suspicions[Pg 149] of Aragon and Granada by a pretence of declaring war against the Count of Holland, King John gained the formal consent of his nobles at Torres Vedras, and set sail from Lisbon on St. James' Day, July 25, 1415, as foretold by the dying Queen Philippa, twelve days before.

In 1414, when Edward was twenty-three, Pedro was twenty-two, and Henry was twenty, King John planned an attack on Ceuta, the major Moorish port on the African side of the Straits of Gibraltar. The three princes had all requested knighthood; their father originally proposed to hold a year of tournaments, but on the advice of the Treasurer of Portugal, John Affonso de Alemquer, he chose this African crusade instead. The same strength and resources could be used for conquests against the Muslims rather than meaningless fights among Christians. After scouting the location and easing the suspicions of Aragon and Granada by pretending to declare war on the Count of Holland, King John secured the formal approval of his nobles at Torres Vedras and set sail from Lisbon on St. James' Day, July 25, 1415, just as the dying Queen Philippa had predicted twelve days earlier.

KING JOHN THE GREAT AND QUEEN PHILIPPA. FROM THEIR TOMB AT BATALHA.

KING JOHN THE GREAT AND QUEEN PHILIPPA. FROM THEIR TOMB AT BATALHA.

KING JOHN THE GREAT AND QUEEN PHILIPPA.
from their tomb at batalha.

KING JOHN THE GREAT AND QUEEN PHILIPPA.
from their tomb at Batalha.

That splendid woman, who had shared the throne for eight and twenty years, and who had trained her sons to be fit successors of her husband as the leaders of Portugal and the "Examples of all Christians," was now cut off by death from a sight of their first victories. Her last thought was for their success. She spoke to Edward of a king's true vocation, to Pedro of his knightly duties in the help of widows and orphans, to Henry of a general's care for his men. On the 13th, the last day of her illness, she roused herself to ask "What wind was blowing so strong against the house?" and hearing it was the north, sank back and died, exclaiming, "It is the wind for your voyage, that must be about St. James' Day." It would have been false respect to delay. The spirit of the Queen, the crusaders felt, was with them, urging them on.

That remarkable woman, who had been sharing the throne for 28 years and had prepared her sons to be worthy successors to their father as the leaders of Portugal and "Examples of all Christians," was now taken by death before witnessing their first victories. Her final thought was for their success. She spoke to Edward about a king's true purpose, to Pedro about his duties as a knight in supporting widows and orphans, and to Henry about a general's responsibility for his men. On the 13th, the last day of her illness, she gathered her strength to ask, "What wind is blowing so strongly against the house?" When she learned it was the north wind, she leaned back and died, exclaiming, "It is the wind for your voyage, which must be around St. James' Day." It would have been insincere to postpone. The crusaders felt the spirit of the Queen with them, urging them on.

By the night of the 25th of July the fleet had left the Tagus; on the 27th the crusaders anchored in the bay of Lagos and mustered all their forces: "33 galleys, 27 triremes, 32 biremes, and 120 pinnaces and transports," carrying 50,000 soldiers and 30,000 mariners. Some nobles and merchant adventurers from England, France, and Germany took part. It was something like the conquest of Lisbon over again; a greater Armada for a much smaller prey.[Pg 150]

By the night of July 25th, the fleet had left the Tagus; on the 27th, the crusaders anchored in the bay of Lagos and gathered all their forces: "33 galleys, 27 triremes, 32 biremes, and 120 pinnaces and transports," carrying 50,000 soldiers and 30,000 sailors. Some nobles and merchant adventurers from England, France, and Germany participated. It was somewhat like the conquest of Lisbon all over again; a larger Armada for a much smaller target.[Pg 150]

On the 10th of August they were off Algeziras, still in Moorish hands, as part of the kingdom of Granada, and on the 12th the lighter craft were over on the African coast; a strong wind nearly carried the heavier into Malaga.

On August 10th, they were off Algeciras, still under Moorish control, as part of the kingdom of Granada. By the 12th, the lighter vessels were on the African coast; a strong wind almost blew the heavier ships into Malaga.

Ceuta, the ancient Septa,[34] once repaired by Justinian, was the chief port of Morocco and a centre of commerce for the trade routes of the South and East, as well as a centre of piracy for the Barbary corsairs. It had long been an outpost of Moslem attack on Christendom; now that Europe was taking the offensive, it would be an outpost of the Spanish crusade against Islam.

Ceuta, the ancient Septa,[34] once restored by Justinian, was the main port of Morocco and a hub for commerce along the trade routes of the South and East, as well as a base for piracy by the Barbary corsairs. It had long been a front for Muslim attacks on Christianity; now that Europe was going on the offensive, it would serve as a staging ground for the Spanish crusade against Islam.

The city was built on the ordinary model, in two parts: a citadel and a port-town, which together covered the neck of a long peninsula running out some three miles eastward from the African mainland, and broadening again beyond the eastern wall of Ceuta into a hilly square of country.

The city was built in the typical design, consisting of two sections: a citadel and a port town, which together spanned the narrow part of a long peninsula stretching about three miles east from the African mainland and widening again beyond the eastern wall of Ceuta into a hilly square area.

It was here, just where the land began to spread and form a natural harbour, that the Portuguese had planned their landing, and to this point Prince Henry, with great trouble, brought up the heavier craft. The strong currents that turned them off to the Spanish coast, proved good allies of the Europeans after all. For the Moors, who had been greatly startled at the first signs of attack, and had hurried to get all the help they could from Fez and the upland, now fancied the Christian fleet to be scattered once for all, and dismissed all but their own[Pg 151] garrison; while the Portuguese had been roused afresh to action by the fiery energy of King John, Prince Henry, and his brothers. On the night of the 15th of August, the Feast of the Assumption, the whole armada was at last brought up to the roads of Ceuta; Henry anchored off the lower town with his ships from Oporto, and his father, though badly wounded in the leg, rowed through the fleet in a shallop, preparing all his men for the assault that was to be given at daybreak. Henry himself was to have the right of first setting foot on shore, where it was hoped the quays would be almost bared of defenders. For the main force was brought up against the castle, and every Moor would rush to the fight where the King of Portugal was leading.

It was here, right where the land started to spread and create a natural harbor, that the Portuguese planned their landing, and at this point, Prince Henry, with great difficulty, managed to bring the larger ships. The strong currents that pushed them away toward the Spanish coast ended up being good allies for the Europeans after all. The Moors, who had been greatly surprised by the initial signs of attack and hurried to gather all the help they could from Fez and the highlands, now thought the Christian fleet was scattered for good and dismissed all but their own[Pg 151] garrison; meanwhile, the Portuguese were energized again to action by the fiery spirit of King John, Prince Henry, and his brothers. On the night of August 15th, the Feast of the Assumption, the entire armada finally arrived at the waters of Ceuta; Henry anchored off the lower town with his ships from Oporto, and his father, despite being badly wounded in the leg, rowed through the fleet in a small boat, preparing all his men for the assault planned for dawn. Henry himself was set to be the first to set foot on shore, where it was hoped the docks would be almost free of defenders. The main force was directed against the castle, and every Moor would rush to the fight where the King of Portugal was leading.

While these movements were being settled in the armada, all through that night Ceuta was brilliantly lighted up, as if en fête. The Governor in his terror could think of nothing better than to frighten the enemy with the show of an immensely populous city, and he had ordered a light to be kept burning in every window of every house. As the morning cleared and the Christian host saw the beach and harbour lined with Moors, shouting defiance, the attack was begun by some volunteers who forgot the Prince's claim. One Ruy Gonsalvez was the first to land and clear a passage for the rest. The Infantes, Henry and Edward, were not far behind, and after a fierce struggle the Moslems were driven through the gate of the landing-place back to the wall of the city. Here they rallied, under a "negro giant, who fought naked, but with the strength of many men,[Pg 152] hurling the Christians to the earth with stones." At last he was brought down by a lance-thrust, and the crusaders forced their way into Ceuta. But Henry, as chief captain on this side, would not allow his men to rush on plundering into the heart of the town, but kept them by the gates, and sent back to the ships for fresh troops, who soon came up under Fernandez d'Ataide, who cheered on the Princes. "This is the sort of tournament for you; here you are getting a worthier knighthood than you could win at Lisbon."

While these movements were being coordinated in the fleet, all through that night Ceuta was lit up brilliantly, as if celebrating. The Governor, in his fear, could think of nothing better than to scare the enemy with the appearance of a densely populated city, so he ordered a light to be kept burning in every window of every house. As dawn broke and the Christian forces saw the beach and harbor filled with Moors shouting defiance, the attack was initiated by some volunteers who forgot about the Prince's claim. Ruy Gonsalvez was the first to land and clear a path for the others. The Infantes, Henry and Edward, were not far behind, and after a fierce struggle, the Muslims were pushed back through the gate of the landing area to the city wall. Here they regrouped under a “Negro giant,” who fought naked but with the strength of many men, hurling the Christians to the ground with stones. Finally, he was brought down by a lance strike, and the crusaders pushed their way into Ceuta. However, Henry, as the chief captain on this side, wouldn’t let his men rush in and plunder the heart of the town but kept them by the gates and sent back to the ships for fresh troops, who soon arrived under Fernandez d'Ataide, who encouraged the Princes. “This is the kind of tournament for you; here you are earning a more worthy knighthood than you could win in Lisbon.”

Meantime the King, with Don Pedro, had heard of Henry's first success while still on shipboard, and ordered an instant advance on his side. After a still closer struggle than that on the lower ground, the Moors were routed, and Pedro pressed on through the narrow streets, just escaping death from the showers of heavy stones off the house tops, till he met his brothers in a mosque, or square adjoining, in the centre of Ceuta.

Meanwhile, the King, together with Don Pedro, had heard about Henry's initial victory while still on the ship and ordered an immediate advance on his part. After an even tougher fight than the one on the lower ground, the Moors were defeated, and Pedro pushed through the narrow streets, narrowly avoiding death from the heavy stones raining down from the rooftops, until he finally met his brothers in a mosque or square next to the center of Ceuta.

Then the conquerors scattered for plunder, and came very near losing the city altogether. But for the dogged courage of Henry, who twice broke up the Moslem rally with a handful of men, at last holding a gate on the inner wall between the lower town and the citadel, "with seventeen, himself the eighteenth," Ceuta would have been lost after it had been gained. Both Henry and Pedro were reported dead. "Such is the end a soldier must not fear," was all their father said, as he stayed by the ships under the lee of the fortress, waiting, like Edward III. at Creçy, for what his sons would do. But towards evening it[Pg 153] was known throughout the army that the Princes were safe, that the port-town had been gained, and that the Moors were slipping away from the citadel.

Then the conquerors spread out to gather loot, and nearly lost the city entirely. If it hadn't been for Henry's relentless bravery, who twice disrupted the Muslim forces with just a small group of men, finally holding a gate on the inner wall between the lower town and the citadel, "with seventeen, himself the eighteenth," Ceuta would have been lost after it had been acquired. Both Henry and Pedro were reported dead. "Such is the end a soldier must not fear," was all their father said, as he waited by the ships sheltered by the fortress, just like Edward III. at Creçy, for what his sons would decide. But by evening it[Pg 153] became known throughout the army that the princes were safe, that the port town had been secured, and that the Moors were retreating from the citadel.

Henry, Edward, and Pedro held a council, and settled to storm the castle next morning; but after sunset a few scouts, sent out to reconnoitre, reported that all the garrison had fled.

Henry, Edward, and Pedro had a meeting and decided to attack the castle the next morning; however, after sunset, a few scouts sent out to gather intel reported that all the guards had left.

It was true. The Governor, who had despaired all along of holding out, was no sooner beaten out of the lower city than he set the example of a strategic movement up the country, and when the Portuguese appeared at the fortress gate with axes and began to hew it down, only two Moors were left inside. They shouted out that the Christians might save themselves that trouble, for they would open it themselves, and the standard of St. Vincent, Patron of Lisbon, was planted, before dark came, upon the highest tower of Ceuta.

It was true. The Governor, who had lost hope of holding out, was barely driven out of the lower city when he led a strategic retreat up the country. As the Portuguese showed up at the fortress gate with axes and started to chop it down, only two Moors remained inside. They called out that the Christians could skip the effort because they would open it themselves, and before nightfall, the flag of St. Vincent, Patron of Lisbon, was planted on the highest tower of Ceuta.

King John offered Henry, for his gallant leadership, the honours of the day and the right to be knighted before his brothers, but the Prince, who had offered at the beginning of the storm to resign his command to Edward, as the eldest, begged that "those who were before him in age might have their right, to be first in dignity as well," and the three Infantes received their knighthood in order of birth, each holding in his hands the bare sword that the Queen had given him on her deathbed.

King John honored Henry for his brave leadership by giving him the accolades of the day and the right to be knighted before his brothers. However, the Prince, who had suggested at the start of the conflict that he would step down to Edward, the eldest, requested that "those who are older than him should have their right to be honored first," so the three Infantes were knighted in order of their birth, each holding the bare sword that the Queen had gifted them on her deathbed.

It was the first Christian rite held in the great Mosque of Ceuta, now purified as the Cathedral, and after it the town was thoroughly and carefully sacked from end to end. The plunder, of gold and[Pg 154] silver and gems, stuffs and drugs, was great enough to make the common soldiers reckless of other things. The "great jars of oil and honey and spices and all provisions" were flung out into the streets, and a heavy rain swept away what would have kept a large garrison in plenty.

It was the first Christian ceremony held in the grand Mosque of Ceuta, which is now the Cathedral, and after that, the town was completely and meticulously looted from one end to the other. The treasure, including gold, silver, gems, fabrics, and spices, was so abundant that the ordinary soldiers disregarded everything else. The "huge jars of oil, honey, spices, and all kinds of supplies" were tossed into the streets, and a heavy rain washed away what could have sustained a large garrison for a long time.

The great nobles and the royal Princes took back to Portugal some princely spoils. Henry's half-brother, now Count of Barcellos, afterwards more famous and more troublesome as Duke of Braganza, chose for his share some six hundred columns of marble and alabaster from the Governor's palace. Henry himself gained in Ceuta a knowledge of inland Africa, of its trade routes and of the Gold Coast, that encouraged him to begin from this time the habit of coasting voyages. His earlier essays in exploration had been attempts, like the unconnected and occasional efforts of Spanish and Italian daredevils. It is from this year that continuous ocean sailing begins; from the time of his stay in Ceuta, Henry works steadily and with foresight towards a nearer goal well foreseen, a first stage in his wider scheme which had been traversed by men he had known and talked with. They had come into Ceuta from Guinea over the sea of the desert; he would send his sailors to their starting-point by the longer way, over the desert of the sea.

The great nobles and the royal princes brought back some valuable treasures to Portugal. Henry's half-brother, who was now the Count of Barcellos and later became more famous and troublesome as the Duke of Braganza, chose about six hundred columns made of marble and alabaster from the Governor's palace. Henry himself gained knowledge of inland Africa, its trade routes, and the Gold Coast while in Ceuta, which encouraged him to start a habit of coastal voyages from that time on. His earlier exploration attempts were similar to the sporadic and unconnected efforts of some daring Spanish and Italian adventurers. It is from this year that continuous ocean sailing begins; during his time in Ceuta, Henry worked steadily and with foresight towards a clearly envisioned goal, marking the first stage of his broader plan, which had been followed by men he had known and spoken with. They had arrived in Ceuta from Guinea across the desert sea; he would send his sailors to their starting point via the longer route, across the desert of the sea.

Thus the victory at Ceuta is not without a very direct influence on our subject; and for the same reason, it was important that the conquerors, instead of razing the place, decided to hold it. When most of the council of war were for a safe and quick return[Pg 155] to Portugal, one noble, Pedro de Menezes, a trusted friend of Henry's, struck upon the ground impatiently a stick of orange-wood he had in his hands. "By my faith, with this stick I would defend Ceuta from every Morisco of them all." He was left in command, and thus kept open, as it were, to Europe and to the Prince's view, one end of a great avenue of commerce and intercourse, which Henry aimed at winning for his country. When his ships could once reach Guinea, the other end of that same line was in his hands as well.

Thus, the victory at Ceuta has a very direct impact on our topic; and for the same reason, it was crucial that the conquerors, instead of demolishing the place, choose to keep it. While most of the war council favored a safe and quick return[Pg 155] to Portugal, one noble, Pedro de Menezes, a trusted friend of Henry's, struck the ground impatiently with a stick of orange wood he held. "I swear, with this stick I'd defend Ceuta against every single Morisco." He was put in charge, and in doing so, he essentially kept open, for Europe and the Prince’s vision, one end of a major avenue of trade and communication, which Henry sought to secure for his country. Once his ships could reach Guinea, he would also have the other end of that same route in his control.

GATEWAY OF THE CHURCH OF THE ORDER OF CHRIST AT THOMAR.

GATEWAY OF THE CHURCH OF THE ORDER OF CHRIST AT THOMAR.

GATEWAY OF THE CHURCH OF THE ORDER OF CHRIST AT THOMAR.

GATEWAY OF THE CHURCH OF THE ORDER OF CHRIST AT THOMAR.

The King and the Princes left Ceuta in September of the same year (Sept. 2, 1415), but Henry's connection with his first battle-field was not yet over. Menezes found after three years' sole command, that the Moors were pressing him very hard. The King of Granada had sent seventy-four ships to blockade the city from the sea, and the troops of Fez were forcing their way into the lower town. Henry was hurriedly sent from Lisbon to its relief, while Edward and Pedro got themselves ready to follow him, if needed, from Lagos and the Algarve coast. But Ceuta had already saved itself. As the first succours were sailing through the Straits of Gibraltar, Menezes contrived to send them word of his danger; the Berbers on the land side had mastered Almina, or the eastern part of the merchant town, while the Granada galleys had closed in upon the port itself. At this news Henry made the best speed he could, but he was only in time to see the rout of the Moors. Menezes and the garrison made a desperate sally directly they sighted the relief coming through[Pg 156] the straits; the same appearance struck a panic into the enemy's fleet, and only one galley stayed on the African coast to help their landsmen, who were thus left alone and without hope of succour on the eastern hills of the Ceuta peninsula, cut off by the city from their Berber allies. When Henry landed, Almina had been won back and the last of the Granada Moslems cut to pieces. From that day Ceuta was safe in Christian hands.

The King and the Princes left Ceuta in September of that same year (Sept. 2, 1415), but Henry's connection to his first battlefield wasn't over yet. Menezes found that after three years of being in sole command, the Moors were pressing him hard. The King of Granada had sent seventy-four ships to blockade the city from the sea, and the troops from Fez were forcing their way into the lower town. Henry was quickly sent from Lisbon to help, while Edward and Pedro prepared to follow him, if needed, from Lagos and the Algarve coast. But Ceuta had already managed to save itself. As the first reinforcements were sailing through the Straits of Gibraltar, Menezes managed to send them word of his danger; the Berbers on the land side had taken Almina, or the eastern part of the merchant town, while the Granada galleys had closed in on the port itself. Hearing this, Henry made the best speed he could, but he arrived just in time to witness the Moors' defeat. Menezes and the garrison made a desperate charge as soon as they saw the reinforcements coming through[Pg 156] the straits; this sight caused panic in the enemy's fleet, and only one galley remained on the African coast to help their land troops, who were left alone and without hope of aid on the eastern hills of the Ceuta peninsula, cut off from their Berber allies by the city. When Henry landed, Almina had been recaptured and the last of the Granada Muslims had been defeated. From that day on, Ceuta was securely in Christian hands.

But the Prince, after spending two months in the hope that he might find some more work to do in Africa, planned a daring stroke in Europe. Islam still owned in Spain the kingdom of Granada, too weak to reconquer the old Western Caliphate, but too strong, as the last refuge of a conquered and once imperial race, to be an easy prey of the Spanish kingdoms. And in that kingdom, Gibraltar, the rock of Tarik, was the most troublesome of Moorish strongholds. The Mediterranean itself was not fully secured for Christian trade and intercourse while the European Pillar of the Western straits was a Saracen fort. If Portugal was to conquer or explore in northern Africa, Gibraltar was as much to be aimed at as Ceuta. Both sides of the straits, Calpe and Abyla, must be in her hands before Christendom could expand safely along the Atlantic coasts.

But the Prince, after spending two months hoping to find more work in Africa, planned a bold move in Europe. Islam still controlled the kingdom of Granada in Spain, which was too weak to regain the old Western Caliphate but too strong, as the last refuge of a conquered and once-great race, to be an easy target for the Spanish kingdoms. In that kingdom, Gibraltar, the rock of Tarik, was the most troublesome Moorish stronghold. The Mediterranean wasn't fully secured for Christian trade and interaction while the European Pillar of the Western straits was a Saracen fort. If Portugal wanted to conquer or explore northern Africa, Gibraltar was just as important as Ceuta. Both sides of the straits, Calpe and Abyla, had to be under her control before Christendom could safely expand along the Atlantic coasts.

So Henry, in the face of all his council, determined to make the trial on his voyage back to Lisbon. But a storm broke up the fleet, and when it could be refitted and re-formed, the time had gone by, and the Prince obeyed his father's repeated orders and returned at once to Court. For his gallantry and skill[Pg 157] in the storm of Ceuta, he had been made Duke of Viseu and Lord of Covilham, when King John first touched his own kingdom—after the African campaign—at Tavira, on the Algarve coast. With his brother Pedro, who shared his honours as Duke of Coimbra and Lord of the lands henceforward known as the Infantado or Principality, Henry thus begins the line of Dukes in Portugal, and among the other details of the war, his name is specially joined with that of an English fleet which he had enrolled as a contingent of his armada while recruiting for ships and men in the spring of 1415. In the same way as English crusaders had passed Lisbon just in time to aid in its conquest by Affonso Henriquez, the "great first King" of Portugal in 1147, so now twenty-seven English ships on their way to Syria were just in time to help the Portuguese make their first conquest abroad.

So Henry, facing all his council, decided to take on the trial during his journey back to Lisbon. However, a storm scattered the fleet, and by the time it was repaired and regrouped, it was too late, and the Prince followed his father's repeated orders and returned immediately to Court. For his bravery and skill[Pg 157] in the storm at Ceuta, he was made Duke of Viseu and Lord of Covilham when King John first returned to his own kingdom—after the African campaign—at Tavira, on the Algarve coast. Alongside his brother Pedro, who shared the title of Duke of Coimbra and Lord of the lands that would henceforth be known as the Infantado or Principality, Henry thus began the line of Dukes in Portugal. Among the various details of the war, his name is particularly associated with an English fleet he had enlisted as part of his armada while recruiting ships and men in the spring of 1415. Just as English crusaders had passed through Lisbon right in time to help with its conquest by Affonso Henriquez, the "great first King" of Portugal in 1147, twenty-seven English ships on their way to Syria also arrived just in time to assist the Portuguese in their first conquest abroad.

Lastly, the results of the Ceuta campaign in giving positive knowledge of western and inland Africa to a mind like Henry's already set on the finding of a sea-route to India, have been noticed by all contemporaries and followers, who took any interest in his plans, but it was not merely caravan news that he gained in these two visits of 1415 and 1418. Both Azurara, the chronicler of his voyages and Diego Gomez, his lieutenant, the explorer of the Cape Verde Islands and of the Upper Gambia, are quite clear about the new knowledge of the coast now gained from Moorish prisoners.

Lastly, the results of the Ceuta campaign in providing positive insights about western and inland Africa to a mind like Henry's, which was already focused on finding a sea route to India, have been acknowledged by all his contemporaries and followers who were interested in his plans. However, it wasn't just caravan news that he acquired during his two visits in 1415 and 1418. Both Azurara, the chronicler of his voyages, and Diego Gomez, his lieutenant who explored the Cape Verde Islands and the Upper Gambia, clearly articulated the new knowledge about the coast that was gained from Moorish prisoners.

Not only did the Prince get "news of the passage of merchants from the coasts of Tunis to Timbuctoo[Pg 158] and to Cantor on the Gambia, which inspired him to seek the lands by the way of the sea," but also "the Tawny Moors (or Azanegues) his prisoners told him of certain tall palms growing at the mouth of the Senegal or western Nile, by which he was able to guide the caravels he sent out to find that river." By the time Henry was ready to return from Ceuta to Portugal for good and all, in 1418, there were clearly before his mind the five reasons for exploring Guinea given by his faithful Azurara:

Not only did the Prince hear "about merchants traveling from the coasts of Tunis to Timbuktu[Pg 158] and to Cantor on the Gambia, which motivated him to explore the lands by sea," but also "the Tawny Moors (or Azanegues) he had captured informed him of some tall palms growing at the mouth of the Senegal or western Nile, which helped him direct the caravels he sent out to discover that river." By the time Henry was ready to permanently return from Ceuta to Portugal in 1418, he clearly had in mind the five reasons for exploring Guinea provided by his loyal Azurara:

First of all was his desire to know the country beyond Cape Bojador, which till that time was quite unknown either by books or by the talk of sailors.

First of all was his desire to know the land beyond Cape Bojador, which until then was completely unknown from either books or the stories told by sailors.

Second was his wish that if any Christian people or good ports should be discovered beyond that cape, he might begin a trade with them that would profit both the natives and the Portuguese, for he knew of no other nation in Europe who trafficked in those parts.

Second was his wish that if any Christian people or good ports were found beyond that cape, he could start a trade with them that would benefit both the locals and the Portuguese, since he was unaware of any other nation in Europe that traded in those areas.

Thirdly, he believed the Moors were more powerful on that side of Africa than had been thought, and he feared there were no Christians there at all. So he was fain to find out how many and how strong his enemies really were.

Thirdly, he believed the Moors were stronger on that side of Africa than previously thought, and he feared there were no Christians there at all. So he was eager to find out how many and how strong his enemies really were.

Fourthly, in all his fighting with the Moors he had never found a Christian prince to help him from that side (of further Africa) for the love of Christ, therefore he wished, if he could, to meet with such.

Fourth, in all his battles with the Moors, he had never encountered a Christian prince willing to help him from that side of Africa out of love for Christ. So, he hoped to find such a person if possible.

Last was his great desire for the spread of the Christian Faith and for the redemption of the vast tribes of men lying under the wrath of God.[Pg 159]

Last was his strong desire for the spread of the Christian faith and for the salvation of the many groups of people suffering under God's wrath.[Pg 159]

Behind all these reasons Azurara also believed in a sixth and deeper one, which he proceeds to state with all gravity, as the ultimate and celestial cause of the Prince's work.

Behind all these reasons, Azurara also believed in a sixth and deeper one, which he proceeds to express with complete seriousness, as the ultimate and divine cause of the Prince's work.

"For as his ascendant was Aries, that is in the House of Mars and the Exaltation of the Sun, and as the said Mars is in Aquarius, which is the House of Saturn, it was clear that my lord should be a great conqueror, and a searcher out of things hidden from other men, according to the craft of Saturn, in whose House he was."[35]

"For since his rising sign was Aries, which is in the House of Mars and the Exaltation of the Sun, and since Mars is positioned in Aquarius, the House of Saturn, it was evident that my lord would be a great conqueror and a seeker of things hidden from others, in line with the skills of Saturn, where he resides."[35]

decorative illustration

decorative illustration


decorative illustration

decorative illustration

CHAPTER IX.

HENRY'S SETTLEMENT AT SAGRES AND FIRST DISCOVERIES.

1418-28.

Whatever the Prince owed to his stay at Ceuta beyond the general suggestion and encouragement to take up a life-profession of discovery, it was at any rate put into practice on his second and last return (1418). From that time to the end of his life he became a recluse from the Court life of Lisbon, though he soon gathered round himself a rival Court, of science and seamanship.

WNo matter what the Prince gained from his time in Ceuta beyond the general inspiration to pursue a career in exploration, he certainly acted on it during his second and final return (1418). From then on, until the end of his life, he distanced himself from the royal life in Lisbon, although he quickly formed his own rival Court focused on science and navigation.

The old "Sacred Cape" of the Romans, then called Sagres, now the "Cape St. Vincent" of Nelson and modern maps, was his chosen home for the next forty years, though he seems to have passed a good deal of his time in his port of Lagos, close by.

The ancient "Sacred Cape" of the Romans, once known as Sagres, now referred to as the "Cape St. Vincent" on Nelson and modern maps, became his home for the next forty years, although he appeared to spend a significant amount of his time in the nearby port of Lagos.

In 1419 King John made him Governor for life of the Algarves (the southern province of Portugal) and the new governor at once began to rebuild and enlarge the old naval arsenal, in the neck of the Cape, into a settlement that soon became the "Prince's[Pg 161] Town." In Lagos, his ships were built and manned; and there, and in Sagres itself, all the schemes of discovery were thought out, the maps and instruments corrected, and the accounts of past and present travellers compared by the Prince himself. His results then passed into the instructions of his captains and the equipment of his caravels. The Sacred Cape, which he now colonised, was at any rate a good centre for his work of ocean voyaging. Here, with the Atlantic washing the land on three sides, he was well on the scene of action. There were buildings on Sagres headland as old as the eleventh century; Greek geography had made this the starting-point of its shorter and continental measurements for the length of the habitable world, and the Genoese, whose policy was to buy up points of vantage on every coast, were eager to plant a colony there, but Portugal was not ready to become like the Byzantine Empire, a depot for Italian commerce, and Henry had his own reasons for securing a desolate promontory.

In 1419, King John appointed him Governor for life of the Algarve (the southern province of Portugal), and the new governor immediately started to rebuild and expand the old naval arsenal at the Cape into a settlement that quickly became known as the "Prince's[Pg 161] Town." In Lagos, his ships were constructed and staffed; there, as well as in Sagres itself, all the plans for exploration were developed, maps and tools were refined, and the accounts of past and current travelers were reviewed by the Prince himself. His findings then informed the instructions given to his captains and the outfitting of his caravels. The Sacred Cape, which he was now colonizing, was a good base for his ocean voyages. Here, with the Atlantic Ocean on three sides, he was right at the center of the action. There were structures on the Sagres headland dating back to the eleventh century; Greek geography had established this as the starting point for its shorter and continental measurements of the habitable world, and the Genoese, who aimed to secure strategic points along every coast, were eager to establish a colony there. However, Portugal wasn't ready to become like the Byzantine Empire, serving as a hub for Italian trade, and Henry had his own reasons for claiming a barren promontory.

On this he now built himself a palace, a chapel, a study, an observatory—the earliest in Portugal—and a village for his helpers and attendants. "In his wish to gain a prosperous result for his efforts, the Prince devoted great industry and thought to the matter, and at great expense procured the aid of one Master Jacome from Majorca, a man skilled in the art of navigation and in the making of maps and instruments, and who was sent for, with certain of the Arab and Jewish mathematicians, to instruct the Portuguese in that science." So at least, says De[Pg 162] Barros, the "Livy of Portugal." At Sagres was thus founded anew the systematic study of applied science in Christendom; it was better than the work of the old Greek "University" at Alexandria with which it has been compared, because it was essentially practical. From it "our sailors," says Pedro Nunes, "went out well taught and provided with instruments and rules which all map-makers should know." We would gladly know more of Henry's scientific work; a good many legends have grown up about it, and even his foundation of the Chair of Mathematics in the University of Lisbon or Coimbra, our best evidence of the unrecorded work of his school, has been doubted by some modern critics, even by the national historian, Alexander Herculano. But to Prince Henry's study and science two great improvements on this side may be traced: first in the art of map-making, secondly in the building of caravels and ocean craft.

On this, he built himself a palace, a chapel, a study, an observatory—the first in Portugal—and a village for his helpers and staff. "In his desire to achieve successful results from his efforts, the Prince dedicated significant time and thought to the task, and at great expense enlisted the help of one Master Jacome from Majorca, a skilled navigator and mapmaker, who was brought in along with certain Arab and Jewish mathematicians to teach the Portuguese that science." At least, that’s what De[Pg 162] Barros, the "Livy of Portugal," claims. Thus, at Sagres, the systematic study of applied science in Christendom was revived; it was better than the old Greek "University" at Alexandria it was compared to because it was fundamentally practical. From it, "our sailors," says Pedro Nunes, "set out well-trained and equipped with instruments and rules that all mapmakers should know." We would love to learn more about Henry's scientific work; many legends have developed around it, and even his establishment of the Chair of Mathematics at the University of Lisbon or Coimbra, our best evidence of his school’s unrecorded work, has been questioned by some modern critics, including the national historian, Alexander Herculano. However, two significant advancements in this area can be traced back to Prince Henry's study and science: first, in the art of map-making, and second, in the construction of caravels and ocean vessels.

The great Venetian map of Fra Mauro of the Camaldolese convent of Murano, finished in 1459, one year before the Navigator's death, is evidence for the one; Cadamosto's words, as a practical seaman, of Italian birth, in Henry's service, that the "caravels of Portugal were the best sailing ships afloat," may be proof sufficient of the other.

The impressive Venetian map by Fra Mauro from the Camaldolese convent of Murano, completed in 1459, just a year before the Navigator's death, supports the first claim. Cadamosto, an Italian-born practical sailor in Henry's service, stated that the "caravels of Portugal were the best sailing ships around," which may be enough evidence for the second claim.

On both these lines, Henry took up the results of Italians and worked towards success with their aid. As Columbus and the Cabots and Verazzano in later times represented the intellectual leadership of Italy to other nations—Spain, England, and France; but had to find their career and resources not in their[Pg 163] own commercial republics, but at the Courts of the new centralised kingdoms of the West, where a paternal despotism gave the best hope of guiding any popular movement, social or religious or political or scientific,—so in the earlier fifteenth century, mariners like Cadamosto and De Nolli, scientific draughtsmen like Fra Mauro and Andrea Bianco, looked from Venice and Genoa to the Court of Sagres and to the service of Prince Henry as their proper sphere, where they would find the encouragement and reward they sought for at home and often sought in vain.

On both these fronts, Henry leveraged the results of Italians and aimed for success with their assistance. Just as Columbus, the Cabots, and Verazzano later embodied Italy's intellectual leadership to countries like Spain, England, and France, they had to carve out their careers and find resources not within their own commercial republics, but at the courts of the new centralized kingdoms in the West. There, a paternal authority offered the best chance to steer any popular movement—whether social, religious, political, or scientific. Similarly, in the early fifteenth century, sailors like Cadamosto and De Nolli, along with scientific mapmakers like Fra Mauro and Andrea Bianco, turned from Venice and Genoa to the Court of Sagres and to Prince Henry's service, seeing it as the right environment where they could receive the support and recognition they often couldn’t find back home.

Henry's settlement on Cape St. Vincent was not long without results. The voyage of his captain, John de Trasto, to the "fruitful" district of Grand Canary in 1415 was not in any sense a discovery, as the conquest of John de Béthencourt in 1402 had made these "Fortunate" islands perfectly well known, but the finding of Porto Santo and Madeira in 1418-20 was a real gain. For the Machin story of the English landing in Madeira was a close secret, which by good fortune passed into the Prince's keeping, but not beyond, so that as far as general knowledge went, the Portuguese were now fairly embarked upon the Sea of Darkness.

Henry's settlement on Cape St. Vincent started showing results quickly. The journey of his captain, John de Trasto, to the "fruitful" area of Grand Canary in 1415 wasn’t a discovery at all, as John de Béthencourt had conquered these "Fortunate" islands in 1402, making them well known. However, the discovery of Porto Santo and Madeira between 1418 and 1420 was a significant achievement. The story about the English landing in Madeira was a closely guarded secret that, by chance, ended up with the Prince, but not beyond him, so that in terms of general knowledge, the Portuguese were now fairly engaged in the Sea of Darkness.

First came the sighting of the "Holy Haven" in 1418. In this year, says Azurara, two squires of the Prince's household, named John Gonsalvez Zarco and Tristam Vaz, eager for renown and anxious to serve their lord, had set out to explore as far as the coast of Guinea, but they were caught by a storm near Lagos and driven to the island of Porto Santo. This name[Pg 164] they gave themselves "at this very time in their joy at thus escaping the perils of the tempest."

First, the "Holy Haven" was spotted in 1418. According to Azurara, two squires from the Prince's household, named John Gonsalvez Zarco and Tristam Vaz, eager for glory and keen to serve their lord, set off to explore as far as the coast of Guinea. However, they were caught in a storm near Lagos and swept away to the island of Porto Santo. They named this place[Pg 164] in their excitement at escaping the dangers of the tempest.

Zarco and Vaz returned in triumph to Sagres and reported the new-found island to be well worth a permanent settlement. Henry, always "generous," took up the idea with great interest and sent out Zarco and Vaz with another of his equerries, one Bartholomew Perestrello, to colonise, with two ships and products for a new country; corn, honey, the sugar cane from Sicily, the Malvoisie grape from Crete, even the rabbit from Portugal.

Zarco and Vaz came back victoriously to Sagres and reported that the newly discovered island was definitely suitable for a permanent settlement. Henry, ever "generous," embraced the idea enthusiastically and sent Zarco and Vaz out again with one of his assistants, Bartholomew Perestrello, to establish a colony, bringing along two ships and supplies for the new land: corn, honey, sugar cane from Sicily, Malvoisie grapes from Crete, and even rabbits from Portugal.

On his first return voyage Zarco had captured the pilot Morales of Seville, and from him the Prince had gained certain news of the English landing in Madeira. So it was with a definite purpose of further discovery that his captains returned to Porto Santo in 1420, with Morales as their guide. Now, as before, Zarco appears as chief in command; he had won himself a name at Ceuta, and if the tradition be true, had just brought in the first use of ship-artillery; the finding of Porto Santo was mainly credited to him.

On his first return trip, Zarco had captured the pilot Morales from Seville, and from him, the Prince had learned about the English landing in Madeira. With a clear goal of further exploration, his captains returned to Porto Santo in 1420, with Morales as their guide. Once again, Zarco was in overall command; he had made a name for himself at Ceuta, and if the stories are true, he had just introduced the use of ship artillery. The discovery of Porto Santo was primarily attributed to him.

Sailing from Lagos in June, 1420, he had no sooner reached once again the "Fair Haven" of his first success, than he was called to note a dark line, like a mark of distant land, upon the south-west horizon. The colonists he had left on his earlier visit had watched this day by day till they had made certain of its being something more than a passing appearance of sea or sky, and Morales was ready with his suggestion that this was Machin's island. The fog that hung over this part of the ocean would be[Pg 165] natural to a thick and dank woodland like that on the island of his old adventure.

Sailing from Lagos in June 1420, he had barely reached the "Fair Haven" of his first success when he noticed a dark line on the south-west horizon, resembling distant land. The colonists he had left during his earlier visit had watched this day after day until they became certain it was more than just a fleeting glimpse of sea or sky. Morales was quick to suggest that this might be Machin's island. The fog that lingered over this part of the ocean would be[Pg 165] typical of a dense and damp forest like the one on the island from his previous adventure.

Zarco resolved to try: After eight days' rest in Porto Santo he set sail, and, observing that the fog grew less toward the east of the cloud bank, made for that point and came upon a low marshy cape, which he called St. Lawrence Head. Then, creeping round the south coast, he came to the high lands and the forests of Madeira,—so named here and now, either as De Barros says, "from the thick woods they found there," or, in the form of Machico, from the first discoverer, luckless Robert Machin. For on landing the Portuguese, guided by Morales, soon found the wooden cross and grave of the Englishman and his mistress, and it was there that Zarco, with no human being to dispute his title, "took seizin" of the island in the name of King John, Prince Henry, and the Order of Christ.

Zarco decided to give it a shot: After eight days of resting in Porto Santo, he set sail and noticed that the fog was thinning out to the east of the cloud bank. He headed in that direction and found a low, marshy cape, which he named St. Lawrence Head. Then, making his way around the south coast, he arrived at the highlands and forests of Madeira—named either from the thick woods as De Barros mentions or, referring to its first discoverer, the unfortunate Robert Machin. When the Portuguese landed, guided by Morales, they quickly came across the wooden cross and grave of the Englishman and his lover. It was there that Zarco, with no one to challenge his claim, "took seizin" of the island in the name of King John, Prince Henry, and the Order of Christ.

Embarking once more, he then coasted slowly round from the "River of the Flint" to "Jackdaw Point," and the "Chamber of the Wolves," where his men started a herd of sea-calves. So he came to the vast plain overgrown with fennel or "Funchal," where the chief town of after days grew up. A party sent inland to explore, reported that on every side the ocean could be seen from the hills; and Zarco, after taking in some specimens of the native wood and plants and birds at Funchal, put back in the last days of August to Portugal.

Setting off again, he slowly navigated from the "River of the Flint" to "Jackdaw Point" and the "Chamber of the Wolves," where his crew started a herd of seals. He then arrived at the expansive plain covered in fennel, or "Funchal," where the chief town of later days would be established. A group sent inland to explore reported that the ocean was visible from the hills in every direction; and after collecting some samples of the native wood, plants, and birds at Funchal, Zarco returned to Portugal in the last days of August.

He was splendidly received at Court, made a count—"Count of the Chamber of the Wolves,"—and granted the command of the island for his own life.[Pg 166] A little later, the commandership was made hereditary in his family. Tristam Vaz, the second in the Prince's commission, was rewarded too: the northern half of Madeira was given him as a captaincy, and in 1425 Henry began to colonise in form. Zarco, as early as May, 1421, had returned with wife and children and attendants, and begun to build the "port of Machico," and the "city of Funchal," but this did not become a state affair until four years more had gone by.

He was warmly welcomed at Court, made a count—“Count of the Chamber of the Wolves”—and given control of the island for his lifetime.[Pg 166] Shortly after, the command was made hereditary in his family. Tristam Vaz, the second in the Prince's commission, was also rewarded: he received the northern half of Madeira as a captaincy, and in 1425, Henry started formal colonization. As early as May 1421, Zarco had returned with his wife, children, and attendants, beginning the construction of the “port of Machico” and the “city of Funchal,” but it wasn’t recognized as a state matter until four more years had passed.

But from the first, the island, by its export of wood and dragon's blood and wheat, began to reward the trouble of discovery and settlement. Sugar and wine were brought to perfection in later years, after the great "Seven years' fire" had burnt down the forests and enriched the soil of Madeira. It was soon after Zarco's return to Funchal that he first set fire to the woods behind the fennel fields of the coast, to clear himself a way through the undergrowth into the heart of the island; the fire blazed and smouldered till it had taken well hold of the entire mass of timber that covered the upper country, nothing in the feeble resources of the first settlers could stop it, and Madeira lighted the ships of Henry on their way to the south, like a volcano, till 1428. This was at least the common story as told in Portugal, and it was often joined with another—of the rabbit plague, which ate up all the green stuff of the island in the first struggling years of Zarco's settlement, and so prevented the export of anything but timber. So much of this was brought into Portugal that Henry's lifetime is a landmark in the domestic[Pg 167] architecture of Spain, and from the trade of the "Wood Island" is derived the lofty style of building that now began to replace the more modest fashion of the Arabs.

But right from the start, the island, with its exports of wood, dragon's blood, and wheat, began to make the effort of discovery and settlement worthwhile. Sugar and wine were perfected in the years that followed, after the great "Seven Years' Fire" burned down the forests and enriched Madeira's soil. It was soon after Zarco returned to Funchal that he set fire to the woods behind the fennel fields along the coast to clear a path through the undergrowth into the island's interior; the fire blazed and smoldered until it consumed the entire mass of timber covering the upper region, and nothing in the limited resources of the early settlers could stop it. Madeira lit up the ships of Henry on their way south, like a volcano, until 1428. This was at least the common story told in Portugal, often accompanied by another tale—the rabbit plague that devoured all the greenery of the island in the early struggles of Zarco's settlement, limiting exports to just timber. So much of this was shipped to Portugal that Henry's lifetime became a marker in the domestic[Pg 167] architecture of Spain, and from the trade of the "Wood Island" emerged the grand style of building that began to replace the more modest taste of the Arabs.

A charter of Henry's, dated 1430, ten years after the rediscovery of Madeira, and reciting the names of some of the first settlers, and his bequest of the island, or rather of its "spiritualties," to the Order of Christ on September 18, 1460, just before his death, are the chief links between this colony and the home country in the next generation—but in the history of institutions there are few more curious facts than the insistence of the Prince on a census for his little "Nation." From the first, the family registers of the colonists were carefully kept, and from these we see something of the wonder of men who were beginning human life, as it were, in a new land. The first children born in Madeira—a son and daughter of Ayres Ferreira, one of Zarco's comrades—were christened Adam and Eve.[36]

A charter from Henry, dated 1430, ten years after Madeira was rediscovered, lists some of the first settlers and mentions his gift of the island, or more specifically its "spiritualties," to the Order of Christ on September 18, 1460, just before he died. These documents serve as the main connections between this colony and the homeland in the following generation. However, one of the more interesting aspects of institutional history is the Prince's insistence on a census for his small "Nation." From the beginning, the family records of the colonists were meticulously maintained, and from these, we glimpse the amazement of people who were starting human life anew in a foreign land. The first children born in Madeira—a son and daughter of Ayres Ferreira, a colleague of Zarco—were named Adam and Eve.[36]

decorative illustration

decorative illustration


decorative illustration

decorative illustration

CHAPTER X.

CAPE BOJADOR AND THE AZORES.

1428-1441.

But in spite of Zarco's success, Cape Bojador had not yet been passed, though every year, from 1418, caravels had left Sagres, "to find the coasts of Guinea."

BBut despite Zarco's success, Cape Bojador still hadn't been crossed, even though every year since 1418, caravels had set sail from Sagres, "to discover the coasts of Guinea."

In 1428, Don Pedro, Henry's elder brother, had come home from his travels, with all the books and charts he had collected to help the explorers—and it is practically certain that the Mappa Mundi given him in Venice acted as a direct suggestion to the next attempts on west and south—westward to the Azores, southward towards Guinea.

In 1428, Don Pedro, Henry's older brother, returned home from his travels with all the books and maps he had gathered to assist the explorers—and it's almost certain that the Mappa Mundi he received in Venice inspired the next efforts to head west and southwest—westward to the Azores and southward toward Guinea.

Kept in the royal monastery of Alçobaça till late in the sixteenth century, though now irrecoverably lost, this treasure of Don Pedro's, like his "manuscripts of travel," would seem to have been used at the Sagres school till Prince Henry's death, and at least as early as 1431 its effect was seen in the first Portuguese recovery of the Azores. All the West African islands, plainly enough described in the[Pg 169] map of 1428, were half within, half without the knowledge of Christendom, ever and anon being brought back or rediscovered by some accident or enterprise, and then being lost to sight and memory through the want of systematic exploration. This was exactly what the Portuguese supplied. The Azores, marked on the Laurentian Portulano of 1351, were practically unknown to seamen when, after eighty years had passed, Gonzalo Cabral was sent out from Sagres to find them (1431). He reached the Formiga group—the Ant islands,—and next year (1432) returned to make further discoveries, chiefly of the island Santa Maria. But the more important advances on this side were made between 1444-50, after the first colony had been planted twelve or fourteen years, and were the result of the Prince's theoretical correction of his captains' practical oversight. From a comparison of old maps and descriptions with their accounts, he was able to correct their line of sail and so to direct them to the very islands they had searched for in vain.

Kept in the royal monastery of Alçobaça until late in the sixteenth century, although now irretrievably lost, this treasure of Don Pedro's, like his "travel manuscripts," appears to have been used at the Sagres school until Prince Henry's death. At least as early as 1431, its impact was evident in the first Portuguese recovery of the Azores. All the West African islands, clearly described in the[Pg 169] map of 1428, were only partially known to Christendom, often being rediscovered or stumbled upon through chance or expeditions, then fading from memory due to the lack of organized exploration. This is precisely what the Portuguese provided. The Azores, marked on the Laurentian Portulano of 1351, were virtually unknown to sailors when, after eighty years, Gonzalo Cabral was sent from Sagres to locate them (1431). He reached the Formiga group—the Ant islands—and the following year (1432) returned to make further discoveries, mainly of the island Santa Maria. However, the more significant advancements on this front were made between 1444-50, after the first colony had been established twelve or fourteen years earlier, and were the result of the Prince’s theoretical refinement of his captains’ practical mistakes. By comparing old maps and descriptions with their accounts, he was able to correct their sailing routes and guide them to the very islands they had previously searched for in vain.

But as yet these results were far distant, and the slow and sure progress of African coasting towards Cape Bojador was the chief outcome of Pedro's help. In 1430, 1431, and 1432, the Infant urged upon his captains the paramount importance of rounding the Cape, which had baffled all his caravels by its strong ocean currents and dangerous rocks. At last this became the Prince's one command: Pass the Cape if you do nothing beyond; yet the years went by, King John of good memory died in[Pg 170] 1433, and Gil Eannes, sent out in the same year with strong hopes of success, turned aside at the Canaries and only brought a few slaves back to Portugal. A large party at Court, in the Army, and among the nobles and merchant classes, complained bitterly of the utter want of profit from Henry's schemes, and there was at this time a danger of the collapse of his movement. For though as yet he paid his own expenses, his treasury could not long have stood the drain without any incoming.

But so far, these results were still a long way off, and the slow but steady progress of African coastal navigation toward Cape Bojador was the main outcome of Pedro's assistance. In 1430, 1431, and 1432, the Prince emphasized to his captains how crucial it was to round the Cape, which had thwarted all his caravels due to its strong ocean currents and perilous rocks. Eventually, this became the Prince's singular command: Pass the Cape, even if you do nothing else; yet the years went by, King John passed away in[Pg 170] 1433, and Gil Eannes, who was sent out that same year with high hopes for success, turned back at the Canaries and only returned to Portugal with a few slaves. A large faction at Court, in the Army, and among the nobles and merchants voiced their frustration about the total lack of profit from Henry's initiatives, and during this time, there was a real risk of his movement collapsing. Even though he was still covering his own expenses, his treasury couldn't sustain the losses with no incoming funds for much longer.

Bojador, the "paunch" or "bulging Cape," 180 miles beyond Cape Non, had been, since the days of the Laurentian Portulano (1351), and the Catalan and Portuguese voyages of 1341 and 1346, the southmost point of Christian knowledge. A long circuit was needed here, as at the Cape of Good Hope, to round a promontory that stretched, men said, fully one hundred miles into the ocean, where tides and shoals formed a current twenty miles across. It was the sight or the fancy of this furious surge which frightened Henry's crews, for it plainly forbade all coasting and compelled the seamen to strike into the open sea out of sight of land. And though the discovery of Porto Santo had proved the feasibility and the gain of venturing boldly into the Sea of Darkness, and though since that time (1418) the Prince had sent out his captains due west to the Azores and south-west to Madeira, both hundreds of miles from the continent, yet in rounding Bojador there were not only the real terrors of the Atlantic, but the legends of the tropics to frighten back the boldest.[Pg 171]

Bojador, known as the "paunch" or "bulging Cape," is located 180 miles beyond Cape Non and has been, since the days of the Laurentian Portulano (1351) and the Catalan and Portuguese voyages of 1341 and 1346, the southernmost point of Christian knowledge. A long detour was necessary here, just like at the Cape of Good Hope, to navigate a promontory that stretched, as people said, a full hundred miles into the ocean, where tides and shallows created a current twenty miles wide. It was the sight or even the thought of this violent surge that scared Henry's crews, as it clearly made all coastal navigation impossible and forced the sailors to head out into the open sea, away from land. And although the discovery of Porto Santo had shown that it was possible and profitable to venture boldly into the Sea of Darkness, and since then (1418) the Prince had sent his captains due west to the Azores and southwest to Madeira, both hundreds of miles from the mainland, rounding Bojador involved not just the real dangers of the Atlantic but also the terrifying legends of the tropics that could deter even the bravest. [Pg 171]

Most mariners had heard it said that any Christian who passed Bojador would infallibly be changed into a black, and would carry to his end this mark of God's vengeance on his insolent prying. The Arab tradition of the Green Sea of Night had too strongly taken hold of Christian thought to be easily shaken off. And it was beyond the Cape which bounded their knowledge that the Saracen geographers had fringed the coast of Africa with sea-monsters and serpent rocks and water unicorns, instead of place names, and had drawn the horrible giant hand of Satan raised above the waves to seize the first of his human prey that would venture into his den. If God made the firm earth, the Devil made the unknown and treacherous ocean—this was the real lesson of most of the mediæval maps, and it was this ingrained superstition that Henry found his worst enemy, appearing as it did sometimes even in his most trusted and daring captains.

Most sailors had heard that any Christian who passed Bojador would definitely be turned into a black and would carry this mark of God's punishment for their arrogant curiosity until the end of their days. The Arab legend of the Green Sea of Night had firmly embedded itself in Christian beliefs and was hard to shake off. Beyond the Cape, which marked the edge of their knowledge, Saracen geographers had decorated the coast of Africa with sea monsters, rocky serpents, and water unicorns instead of actual place names, and had illustrated the terrible giant hand of Satan raised above the waves to snatch the first human prey foolish enough to enter his lair. If God created the solid earth, then the Devil created the unknown and perilous ocean—this was the true lesson of most medieval maps, and this deep-rooted superstition was Henry’s biggest challenge, manifesting even in his most trusted and boldest captains.

And then again, the legends of Tropical Africa, of the mainland beyond Bojador, were hardly less terrible than those of the Tropical Ocean. The Dark Continent, with its surrounding Sea of Darkness, was the home of mystery and legend. We have seen how ready the Arabs were to write Uninhabitable over any unknown country—dark seas and lands were simply those that were dark to them, like the Dark Ages to others, but nowhere did their imagination revel in genies and fairies and magicians and all the horrors of hell, with more enthusiastic and genial interest than in Africa. Here only the northern parts could be lived in by man. In the[Pg 172] south and central deserts, as we have heard from the Moslem doctors themselves, the sun poured down sheets of liquid flame upon the ground and kept the sea and the rivers boiling day and night with the fiery heat. So any sailors would of course be boiled alive as soon as they got near to the Torrid Zone.

And again, the stories from Tropical Africa, beyond Bojador, were just as frightening as those of the Tropical Ocean. The Dark Continent and its surrounding Sea of Darkness were filled with mystery and legend. We’ve seen how quick the Arabs were to label any unknown land as Uninhabitable—dark seas and lands were simply those that were dark to them, much like the Dark Ages were to others. But nowhere did their imagination thrive with genies, fairies, magicians, and all sorts of hellish horrors as it did in Africa. Only the northern regions were known to be habitable for humans. In the[Pg 172]southern and central deserts, as we’ve heard from the Muslim scholars themselves, the sun unleashed sheets of liquid fire upon the ground, keeping the sea and rivers boiling day and night with oppressive heat. So any sailors would definitely be boiled alive as soon as they got close to the Torrid Zone.

It was this kind of learning, discredited but not forgotten, that was still in the minds of Gil Eannes and his friends when they came home in 1433, with lame excuses, to Henry's Court. The currents and south winds had stopped them, they said. It was impossible to get round Bojador.

It was this kind of learning, discredited but not forgotten, that was still in the minds of Gil Eannes and his friends when they came home in 1433, with lame excuses, to Henry's Court. The currents and south winds had stopped them, they said. It was impossible to get around Bojador.

The Prince was roused. He ordered the same captain to return next year and try the Cape again. His men ought to have learned something better than the childish fables of past time. "And if," said he, "there were even any truth in these stories that they tell, I would not blame you, but you come to me with the tales of four seamen who perhaps know the voyage to the Low Countries or some other coasting route, but, except for this, don't know how to use needle or sailing chart. Go out again and heed them not, for by God's help, fame and profit must come from your voyage, if you will but persevere."

The Prince was awake. He told the same captain to come back next year and try the Cape again. His crew should have learned something better than the silly stories from the past. "And if," he said, "there was even any truth in these tales, I wouldn't blame you, but you come to me with stories from four sailors who probably know the way to the Low Countries or some other coastal route, but, other than that, don't know how to read a compass or a sailing map. Go out again and ignore them, because with God's help, you will gain fame and profit from your voyage if you just keep at it."

The Prince was backed by the warm encouragement of the new King, Edward, his eldest brother, who had only been one month upon the throne when he bestirred himself to shew his favour to a national movement of discovery. King John had died on August 14, 1433 (the anniversary of Aljubarrota), and on September 26th, of the same year, by a[Pg 173] charter given from Cintra, King Edward granted the islands of Madeira and Porto Santo, with the Desertas, to Henry as Grand Master of the Order of Christ.

The Prince received strong support from the new King, Edward, his older brother, who had only been on the throne for a month when he decided to show his support for a national movement of exploration. King John had passed away on August 14, 1433 (the anniversary of Aljubarrota), and on September 26 of the same year, by a[Pg 173] charter issued from Cintra, King Edward granted the islands of Madeira and Porto Santo, along with the Desertas, to Henry as Grand Master of the Order of Christ.

With this encouragement the Infant sent out Gil Eannes in 1434 under the strongest charge not to return without a good account of the Cape and the seas beyond. Running far out into the open, his caravel doubled Bojador, and coming back to the coast found the sea "as easy to sail in as the waters at home," and the land very rich and pleasant. They landed and discovered no trace of men or houses, but gathered plants, "such as were called in Portugal St. Mary's roses," to present to Don Henry. Not even the southern Cape of Tempests or Good Hope was so long and obstinate a barrier as Bojador had been, and the passing of this difficulty proved the salvation of the Prince's schemes. Though again and again interrupted by political troubles between 1437 and 1449, the advance at sea went on, and never again was there a serious danger of the failure of the whole movement through general opposition and discontent.

With this encouragement, the Infant sent Gil Eannes out in 1434 with a strong directive not to return without a solid report on the Cape and the seas beyond. Venturing far into open waters, his caravel rounded Bojador and returned to the coast, finding the sea "as easy to sail in as the waters at home," and the land very rich and pleasant. They landed and saw no sign of people or homes, but collected plants, "which were called St. Mary's roses in Portugal," to present to Don Henry. Not even the southern Cape of Tempests or Good Hope was as long and stubborn a barrier as Bojador had been, and overcoming this challenge proved to be the key to the Prince's plans. Although political issues interrupted progress repeatedly between 1437 and 1449, maritime exploration continued, and there was never again a serious risk of the entire effort failing due to widespread opposition and discontent.

In 1435 Gil Eannes was sent out again to follow up his success with Affonso Baldaya, the Prince's cupbearer, in a larger vessel than had yet been risked in exploration, called a varinel, or oared galley. The two captains passed fifty leagues—one hundred and fifty miles—beyond the Cape, and found traces of caravans, reached as far as an inlet they named Gurnet Bay, from its shoals of fish, and again put back to Lagos, early in the year.[Pg 174]

In 1435, Gil Eannes was sent out again to build on his success with Affonso Baldaya, the Prince's cupbearer, using a larger vessel than had previously been used in exploration, called a varinel or oared galley. The two captains traveled fifty leagues—one hundred and fifty miles—beyond the Cape, where they found signs of caravans and reached an inlet they named Gurnet Bay, due to its abundance of fish. They then returned to Lagos early that year.[Pg 174]

There were still several months left for ocean sailing in 1435, and Henry at once despatched Baldaya again in his varinel, with orders to go as far as he could along the coast, at least till he could find some natives. One of these he was to bring home with him. Baldaya accordingly sailed 130 leagues—390 miles—beyond Cape Bojador, till he reached an estuary running some twenty miles up the country and promising to lead to a great river. This might prove to be the western Nile of the Negroes, or the famous River of Gold, Baldaya thought, and though it proved to be only an inlet of the sea, the name of Rio d'Ouro, then given by the first hopes of the Portuguese, has outlasted the disappointment that found only a sandy reach instead of a waterway to the Mountains of the Moon and the kingdom of Prester John.

There were still a few months left for ocean sailing in 1435, and Henry immediately sent Baldaya out again in his ship, with orders to go as far as he could along the coast, at least until he could find some locals. One of these locals was to be brought back with him. Baldaya then sailed 130 leagues—390 miles—beyond Cape Bojador, until he reached an estuary that ran about twenty miles inland and seemed to lead to a great river. Baldaya thought this might be the western Nile of the Negroes, or the famous River of Gold, and although it turned out to be just a sea inlet, the name Rio d'Ouro, given by the initial hopes of the Portuguese, has lasted longer than the disappointment of finding only a sandy stretch instead of a waterway to the Mountains of the Moon and the kingdom of Prester John.

Baldaya anchored here, landed a couple of horses which the Infant had given him to scour the country, and set "two young noble gentlemen" upon them to ride up country, to look for signs of natives, and if possible to bring back one captive to the ship. Taking no body-armour, but only lance and sword, the boys followed the "river" to its source, seven leagues up the country, and here came suddenly upon nineteen savages, armed with assegais. They rode up to them and drove them out of the open up to a loose mound of stones; then as evening was coming on and they could not secure a prisoner, they rode back to the sea and reached the ship about the dawn of day. "And of these boys," says the chronicler, "I myself knew one, when he was a[Pg 175] noble gentleman of good renown in arms. His name was Hector Homen, and you will find him in our history well proved in brave deeds. The other, named Lopez d'Almeida, was a nobleman of good presence, as I have heard from those who knew him."

Baldaya anchored here, landed a couple of horses that the Infant had given him to explore the area, and assigned "two young noble gentlemen" to ride them into the countryside to look for signs of natives, hoping to bring back one captive to the ship. They didn't take any armor, just a lance and a sword, and followed the "river" to its source, seven leagues inland, where they suddenly encountered nineteen natives armed with assegais. They approached the natives and drove them out into a loose mound of stones; as evening was approaching and they couldn't secure a prisoner, they rode back to the sea and reached the ship around dawn. "And of these boys," says the chronicler, "I personally knew one, who was a[Pg 175] noble gentleman of good renown in arms. His name was Hector Homen, and you will find him in our history well recognized for brave deeds. The other, named Lopez d'Almeida, was a nobleman of good stature, as I have heard from those who knew him."

This first landing of Europeans on the coasts of unknown Africa, since the days of Carthaginian colonies, is one of the great moments in the story of Western expansion and discovery. For it means that Christendom on her Western side has at last got beyond the first circle of her enemies, the belt of settled Moslem ground, and has begun to touch the wider world outside, on the shore of the ocean as well as along the Eastern trade routes. And it almost seemed to be of little practical value that Marco Polo and the friars and traders who followed him had passed Islam in Asia, and reached even furthest Tartary, for it only made more clear that Asia was not Christian, and that there would have to be a deadly struggle before European influence could be restored on this side to what it had been under Alexander; but on the west, by the Atlantic coasts, once Morocco had been passed, there were only scattered savage tribes to be dealt with. Baldaya had now reached the pagans beyond Islam; the rival civilisation of the Arabs and their converts had been almost outflanked by Don Henry's ships; and the boys who rode up the Rio d'Ouro beach in 1435 were the first pickets of a great army. Their charge upon a body of grown men ten times their number, was a prophecy of the coming conquests of[Pg 176] Christian Europe in the new worlds it was now in search of, in south and east and west.

This first arrival of Europeans on the shores of uncharted Africa, since the days of Carthaginian colonies, is a significant moment in the history of Western expansion and discovery. It signifies that Christianity in the West has finally broken through its first circle of enemies, the belt of settled Muslim territory, and has begun to reach the broader world beyond, along the ocean's coast and across the Eastern trade routes. It seemed almost meaningless that Marco Polo and the missionaries and traders who followed him had passed through Islamic lands in Asia and even reached as far as Tartary, as it only made it clearer that Asia was not Christian and that there would be a fierce struggle before European influence could be reestablished here to what it once was under Alexander. However, on the western Atlantic coasts, once Morocco was passed, there were only scattered tribes to contend with. Baldaya had now reached the pagans beyond Islam; the competing civilization of the Arabs and their converts had been nearly outmaneuvered by the ships of Don Henry. The young men who rode up the Rio d'Ouro beach in 1435 were the first sentinels of a vast army. Their charge against a group of adult men ten times their number foreshadowed the upcoming conquests of[Pg 176] Christian Europe in the new lands it was now seeking in the south, east, and west.

Now Baldaya instantly followed up his pioneers. He took a party in his ship's boat and rode up the stream to the scene of the fight, with the boys on horseback riding by the bank and shewing him the stone-heap where the natives had rallied on the day before. But in the night they had all fled farther up country, leaving most of their miserable goods behind. All these were carried off, and the Portuguese left the Bay of the Horses, as they called this farthest reach of the Rio d'Ouro, and pulled back to the varinel, without any further success than a wholesome disappointment. They must go farther southward if they were to find the western Nile and the way round Africa.

Now Baldaya quickly followed his scouts. He took a group in his ship's boat and paddled up the river to the scene of the fight, with the boys on horseback riding along the bank and pointing out the stone heap where the locals had gathered the day before. But during the night, they all fled further inland, leaving most of their miserable belongings behind. All of these were taken, and the Portuguese left the Bay of the Horses, as they called this farthest point of the Rio d'Ouro, and returned to the varinel, without any further success other than a disappointing letdown. They would have to head further south if they wanted to find the western Nile and the route around Africa.

Still Baldaya was not content. He wished to carry back a prisoner, as Henry had charged him, and so he coasted along fifty leagues more, from the Rio d'Ouro to the Port of Gallee, a rock that looked like a galley, where there was a more prominent headland than he had passed since Bojador. Here he landed once again, and found some native nets, made of the bark of trees, but none of the natives who made them.

Still, Baldaya was not satisfied. He wanted to bring back a prisoner, as Henry had instructed him, so he continued along the coast for another fifty leagues, from the Rio d'Ouro to the Port of Gallee, a rocky spot that resembled a galley, where there was a more noticeable headland than any he had encountered since Bojador. Here, he landed once more and discovered some native nets made from tree bark, but none of the locals who made them.

In the early months of 1436 he and his varinel were again in Portuguese waters; but the land had now been touched that lay three hundred miles beyond the old African Finisterre, and in two years (1434-6) Portugal and all the Christian nations, through Henry's work, had entered on a new chapter of history. The narrower world of the Roman Empire[Pg 177] and the Mediæval Church was already growing into the modern globe in the break up of that old terror of the sea which had so long fixed for men the bounds that they must not pass. The land routes had been cleared to Western knowledge, though not mastered, by the Crusades; now the far more dreaded and unknown water-way was fairly entered. For up to this time there is no fair evidence that either Christian or Moorish enterprise had ever rounded Bojador, and the theoretical marking of it upon maps was a very different thing from the experience that it was just like any other cape, and no more an end of the world than Cape St. Vincent itself. Neither Genoese, nor Catalans, nor Normans of Dieppe, nor the Arab wanderers of Edrisi and Ibn Said were before Don Henry now. His discoveries of the Atlantic islands were findings, rediscoveries; his coast voyages from the year 1433 are all ventures in the true unknown.

In the early months of 1436, he and his crew were back in Portuguese waters. However, the land they now reached was three hundred miles past the old African Finisterre, and in just two years (1434-6), Portugal and all the Christian nations, thanks to Henry’s efforts, had entered a new chapter in history. The limited world of the Roman Empire[Pg 177] and the Medieval Church was beginning to evolve into the modern globe as the old fear of the sea, which had long confined people to certain boundaries, was breaking down. The land routes had been opened to Western knowledge, though not fully mastered, by the Crusades; now, the much more feared and unknown seaway was being explored. Until this time, there is no solid evidence that either Christian or Moorish ventures had ever rounded Bojador, and merely marking it on maps was very different from the reality that it was just like any other cape and no more the edge of the world than Cape St. Vincent itself. Neither the Genoese, nor the Catalans, nor the Normans from Dieppe, nor the Arab explorers Edrisi and Ibn Said had come before Don Henry. His discoveries of the Atlantic islands were both findings and rediscoveries; his coastal voyages from the year 1433 were all true adventures into the unknown.

But from 1436 to 1441, from Baldaya's second return to the start of Nuno Tristam and Antam Gonsalvez for Cape Blanco, exploration was not successful or energetic. The simple cause of this was the Infant's other business. In these years took place the fatal attempt on Tangier, the death of King Edward, and the troubles of the minority of his child, Affonso V.—Affonso the African conqueror of later years.

But from 1436 to 1441, from Baldaya's second return to the start of Nuno Tristam and Antam Gonsalvez's expedition to Cape Blanco, exploration wasn't successful or vigorous. The main reason for this was the Infant's other commitments. During these years, there was the disastrous attempt on Tangier, the death of King Edward, and the challenges during the minority of his son, Affonso V.—Affonso the African conqueror of later years.

True it is, we read in our Chronicle of the Discovery of Guinea, that in these years there went to those parts two ships, one at a time, but the first turned back in the face of bad weather, and the other[Pg 178] only went to the Rio d'Ouro for the skins and oil of sea wolves, and after taking in a cargo of these, went back to Portugal. And true it is, too, that in the year 1440 there were armed and sent out two caravels to go to that same land, but in that they met with contrary fortune, we do not tell any more of their voyage.

It’s true what we read in our Chronicle of the Discovery of Guinea: during those years, two ships traveled to those regions, one after the other. The first ship turned back due to bad weather, and the second[Pg 178] only reached the Rio d'Ouro to collect sealskins and whale oil, then returned to Portugal after loading up. It’s also true that in 1440, two armed caravels were sent out to that same area, but since they encountered misfortune, we won't go into details about their journey.

decorative illustration

decorative illustration


decorative illustration

decorative illustration

CHAPTER XI.

HENRY'S POLITICAL LIFE. 1433-1441.

The Prince's exile from politics in his hermitage at Sagres could not be absolutely unbroken. He was ready to come back to Court and to the battle field when he was needed. So he appeared at the deathbed of his father in 1433 and of his brother in 1438, at the siege of Tangier in 1437, and during the first years of the Regency (1438-40) he helped to govern for his nephew, Edward's son Affonso. From 1436 till 1441 he did not seriously turn his attention back to discovery.

TThe Prince's time away from politics in his retreat at Sagres wasn’t completely without interruptions. He was ready to return to Court and the battlefield whenever he was needed. So, he was present at his father's deathbed in 1433 and his brother's in 1438, at the siege of Tangier in 1437, and during the early years of the Regency (1438-40), he assisted in governing for his nephew, Edward's son Affonso. From 1436 to 1441, he didn’t seriously focus on exploration.

What is chiefly interesting in the story of these years is the half-religious reverence paid to Henry by his brothers, by Cortés, and the whole people. He was above and beyond his age, but not so much as to be beyond its understanding. He was not a leader where there are no followers; he was one of the fortunate beings who are most valued by those who have lived on the closest terms with them, by father and by brothers.

What’s most interesting in the story of these years is the almost religious respect given to Henry by his brothers, by Cortés, and by everyone. He stood out from his time, but not so much that people couldn’t grasp him. He wasn’t a leader without followers; he was one of those rare individuals who are truly appreciated by those who are closest to them, like family and brothers.

It was believed throughout the kingdom that King[Pg 180] John's last words were "an encouragement to the Infant to persevere in his right laudable purpose of spreading the Christian faith in the lands of darkness"; whether true or not, at any rate it was felt to fit the place and the man, and Henry's brothers, Pedro and Edward, took up loyally their father's commission to keep peace at home and sailing ships on the sea.

It was widely believed across the kingdom that King[Pg 180] John's last words were "an encouragement to the young prince to keep pushing forward in his noble goal of spreading the Christian faith in the dark lands." Regardless of whether it was true, it seemed appropriate for both the setting and the person. Henry's brothers, Pedro and Edward, dutifully embraced their father's charge to maintain peace at home and to keep the ships sailing on the sea.

But the new reign was short and full of trouble. King Edward had scarcely been crowned when the scheme of an African war was revived by Don Ferdinand, the fourth of the "Famous Infants" of the House of Aviz (1433). Ferdinand, always a Crusader at heart, had refused a Cardinal's hat, that he might keep his strength for killing the enemies of Christ, and in Henry he found a ready listener. It was the Navigator, in fact, who planned and organised the scheme of campaign now pressed upon the King and the country. It was perfectly natural that he should do so. The war of Ceuta had been of the first importance to his work of discovery; it had been largely his own achievement, and his wish to conquer Heathens and Saracens and to make good Christians of them was hardly less strong than his natural bent for discovery and exploring settlement. He now took up Ferdinand's suggestion, made of it a definite project—for a storm of Tangier—and wrung a reluctant consent from Edward and from Cortés. The chief hindrance was lack of money; even the popularity of the Government could not prevent "sore grudging and murmuring among the people." Don Pedro himself was against the whole[Pg 181] plan, and from respect to his wishes the question was referred to the Pope. Are we to make war on the infidels or no?

But the new reign was short and full of trouble. King Edward had barely been crowned when Don Ferdinand, the fourth of the "Famous Infants" from the House of Aviz (1433), revived plans for an African war. Ferdinand, always a Crusader at heart, had turned down a Cardinal's hat so he could focus on fighting the enemies of Christ, and he found a willing listener in Henry. In fact, it was the Navigator who conceived and set up the campaign now being pushed onto the King and the nation. It made perfect sense for him to do this. The war of Ceuta had been crucial to his exploration efforts; it was largely his own accomplishment, and his desire to conquer Heathens and Saracens and convert them to Christianity was nearly as strong as his natural passion for discovery and settling new lands. He took up Ferdinand's suggestion, turned it into a concrete plan—for an assault on Tangier—and managed to get a reluctant agreement from Edward and Cortés. The main obstacle was a lack of funds; even the government's popularity couldn't stop "sore grudging and murmuring among the people." Don Pedro himself was opposed to the entire plan, and out of respect for his wishes, the matter was referred to the Pope. Should we go to war against the infidels or not?

If the infidels in question, answered the Curia, were in Christian land and used Christian churches as mosques of Mohammed, or if they made incursions upon Christians, though always returning to their own land, or if doing none of these things they were idolaters or sinned against nature, the Princes of Portugal would do right to levy war upon them. But this should be done with prudence and piety, lest the people of Christ should suffer loss. Further, it was only just to tax a Christian people for support of an infidel war, when the said war was of necessity in defence of the kingdom. If the war was voluntary, for the conquering of fresh lands from the Heathen, it could only be waged at the King's own cost.

If the non-believers in question, the Curia replied, were in Christian territory and used Christian churches as mosques for Mohammed, or if they launched attacks on Christians while always returning to their own land, or if they did neither of these but were idolaters or acted against nature, then the Princes of Portugal would be justified in waging war against them. However, this should be done wisely and with respect, so that Christians do not suffer losses. Also, it was only fair to tax Christians to support a war against non-believers when that war was necessary for the defense of the kingdom. If the war was optional, aimed at conquering new lands from the pagans, it should only be funded by the King himself.

But before this answer arrived, the armament had been made ready, and things had gone too far to draw back; the Queen was eager for the war, and had brought King Edward to a more willing consent. So in the face of bad omens, an illness of Prince Ferdinand's, and the warning words of Don Pedro, the troops were put on board ship, August 17, 1437. On August 22d they set sail, and on the 26th landed at Ceuta, where Menezes still commanded. The European triumphs of 1415 and 1418 were still fresh in the memories of the Moors, and Don Henry was remembered as their hero. So it was to him that the tribes of the Beni Hamed sent offers of submission and tribute on the first news of the invasion.[Pg 182] The Prince accepted their presents of gold and silver, cattle and wood, and left them in peace during the war, for the forces he had with him were barely sufficient for the siege of Tangier. Out of fourteen thousand men levied in Portugal, only six thousand answered the roll-call in Ceuta. A great number had shirked the dangers of Africa; and the room on shipboard had in itself been absurdly insufficient. The transports provided were just enough for the battalions that actually crossed, and for a fresh supply they must be sent back to Lisbon. In the council of war most were agreed upon this as the best thing on paper, but the practical difficulties were so great that Henry decided not to wait for reinforcements, but to push forward with the troops in hand.

But before the answer came, the weapons were ready, and things had gone too far to pull back; the Queen was eager for war and had convinced King Edward to agree. So, despite bad signs, Prince Ferdinand’s illness, and Don Pedro’s warnings, the troops were loaded onto ships on August 17, 1437. They set sail on August 22 and landed at Ceuta on the 26th, where Menezes was still in charge. The European victories of 1415 and 1418 were still fresh in the minds of the Moors, and Don Henry was remembered as their hero. So it was to him that the Beni Hamed tribes sent offers of surrender and tribute as soon as they heard about the invasion.[Pg 182] The Prince accepted their gifts of gold and silver, livestock, and wood, and left them in peace during the war, as his forces were barely enough for the siege of Tangier. Out of fourteen thousand men recruited in Portugal, only six thousand showed up in Ceuta. Many had avoided the dangers of Africa, and the space on the ships had been ridiculously inadequate. The transports available were just enough for the battalions that actually crossed, and to get more supplies, they would need to go back to Lisbon. In the war council, most agreed this was the best plan on paper, but the practical challenges were so significant that Henry decided not to wait for reinforcements but to move forward with the troops he had.

The direct road to Tangier by way of Ximera was now found impassable, and it was determined to march the army round by Tetuan, while the fleet was brought up along the coast. Ferdinand, who was still suffering and unequal to the land journey, was to go by sea, while his elder brother, as chief captain of the whole armament, undertook to force his way along the inland routes. In this he was successful. In three days he came before Tetuan, which opened its gates at once, and on September 23d, without losing a single man, he appeared before Old Tangier, where Ferdinand was already waiting his arrival.

The direct road to Tangier through Ximera was now blocked, so it was decided to march the army around by Tetuan while the fleet moved along the coast. Ferdinand, who was still in pain and unable to make the land journey, would go by sea, while his older brother, as the main captain of the entire force, took on the challenge of navigating the inland routes. He was successful in this. In three days, he arrived at Tetuan, which opened its gates right away, and on September 23rd, without losing a single man, he reached Old Tangier, where Ferdinand was already waiting for him.

A rumour was now spread that the Moors were flying from Tangier as they had fled from Ceuta castle two and twenty years before, but Zala ben Zala, who commanded here as he had done there,[Pg 183] now knew better how to defend a town, with the desperate courage of his Spanish foes. The attack instantly ordered by Henry on the gates of Tangier was roughly repulsed, and for the next fortnight the losses of the crusaders were so heavy that the siege was turned into a blockade. On September 30th, 10,000 horse and 90,000 foot came down from the upland to the coast for the relief of Tangier. Henry promptly led his little army into the open and ordered an attack, and the vast Moorish host which had taken up its station on a hill within sight of the camp, not daring to accept the challenge, wavered, broke, and rushed headlong to the mountains. But after three days they reappeared in greater numbers and even ventured down into the plain. Again Henry drove them back; again—next day—they returned; at last, after their force had been swollen to 130,000 men, and by overwhelming numbers had compelled the Christians to keep within their trenches, they threw themselves upon the Portuguese outposts. After a desperate struggle they were repulsed and a sally from the town was beaten back at the same time; the Europeans seemed ready to meet any odds. With these victories, Henry was confident that Tangier must soon fall; he ordered another escalade, but all his scaling ladders were burnt or broken and many of his men crushed beneath the overhanging parts of the wall, that were pushed down bodily upon the storming parties. In this final assault of the 5th of October, two Moors were taken who told Henry of immense succours now coming up under the Kings of Fez, of Morocco,[Pg 184] and of Tafilet. They had with them, said the captives, at least 100,000 horse; their infantry was beyond count. Sure enough; on the 9th of October, the hills round Tangier seemed covered with the native armies, and it became clear that the siege must be raised. All that was left for Henry was to bring off his soldiers in safety. He tried his best. With quiet energy he issued his orders for all contingents; the marines and seamen were to embark at once; the artillery was given in charge of the Marshal of the Kingdom; Almada, the Hercules of Portugal, was to draw up the foot in line of battle; the Infant himself took his station with the cavalry on a small piece of rising ground.

A rumor was spreading that the Moors were fleeing from Tangier just as they had fled from Ceuta Castle twenty-two years earlier, but Zala ben Zala, who was in charge there as he had been before,[Pg 183] now knew how to defend a town against the desperate courage of his Spanish enemies. The immediate attack ordered by Henry on the gates of Tangier was roughly repelled, and for the next two weeks, the losses for the crusaders were so severe that the siege turned into a blockade. On September 30th, 10,000 cavalry and 90,000 infantry came down from the highlands to the coast to relieve Tangier. Henry quickly led his small army into the open and ordered an attack, causing the large Moorish force stationed on a hill visible from the camp to hesitate, break, and flee to the mountains. However, after three days they returned in greater numbers and even ventured down into the plain. Once again, Henry drove them back; again—next day—they came back; finally, after their numbers grew to 130,000, overwhelming the Christians and forcing them to stay within their trenches, they attacked the Portuguese outposts. After a fierce struggle, they were repelled, and a sortie from the town was pushed back simultaneously; the Europeans appeared ready to face any odds. With these victories, Henry was confident that Tangier would soon fall; he ordered another assault, but all his scaling ladders were burned or broken, and many of his men were crushed by falling sections of the wall that collapsed onto the storming parties. In this final attack on October 5th, two Moors were captured who informed Henry of immense reinforcements coming from the Kings of Fez, Morocco,[Pg 184] and Tafilet. They claimed to have at least 100,000 cavalry and an uncountable number of infantry. Sure enough, on October 9th, the hills around Tangier appeared to be covered with native armies, making it clear that the siege had to be lifted. All that was left for Henry was to get his soldiers out safely. He did his best. With quiet determination, he issued orders for all units; the marines and sailors were to embark immediately; the artillery was handed over to the Marshal of the Kingdom; Almada, the Hercules of Portugal, was to arrange the infantry in battle lines; the Infant himself took his position with the cavalry on a small rise.

When the Moors charged, they were well received. In spite of all their strength, one army being held ready to take another's place, as men grew tired, the Portuguese held their own. Henry had a horse killed under him; Cabral, his Master of Horse, fell at his side with five and twenty of his men; the cowardice of one regiment, who fled to the ships, almost ruined the defence; but when night fell, the Moorish columns fell sullenly back and left the Infant one more chance of flight and safety. It was the only hope, and even this was lost through the desertion of a traitor. Martin Vieyra, the apostate priest, once Henry's chaplain, now gave up to the enemy's generals the whole plan of escape.

When the Moors charged, they were met with resistance. Despite their strength, and one army being ready to replace another as the men grew tired, the Portuguese held their ground. Henry had a horse killed beneath him; Cabral, his Master of Horse, fell beside him along with twenty-five of his men; the cowardice of one regiment, which ran to the ships, nearly ruined the defense; but when night fell, the Moorish forces sullenly retreated, giving the Infante one more chance to escape. It was the only hope, and even that was lost due to the betrayal of a traitor. Martin Vieyra, the apostate priest, once Henry's chaplain, now revealed the entire escape plan to the enemy's generals.

After a long debate, it was determined, not to massacre the Christian army, but to take sureties from them that Ceuta should be restored with all the Moorish captives in the Prince's hands. These terms[Pg 185] were accepted, for it was soon known that escape was hopeless.

After a lengthy discussion, it was decided not to slaughter the Christian army, but to secure guarantees from them that Ceuta would be returned along with all the Moorish captives held by the Prince. These terms[Pg 185] were agreed upon, as it quickly became clear that escape was pointless.

But next morning a large party of Moors, with more than the ordinary Moslem treachery, made a last fierce attempt to surprise the camp. For eight hours, eight separate attacks went on; when all had failed, the retreating Berbers tried to set fire to the woodwork of the entrenchments. With the greatest trouble, Henry saved his timbers, and under cover of night fortified a new and smaller camp close to the shore. Food and water had both run short, and the besiegers, who were now become the besieged, had to kill their horses and cook them, with saddles for fuel. They were saved from a fatal drought by a lucky shower of rain, but their ruin was only a matter of time, for it was hopeless to try an embarkation under the walls of the city with all the hosts of Morocco waiting for the first chance of a successful storm; but the losses of the native kings and chiefs had been so great that they were ready to sign a written truce and to keep their cut-throats to the terms of it.

But the next morning, a large group of Moors, with more than the usual Moslem cunning, made one last desperate attempt to surprise the camp. For eight hours, they launched eight separate attacks; when all of these failed, the retreating Berbers tried to set fire to the wooden structures of the fortifications. With great effort, Henry saved his timber and, under the cover of night, fortified a new, smaller camp close to the shore. Food and water were running low, and the besiegers, now turned besieged, had to kill their horses and use the saddles for fuel. They were spared from a deadly drought by a lucky shower of rain, but their downfall was just a matter of time, as trying to escape under the walls of the city with all the Moroccan forces waiting for a chance to attack was hopeless. However, the losses among the native kings and chiefs had been so severe that they were willing to sign a written truce and enforce its terms.

On the 15th of October, Don Henry, for the Portuguese, agreed that Ceuta, with all the Moorish prisoners kept in guard by Menezes, should be given up and that no further attack should be made by the King of Portugal on any side of Barbary for one hundred years. The arms and baggage of the crusaders were to be surrendered at once: directly this was done they were to embark, with none of the honours of war, and to sail back at once to Europe. Don Ferdinand was left with twelve nobles as host[Pg 186]ages for the treaty till Ceuta was restored; on the other side Zala ben Zala's eldest son was all the security given. Even after this, a plot was laid to massacre the "Christian dogs" as they passed through the streets of Tangier, on their free passage to the harbour which the treaty secured them. Henry got wind of this just in time, and instantly embarked his men by boats from the shore outside the walls, but his rearguard was set upon just as they were leaving the land and about sixty were killed.

On October 15th, Don Henry, representing the Portuguese, agreed that Ceuta, along with all the Moorish prisoners held by Menezes, would be surrendered, and that the King of Portugal would not launch any further attacks on any part of Barbary for a hundred years. The crusaders' weapons and belongings were to be handed over immediately; once this was done, they were to board ships without any military honors and return to Europe right away. Don Ferdinand stayed behind with twelve nobles as hostages for the treaty until Ceuta was handed back; in return, Zala ben Zala's eldest son was the only security provided. Even after this agreement, there was a scheme to kill the "Christian dogs" as they walked through the streets of Tangier on their way to the harbor secured by the treaty. Henry caught wind of this plot just in time and quickly had his men embark from boats outside the walls, but his rearguard was attacked just as they were leaving the shore, resulting in around sixty casualties.

It was a terrible disaster. Although his losses were but some five hundred killed and disabled, Henry was overcome with the disgrace. As he thought of his brother among the Moors, he refused to show his face in Portugal and shut himself up in Ceuta. Here, as he worried himself to find some means of saving Ferdinand, he fell dangerously ill, till fresh hope came to him with the arrival of Don John, whom Edward had sent to the help of his brothers with some reserves from Algarve. Henry and John consulted about Ferdinand's ransom and at last offered their chief hostage, Zala ben Zala's boy, as an exchange for the Infant. It was the only ransom, they told the Moors, that would ever be thought of; Ceuta would never be surrendered.

It was a terrible disaster. Even though he lost only about five hundred men, Henry was overwhelmed by the shame. As he thought about his brother among the Moors, he refused to show his face in Portugal and locked himself away in Ceuta. While he stressed over finding a way to save Ferdinand, he fell seriously ill, until new hope arrived with Don John, whom Edward had sent to assist his brothers with some reinforcements from Algarve. Henry and John discussed Ferdinand's ransom and eventually proposed their main hostage, Zala ben Zala's son, in exchange for the Infant. They told the Moors that this was the only ransom they would consider; Ceuta would never be given up.

Don John's mission was a failure, as might have been expected, and both the Princes were now recalled to Portugal, where Henry steadily refused to go to Court, staying at Sagres in an almost complete retirement from his usual interests, till King Edward's death forced him again into action. It was the unavoidable shame of the only choice given to[Pg 187] himself and the kingdom that paralysed his energy, and made him moody and helpless through this time of inaction and disgrace.

Don John's mission was a failure, as expected, and both Princes were recalled to Portugal, where Henry consistently refused to go to Court, staying at Sagres in almost complete seclusion from his usual interests until King Edward's death compelled him back into action. The unavoidable shame of the only option presented to[Pg 187] him and the kingdom stifled his energy, leaving him moody and helpless during this period of inactivity and disgrace.

"Captive, he saw his brother, the radiant Fernand
The Saint, aiming high with courageous intent,
Who is held as a hostage in the Saracen's grip He betrayed himself to save his besieged army. Unless acquired with the price of Ceita's powerful town "Public welfare should take precedence over personal interests." [37]

The mere failure to storm Tangier was brilliantly atoned for by the bravery of the army and the repeated victories over immensely superior force. But now either Ceuta must be exchanged for Ferdinand, or the youngest and favourite brother of the House of Aviz must be left to die among the Berbers. Many, if not most of the Cortés, summoned in 1438 to Leiria to discuss the ransom, were in favour of letting Ceuta go; but all the chiefs of the Government, except the King himself, "thought it not just to deliver a whole people to the fury of the infidels for the liberty of one man." Even Henry at last agreed in this with Don Pedro and Don John.

The simple failure to capture Tangier was brilliantly compensated for by the courage of the army and the repeated victories over a much stronger force. But now, either Ceuta must be traded for Ferdinand, or the youngest and favorite brother of the House of Aviz must be left to die among the Berbers. Many, if not most, of the Cortés, called to Leiria in 1438 to discuss the ransom, were in favor of giving up Ceuta; but all the leaders of the Government, except the King himself, "thought it unfair to hand an entire people over to the wrath of the infidels for the freedom of one man." Even Henry eventually agreed with Don Pedro and Don John on this.

Edward was in despair; he was willing to pay almost any price to recover Ferdinand, and in hope of finding support he now appealed from his own royal house and his nobles to the Pope, the cardinals, and the crowned heads of Europe. All agreed that a Christian city must not be bartered even for a Christian Prince; Edward's offers of money and "perpetual peace" were scornfully rejected[Pg 188] by the Moors, who held to their bond "Ceuta or nothing"—and their wretched captive, treated to all the filthy horrors of Mussulman imprisonment and slavery and torture, died under his agony in the sixth year of his living death and the forty-first of his age, 5th June, 1443.

Edward was in despair; he was ready to pay almost anything to get Ferdinand back, and in hopes of finding support, he turned from his own royal family and nobles to the Pope, the cardinals, and the kings of Europe. Everyone agreed that a Christian city shouldn’t be traded even for a Christian Prince; Edward's offers of money and "perpetual peace" were scornfully rejected[Pg 188] by the Moors, who stuck to their demand of "Ceuta or nothing"—and their miserable captive, subjected to all the horrible abuses of Muslim imprisonment, slavery, and torture, died in agony during his sixth year of suffering and at the age of forty-one, on June 5, 1443.

Before this his loss had dragged down to the same fate his eldest brother, King Edward, and but for the inspiration of a great purpose, which again put meaning into his life, Henry might have died of the same "illness of soul." Every Portuguese burned to revenge the Constant Prince; the Pope was called upon to approve a new crusade, levies were made and vessels built, when the plague broke out with terrible violence, and ravaged every class and every district as it had not since the days of the Black Death. The King, seized by it in his misery and weakness and bitter disappointment, fell a victim. The wreck of all his hopes left him with hardly a wish to live, and on September 9, 1438, at the age of forty-seven, and after a reign of five years, he died at Thomar, in the act of breaking open a letter, but not before Henry had come to his side.

Before this, his loss had brought about the same fate for his eldest brother, King Edward, and if it weren't for the inspiration of a great purpose that gave his life meaning again, Henry might have succumbed to the same "illness of soul." Every Portuguese was eager to seek revenge for the Constant Prince; the Pope was asked to approve a new crusade, funds were raised, and ships were built when the plague broke out with devastating intensity, sweeping through every class and every area as it hadn’t since the Black Death. The King, struck by it in his misery, weakness, and deep disappointment, became a victim. The destruction of all his hopes left him with barely a desire to live, and on September 9, 1438, at the age of forty-seven, after a reign of five years, he died at Thomar while attempting to open a letter, but not before Henry had arrived at his side.

To the last he kept on working for his people, and it was in the fatigue of travelling from one plague-stricken town to another that he caught the pest. Among all the kings of Christendom there was never a better, or nobler, or more luckless, an Alfred with the fortune of "Unready" Ethelred.

To the end, he continued to work for his people, and it was through the exhaustion of traveling from one plague-ridden town to another that he caught the disease. Among all the kings of Christendom, there was never a better, nobler, or more unfortunate one—a true Alfred with the fate of "Unready" Ethelred.

By his last will there was fresh trouble provided for Don Henry and Don Pedro and the Cortés. His successor—the child Affonso V., now six years of[Pg 189] age—was strictly charged to rescue Ferdinand even at the price of Ceuta; this was nothing to practical politics; but in naming his wife, Leonor of Aragon, along with Don Pedro and Don Henry, as guardian of his children and regent of the kingdom, he put power in the wrong place.

By his last will, new trouble was created for Don Henry and Don Pedro and the Cortés. His successor—the child Affonso V., now six years old—was specifically instructed to save Ferdinand, even if it meant sacrificing Ceuta; this didn’t matter much in practical politics. However, by naming his wife, Leonor of Aragon, along with Don Pedro and Don Henry, as guardian of his children and regent of the kingdom, he placed power in the wrong hands.

The Portuguese were always intensely suspicious of foreign government, and after the age of Leonora Telles they might well refuse a female Regent. On the other side King Edward's Queen, who had won his absolute trust as a wife and a mother, was not willing to stand aside for Pedro or for Henry. She began to organise a party, and she worked on her side, the nobles and the patriots counterworked on theirs. Don John was the first of her husband's brothers to take his natural place as a leader of the national opposition; Henry for a time seemed to waver between friendship and loyalty; all who knew the Queen loved her, but the people hated the very notion of a foreign female reign. Like John Knox they could not be fair to the Monstrous Regiment of Women, and their voices grew clearer and clearer for Don Pedro and his rights, real or supposed. The eldest of the young King's uncles, the right-hand man of the State since his return from travel in 1428, he was the proper guardian of the kingdom; Henry was a willing exile from most of Court life, though his support was the greatest moral strength of any government; John had begun the movement of discontent, but no one thought of him before his brothers; while they lived his only part was in helping them on their way.[Pg 190]

The Portuguese were always deeply suspicious of foreign rule, and after the era of Leonora Telles, they might reject a female Regent. On the other hand, King Edward's Queen, who had earned his complete trust as a wife and mother, wasn’t about to step aside for Pedro or Henry. She started to organize a faction, and while she worked on her side, the nobles and patriots countered on theirs. Don John was the first of her husband’s brothers to naturally step up as a leader of the national opposition; Henry seemed to waver between friendship and loyalty for a while. Everyone who knew the Queen admired her, but the people despised the very idea of a foreign female reign. Like John Knox, they couldn’t see the Monstrous Regiment of Women fairly, and their support for Don Pedro and his rights, whether real or imagined, grew louder. The oldest of the young King's uncles, he had been the right-hand man of the State since returning from his travels in 1428, making him the rightful guardian of the kingdom. Henry was mostly an exile from Court life, although his backing was the most significant moral strength of any government. John had sparked the movement of discontent, but nobody considered him before his brothers; while they were alive, his only role was to assist them on their path.[Pg 190]

Donna Leonor recognised her chief danger in Don Pedro, and tried to win him over. When she summoned Cortés, she pressed him to sign the royal writs; then she offered to betroth his daughter Isabel to her son; Pedro secured a written promise, and waited for the opening of the National Assembly in 1439. Here a fierce outcry was raised by a party of the nobles against the marriage-settlement of their King, but Don Pedro was too strong to be put down. He moved on by slow and steady intrigue towards the Regency he claimed. Henry had now appeared as peacemaker, and in his brother's interests arranged a compromise. The Queen was to keep the actual charge of her children, and to train the little King for his duties; Pedro was to govern the state as "Defender of the Kingdom and of the King"; the Count of Barcellos, soon to be Duke of Braganza, the leader of the factious and fractious party, was to be bought off with the Administration of the Justice of the Interior.

Donna Leonor saw her main threat in Don Pedro and tried to win him over. When she called Cortés, she urged him to sign the royal documents; then she proposed to betroth his daughter Isabel to her son. Pedro secured a written promise and waited for the National Assembly to open in 1439. At this assembly, a strong outcry was raised by a faction of the nobles against the marriage settlement of their King, but Don Pedro was too powerful to be shut down. He continued with slow and careful scheming towards the Regency he sought. Henry now appeared as a peacemaker and arranged a compromise in his brother's interest. The Queen was to retain actual responsibility for her children and prepare the young King for his duties; Pedro was to govern the state as "Defender of the Kingdom and of the King"; the Count of Barcellos, who would soon become Duke of Braganza and was the leader of the rebellious faction, was to be appeased with the administration of internal justice.

The Queen at first struggled on against this dethronement; fortified herself in Alemquer, and sent for help from her old home in Aragon. At this the mob rose in fury and only Henry was able to prevent a massacre and a war that would have stopped the expansion of Portugal abroad for many a day. He went straight to Alemquer (1439), talked Queen Leonor into reason, and brought her back with him to Lisbon, where she introduced Affonso to his people and his Parliament. For another year Henry stayed at Court, completing his work of settlement and reconciliation, and towards the end of 1440 that[Pg 191] work seemed fairly safe. The fear of civil war was over; Don Pedro's government was well started; Henry could now go back to Sagres to his other work of discovery.

The Queen initially fought against being overthrown; she took refuge in Alemquer and called for assistance from her homeland in Aragon. This infuriated the crowd, and only Henry managed to prevent a massacre and a conflict that would have delayed Portugal's expansion abroad for a long time. He went directly to Alemquer (1439), convinced Queen Leonor to see reason, and returned with her to Lisbon, where she introduced Affonso to his people and Parliament. Henry stayed at Court for another year, finalizing his efforts for stability and reconciliation, and by the end of 1440, that[Pg 191] effort seemed relatively secure. The fear of civil war had passed; Don Pedro's government was well underway; Henry could now return to Sagres to continue his exploration work.

It was time to do something on this side. For in the past five years scarcely any progress had been made to Guinea and the Indies.

It was time to take action on this side. In the past five years, hardly any progress had been made in Guinea and the Indies.

decorative illustration

decorative illustration


decorative illustration

decorative illustration

CHAPTER XII.

FROM BOJADOR TO CAPE VERDE.

1441-5.

But with the year 1441 discovery begins again in earnest, and the original narratives of Henry's captains, which old Azurara has preserved in his chronicle, become full of life and interest. From this point to the year 1448, where ends the Chronica, its tale is exceedingly picturesque, as it was written down from the remembrance of eye-witnesses and actors in the discoveries and conquests it records. And though the detail may be wearisome to a modern reader as a wordy and emotional and unscientific history, yet the story told is delightfully fresh and vivid, and it is told with a simple naïveté and truth that seems now almost lost in the self-consciousness of modern literature.

BBut starting in 1441, exploration kicks off again in a serious way, and the original accounts from Henry's captains, preserved by the old Azurara in his chronicle, come alive with excitement. From this point until 1448, where the Chronica wraps up, the story is incredibly vivid, as it was recorded from the memories of those who were directly involved in the discoveries and conquests it describes. While the details might feel tedious to today's readers as a lengthy, emotional, and unscientific narrative, the tale itself is refreshingly lively and engaging, told with a straightforward simplicity and honesty that seems nearly lost in the self-awareness of contemporary literature.

"It seems to me, says our author" (Azurara's favourite way of alluding to himself), "that the recital of this history should give as much pleasure as any other matter by which we satisfy the wish of our Prince; and the said wish became all the greater,[Pg 193] as the things for which he had toiled so long, were more within his view. Wherefore I will now try to tell of something new," of some progress "in his wearisome seedtime of preparation."

"It seems to me," says our author (Azurara's favorite way of referring to himself), "that sharing this history should be just as enjoyable as anything else that fulfills the desire of our Prince; and this desire grew even stronger,[Pg 193] as the things he had worked for so long were becoming more visible. So now, I will attempt to talk about something new," about some progress "in his tiring period of preparation."

"Now it was so that in this year 1441, as the affairs of the kingdom had now some repose, though it was not to be a long one, the Infant caused them to arm a little ship, which he gave to Antam Gonsalvez, his chamberlain, a young captain, only charging him to load a cargo of skins and oil. For because his age was so unformed, and his authority of needs so slight, he laid all the lighter his commands upon him and looked for all the less in performance."

"By the year 1441, when the kingdom was experiencing a brief period of calm, though it wouldn’t last long, the Infant had a small ship armed. He entrusted it to Antam Gonsalvez, his chamberlain, a young captain, giving him the task of loading it with skins and oil. Because Antam was still inexperienced and had little authority, the Infant didn't press him too hard and had lower expectations for the outcomes."

But when Antam Gonsalvez had performed the voyage that had been ordered him, he called Affonso Goterres, another stripling of the Infant's household and the men of his ship, who were in all twenty-one, and said to them, Brothers and friends, it seems to me to be shame to turn back to our Lord's presence, with so little service done; just as we have received the lest strict orders to do more than this, so much more ought we to try it with the greater zeal. And how noble an action would it be, if we who came here only to take a cargo of such wretched merchandise as these sea wolves, should be the first to bring a native prisoner before the presence of our Lord. In reason we ought to find some hereabout, for it is certain there are people, and that they traffic with camels and other beasts, who bear their merchandise; and the traffic of these men must be chiefly towards the sea and back again; and since they have yet no knowledge of us, they will be scattered and off their[Pg 194] guard, so that we can seize them; with all which our Lord the Infant will be not a little content, as he will thus have knowledge of who and what sort of people are the dwellers in this land. Then what shall be our reward, you know well enough from the great expense and trouble our Prince has been at, in past years, only to this one end.

But when Antam Gonsalvez had completed the voyage that had been assigned to him, he gathered Affonso Goterres, another young member of the Infant's household, along with the twenty-one crew members of his ship, and said to them, "Brothers and friends, it seems shameful to return to our Lord's presence with so little done. Just as we received strict orders to achieve more than this, we should strive with even greater enthusiasm. How noble would it be if we, who came here only to collect a cargo of such worthless goods as these sea wolves, were the first to bring a native prisoner before our Lord. We should be able to find someone around here; it’s clear that there are people who trade with camels and other animals, carrying their goods. Their trade must mainly be along the coast and back, and since they have no knowledge of us, they will likely be scattered and unguarded, making it possible for us to capture them. Our Lord, the Infant, will surely be pleased since he will learn about the people and their kind who inhabit this land. Then, as for our reward, you know well enough the immense costs and efforts our Prince has invested over the years, all for this very purpose."

The crew shouted a hearty "Do as you please; we will follow," and in the night following Antam Gonsalvez set aside nine men, who seemed to him most fit, and went up from the shore about three miles, till they came on a path, which they followed, thinking that by this they might come up with some man or woman, whom they might catch. And going on nine miles farther they came upon a track of some forty or fifty men and boys, as they thought, who had been coming the opposite way to that our men were going. Now the heat was very great and by reason of that, as well as of the trouble they had been at, the long tramp they had on foot and the failure of water, Antam Gonsalvez saw the weariness of his men, that it was very great. So let us turn back and follow after these men, said he, and turning back toward the sea, they came upon a man stark naked, walking after and driving a camel, with two spears in his hand, and of our men, as they rushed on after him, there was not one who kept any remembrance of his great weariness. As for the native, though he was quite alone, and saw so many coming down upon him, he stood on his defence, as if wishing to show that he could use those weapons of his, and making his face by far more fierce than[Pg 195] his courage was warrant for. Affonso Goterres struck him with a dart and the Moor, frightened by his wounds, threw down his arms like a conquered thing and so was taken, not without great joy of our men. And going on a little farther they saw upon a hill the people whose track they followed. And they did not want the will to make for these also, but the sun was now very low and they very weary, and thinking that to risk more might bring them rather damage than profit, they determined to go back to their ship.

The crew shouted a hearty "Do what you want; we’ll follow," and that night Antam Gonsalvez picked nine men he thought were the best fit. They moved about three miles from the shore until they found a path, which they followed, hoping to catch someone. After walking another nine miles, they discovered tracks of around forty to fifty men and boys heading in the opposite direction. The heat was intense, and because of that, along with their exhaustion from walking and lack of water, Antam Gonsalvez noticed how worn out his men were. "Let's turn back and follow those men," he suggested. Turning back toward the sea, they encountered a man completely naked, walking and driving a camel, holding two spears. As they rushed after him, none of the men remembered their exhaustion. The native, though alone and seeing so many approaching him, stood ready to defend himself, trying to appear fierce. Affonso Goterres hit him with a dart, and the Moor, frightened by his injuries, dropped his weapons like a defeated opponent and was captured, much to the joy of the men. Continuing a bit further, they spotted the people they had been tracking on a hill. They were eager to pursue them too, but the sun was getting low, and they were very tired. Realizing that pushing on could lead to more trouble than it was worth, they decided to head back to their ship.

But as they were going, they came upon a blackamoor woman, a slave of the people on the hill, and some were minded to let her alone, for fear of raising a fresh skirmish, which was not convenient in the face of the people on the hill, who were still in sight and more than twice their number. But the others were not so poor-spirited as to leave the matter thus, Antam Gonsalvez crying out vehemently that they should seize her. So the woman was taken and those "on the hill made a show of coming down to her rescue; but seeing our men quite ready to receive them, they first retraced their steps and then made off in the opposite direction." And so Antam Gonsalvez took the first captives.

But as they were walking, they encountered a Black woman, a slave of the people from the hill. Some wanted to ignore her to avoid provoking a new fight, which wasn't ideal given that the hill people were still in sight and outnumbered them more than two to one. However, others weren’t willing to back down, with Antam Gonsalvez shouting passionately that they should capture her. So, they took the woman, and those on the hill pretended to come down to save her; but seeing that our men were ready for them, they first backed off and then ran away in the opposite direction. And so, Antam Gonsalvez captured the first prisoners.

And for that the philosopher saith, resumes the next chapter of the chronicle, "that the beginning is two parts of the whole matter," great praise should be given to this noble squire, who now received his knighthood, as we shall tell. For now we have to see how Nuno Tristam, a noble knight, valiant and zealous, who had been brought up from boyhood at[Pg 196] the Infant's Court, came to that place where was Antam Gonsalvez, bringing with him an armed caravel with the express order of his lord that he was to go to the port of Gallee and as far beyond as he could, and that he should try and make some prisoners by every means in his power. And you may imagine what was the joy of the two captains, both natives of one and the self-same realm and brought up in one and the self-same household, thus to meet so far from home. And now Nuno Tristam said that an Arab he had brought with him, a servant of the Infant, should speak with Gonsalvez' prisoners, and see if he understood their tongue, and that if he understood it, it would profit them much thus to know all the state and conditions of the people of that land. But the tongue of the Arab was very different from that of the captives, so that they could not understand each other.

And for that the philosopher says, resumes the next chapter of the chronicle, "that the beginning is two parts of the whole matter," great praise should be given to this noble squire, who now received his knighthood, as we shall explain. Now we need to see how Nuno Tristam, a noble knight, brave and passionate, who had been raised from childhood at[Pg 196] the Infant's Court, arrived at the place where Antam Gonsalvez was, bringing with him an armed caravel with the specific order from his lord to go to the port of Gallee and as far beyond as he could, and to try to capture some prisoners by any means necessary. You can imagine the joy of the two captains, both from the same realm and raised in the same household, to meet so far from home. Nuno Tristam then said that an Arab he had brought with him, a servant of the Infant, should talk to Gonsalvez' prisoners to see if he understood their language, and if he did, it would greatly help them to know the state and conditions of the people in that land. However, the Arab's language was very different from that of the captives, so they could not understand each other.

And when Nuno Tristam perceived that he could not learn any more of the manner of that land, he would fain be gone, but envy made him wish to do something before the eyes of his fellows that should be good for all.

And when Nuno Tristam realized that he couldn’t learn anything more about that land, he wanted to leave, but jealousy made him want to do something in front of his peers that would be beneficial for everyone.

You know, he said to Antam Gonsalvez, that for fifteen years the Infant has been seeking in vain for certain news of this land and its people, in what law or lordship they do live. Now let us take twenty men, ten from each of the crews, and go up country in search of those that you found. Not so, said the other, for those whom we saw will have warned all the others, and peradventure when we are looking out to capture them, we may in our[Pg 197] turn become their prisoners. But where we have gained a victory let us not return to suffer loss. Nuno Tristam said this counsel was good, but there were two squires whose longing to do well outran all besides. Gonsalo de Cintra was the first of these, whose valour we shall know more of in the progress of this history, and he counselled that as soon as it was night they should set out in search of the natives, and so it was determined. And such was their good fortune that they came early in the night to where the people lay scattered in two dwellings; now the place between the two was but small, and our men divided themselves in three parties and began to shout at the top of their voice "Portugal," "St. James for Portugal," the noise of which threw the enemy into such confusion, that they began to run without any order, as ours fell upon them. The men only made some show of defending themselves with assegais, especially two who fought with Nuno Tristam till they received their death. Three others were killed and ten were taken, of men, women, and children. But without question, many more would have been killed or taken if all our men had rushed in together at the first. And among those who were taken was one of their chiefs, named Adahu, who shewed full well in his face that he was nobler than the rest.

"You know," he said to Antam Gonsalvez, "that for fifteen years the Infant has been looking in vain for certain news about this land and its people, and the laws or lords by which they live. Now let's take twenty men, ten from each crew, and go inland to find those you came across." "Not so," said the other, "because those we saw will have warned everyone else, and while we’re trying to capture them, we might end up being their prisoners. Where we have won a victory, let’s not risk a loss." Nuno Tristam said this advice was wise, but there were two squires whose eagerness to prove themselves outweighed everything else. Gonsalo de Cintra was the first of these, whose bravery we will learn more about as this story unfolds. He suggested that as soon as it got dark, they should head out in search of the natives, and that’s what they decided to do. They were fortunate to arrive early that night at a location where the people were scattered across two dwellings; the space between them was small, so our men split into three groups and started shouting at the top of their lungs, "Portugal," "St. James for Portugal." The noise threw the enemy into such chaos that they began to flee in disarray as we attacked. The enemy only tried to defend themselves with assegais, especially two who fought against Nuno Tristam until they were killed. Three others were killed and ten were captured, including men, women, and children. Without a doubt, many more would have been killed or captured if all our men had charged in together right from the start. Among those taken was one of their chiefs, named Adahu, who clearly showed in his face that he was of higher nobility than the rest.

Then, when the matter was well over, all came to Antam Gonsalvez and begged him to be made a Knight, while he said it was against reason that for so small a service he should have so great an honour, and that his age would not allow it, and that he[Pg 198] would not take it without doing greater things than these, and much more of that sort. But at last, by the instant demand of all others, Nuno Tristam knighted Antam Gonsalvez, and the place was called from that time "Port of the Cavalier."

Then, when everything was settled, everyone came to Antam Gonsalvez and asked him to be made a Knight. He said it didn’t make sense to receive such a big honor for such a small service, that his age wouldn’t allow it, and that he[Pg 198] wouldn’t accept it without accomplishing greater things first, along with much more of that sort. But eventually, due to the insistence of everyone else, Nuno Tristam knighted Antam Gonsalvez, and from that time on, the place was called "Port of the Cavalier."

When the party got back to the ships, Nuno Tristam's Arab was set to work again, with no better success, "for the language of the captives was not Moorish but Azaneguy of Sahara," the tongue of the great desert zone of West Africa, between the end of the northern strip of fertile country round Fez and Morocco, and the beginning of the rich tropical region at the Senegal, where the first real blacks were found. The Portuguese were in despair of finding a prisoner who could "tell the lord Infant what he wanted to know," but now the chief, "even as he shewed that he was more noble than the other captives, so now it appeared that he had seen more than they, and had been to other lands where he had learnt the Moorish tongue so that he understood our Arab and answered to whatever was asked of him."

When the party returned to the ships, Nuno Tristam's Arab was put to work again, but with no better luck, "for the language of the captives was not Moorish but Azaneguy of Sahara," the language spoken in the vast desert area of West Africa, between the lush northern region near Fez and Morocco, and the beginning of the rich tropical area at the Senegal, where the first true black residents were found. The Portuguese were worried about finding a prisoner who could "tell the lord Infant what he needed to know," but now the chief, "just as he showed he was more noble than the other captives, also appeared to have seen more than they and had traveled to other lands where he learned the Moorish language, so he understood our Arab and answered whatever was asked of him."

And so to make trial of the people of the land and to have of them more certain knowledge, they put that Arab on shore and one of the Moorish women their captives with him, who were to speak to the natives if they could, about the ransom of those they had taken and about exchange of merchandise.

And so, to test the locals and gain more reliable information, they sent that Arab ashore along with one of the Moorish women they had captured. Their goal was for her to communicate with the natives, if possible, about the ransom for those they had taken and the exchange of goods.

And at the end of two days there came down to the shore quite one hundred and fifty Moors on foot, and thirty-five mounted on camels and horses, and though they seemed to be a race both barbarous and bestial, there was not wanting in them a cer[Pg 199]tain sharpness, with which they could cheat their enemies, for at first there only appeared three of them on the beach, and the rest lay in ambush till our men should land and they could rush out and master them, which thing they could easily have done, so many were they, if our men had been a whit less sharp than themselves. But when the Moors saw that our boats did not land, but turned back again to the ship, they discovered their treachery, and all came down in a body upon the beach, hurling stones and making gestures of defiance, shewing us the Arab we had sent to them as a captive in their hands.

And after two days, about one hundred and fifty Moors came down to the shore on foot, along with thirty-five on camels and horses. They seemed like a barbaric and savage group, but they had a certain cunning that allowed them to deceive their enemies. At first, only three of them appeared on the beach while the rest waited in ambush for our men to land, ready to rush in and overpower them. They could have easily done this, given how many there were, if our men hadn't been as sharp as they were. But when the Moors saw that our boats didn’t land and instead returned to the ship, they realized their plan had been exposed. They all rushed to the beach, throwing stones and making threatening gestures, showing us the Arab we had sent to them as a captive in their hands.

So our men came back to the ship and made their division of the prisoners, according to the lot of each. And Antam Gonsalvez turned back because he had now loaded his caravel with the cargo that the Infant had ordered him, but Nuno Tristam went on, as he for his part had in charge. But as his vessel was in need of repair, he put to shore and careened and refitted it as well as he could, keeping his tides as if he were before the port of Lisbon, at which boldness of his many wondered greatly. And sailing on again, he passed the port of "Gallee," and came to a cape which he called "The White" (Cape Blanco), where the crew landed to see if they could make any captures. But after finding only the tracks of men and some nets, they turned back, seeing that for that time they could not do any more than they had already done.

So our men returned to the ship and divided up the prisoners according to their assigned shares. Antam Gonsalvez turned back since he had loaded his caravel with the cargo that the Infant had instructed him to take, while Nuno Tristam continued on as he had been assigned. However, since his vessel needed repairs, he docked and carried out repairs as best he could, keeping to his schedule as if he were in the port of Lisbon, which many found quite bold. Continuing his journey, he passed the port of "Gallee" and reached a cape he named "The White" (Cape Blanco), where the crew went ashore to see if they could make any captures. But after only finding tracks left by men and some nets, they decided to turn back, realizing that they couldn’t accomplish anything more at that moment.

Antam Gonsalvez came home first with his part of the booty and then arrived Nuno Tristam, "whose[Pg 200] present reception and future reward were answerable to the trouble he had borne, like a fertile land that with but little sowing answers the husbandman."

Antam Gonsalvez got home first with his share of the loot, and then Nuno Tristam showed up, "whose[Pg 200] current welcome and future reward matched the effort he had put in, like a rich field that produces abundantly with just a bit of planting."

The chief, or "cavalier" as he is called, whom Antam Gonsalvez brought home was able to "make the Infant understand a great deal of the state of that land where he had been," though as for the rest, they were pretty well useless, except as slaves, "for their tongue could not be understood by any other Moors who had been in that land." But the Prince was so encouraged by the sight of the first captives that he at once began to think "how it would be necessary to send to those parts many a time his ships and crews well armed, where they would have to fight with the infidels. So he determined to send at once to the Holy Father and ask of him that he should give him of the treasures of Holy Church, for the salvation of the souls of those who in this conquest should meet their end."

The chief, or "cavalier" as he’s referred to, whom Antam Gonsalvez brought back was able to "make the Infant understand a lot about the situation in that land where he had been," although the others were pretty much useless, except as slaves, "because their language couldn’t be understood by any other Moors who had been in that land." However, the Prince was so motivated by the sight of the first captives that he immediately started thinking "about how it would be necessary to send his ships and crews well-armed to those parts many times, where they would have to fight the infidels. So he decided to send a message to the Holy Father right away and ask him for some of the treasures of Holy Church, for the salvation of the souls of those who might meet their end in this conquest."

Pope Eugenius IV., then reigning, if not governing, in the great Apostolic See of the West, answered this appeal "with great joy" and with all the rhetoric of the Papal Register. "As it hath now been notified to us by our beloved son Henry, Duke of Viseu, Master of the Order of Christ, that trusting firmly in the aid of God, for the confusion of the Moors and enemies of Christ in those lands that they have desolated, and for the exaltation of the Catholic Faith,—and because that the Knights and Brethren of the said Order of Christ against the said Moors and other enemies of the Faith have waged war with the Grace of[Pg 201] God, under the banner of the said Order,—and to the intent that they may bestir themselves to the said war with yet greater fervour, we do to each and all of those engaged in the said war, by Apostolic authority and by these letters, grant full remission of all those sins of which they shall be truly penitent at heart and of which they have made confession by their mouth. And whoever breaks, contradicts, or acts against the letter of this mandate, let him lie under the curse of the All-Mighty God and of the Blessed Apostles Peter and Paul."

Pope Eugenius IV, who was reigning, if not running, the important Apostolic See of the West, responded to this request "with great joy" and with all the eloquence of the Papal Register. "As we have now been informed by our beloved son Henry, Duke of Viseu, Master of the Order of Christ, that he firmly trusts in God's help for the defeat of the Moors and enemies of Christ in the lands they have ravaged, and for the upliftment of the Catholic Faith,—and since the Knights and Brethren of the said Order of Christ have waged war against the Moors and other enemies of the Faith with the Grace of[Pg 201] God, under the banner of the said Order,—and to encourage them to fight in this war with even greater fervor, we grant, by Apostolic authority and through this letter, full remission of all sins for those who are genuinely penitent at heart and who have made their confession. And anyone who breaks, opposes, or acts against the terms of this mandate shall be under the curse of the Almighty God and the Blessed Apostles Peter and Paul."

And besides, adds the chronicle, rather quaintly, of more temporal and material benefits, the Infant D. Pedro, then Regent of the kingdom, gave to his brother Henry a charter, granting him the whole of the fifth of the profits which appertained to the King, and, considering that it was by him alone that the whole matter of the discovery was carried out at infinite trouble and expense, he ordered further that no one should go to those parts without D. Henry's licence and express command.

And besides, the chronicle adds, rather charmingly, regarding more practical and material benefits, Prince D. Pedro, who was then the Regent of the kingdom, gave his brother Henry a charter that granted him one-fifth of the profits that belonged to the King. Since it was solely due to his efforts, which involved tremendous effort and expense, he also ordered that no one should go to those areas without D. Henry's permission and explicit orders.

The chronicle, which has told us how Antam Gonsalvez made the first captives, now goes on to say how the same one of the Prince's captains made the first ransom. For the captive chief, "that cavalier of whom we spoke," Henry's first prize from the lands beyond Bojador, pined away in Europe, "and many times begged of Antam Gonsalvez that he would take him back to his own land, where, as he said, they would give for him five or six blackamoors, and he said, too, that there were two boys among the other captives for whom they would get a like ran[Pg 202]som." So the Infant sent him back with Gonsalvez to his own people, "as it was better to save ten souls than three, for though they were black, yet had they souls like others, all the more as they were not of Moorish race, but Heathen and so all the easier to lead into the way of salvation. From the negroes too it would be possible to get news of the land beyond them. For not only of the Negro land did the Infant wish to know more certainly, but also of the Indies and of the land of Prester John."

The account, which has told us how Antam Gonsalvez made the first captives, now continues to describe how the same captain of the Prince made the first ransom. For the captive chief, "that knight we mentioned," Henry's first prize from the lands beyond Bojador, wasted away in Europe, "and many times asked Antam Gonsalvez to take him back to his homeland, where, as he said, they would offer five or six black people for him, and he also mentioned that there were two boys among the other captives for whom they would pay a similar ransom." So the Infant sent him back with Gonsalvez to his own people, "as it was better to save ten souls than three, for although they were black, they had souls like everyone else, especially since they were not of Moorish descent, but were Heathen and thus easier to guide toward salvation. From the black people, it would also be possible to gather information about the lands beyond them. For the Infant wanted to learn more about not just the land of the Negroes, but also about the Indies and the land of Prester John."

So Gonsalvez sailed with his ransom, and in his ship went a noble stranger, like Vallarte the Dane, whom we shall meet later on, one of a kind which was always being drawn to Henry's Court. This was Balthasar the Austrian, a gentleman of the Emperor's Household, who had entered the Infant's service to try his fortune at Ceuta, where he had got his knighthood, and who now "was often heard to say that his great wish was to see a storm, before he left that land of Portugal, that he might tell those who had never seen one what it was like.

So Gonsalvez sailed with his ransom, and aboard his ship was a noble stranger, much like Vallarte the Dane, whom we will meet later. This was Balthasar the Austrian, a gentleman of the Emperor's Household, who had joined the Infant's service to try his luck at Ceuta, where he had received his knighthood. He often expressed his wish to experience a storm before leaving Portugal, so he could describe it to those who had never seen one.

"And certainly his fortune favoured him. For at the first start, they met with such a storm that it was by a marvel they escaped destruction."

"And surely luck was on his side. Right from the beginning, they faced a storm so severe that it was a miracle they avoided disaster."

Again they put out to sea, and this time reached the Rio d'Ouro in safety, where they landed their chief prisoner, "very well vested in the robes that the Infant had ordered to be given him," under promise that he would soon come back and bring his tribe with him.

Again they set sail, and this time they safely reached the Rio d'Ouro, where they released their main prisoner, "dressed very well in the robes that the Infant had instructed to be given to him," with a promise that he would return soon and bring his tribe along with him.

"But as soon as he got safely off, he very soon forgot his promises, which Antam Gonsalvez had trusted,[Pg 203] thinking that his nobility would hold him fast and not let him break his word, but by this deceit all our men got warning that they could not trust any of the natives save under the most certain security."

"But as soon as he got to safety, he quickly forgot his promises, which Antam Gonsalvez had relied on, thinking that his noble status would keep him honest and prevent him from breaking his word. However, this deception led all our men to realize that they couldn’t trust any of the locals without guaranteed security."

The ships now went twelve miles up the Rio d'Ouro, cast anchor, and waited seven days without a sign of anybody, but on the eighth there came a Moor, on top of a white camel, with fully one hundred others who had all joined to ransom the two boys. Ten of the tribe were given in exchange for the young chiefs, "and the man who managed this barter was one Martin Fernandez, the Infant's own Ransomer of Captives, who shewed well that he had knowledge of the Moorish tongue, for he was understood by those people whom Nuno Tristam's Arab, Moor though he was by nation, could not possibly get speech with, except only the one chief, who had now escaped."

The ships traveled twelve miles up the Rio d'Ouro, dropped anchor, and waited seven days without any sign of anyone. But on the eighth day, a Moor appeared, riding a white camel, accompanied by nearly a hundred others who had all come to ransom the two boys. Ten members of the tribe were exchanged for the young chiefs, and the person who facilitated this deal was Martin Fernandez, the Infant's own Ransomer of Captives. He clearly demonstrated his knowledge of the Moorish language, as he was understood by those people whom Nuno Tristam's Arab, despite being a Moor himself, could not communicate with, except for one chief who had already escaped.

With the "Blackamoors," Antam Gonsalvez got as ransom what was even more precious, a little gold dust, the first ever brought by Europeans direct from the Guinea Coast, which more thoroughly won the Prince's cause at home and brought over more enemies and scoffers and indifferentists to his side than all the discoveries in the world.

With the "Blackamoors," Antam Gonsalvez received as ransom something even more valuable: a bit of gold dust, the first ever brought by Europeans directly from the Guinea Coast. This did more to win the Prince's support back home and attracted more enemies, critics, and indifferent people to his side than all the discoveries in the world.

"Many ostrich eggs, too," were included in the native ransom, "such that one day men saw at the Infant's table three dishes of the same, as fresh and as good as those of any other domestic fowls." Did the Court of Sagres suppose the ostrich to be some large kind of hen?

"Many ostrich eggs, too," were included in the native ransom, "such that one day men saw at the Infant's table three dishes of the same, as fresh and as good as those of any other domestic fowls." Did the Court of Sagres think the ostrich was a type of large hen?

What was still more to the Prince's mind, "those[Pg 204] same Moors related, that in those parts there were merchants who trafficked in that gold that was found there among them"—the same merchants, in fact, whose caravels Henry had already known on the Mediterranean coast, and whose starting-point he had now begun to touch. Ever since the days of the first Caliphs, this Sahara commerce had gone on under the control of Islam; for centuries these caravans had crossed the valleys and plains to the south of Morocco and sold their goods—pepper, slaves, and gold dust—in Moslem Ceuta and Moslem Andalusia; now, after seven hundred years of monopoly, this Moslem trade was broken in upon by the Europeans, who, in fifty years' time, broke into the greater monopoly of the Indian Seas, when Da Gama sailed from Lisbon to Malabar (1497-9).

What was even more on the Prince's mind was that "those[Pg 204] same Moors said there were merchants in those parts who traded in the gold found among them"—the same merchants that Henry had already encountered on the Mediterranean coast, and whose starting point he had now begun to explore. Since the days of the first Caliphs, this Sahara trade had been under the control of Islam; for centuries, these caravans had crossed the valleys and plains south of Morocco to sell their goods—pepper, slaves, and gold dust—in Muslim Ceuta and Muslim Andalusia. Now, after seven hundred years of monopoly, this Muslim trade was being interrupted by Europeans, who, within fifty years, would break into the larger monopoly of the Indian Seas when Da Gama sailed from Lisbon to Malabar (1497-9).

Next year (1443) came Nuno Tristam's turn once more. People were now eager to sail in the Infant's service, after the slaves, and still more the gold dust, had been really seen and handled in Portugal, and "that noble cavalier," for each and all of the three reasons of his fellows—"to serve his lord," "to gain honour," "to increase his profit,"—was eager to follow up his first successes.

Next year (1443), it was Nuno Tristam's turn again. People were now eager to sail in the Infant's service, after having truly seen and handled the slaves and, even more so, the gold dust in Portugal. "That noble knight," motivated by all three reasons of his peers—"to serve his lord," "to gain honor," "to increase his profit"—was eager to build on his initial successes.

Commanding a caravel manned in great part from the Prince's household, he went out straight to Cape Blanco, the white headland, which he had been the first to reach in 1441. Passing twenty-five leagues, seventy-five miles beyond, into the bank or bight of Arguin, he saw a little island, from which twenty-five canoes came off to meet him, all hollowed out of logs of wood, with a host of native savages, "naked[Pg 205] not for swimming in the water, but for their ancient custom." The natives hung their legs over the sides of their boats, and paddled with them like oars, so that "our men, looking at them from a distance and quite unused to the sight, thought they were birds that were skimming so over the water." As for their size, the sailors expected much greater marvels in those parts of the world, where every map and traveller's tale made the sea swarm with monsters as big as a continent.

Commanding a caravel crewed mostly by members of the Prince's household, he headed straight for Cape Blanco, the white headland he was the first to reach in 1441. After covering twenty-five leagues, or seventy-five miles, into the bank or bight of Arguin, he spotted a small island, from which twenty-five canoes approached him, all carved out of logs, manned by a group of native people, "naked[Pg 205] not for swimming in the water, but for their ancient custom." The natives hung their legs over the sides of their boats and paddled with them like oars, so that "our men, observing them from a distance and completely unfamiliar with the sight, thought they were birds skimming over the water." As for their size, the sailors anticipated much greater wonders in those parts of the world, where every map and traveler's story depicted the sea teeming with monsters as big as a continent.

"But as soon as they saw they were men, then were their hearts full of a new pleasure, for that they saw the chance of a capture." They launched the ship's boat at once, chased them to the shore, and captured fourteen; if the boat had been stronger, the tale would have been longer, for with a crew of seven they could not hold any more prisoners, and so the rest escaped.

"But as soon as they saw they were men, their hearts filled with a new excitement because they saw the chance to capture them." They quickly launched the ship's boat, chased them to the shore, and caught fourteen; if the boat had been sturdier, the story would have been longer, since with a crew of seven they couldn't hold any more prisoners, and so the rest got away.

With this booty they sailed on to another island, "where they found an infinite number of herons, of which they made good cheer, and so returned Nuno Tristam very joyfully to the Prince."

With this loot, they sailed on to another island, "where they found countless herons, which they enjoyed greatly, and thus Nuno Tristam happily returned to the Prince."

This last piece of discovery was of much more value than Nuno thought. He saw in it a first-rate slave hunting-ground, but it became the starting-point for trade and intercourse with the Negro States of the Senegal and the Gambia, to the south and east. It was here, in the bay of Arguin, where the long desert coast of the Sahara makes its last bend towards the rich country of the south,—that Henry built in 1448 that fort which Cadamosto found, in the next ten years, had become the centre of a great[Pg 206] European commerce, which was also among the first permanent settlements of the new Christian exploration, one of the first steps of modern colonisation.

This last piece of discovery was much more valuable than Nuno realized. He saw it as a prime spot for slave hunting, but it also became the starting point for trade and interactions with the African states of Senegal and Gambia, to the south and east. It was here, in the bay of Arguin, where the long desert coast of the Sahara curves toward the rich lands of the south—that Henry built a fort in 1448 that Cadamosto found had become the center of a major[Pg 206] European commerce within the next ten years, marking one of the first permanent settlements of the new Christian exploration, a significant step in modern colonization.

And now the volunteer movement had fairly begun. Where in the beginning, says Azurara, people had murmured very loudly against the Prince's enterprise, each one grumbling as if the Infant was spending some part of his property, now when the way had been fairly opened and the fruits of those lands began to be seen in Portugal in much greater abundance, men began, softly enough, to praise what they had so loudly decried. Great and small alike had declared that no profit would ever come of these ventures, but when the cargoes of slaves and gold began to arrive, all were forced to turn their blame into flattery, and to say that the Infant was another Alexander the Great, and as they saw the houses of others full of new servants from the new discovered lands and their property always increasing, there were few who did not long to try their fortune in the same adventures.

And now the volunteer movement had truly started. In the beginning, Azurara says, people had loudly complained about the Prince's venture, grumbling as if the Infant was wasting his own money. But now that the path had been cleared and the benefits of those lands were becoming evident in Portugal, more people began to quietly praise what they had previously condemned. Both the wealthy and the poor had insisted that there would be no rewards from these endeavors, but when shipments of slaves and gold began to arrive, everyone had to shift their criticism to admiration, claiming that the Infant was another Alexander the Great. As they saw their neighbors' homes filled with new servants from the newly discovered lands and their wealth growing, few didn’t wish to seek their own fortune in similar ventures.

The first great movement of the sort came after Nuno's return at the end of 1443. The men of Lagos took advantage of Henry's settlement so near them in his town of Sagres, to ask for leave to sail at their own cost to the Prince's coast of Guinea. For no one could go without his licence.

The first major movement like this happened after Nuno returned at the end of 1443. The men of Lagos seized the opportunity of Henry establishing a settlement close to them in his town of Sagres to request permission to sail at their own expense to the Prince's coast of Guinea. No one could set out without his permission.

One Lançarote, a "squire, brought up in the Infant's household, an officer of the royal customs in the town of Lagos, and a man of great good sense," was the spokesman of these merchant adventurers. He won his grant very easily, "the Infant was very[Pg 207] glad of his request, and bade him sail under the banner of the Order of Christ," so that six caravels started in the spring of 1444 on the first exploring voyage that we can call national since the Prince had begun his work.

One Lançarote, a "squire raised in the Infant's household, an officer of the royal customs in the town of Lagos, and a man of great common sense," served as the spokesperson for these merchant adventurers. He easily secured his grant; "the Infant was very[Pg 207] pleased with his request and instructed him to sail under the banner of the Order of Christ," leading to six caravels setting off in the spring of 1444 on the first exploratory journey we can call national since the Prince began his efforts.

So, as the beginning of general interest in the Crusade of Discovery which Henry had now preached to his countrymen for thirty years, as the beginning of the career of Henry's chief captain, the head of his merchant allies, as the beginning, in fact, of a new and bright period, this first voyage of Lançarote's, this first Armada sent out to find and to conquer the Moors and Blacks of the unknown or half-known South, is worth more than a passing notice.

So, as the start of general interest in the Crusade of Discovery that Henry had been promoting to his fellow countrymen for thirty years, as the beginning of Henry's main captain's journey, the leader of his merchant allies, and as the start of a new and promising era, this first voyage of Lançarote's, this first Armada sent out to seek and conquer the Moors and Blacks of the unknown or partially known South, deserves more than just a fleeting acknowledgment.

And this is not for its interest or importance in the story of discovery pure and simple, but as a proof that the cause of discovery itself had become popular, and as evidence that the cause of trade and of political ambition had become thoroughly identified with that of exploration. The expansion of the European nations, which had languished since the Crusades, had begun again. What was more unfortunate, from a modern standpoint, the African slave trade, as a part of European commerce, begins here too. It is useless to try to explain it away.

And this isn't just because of its interest or significance in the story of discovery itself, but as proof that the reason for discovery became popular, and as evidence that trade and political ambition were completely tied to exploration. The expansion of European nations, which had been stagnant since the Crusades, was starting up again. Even more unfortunately, from a modern perspective, the African slave trade, as part of European commerce, also begins here. There's no point in trying to justify it.

Henry's own motives were not those of the slave-driver; it seems true enough that the captives, when once brought home to Spain, were treated, under his orders, with all kindness; his own wish seems to have been to use this man-hunting traffic as a means to Christianise and civilise the native tribes, to win over the whole by the education of a few prisoners.[Pg 208] But his captains did not always aim so high. The actual seizure of the captives—Moors and Negroes—along the coast of Guinea, was as barbarous and as ruthless as most slave-drivings. There was hardly a capture made without violence and bloodshed; a raid on a village, a fire and sack and butchery, was the usual course of things—the order of the day. And the natives, whatever they might gain when fairly landed in Europe, did not give themselves up very readily to be taught; as a rule, they fought desperately, and killed the men who had come to do them good, whenever they had a chance.

Henry's intentions were different from those of a slave driver. It seems true that once the captives were brought to Spain, they were treated kindly under his orders. He seemed to believe that this man-hunting business could be a way to convert and civilize the native tribes, aiming to win over the larger group by educating a few prisoners.[Pg 208] However, his captains didn’t always share that lofty goal. The actual capture of the captives—Moors and Africans—along the coast of Guinea was as brutal and merciless as most slave trade practices. Almost every capture involved violence and bloodshed; raids on villages, along with burning, looting, and massacre, were the norm. The natives, despite any potential benefits they might encounter once they arrived in Europe, were not very willing to accept instruction; typically, they fought fiercely and killed the men who came to help them whenever they had the opportunity.

The kidnapping, which some of the Spanish patriot writers seem to think of as simply an act of Christian charity, "a corporal work of mercy," was at the time a matter of profit and money returns. Negro bodies would sell well, Negro villages would yield plunder, and, like the killing of wild Irish in the sixteenth century, the Prince's men took a Black-Moor hunt as the best of sport. It was hardly wonderful, then, that the later sailors of Cadamosto's day (1450-60) found all the coast up in arms against them, and that so many fell victims to the deadly poisoned arrows of the Senegal and the Gambia. Every native believed, as they told one of the Portuguese captains in a parley, that the explorers carried off their people to cook and eat them.

The kidnapping, which some Spanish patriotic writers see as just an act of Christian charity, "a corporal work of mercy," was really just about profit and making money. Black bodies sold well, Black villages were ripe for plunder, and, just like the killing of wild Irish in the sixteenth century, the Prince's men viewed hunting Black Moors as a great sport. It’s no surprise that the later sailors of Cadamosto’s time (1450-60) found the entire coast ready to fight against them, and that so many fell victim to the deadly poisoned arrows of the Senegal and the Gambia. Every local believed, as they told one of the Portuguese captains during a negotiation, that the explorers took their people to cook and eat them.

In most of the speeches that are given us in the chronicle of the time, the masters encourage their men to these slave-raids by saying, first, what glory they will get by a victory; next, what a profit can be made sure by a good haul of captives; last, what[Pg 209] a generous reward the Prince will give for people who can tell him about these lands. Sometimes, after reprisals had begun, the whole thing is an affair of vengeance, and thus Lançarote, in the great voyage of 1445, coolly proposes to turn back at Cape Blanco, without an attempt at discovery of any sort, "because the purpose of the voyage was now accomplished." A village had been burnt, a score of natives had been killed, and twice as many taken. Revenge was satisfied.

In most of the speeches given in the chronicle of the time, the leaders motivate their followers to participate in these slave raids by saying, first, what glory they will gain from a victory; next, what profit can be made from a successful capture of captives; finally, what[Pg 209] generous rewards the Prince will offer for information about these lands. Sometimes, once the reprisals have started, it all becomes a matter of vengeance, and so Lançarote, during the major voyage of 1445, casually suggests turning back at Cape Blanco, without any attempt at discovery, "because the purpose of the voyage has now been fulfilled." A village had been burned, a number of natives killed, and twice as many captured. Revenge was satisfied.

It was only here and there that much was said about the Prince's purpose of exploration, of finding the western Nile or, Prester John, or the way round Africa to India; most of the sailors, both men and officers, seem to know that this, or something towards this, is the "will of their Lord," but it is very few who start for discovery only, and still fewer who go straight on, turning neither to right hand nor left, till they have got well beyond the farthest of previous years, and added some piece of new knowledge to the map of the known world out of the blank of the unknown.

It was only occasionally that much was said about the Prince's goal of exploration—finding the western Nile, searching for Prester John, or figuring out the route around Africa to India. Most of the sailors, both men and officers, seemed to understand that this, or something similar, was the "will of their Lord," but very few actually set out solely for discovery, and even fewer continued on without turning either to the right or left until they had gone well beyond the farthest points of previous years, adding new knowledge to the map of the known world from the blank of the unknown.

What terrified ignorance had done before, greed did now, and the last hindrance was almost worse than the first. So one might say, impatiently, looking at the great expense, the energy, and time and life spent on the voyages of this time, and especially of the years 1444-8. More than forty ships sail out, more than nine hundred captives are brought home, and the new lands found are all discovered by three or four explorers. National interest seems awakened to very little purpose. But what explains the slow[Pg 210] progress of discovery, explains also the fact that any progress, however slow, was made at all, apart from the personal action of Henry himself. Without the mercantile interest, the Prince's death would have been the end and ruin of his schemes for many a year.

What terrified ignorance had caused before, greed has done now, and the last obstacle is almost worse than the first. One might say, impatiently, looking at the immense cost, the energy, time, and lives spent on the voyages of this period, especially from 1444 to 1448. More than forty ships set sail, over nine hundred captives are brought back, and the new lands discovered were all found by just three or four explorers. National interest seems to have been stirred up to very little effect. However, what explains the slow[Pg 210] progress of discovery also clarifies why any progress, however slow, was made at all, apart from the personal involvement of Henry himself. Without the commercial interest, the Prince's death would have meant the end and ruin of his plans for many years.

But for the hope of adventure and of profitable plunder, and the certainty of reward; but for the assurance, so to say, of such and such a revenue on the ventures of the time, Portuguese "public opinion" would not probably have been much ahead of other varieties of the same organ. In deciding the abstract question to which the Prince had given his life, the mob of Lisbon or of Lagos would hardly have been quicker than modern mobs to rise to a notion above that of personal gain. If the cause of discovery and an empire to come had been left to them, the labour leaders might have said then in Spain, as some of them have said to-day in England, "What is all this talk about the Empire? What is it to us working men? We don't want the Empire, we want more wages." And so when the great leader was dead, and the people were left to carry out his will, his spiritual foresight of great scientific discoveries, his ideas of conversion and civilisation, were not the things for the sake of which ordinary men were reconciled to his scheme and ready to finish his work. If they thought or spoke or toiled for the finding of the way to India, it was to find the gold and spices and jewels of an earthly paradise.

But if it weren't for the hope of adventure, a chance to make money, and the certainty of rewards; and if there wasn't an expectation of certain profits from the ventures of the time, Portuguese "public opinion" probably wouldn't have been much different from other forms of it. When it came to the fundamental question that the Prince dedicated his life to, the crowds in Lisbon or Lagos wouldn't have been any quicker than today's crowds to think beyond personal gain. If the responsibility for discovery and the creation of an empire had been left to them, labor leaders at that time might have said in Spain, just like some of them have said today in England, "What’s all this talk about the Empire? What does it mean for us working men? We don’t want the Empire; we want higher wages." And so, when the great leader died and the people were left to carry out his vision, his foresight for significant scientific discoveries and his ideas of conversion and civilization weren’t the reasons that ordinary people supported his plan and were willing to see it through. If they thought about or worked towards finding a route to India, it was purely for the gold, spices, and jewels of a paradise on earth.

This is not fancy. It is simply impossible to draw any other conclusion from the original ac[Pg 211]counts of these voyages in Azurara's chronicle, for Azurara himself, though one of Henry's first converts, a man who realised something of the grandeur of his master's schemes and their reach beyond a merely commercial ideal through discovery to empire, yet preserves in the speeches and actions of captains and seamen alike, proof enough of the thoroughly commonplace aims of most of the first discoverers.

This isn't fancy. It's just impossible to reach any other conclusion from the original accounts of these voyages in Azurara's chronicle. Azurara himself, though one of Henry's first followers and someone who understood the greatness of his master’s plans and their potential to go beyond just making money through exploration to building an empire, still captures in the speeches and actions of captains and sailors plenty of evidence of the pretty ordinary goals of most of the early explorers.

On the other hand, the strength of the movement lay of course in the few exceptions. As long as all or nearly all the instruments employed were simply buccaneers, with a single eye to trade profits, discovery could not advance very fast or very far. Till the real meaning of the Prince's life had impressed his nearest followers with something of his own spirit, there could be no exploration, except by accident, though without this background of material gain no national interest could have been enlisted in exploration at all.

On the other hand, the movement's strength was in the few exceptions. As long as almost all the people involved were just pirates focused solely on making money, exploration couldn’t progress very quickly or very far. Until the true purpose of the Prince's life inspired his closest followers with some of his spirit, there could be no exploration, except by chance. However, without this motivation of financial gain, no national interest could have been sparked in exploration at all.

Real progress in this case was by the slow increase of that inner circle which really shared Henry's own ambition, of that group of men who went out, not to make bargains or do a little killing, but to carry the flag of Portugal and of Christ farther than it had ever been planted before, "according to the will of the Lord Infant." And as these men were called to the front, and only as they were there at all, was there any rapid advance. If two sailors, Diego Cam and Bartholomew Diaz, could within four years, in two voyages, explore the whole south-west coast of Africa from the Equator to the Cape of Tem[Pg 212]pests or of Good Hope, was it not absurd that the earlier caravels, after Bojador was once passed should hang so many years round the north-west shores of the Sahara?

Real progress in this case came from the gradual growth of that inner circle who truly shared Henry's ambition—those men who went out not to strike deals or cause some violence but to carry the flag of Portugal and Christ further than it had ever been planted before, "according to the will of the Lord Infant." And it was only when these men were called to the front that any significant progress was made. If two sailors, Diego Cam and Bartholomew Diaz, could, in just four years and two voyages, explore the entire south-west coast of Africa from the Equator to the Cape of Tem[Pg 212]pests or the Good Hope, then wasn’t it ridiculous that the earlier caravels, after they passed Bojador, lingered for so many years around the north-west shores of the Sahara?

Even some of the more genuine discoverers, the most trusted of the Prince's household, men like Gil Eannes, the first who saw the coasts beyond the terrible Bojador, or Diniz Diaz, or Antam Gonsalvez, or Nuno Tristam, as they come before us in Azurara's chronicle, are more like their men than their master.

Even some of the more genuine explorers, the most trusted members of the Prince's household, like Gil Eannes, who was the first to see the coasts beyond the daunting Bojador, or Diniz Diaz, Antam Gonsalvez, and Nuno Tristam, as depicted in Azurara's chronicle, resemble their crew more than their leader.

He thought of the slaves they brought home "with unspeakable pleasure, as to the saving of their souls, which but for him, would have been for ever lost." They thought a good deal more, like the crowd that gathered at the slave market in Lagos, of the "distribution of the captives," and of the money they would get for each. At those sales, which Azurara describes so vividly, Henry had the bearing of one who cared little for amassing plunder, and was known, once and again, to give away his fifth of the spoil, "for his spoil was chiefly in the success of his great wishes." But his suite seems to have been as keenly on the look-out for such favours as their lord was easy in bestowing them.

He thought about the slaves they brought back home "with indescribable joy, because he believed he was saving their souls, which without him would have been lost forever." They were more focused, like the crowd at the slave market in Lagos, on the "distribution of the captives" and the money they would earn for each one. At those sales, which Azurara depicts so vividly, Henry appeared to care little for collecting treasure and was known to occasionally give away his share of the profits, "because his true reward came from the success of his grand ambitions." However, his entourage seemed just as eager for such favors as their lord was generous in granting them.

To return to Lançarote's voyage:

To return to Lanzarote's journey:

"For that the Infant knew, by certain Moors that Nuno Tristam had carried off, that in the Isle of Naar, in the Bay of Arguin, and in the parts thereabout, were more than two hundred souls," the six caravels began with a descent on that island. Five boats were launched and thirty men in them, and[Pg 213] they set off from the ships about sunset. And rowing all that night, we are told, they came about the time of dawn to the island that they sought. And as day was breaking they got up to a Moorish village close to the shore, where were living all the people in the island. At sight of this the boats' crews drew up, and the leaders consulted whether to go on or turn back. It was decided to attack. Thirty "Portugals" ought to be a match for five or six times as many natives; the sailors landed and rushed upon the villagers and "saw the Moors with their women and children coming out of their huts as fast as they could, when they caught sight of their enemy; and our men, crying out 'St. James, St. George, Portugal,' fell upon them, killing and taking all they could. There you might have seen mothers catch up their children, husbands their wives, each one trying to fly as best he could. Some plunged into the sea, others thought to hide themselves in the corners of their hovels, others hid their children underneath the shrubs that grew about there, where our men found them.

"For that the Infant knew, from certain Moors that Nuno Tristam had captured, that in the Isle of Naar, in the Bay of Arguin, and in the surrounding areas, there were more than two hundred people," the six caravels began their descent on that island. Five boats were launched with thirty men in them, and[Pg 213] they set off from the ships around sunset. They rowed all night, and by dawn, they reached the island they were looking for. As day broke, they approached a Moorish village near the shore, where all the island's inhabitants lived. Upon seeing this, the crews of the boats halted, and the leaders discussed whether to proceed or retreat. They decided to attack. Thirty "Portugals" should be able to handle five or six times as many natives; the sailors landed and charged at the villagers, who were seen fleeing their huts as soon as they spotted their enemies. Our men shouted 'St. James, St. George, Portugal,' and attacked, killing and capturing as many as they could. There you could see mothers grabbing their children, husbands taking their wives, all trying to escape as best they could. Some jumped into the sea, others tried to hide in the corners of their huts, while some concealed their children under the shrubs around, where our men found them.

"And at last our Lord God, who gives to all a due reward, to our men gave that day a victory over their enemies, in recompence for all their toil in His service, for they took, what of men, women, and children, one hundred and sixty-five, without counting the slain."

"And finally, our Lord God, who rewards everyone fairly, granted our men victory over their enemies that day, as a reward for all their hard work in His service. They captured a total of one hundred sixty-five people, including men, women, and children, not counting the slain."

Then finding from the captives that there were other well-peopled islands near at hand, they raided these for more prisoners. In their next descent they could not catch any men, but of women and little[Pg 214] boys, not yet able to run, they seized seventeen or eighteen; soon after this they did meet the "Moormen bold," who were drawing together on all sides to defend themselves; a great power of three hundred savages chased another raiding party to their boats.

Then, after learning from the captives that there were other populated islands nearby, they raided these for more prisoners. On their next attack, they couldn’t catch any men, but they did capture seventeen or eighteen women and small boys who weren’t able to run yet. Shortly after this, they encountered the "Moormen bold," who were gathering from all sides to defend themselves; a large group of three hundred savages chased another raiding party back to their boats.

That the whole expedition had no thought of discovery was plain enough from the fact that Lançarote did not try to go beyond the White Cape (Blanco), which had been already passed several times, but turned back directly he found the hunting grounds becoming deserted, and a descent producing no prize, except one girl, who had chosen to go to sleep when the rest of the people fled up country at the first sight of the Christian boats.

That the entire expedition wasn't focused on discovery was clear from the fact that Lançarote didn't attempt to go beyond the White Cape (Blanco), which had already been crossed several times. Instead, he turned back as soon as he noticed the hunting grounds becoming empty, and the descent yielded no rewards, except for one girl, who had chosen to sleep while the others ran inland at the first sight of the Christian boats.

The voyage was a slave chase from first to last, and two hundred and thirty-five Blacks were the result. Their landing and their sale at Lagos was a day of great excitement, a long remembered 8th of August. "Very early in the morning, because of the heat (of the later day) the sailors began to land their captives, who as they were placed all together in the field by the landing-place, were indeed a wonderful sight; for among them there were some that were almost white, of beautiful form and face; others were darker; and others again as black as moles and so hideous, alike in face and body, that they looked, to any one who saw them, the very images of a Lower Hemisphere."

The journey was a slave hunt from start to finish, resulting in two hundred and thirty-five Black people. Their arrival and sale in Lagos was a day filled with excitement, a memorable 8th of August. "Very early in the morning, due to the heat of the later day, the sailors started to bring their captives ashore. As they were gathered together in the field by the landing area, it was truly an incredible sight; among them were some who were nearly white, with beautiful features and form; others were darker; and some were as black as coal and so unattractive, both in looks and body, that anyone who saw them might think they were the very representations of a Lower Hemisphere."

But what heart so stern, exclaims the chronicler, as not to be pierced with pity to see that company. For some held down their heads, crying piteously, others looked mournfully upon one another, others[Pg 215] stood moaning very wretchedly, sometimes looking up to the height of Heaven, calling out with shrieks of agony, as if invoking the Father of Nature; others grovelled upon the ground, beating their foreheads with their hands, while others again made their moan in a sort of dirge, in their own way, for though one could not understand the words, the sense of all was plain in the agony of those who uttered it.

But what heart is so hard, the chronicler exclaims, that it wouldn’t feel pity seeing that group? Some bowed their heads, crying painfully, others looked sadly at each other, some[Pg 215] moaned pitifully, occasionally glancing up to the sky, crying out in agony, as if calling on the Creator; others lay on the ground, hitting their foreheads with their hands, while more expressed their sorrow in a kind of mournful song, in their own way, for even though the words weren’t clear, the anguish of those who spoke was unmistakable.

But most terrible was that agony when came the partition and each possessor took away his lot. Wives were divided from husbands, fathers from sons, brothers from brothers, each being forced to go where his lot might send him. Parents and children who had been ranged opposite one another, now rushed forward to embrace, if it were for the last time; mothers, holding their little children in their arms, threw themselves down, covering their babes with their own bodies.

But the worst part was the pain when the division happened and each person took their share. Wives were separated from husbands, fathers from sons, brothers from brothers, each forced to go wherever their share led them. Parents and children, who had been standing across from each other, rushed forward to hug, maybe for the last time; mothers, holding their little kids in their arms, threw themselves down, shielding their babies with their own bodies.

And yet these slaves were treated with kindness, and no difference was made between them and other and freeborn servants. The younger captives were taught trades, and those who showed that they could manage property were set free and married. Widow ladies treated the girls they bought like their own daughters, and often left them dowries by will, that they might marry as entirely free. Never have I known one of these captives, says Azurara, put in irons like other slaves, or one who did not become a Christian. Often have I been present at the baptisms or marriages of these slaves, when their masters made as much and as solemn a matter of it as if it had been a child or a parent of their own.[Pg 216]

And yet these slaves were treated kindly, with no distinction made between them and other free servants. The younger captives learned trades, and those who proved they could manage property were freed and married. Widow ladies treated the girls they bought like their own daughters and often left them dowries in their wills so they could marry completely free. I have never known one of these captives, says Azurara, to be put in chains like other slaves, or one who did not become a Christian. I have frequently witnessed the baptisms or weddings of these slaves, where their masters treated the occasions with the same seriousness as if it had been a child or parent of their own.[Pg 216]

During Henry's life the action of buccaneers on the African coast was a good deal kept in check by the spirit and example and positive commands of the Infant, who sent out his men to explore, and could not prevent some outrages in the course of exploration. Again and again he ordered his captains to act fairly to the natives, to trade with them honourably, and to persuade them by gentler means than kidnapping to come to Europe for a time. In the last years of his life he did succeed in bettering things; by establishing a regular Government trade in the bay of Arguin he brought a good deal more under control the unchained deviltry of the Portuguese freebooters; Cadamosto and Diego Gomez, his most trusted lieutenants of this later time, were real discoverers, who tried to make friends of the natives rather than slaves.

During Henry's life, the actions of buccaneers on the African coast were largely kept in check by his spirit, example, and direct orders. He sent out his men to explore, yet he couldn’t stop some abuses during these explorations. Time and again, he instructed his captains to treat the natives fairly, to trade with them honorably, and to encourage them to come to Europe voluntarily instead of resorting to kidnapping. In the final years of his life, he succeeded in improving the situation; by establishing a regular government trade in the bay of Arguin, he managed to rein in the rampant chaos caused by Portuguese freebooters. Cadamosto and Diego Gomez, his most trusted lieutenants during this later period, were true explorers who aimed to befriend the natives rather than enslave them.

In the early days of Portuguese exploration, it may also be said, information, first-hand news of the new countries and their dangers, was absolutely needed, and if the Negroes and the Azaneguy Moors could not or would not speak some Christian tongue and guide the caravels to Guinea, they must be carried off and made fit and proper instruments for the work.

In the early days of Portuguese exploration, it can also be said that accurate information and firsthand accounts of the new lands and their dangers were crucial. If the Africans and the Moorish Azaneguy could not or would not speak any Christian language and help guide the ships to Guinea, they had to be taken and trained to be suitable tools for the task.

It would be out of place here to justify or condemn this excuse or to enter on the wider question of the right or wrong of the slave-trade in general. It is enough to see how brutally the work of "saving the Heathen," was carried out by the average explorer, when discovery was used as a plea for traffic.[Pg 217]

It wouldn't be appropriate to justify or condemn this excuse or to discuss the broader issue of the morality of the slave trade overall. It's sufficient to see how brutally the average explorer carried out the work of "saving the Heathen" when discovery was used as an excuse for trading.[Pg 217]

No one then questioned the right of Christians to make slaves of Heathen Blacks; Henry certainly did not, for he used slavery as an education, he made captives of "Gentiles" for the highest ends, as he believed, to save their souls, and to help him in the way of doing great things for his country and for Christendom. He knew more of the results than of the incidental cruelty, more of the hundreds taken than of the hundreds more killed and maimed and made homeless in the taking. For centuries past Moors had brought back slaves from the south across the Sahara to sell on the coast of Tunis and Morocco; no Christian doubted the right and—more than the right—the merit of the Prince in bringing black slaves by sea from Guinea to Lisbon, where they might be fairly saved from the grasp of "Foul Mahumet."

No one questioned the right of Christians to enslave non-Christians, especially Black people; Henry certainly didn’t, as he viewed slavery as a form of education. He believed that capturing "Gentiles" was for the noble purpose of saving their souls and helping him achieve great things for his country and for Christendom. He was more aware of the outcomes than the incidental cruelty, more focused on the hundreds he captured than the countless others who were killed, injured, or displaced in the process. For centuries, Moors had been taking slaves from the south across the Sahara to sell on the coasts of Tunis and Morocco; no Christian doubted both the right and the merit of the Prince in bringing Black slaves by sea from Guinea to Lisbon, where they could be saved from the clutches of "Foul Mahumet."

So if it is said that Henry started the African slave-trade of European nations, that must not be understood as the full-blooded atrocity of the West Indian planters, for the use he made of his prisoners was utterly different, though his action was the cause of incessant abuse of the best end by the worst of means.

So if it's said that Henry started the African slave trade for European countries, it shouldn't be seen as the complete horror that the West Indian planters inflicted, because the way he treated his prisoners was completely different, even though his actions led to ongoing exploitation of a noble purpose through terrible methods.

At the time the gold question was much more important than the slave-trade, and most Portuguese, most Europeans—nobles, merchants, burghers, farmers, labourers—were much more excited by the news and the sight of the first native gold dust than by anything else whatever. It was the first few handfuls of this dust, brought home by Gonsalvez in 1442, that had such a magical effect on public opin[Pg 218]ion, that spread the exploring interest from a small circle out into every class, and that brought forward volunteers on every side. For a Guinea voyage was now the favourite plan of every adventurer.

At that time, the gold question was far more significant than the slave trade, and most Portuguese and Europeans—nobles, merchants, townspeople, farmers, and laborers—were much more thrilled by the news and sight of the first native gold dust than anything else. It was the first few handfuls of this dust, brought back by Gonsalvez in 1442, that had such a magical impact on public opinion, spreading the interest in exploration from a small group to every class and bringing forth volunteers from all sides. A Guinea voyage had now become the top choice for every adventurer.

But however they may be explained, however natural and even necessary they may seem to be, as things stood in Portugal and in Latin Christendom, the slave-trade and the gold hunger hindered the Prince's work quite as much as they helped it. If further discovery depended upon trade profits, native interpreters, and the attractions of material interest, there was at least a danger that the discoverers who were not disposed to risk anything, and only went out to line their own pockets, would hang about the well known coasts till they had loaded all the plunder they could hold, and would then simply reappear at Sagres with so many more souls for the good Prince to save, but without a word or a thought of "finding of new lands." And this, after all, was the end. Buccaneering on the north-west coast of Africa was not what Henry aimed at.

But no matter how you explain it, no matter how natural and even necessary it might seem, the slave trade and the thirst for gold in Portugal and Latin Christendom inhibited the Prince's efforts just as much as they supported them. If further exploration relied on trade profits, local interpreters, and the allure of material gain, there was a real risk that those explorers who weren't willing to take risks and were only out to enrich themselves would stick to the familiar coasts until they had taken as much as they could carry, only to return to Sagres with more souls for the good Prince to save, without even a thought of "finding new lands." Ultimately, that was the issue. Piracy along the north-west coast of Africa was not what Henry was after.

So he gave a caravel to one of his household, Gonsalo de Cintra, "who had been his stirrup-boy," and "bade him go straight to the Land of Guinea, and that for no cause whatever should he do otherwise." But when De Cintra got to the White Cape (Blanco) it struck him that "with very little danger he could make some prisoners there."

So he gave a caravel to one of his household, Gonsalo de Cintra, "who had been his stirrup-boy," and "told him to go straight to the Land of Guinea, and that for no reason should he do anything else." But when De Cintra reached the White Cape (Blanco), it occurred to him that "with very little risk he could capture some prisoners there."

So with a cheerful impudence, in the face of the Infant's express commands, he put his ship about and landed in that bay of Arguin, where so many captures had been made, but he was cut off from[Pg 219] the rest of the men, and killed with seven others by a host of more than two hundred Moors, and the chronicle which tells of all such details at the greatest length, stops to give seven reasons for this, the first serious loss of life the Europeans had suffered in their new African piracies. And for the rest, "May God receive the soul that He created and the nature that came forth from Him, as it is His very own. Habeat Deus animam quam creavit et naturam, quod suum est." (Azurara, ch. 27).

So, with a cheerful boldness, ignoring the Infant's clear orders, he turned his ship around and landed in that bay of Arguin, where so many captures had happened. However, he got separated from the rest of his crew and was killed along with seven others by a group of more than two hundred Moors. The chronicle that recounts all these details in great depth pauses to list seven reasons for this, marking the first serious loss of life that Europeans faced in their new African piracy ventures. And for the rest, "May God receive the soul that He created and the nature that came forth from Him, as it is His very own. Habeat Deus animam quam creavit et naturam, quod suum est." (Azurara, ch. 27).

Three other caravels, which quickly followed De Cintra, sailed with special orders to Christianise and civilise the natives wherever and however they could, and the result of this was seen in the daring venture of Joan Fernandez. This man, the pattern of all the Crusoes of after time, offered to stay on shore among the Blacks "to learn what he could of the manners and speech and customs of the people," and so was left along with that "bestial and barbarous" nation for seven months, on the shores of the Bank of Arguin, while in exchange for him an old Moor went back to Portugal.

Three other caravels quickly followed De Cintra, sailing with special orders to convert and civilize the natives in any way they could. The outcome of this was evident in the bold endeavor of Joan Fernandez. This man, a prototype for all future castaways, volunteered to stay on land among the natives "to learn what he could about their customs, language, and way of life." He was left with that "wild and uncivilized" group for seven months along the shores of the Bank of Arguin while an old Moor returned to Portugal in exchange for him.

Yet a third voyage was made in this spring of 1445 by Nuno Tristam. And of this, says Azurara, I know nothing very exact or at first hand, because Nuno Tristam was dead before the time that King Affonso (D. Henry's nephew) commanded me to write this history. But this much we do know, that he sailed straight to the Isle of Herons in Arguin, that he passed the sandy wilderness and landed in the parts beyond, in a land fertile and full of palm trees; and having landed he took a score of prison[Pg 220]ers. And so Nuno Tristam was the first to see the country of the real Blacks. In other words, Nuno reached Cape Palmar, far beyond Cape Blanco, where he saw the palms and got the all-important certainty that the desert did end somewhere, and that beyond, instead of a country unapproachable from the heat, where the very seas were perpetually boiling as if in a cauldron, there was a land richer than any northern climate, through which men could pass to the south.

Yet a third voyage was made in the spring of 1445 by Nuno Tristam. Of this, Azurara says, I don't know anything very precise or firsthand, because Nuno Tristam passed away before King Affonso (D. Henry's nephew) ordered me to write this history. But we do know that he sailed straight to the Isle of Herons in Arguin, that he traversed the sandy wasteland and landed beyond in a land that was fertile and full of palm trees; and after landing, he captured a number of prisoners. So Nuno Tristam was the first to see the land of the true Black people. In other words, Nuno reached Cape Palmar, far beyond Cape Blanco, where he saw the palm trees and confirmed that the desert did have an end, and that beyond it, instead of a land that was impossible to reach due to the heat, where the seas boiled like a pot, there was a land richer than any northern climate, through which people could travel to the south.

Still further was this proved by the next voyage, which reached the end of the great western trend of the African coast, and found that instead of the continent stretching out farther and farther to an infinite breadth, there was an immense contraction of the coast.

Still further was this proven by the next voyage, which reached the end of the great western stretch of the African coast, and found that instead of the continent extending out farther and farther to an infinite width, there was a significant narrowing of the coast.

Diniz Diaz, the eldest of that family which gave to Portugal some of her greatest men and makers, now begged a caravel from the Prince with the promise of "doing more with it than any had done before." He had done well under old King John, and now he kept his word.

Diniz Diaz, the oldest in a family that produced some of Portugal's greatest figures and creators, now asked the Prince for a caravel, promising to "achieve more with it than anyone else before him." He had succeeded under the previous King John, and now he delivered on his promise.

Passing Arguin and Cape Blanco and Cape Palmar, he entered the mouth of the Senegal, the western Nile, which was now fixed as the northern limit of Guinea, or Blackman's Land. "Nor was this a little honour for our Prince, whose mighty power was thus brought to bear upon the peoples so far distant from our land and so near to that of Egypt." For Azurara like Diaz, like Henry himself, thought not only that the Senegal was the Niger, the western Nile of the Blacks, but that the caravels of[Pg 221] Portugal were far nearer to India than was the fact,—were getting close to the Mountains of the Moon and the sources of the Nile.

Passing Arguin, Cape Blanco, and Cape Palmar, he entered the mouth of the Senegal, the western Nile, which was now established as the northern boundary of Guinea, or Blackman's Land. "This was no small honor for our Prince, whose great power was thus exerted upon peoples so far from our land and so close to that of Egypt." For Azurara, like Diaz and Henry himself, believed not only that the Senegal was the Niger, the western Nile of the Blacks, but that the caravels of[Pg 221] Portugal were much closer to India than the reality suggested—they were approaching the Mountains of the Moon and the sources of the Nile.

But Diaz was not content with this. He had reached and passed, as he thought, the great western stream up which men might sail, in the belief of the time, to the mysterious sources of the world's greatest river, and so down by the eastern and northern course of the same to Cairo and the Christian seas. He now sailed on "to a great cape, which he named Cape Verde," a green and beautiful headland covered with grass and trees and dotted with native villages, running out into the Western Ocean far beyond any other land, and beyond which, in turn, there was no more western coast, but only southern and eastern. From this point Diaz returned to Portugal.

But Diaz was not satisfied with this. He thought he had reached and gone beyond the great western river where people believed they could sail to the mysterious sources of the world’s greatest river, and then down through the eastern and northern routes to Cairo and the Christian seas. He continued sailing "to a great cape, which he named Cape Verde," a lush and beautiful headland covered in grass and trees, dotted with native villages, extending into the Western Ocean further than any other land, with no more western coastline beyond it, only southern and eastern. From this point, Diaz returned to Portugal.

"But great was the wonder of the people of the coast in seeing his caravel, for never had they seen or heard tell of the like, but some thought it was a fish, others were sure it was a phantom, others again said it might be a bird that had that way of skimming along the surface of the sea." Four of them picked up courage to venture out in a canoe and try to settle this doubt. Out they went in their little boat, all made from one hollow tree, but when they saw that there were men on board the caravel they fled to the shore and "the wind falling our men could not overtake.

"But the people on the coast were amazed to see his caravel because they had never seen anything like it before. Some thought it was a fish, others were convinced it was a ghost, and still others said it might be a bird skimming along the surface of the sea." Four of them gathered the courage to paddle out in a canoe to figure it out. They set off in their small boat, carved from a single hollow tree, but when they saw there were people on the caravel, they fled back to shore, and the calm winds meant our men couldn’t catch up.

"And though the booty of Diniz Diaz was far less than what others had brought home before him, the Prince made very much of his getting to that[Pg 222] land of Negroes and Cape Verde and the Senegal," and with reason, for these discoveries assured the success of his work, and from this time all trouble and opposition were at an end. Mariners now went out to sail to the golden country that had been found or to the spice land that was now so near; men passed at once from extreme apathy or extreme terror to an equally extreme confidence. They seemed to think the fruit was within reach for them to gather, before the tree had been half climbed. Long before Fernando Po had been reached, while the caravels were still off the coasts of Sierra Leone, men at home, from King Affonso to the common seamen of the ports, "thought the line of Tunis and even of Alexandria had been long passed." The difficult first steps seemed all.

"And even though Diniz Diaz's haul was much smaller than what others had brought back before him, the Prince celebrated his arrival in the[Pg 222] land of Black people and Cape Verde and Senegal," and rightfully so, because these discoveries guaranteed the success of his endeavors, and from that point on, all challenges and opposition were gone. Sailors now set out to explore the golden land that had been discovered or the spice-rich area that was now so close; people moved from extreme indifference or fear to a similarly extreme sense of confidence. They seemed to believe the rewards were within reach for them to grab, even before they had truly begun. Long before they reached Fernando Po, while the ships were still off the coast of Sierra Leone, people back home, from King Affonso to the ordinary sailors in the ports, "thought they had long passed the line of Tunis and even Alexandria." The challenging first steps seemed to be everything.

Now three volunteers, Antam Gonsalvez, and two others who had already sailed in the Prince's service, applied for the command of ships for the discovery and conquest of the lands of Guinea, and to bring back Joan Fernandez from his exile. Sailing past Cape Blanco they set up there a great wooden cross and "much would it have amazed any one of another nation that should have chanced to pass that way, not knowing of our voyages along that coast," says Azurara gleefully, giving us proof enough in every casual expression of this sort, often dropped with perfect simplicity and natural truthfulness, that to his knowledge and that of his countrymen, to the Europe of 1450, the Portuguese had had no forerunners along the Guinea Coast.

Now three volunteers, Antam Gonsalvez, and two others who had previously sailed in the Prince's service, applied for the command of ships for the discovery and conquest of the lands of Guinea, as well as to bring back Joan Fernandez from his exile. After sailing past Cape Blanco, they erected a large wooden cross there, and "it would have greatly surprised anyone from another nation who happened to pass by, not knowing about our voyages along that coast," says Azurara gleefully, giving us ample proof in every casual remark of this kind, often made with complete simplicity and natural honesty, that in his knowledge and that of his countrymen, to the Europe of 1450, the Portuguese had no predecessors along the Guinea Coast.

A little south of the Bight of Arguin the caravels[Pg 223] sighted a man on the shore making signals to the ships, and coming closer they saw Fernandez who had much to tell. He had completely won over the natives of that part during his seven months' stay, and now he was able to bring the caravels to a market where trinkets were exchanged for slaves and gold with a Moorish chief—"a cavalier called Ahude Meymam." Then he was taken home to tell his story to the Prince, the fleet wasting some time in descents on the tribes of the bay of Arguin.

A little south of the Bight of Arguin, the caravels[Pg 223] spotted a man on the shore signaling to the ships. As they got closer, they recognized Fernandez, who had a lot to share. He had completely won over the locals during his seven-month stay and was now able to bring the caravels to a market where they traded trinkets for slaves and gold with a Moorish chief—"a gentleman named Ahude Meymam." Then he was taken back to share his story with the Prince, while the fleet spent some time engaging with the tribes of the Bay of Arguin.

When he was first put on shore, Joan Fernandez told Don Henry, the natives came up to him, took his clothes off him and made him put on others of their own make. Then they took him up the country, which was very scantily clothed with grass, with a sandy and stony soil, growing hardly any trees. A few thorns and palms were the only relief to the barren monotony of this African prairie, over which wandered a few nomade shepherds in search of pasture for their flocks. There were no flowers, no running streams to light up the waste, so Fernandez thought at first, till he found one or two exceptions that proved the rule. The natives got their water from wells, spoke a tongue and wrote a writing that was different from that of the other Moors, though all these people, in the upland, were Moslems, like the Berbers nearer home. For they themselves were a tribe, the Azaneguy tribe, of the great Berber family, who had four times—in the eleventh, twelfth, thirteenth, and fourteenth centuries—come over to help the Moslem power in Spain.

When he first arrived on land, Joan Fernandez told Don Henry that the locals approached him, took off his clothes, and made him wear their own garments. They then took him inland, which was mostly bare with sparse grass, sandy and rocky soil, and hardly any trees. A few thorns and palms were the only relief to the bleakness of this African landscape, where a few nomadic shepherds roamed in search of grazing land for their flocks. There were no flowers or flowing streams to brighten the dreariness, or so Fernandez thought at first, until he found a couple of exceptions that proved the rule. The locals drew their water from wells, spoke a language, and used a script that was different from the other Moors, although all these people, in the highlands, were Muslims, like the Berbers closer to home. They belonged to the Azaneguy tribe, part of the larger Berber family, who had come over four times—in the eleventh, twelfth, thirteenth, and fourteenth centuries—to support the Muslim power in Spain.

Yet, said Fernandez, these Moors of the west are[Pg 224] quite barbarous: they have neither law nor lordship; their food is milk and the seeds of wild mountain herbs and roots; meat and bread are both rare luxuries; and so is fish for those on the upland, but the Moors of the coast eat nothing else, and for months together I have seen those I lived among, their horses and their dogs, eating and drinking only milk, like infants. 'T is no wonder they are weaker than the negroes of the south with whom they are ever at war, fighting with treachery and not with strength. They dress in leather—leather breeches and jackets, but some of the richer wear a native mantle over their shoulders—such rich men as keep good swift horses and brood mares. It was about the trade and religion of the country that Fernandez was specially questioned, and his answers were not encouraging on either point. The people were bigoted, ignorant worshippers of the abominations of Mahumet, he said, and their traffic in slaves and gold was a small matter after all. The only gold he saw in their country was in ankle rings on the women of the chiefs; the gold dust and black bodies they got from the negroes they took to Tunis and the Mediterranean coast on camels. Their salt, on which they set great store, was from the Tagazza salt quarries, far inland. The chief, Ahude Meymam, who had been so kind to Fernandez, lived in the upland; the Christian stranger had been induced to ride up from the coast, and had reached the Court only after tortures of thirst. The water failed them on the way, and for three days they had nothing to drink.[Pg 225]

Yet, said Fernandez, these Moors of the west are[Pg 224] quite barbaric: they have no laws or leaders; their diet consists of milk and the seeds of wild mountain herbs and roots; meat and bread are rare luxuries; and fish is scarce for those living in the uplands. However, the Moors by the coast eat nothing else, and for months on end, I’ve seen those I lived among, along with their horses and dogs, only consuming milk, like babies. It's no surprise they are weaker than the southern negroes, with whom they are constantly at war, fighting with cunning instead of power. They wear leather—leather pants and jackets, but some of the wealthier ones wear a native cloak over their shoulders—those rich enough to own good, fast horses and brood mares. Fernandez was particularly questioned about the trade and religion of the land, and his responses were discouraging on both topics. He mentioned that the people were bigoted, ignorant worshippers of the falsehoods of Mahumet, and their trade in slaves and gold was quite minimal overall. The only gold he noticed in their country was in the ankle rings worn by the chief's women; the gold dust and black bodies they obtained from the negroes were taken to Tunis and the Mediterranean coast on camels. Their valuable salt came from the Tagazza salt quarries, located far inland. The chief, Ahude Meymam, who had been very kind to Fernandez, lived in the uplands; the Christian stranger had been persuaded to ride up from the coast and only reached the Court after suffering severe thirst. They ran out of water during the journey, and for three days they had nothing to drink.[Pg 225]

Altogether, Fernandez' report discouraged any further attempts to explore by land, where all the country as far as could be reached seemed to yield nothing but desert with a few slender oases. It was not indeed till the European explorers reached the Congo on their coasting voyages to the south that they found a natural and inviting pathway into the heart of Africa. The desert of the north and west, the fever-haunted swamps and jungle of the Guinea Coast only left narrow inlets of more healthy and passable country, and these the Portuguese did their best to close by occasional acts of savage cruelty and impudent fraud in their dealings with the natives.

Overall, Fernandez's report discouraged any further land exploration, as the area that could be accessed appeared to consist solely of desert, with just a few thin oases. It wasn't until European explorers arrived at the Congo during their coastal voyages south that they discovered a natural and welcoming route into the heart of Africa. The deserts in the north and west, along with the fever-ridden swamps and jungles of the Guinea Coast, only left narrow passages of healthier and more navigable land, which the Portuguese attempted to close off through acts of brutal violence and blatant deception in their interactions with the local people.

Another expedition, and that an unlucky one, under Gonsalo Pacheco, a gentleman of Lisbon, followed this last of Antam Gonsalvez. Pacheco got leave to make the voyage, equipped a caravel that he had built for himself, and got two others to share the risk and profits with him. And so, says Azurara, hoisting the banners of the Order of Christ, they made their way to Cape Blanco. Here they found, one league from the Cape, a village, and by the shore a writing, that Antam Gonsalvez had set up, in which he counselled all who passed that way not to trouble to go up and sack the village, as it was quite empty of people. So they hung about the Bank of Arguin, making raids in various places, and capturing some one hundred and twenty natives, all of which is not of much interest to any one, though as Pacheco and his men had to pay themselves for their trouble, and make a profit on the voyage, these[Pg 226] man-hunts were the chief thing they thought about and the main thing in their stories when they got home.

Another expedition, and an unfortunate one, led by Gonsalo Pacheco, a gentleman from Lisbon, followed the previous one by Antam Gonsalvez. Pacheco received permission to make the voyage, outfitted a caravel he built for himself, and got two others to share the risks and rewards with him. So, as Azurara recounts, raising the banners of the Order of Christ, they headed towards Cape Blanco. There, about a league from the Cape, they found a village and a notice by the shore that Antam Gonsalvez had posted, advising anyone who passed by not to bother raiding the village, as it was completely deserted. They lingered around the Bank of Arguin, launching raids in various locations, capturing around one hundred and twenty natives. While this isn't particularly interesting to anyone, since Pacheco and his crew had to finance their own efforts and turn a profit from the journey, these[Pg 226] man-hunts became the main focus of their concerns and the primary stories they shared when they returned home.

Men like Pacheco and his friends were not explorers at all. They stopped far short of the mark that Diniz Diaz had made for the European Furthest, and their only discovery was of a new cape one hundred miles and more beyond the Bank of Arguin. Sailing south, because the natives fled at their approach and left the coast land all bare, "they came to a headland which they called Cape St. Anne, by which an arm of the sea ran four leagues up the country," where they hunted for more prisoners.

Men like Pacheco and his friends were not explorers at all. They fell far short of the point that Diniz Diaz had marked as the European limit, and their only discovery was a new cape more than a hundred miles beyond the Bank of Arguin. Sailing south, since the locals ran away at their approach and left the coastline completely deserted, "they arrived at a headland which they named Cape St. Anne, where an arm of the sea extended four leagues inland," where they searched for more captives.

Still in search of slaves and gold they sailed on two hundred and fifty miles—eighty leagues—to Negroland, where Diaz had been before, and where they saw a land, to the north of the Great Western Cape, all green, peopled with men and cattle, but when they tried to near the shore and land a storm drove them back. For three days they struggled against it, but at last they found themselves near Cape Blanco, more than three hundred miles to the north, where they gave up all thought of trying to push into the unknown south, and turned cheerfully to their easier work of slave-hunting. In one of these raids, a party of seven, in a boat away from all the rest, was overpowered and killed like De Cintra's men by a large body of natives, "whose souls may God in His mercy receive in the Habitation of the Saints." The Moors carried off the boat and broke it up for the sake of its nails, and Azurara was told by some that the bodies of the dead were eaten by[Pg 227] their brutal conquerors. 'T is certain at least, he adds, that their custom is to eat the livers of their victims and to drink their blood, when they are avenging the death of parents or brothers or children, as they do it to have full vengeance on such as have so greatly injured them.

Still on the hunt for slaves and gold, they sailed for two hundred and fifty miles—eighty leagues—to Negroland, where Diaz had been before. There, they saw a land to the north of the Great Western Cape, lush and populated with people and cattle. However, when they attempted to get closer to the shore and land, a storm forced them back. They battled the storm for three days, but eventually found themselves near Cape Blanco, over three hundred miles to the north. At that point, they abandoned any hopes of venturing further into the unknown south and happily returned to their easier task of slave-hunting. During one of these raids, a group of seven, out in a boat separate from the others, was overwhelmed and killed, just like De Cintra's men, by a large group of natives, "whose souls may God in His mercy receive in the Habitation of the Saints." The Moors took the boat and dismantled it for its nails, and Azurara was informed by some that the bodies of the dead were eaten by their brutal conquerors. It is certain, he adds, that their custom is to eat the livers of their victims and drink their blood when avenging the deaths of parents, brothers, or children, as they do this to achieve full vengeance on those who have deeply harmed them.

decorative illustration

decorative illustration


decorative illustration

decorative illustration

CHAPTER XIII.

THE ARMADA OF 1445.

While Gonsalo Pacheco had been wasting time and men and the good name of Europe and Christendom in his plunderings between C. Bojador and C. Blanco, the memory of the death of Gonsalo de Cintra was kept alive in Lagos, and the men of the town came in solemn deputation to the Prince, before the summer of this same year (1445) was out, to beg him for permission to take full, perfect, and sufficient vengeance. In other words, they offered to equip the largest fleet that had ever sailed on an ocean voyage—as it now began to be called, a Guinea voyage—since the Prince began his work. As far as we know, this was also one of the greatest armadas that had been sent out into the new-discovered or re-discovered or undiscovered seas and lands since the European nations had begun to look at all beyond their own narrow limits.

WWhile Gonsalo Pacheco was wasting time, men, and the good reputation of Europe and Christianity with his plundering between Cape Bojador and Cape Blanco, the memory of Gonsalo de Cintra's death was kept alive in Lagos. The townspeople came in a solemn delegation to the Prince before the summer of that same year (1445) ended, asking for permission to take complete, thorough, and fitting revenge. In other words, they offered to organize the largest fleet that had ever embarked on an ocean voyage—what was now starting to be called a Guinea voyage—since the Prince began his efforts. As far as we know, this was also one of the greatest armadas dispatched to the newly discovered, re-discovered, or undiscovered seas and lands since European nations began to look beyond their own narrow borders.

Neither the fleet of 1341, which found the Canaries, and of which Boccaccio tells us, nor the Genoese expedition of 1291, nor the Catalan venture[Pg 229] of 1346, nor De Béthencourt's armament of 1402, for the conquest of the Fortunate Isles, was anything like this armada of 1445. For this last was a real sign of national interest in a work which was not only discovery, but profit and a means to more; it proved that in Portugal, in however base and narrowly selfish a way, there was now a spirit of general enterprising activity, and till this had been once awakened, there was not much hope of great results from the efforts of individuals.

Neither the fleet of 1341, which discovered the Canaries and is mentioned by Boccaccio, nor the Genoese expedition of 1291, nor the Catalan venture[Pg 229] of 1346, nor De Béthencourt's expedition of 1402 aimed at conquering the Fortunate Isles, resembled the armada of 1445. This last armada marked a genuine sign of national interest in an endeavor that was not just about discovery, but also profit and more opportunities; it demonstrated that in Portugal, even in a selfish and narrow-minded way, there was now a spirit of collective enterprise. Until this spirit was awakened, there was little hope for significant outcomes from the efforts of individuals.

The first contingent now equipped in Lagos—for the Prince at once approved of his men's idea—numbered fourteen caravels—fourteen of the best sailing ships afloat, as Cadamosto said a little later; but this was only the central fleet, under Lançarote as Admiral. Three more ships came from Madeira, one of them under Tristam Vaz, the coloniser of Funchal; Diniz Diaz headed another contingent from Lisbon; Zarco, the chief partner in the discovery and settlement of Madeira, sent his own caravel in command of his nephew; in all there were seven and twenty ships—caravels, galleys, and pinnaces. Since the Carthaginians sent out their colonists under Hanno beyond the Pillars of Hercules, a larger and braver fleet had not sailed down that desolate West of Africa.

The first group, now ready in Lagos—for the Prince immediately supported his men's suggestion—consisted of fourteen caravels—fourteen of the best sailing ships available, as Cadamosto later mentioned; but this was just the main fleet, led by Lançarote as Admiral. Three additional ships came from Madeira, one of which was under Tristam Vaz, the colonizer of Funchal; Diniz Diaz led another group from Lisbon; Zarco, the main partner in the discovery and settlement of Madeira, sent his own caravel commanded by his nephew; in total, there were twenty-seven ships—caravels, galleys, and pinnaces. Since the Carthaginians sent out their settlers under Hanno beyond the Pillars of Hercules, no larger or braver fleet had sailed down that barren West of Africa.

Gil Eannes, who had rounded Bojador, was there, with the Diaz, who had passed the Green Headland and come first to the land of the Negroes, and the list of captains was made up of the most daring and seasoned of Spanish seamen. Scarcely a man who had ventured on the ocean voyages of the last thirty[Pg 230] years was still alive and able-bodied who did not sail on the 10th August, 1445.

Gil Eannes, who had rounded Bojador, was there, along with Diaz, who had passed the Green Headland and first reached the land of the Black people. The list of captains consisted of the boldest and most experienced Spanish sailors. Almost no one who had taken part in the ocean voyages of the past thirty[Pg 230] years was still alive and fit who didn’t set sail on August 10, 1445.

At the start Cape Blanco was appointed as the rendezvous; with favouring wind and tide the ships raced out as far as Arguin. Lawrence, a younger brother of the Diaz family, drew ahead, and was the first to fall in with Pacheco's three caravels, which were slowly crawling home after their losses. Now, hearing of the great fleet that was coming after to take vengeance, they turned about to wait for them, "as it was worth while to have revenge though one had to live on short rations." So, now, thirty European ships and their crews were included in the fleet. The pioneer, Lawrence Diaz, and the rest, lay to at the Isle of Herons in the Bank of Arguin; while waiting there they saw some wonderful things in birds, and Azurara tells us what they told him, though rather doubtfully. The great beaks of the Marabout, or Prophet Bird, struck them most,—"a cubit long and more, three fingers' breadth across, and the bill smooth and polished, like a Bashaw's scabbard, and looking as if artificially worked with fire and tools,"—the mouth and gullet so big that the leg of a man of the ordinary size would go into it. On these birds particularly, says Azurara, our men refreshed themselves during their three days' stay.

At the beginning, Cape Blanco was designated as the meeting point; with favorable winds and tides, the ships sped out as far as Arguin. Lawrence, a younger brother of the Diaz family, sped ahead and was the first to encounter Pacheco's three caravels, which were slowly making their way home after their losses. Upon hearing about the large fleet that was pursuing them for revenge, they decided to turn around and wait for their attackers, "as it was worth the effort to seek revenge even if it meant living on limited supplies." By then, thirty European ships and their crews had joined the fleet. The trailblazer, Lawrence Diaz, and the others anchored at the Isle of Herons in the Bank of Arguin; while waiting, they observed remarkable birds, and Azurara recounts what they told him, albeit with some uncertainty. The impressive beaks of the Marabout, or Prophet Bird, fascinated them the most—"about a cubit long and more, three fingers wide, with a smooth and polished surface, resembling a Bashaw's scabbard, as if it had been crafted with fire and tools,"—the mouth and throat so large that a man's leg of average size could fit inside. Azurara notes that during their three-day stay, the men particularly feasted on these birds.

Slowly but surely, two by two, three by three, nine caravels mustered at C. Blanco, and as the flagship of Lançarote was among them, an attack was made at once with two hundred and seventy-eight men picked from among the crews, the foot[Pg 231]men and lancers in one boat and the archers in another, with Lançarote himself and the men-at-arms behind. They were steered by pilots who had been on the coast before and knew it, and it was hoped they would come upon the natives of Tider Island with the first light of dawn. But the way was longer than the pilots reckoned, the night was pitchy dark, without moon or stars, the tide was on the ebb, and at last the boats were aground. It was well on in the morning before they got off on the flood and rowed along the coast to find a landing-place. The shore was manned with natives, not at all taken by surprise, but dancing, yelling, spitting, and throwing missiles in insolent defiance. After a desperate struggle on the beach, they were put to flight with trifling loss—eight killed, four taken,—but when the raiders reached the village, they found it empty; the women and children had been sent away, and all their wretched little property had gone with them. The same was found true of all the villages on that coast; but in a second battle on the next day, fifty-seven Moors were captured, and the army went back on shipboard once more.

Slowly but surely, two by two and three by three, nine caravels gathered at C. Blanco. With Lançarote’s flagship among them, they immediately launched an attack with two hundred and seventy-eight men chosen from the crews: foot soldiers and lancers in one boat and archers in another, with Lançarote himself and the men-at-arms following behind. They were guided by pilots who had previously sailed along the coast and knew the area, hoping to surprise the natives of Tider Island at dawn. However, the journey took longer than the pilots expected, it was pitch dark without a moon or stars, the tide was going out, and soon their boats ran aground. It was well into the morning before they got off on the rising tide and rowed along the coast looking for a landing spot. The shore was lined with natives who were not caught off guard at all; they were dancing, yelling, spitting, and throwing missiles defiantly. After a fierce struggle on the beach, the natives were driven back with only a minor loss—eight killed and four captured—but when the raiders reached the village, they found it deserted; all the women and children had been sent away, taking their meager possessions with them. The same was true for all the villages along that coast; however, in a second battle the next day, fifty-seven Moors were captured, and the army returned to their ships once again.

And now the fleet divided. Lançarote, holding a council of his captains, declared the purpose of the voyage was accomplished. They had punished the natives and taken vengeance for Gonsalo de Cintra and the other martyrs; now it was for each crew and captain to settle whether they would go farther. All the prisoners having now been divided like prize-money between the ships, there was nothing more to stay for.[Pg 232]

And now the fleet split up. Lançarote, meeting with his captains, declared that the goal of the voyage was accomplished. They had punished the natives and avenged Gonsalo de Cintra and the other victims; now it was up to each crew and captain to decide if they wanted to go further. Since all the prisoners had been divided like treasure among the ships, there was nothing left to wait for.[Pg 232]

Five caravels at once returned to Portugal after trying to explore the inlet of the sea at C. Blanco; but they only went up in their boats five leagues, and then turned back. One stayed in the Bay of Arguin to traffic in slaves, and lost one of the most valuable captives by sheer carelessness,—a woman, badly guarded, slipped out and swam ashore.

Five caravels returned to Portugal after attempting to explore the inlet at C. Blanco; however, they only went up in their boats for five leagues before turning back. One stayed in the Bay of Arguin to trade in slaves and lost one of the most valuable captives due to sheer carelessness—a woman, poorly guarded, managed to escape and swam ashore.

But there was a braver spirit in some others of the fleet. The captain of the King's caravel, which had come from Lisbon in the service of the King's uncle, swore he would not turn back. He, Gomes Pires, would go on to the Nile; the Prince had ordered him to bring him certain word of it. He would not fail him. Lançarote for himself said the same, and another, one Alvaro de Freitas, capped the offers of all the rest. He would go on beyond the Negro-Nile to the Earthly Paradise, to the farthest East, where the four sacred rivers flowed from the tree of life. "Well do you all know how our Lord the Infant sets great store by us, that we should make him know clearly about the land of the Negroes, and especially the River of Nile. It will not be a small guerdon that he will give for such service."

But there was a braver spirit among some others in the fleet. The captain of the King's caravel, which had come from Lisbon for the King's uncle, swore he wouldn’t turn back. He, Gomes Pires, would continue on to the Nile; the Prince had asked him to bring back specific information about it. He would not let him down. Lançarote echoed the same determination, and another, Alvaro de Freitas, raised the stakes beyond everyone else. He would venture beyond the Negro-Nile to the Earthly Paradise, to the farthest East, where the four sacred rivers flowed from the tree of life. "You all know how much our Lord the Infant values us, and that we should clearly inform him about the land of the Negroes, especially the River Nile. The reward for such service will be significant."

Six caravels in all formed the main body of the Perseverants, and these coasted steadily along till they came to Diaz's Cape of Palms, which they knew was near the Senegal and the land of the Negroes, "and so beautiful did the land now become, and so delicious was the scent from the shore, that it was as if they were by some gracious fruit garden, ordained to the sole end of their delights. And when[Pg 233] the men in the caravels saw the first palms and towering woodland, they knew right well that they were close upon the River of Nile, which the men there call the Sanaga." For the Infant had told them how little more than twenty leagues beyond the sight of those trees they would see the river, as his prisoners of the Azanegue tribes had told him. And as they looked carefully for the signs of this, they saw at last, two leagues from land, "a colour of the water that was different from the rest, for that was of the colour of mud."

Six caravels made up the main group of the Perseverants, and they sailed steadily along until they reached Diaz's Cape of Palms, which they knew was close to Senegal and the land of the Black people. "The land became so beautiful, and the scent from the shore was so delightful, it felt like they were passing through a lovely fruit garden, created just for their enjoyment. And when[Pg 233] the men in the caravels spotted the first palms and towering trees, they realized they were very close to the River Nile, which the locals called the Sanaga." The Prince had told them that just a little over twenty leagues beyond those trees, they would see the river, as his captives from the Azanegue tribes had informed him. As they looked carefully for evidence of this, they eventually spotted a different color in the water about two leagues from shore, "which looked like mud."

And understanding this to mean that there were shoals, they put farther out to sea for safety, when one took some of the water in his hand and put it to his mouth, and found that it was sweet. And crying out to the others, "Of a surety," said they, "we are now at the River of Nile, for the water of the river comes with such force into the sea as to sweeten it." So they dropped their anchors in the river's mouth, and they of the caravel of Vincent Diaz (another brother of Diniz and Lawrence) let down a boat, into which jumped eight men who pulled ashore.

And realizing this meant there were shallow areas, they sailed further out to sea for safety. One of them scooped some water in his hand and tasted it, discovering it was sweet. He shouted to the others, "For sure," they said, "we are now at the River Nile, because the river's water flows into the sea with such force that it sweetens it." So they dropped their anchors at the river's mouth, and those on Vincent Diaz's ship (another brother of Diniz and Lawrence) lowered a boat, and eight men jumped in and rowed to shore.

Here they found some ivory and elephant hide, and had a fierce battle with a huge negro whose two little naked children they carried off,—but though the chronicle of the voyages stops here for several chapters of rapturous reflection on the greatness of the Nile, and the valour and spirit of the Prince who had thus found a way to its western mouth, we must follow the captains as they coast slowly along to Cape Verde, "for that the wind was fair for sail[Pg 234]ing." Landing on a couple of uninhabited islands off the Cape, they found first of all "fresh goat-skins and other things," and then the arms of the Infant and the words of his motto, Talan de bien faire, carved upon trees, and they doubted, like Azurara when writing down his history from their lips; "whether the great power of Alexander or of Cæsar could have planted traces of itself so far from home," as these islands were from Sagres. For though the distance looks small enough on a full map of all the world, on the chart of the Then Known it was indeed a lengthy stretch—some two thousand miles, fully as great a distance as the whole range of the Mediterranean from the coast of Palestine to the Straits of Gibraltar.

Here they discovered some ivory and elephant hide, and had a fierce fight with a massive Black man whose two small naked children they took away. Though the account of their voyages pauses here for several chapters filled with excited praise for the greatness of the Nile, and the bravery and spirit of the Prince who found the way to its western mouth, we must follow the captains as they gradually sail to Cape Verde, "for the wind was fair for sailing." Upon landing on a couple of uninhabited islands off the Cape, they first discovered "fresh goat-skins and other things," and then found the arms of the Infant and his motto, Talan de bien faire, carved into trees. They questioned, like Azurara when recording his history from their words, "whether the great power of Alexander or of Caesar could have left marks of its presence so far from home," as these islands were from Sagres. Although the distance seems small on a world map, on the map of the Then Known it was indeed a vast stretch—about two thousand miles, roughly as great a distance as the entire Mediterranean from the coast of Palestine to the Straits of Gibraltar.

Now by these signs, adds the chronicler, they understood right well that other caravels had been there already—and it was so; for it was the ship of John Gonsalvez Zarco, Captain of Madeira, which had passed this way, as they found for a fact on the day after. And wishing to land, but finding the number of the natives to be such that they could not land by day or night, they put on shore a ball and a mirror and a paper on which was drawn a cross.

Now, the chronicler adds that from these signs, they realized quite clearly that other caravels had been there before—and they were right; it was the ship of John Gonsalvez Zarco, Captain of Madeira, which had gone that way, as they confirmed the next day. Wanting to land but seeing that there were too many natives for them to do so safely, they sent a ball, a mirror, and a piece of paper with a cross drawn on it ashore.

And when the natives came and found them in the morning, they broke the ball and threw away the pieces, and with their assegais broke up the mirror into little bits, and tore the paper, showing that they cared for none of these things.

And when the locals came and found them in the morning, they smashed the ball and tossed away the pieces, and with their spears broke the mirror into tiny pieces, and ripped the paper, showing that they didn’t care for any of these things.

Since this is so, said Captain Gomes Pires to the archers, draw your bows upon these rascals, that they may know we are people who can do them a damage.[Pg 235]

Since that's the case, Captain Gomes Pires said to the archers, aim your bows at these guys so they know we can hurt them.[Pg 235]

But the negroes returned the fire with arrows and assegais—deadly weapons, the arrows unfeathered and without a string-notch, but tipped with deadly poison of herbs, made of reed or cane or charred wood with long iron heads, and the assegais poisoned in like manner and pricked with seven or eight harpoons of iron, so that it was no easy matter to draw it out of the flesh.

But the Black people shot back with arrows and assegais—deadly weapons. The arrows were unfeathered and without a string-notch, but they were tipped with lethal herbal poison, made from reed or cane or charred wood with long iron tips. The assegais were poisoned in a similar way and had seven or eight iron barbs, making it difficult to pull them out of the flesh.

So they lost heart for going farther, with all the coast-land up in arms against them, and turned back to Lagos, but before they left the Cape they noticed in the desert island, where they had found the Prince's arms, trees so large that they had never seen the like, for among them was one which was 108 palms round at the foot. Yet this tree, the famous baobab, was not much higher than a walnut; "of its fibre they make good thread for sewing, which burns like flax; its fruit is like a gourd and its kernels like chestnuts." And so, we are told, all the captains put back along the coast, in a mind to enter the aforesaid River of Nile, but one of the caravels getting separated from the rest and not liking to enter the Senegal alone, went straight to Lagos, and another put back to water in the Bay of Arguin and the Rio d'Ouro estuary, where there came to them at once the Moors on board the caravel, full of confidence because they had never had any dealings before with the merchants of Spain, and sold them a negro for five doubloons, and gave them meat and water from their camels, and came in and out on board the ship, so that there was great fear of treachery, but at last without any quarrel they[Pg 236] were all put on shore, under promise that next July their friends would come again and trade with them in slaves and gold to their hearts' content. And so, taking in a good cargo of seal-skins, they made their way straight home.

So they lost their motivation to go any further, with all the coastal areas rising up against them, and turned back to Lagos. But before they left the Cape, they noticed on the desert island, where they had found the Prince's arms, trees so huge that they had never seen anything like them. Among them was one that was 108 palms around at the base. Yet this tree, the famous baobab, was not much taller than a walnut; "from its fiber, they make good thread for sewing, which burns like flax; its fruit is like a gourd, and its kernels resemble chestnuts." And so, we're told, all the captains returned along the coast, intending to enter the aforementioned River of Nile. However, one of the caravels got separated from the rest and, not wanting to enter the Senegal alone, headed straight to Lagos. Another turned back to get water in the Bay of Arguin and the Rio d'Ouro estuary, where they were immediately approached by the Moors on board the caravel, confident because they had never dealt with Spanish merchants before. They sold them a slave for five doubloons, provided them with meat and water from their camels, and boarded the ship frequently, causing great concern over possible treachery. But eventually, without any conflict, they[Pg 236]were all put ashore, with a promise that their friends would return next July to trade with them for slaves and gold to their heart's content. So, after loading up with a good cargo of seal skins, they headed straight home.

Meantime two of the other caravels and a pinnace, which had been separated early in the voyage from the main body, under the pilotage of the veteran Diniz Diaz, had also made their way to C. Verde, had fought with the natives in some desperate skirmishes—one knight had his "shield stuck as full with arrows as the porcupine with quills," and had turned back in the face of the same discouragements as the rest; and so would have ended the whole of this great enterprise but for the dauntless energy of one captain and his crew.

Meanwhile, two other caravels and a small boat, which had separated early in the journey from the main group, led by the experienced Diniz Diaz, also made their way to C. Verde. They engaged in fierce battles with the locals—one knight had his "shield stuck as full with arrows as a porcupine with quills"—and turned back due to the same discouragements as everyone else. This could have marked the end of the entire venture if it weren't for the fearless determination of one captain and his crew.

Zarco of Madeira had given his caravel to his nephew with a special charge that, come what might, he was not to think of profit and trading, but of doing the will of the Prince his lord. He was not to land in the fatal Bay of Arguin, which had been the end of so many enterprises; he was to go as Diniz Diaz had first gone, straight to the land of the Negroes, and pass beyond the farthest of earlier sailors. Now the caravel, says Azurara proudly, was well equipped and was manned by a crew that was ready to bear hard ship, and the captain was full of energy and zeal, and so they went on steadily, sailing through the great Sea of Ocean till they came to the River of Nile, where they filled two pipes with water, of which they took back one to the city of Lisbon. And not even Alexander, though he was one of the[Pg 237] monarchs of the world, ever drank of water that had been brought from so far as this.

Zarco of Madeira had given his caravel to his nephew with the clear instruction that, no matter what happened, he was not to focus on profit and trade, but on fulfilling the wishes of his lord, the Prince. He was not to land in the dangerous Bay of Arguin, which had been the downfall of so many expeditions; instead, he was to go as Diniz Diaz had originally done, directly to the land of the Negroes, and go beyond where earlier sailors had ventured. Now the caravel, as Azurara proudly states, was well-equipped and manned by a crew ready to endure hardship, and the captain was full of energy and enthusiasm. They sailed steadily through the vast Ocean Sea until they reached the River Nile, where they filled two barrels with water, taking one back to the city of Lisbon. And not even Alexander, though he was one of the[Pg 237] greatest kings of the world, ever drank water brought from such a distance.

"But now, still going on, they passed C. Verde and landed upon the islands I have spoken of, to see if there were any people there, but they found only some tame goats without any one to tend them; and it was there that they made the signs that the others found on coming after, the arms of the Infant with his device and motto. And then drawing in close to the Cape, they waited to see if any canoes would come off to them, and anchored about a mile off the shore. But they had not waited long before two boats, with ten negroes in them, put off from the beach and made straight for the caravel, like men who came in peace and friendship. And being near, they began to make signs as if for a safe-conduct, which were answered in like manner, and then at once, without any other precaution, five of them came on board the caravel, where the captain made them all the entertainment that he could, bidding them eat and drink, and so they went away with signs of great contentment, but it appeared after, that in their hearts they meditated treachery. For as soon as they got to land they talked with the other natives on shore, and thinking that they could easily take the ship, with this intent there now set out six boats, with five and thirty or forty men, arrayed as those who come to fight, but when they came close they were afraid and stayed a little way off, without daring to make any attack. And seeing this, our men launched a boat on the other side of the caravel, where they could not be seen by the[Pg 238] enemy, and manned it with eight rowers, who were to wait till the canoes came nearer to the ship. At last the negroes were tired of waiting and watching, and one of their canoes came up closer, in which were five strong warriors, and at once our boat rowed round the caravel and cut them off. And because of the great advantage that we had in our style of rowing, in a trice our men were upon them, and they having no hope of defence, threw themselves into the water, and the other boats made off for the shore. And our men had the greatest trouble in catching those that were swimming away, for they dived not a whit worse than cormorants, so that we could scarcely catch hold of them. One was taken, not very easily, on the spot, and another, who fought as desperately as two men, was wounded, and with these two the boat returned to the caravel.

"But now, still continuing on, they passed C. Verde and reached the islands I mentioned earlier to see if there were any inhabitants, but they only found some tame goats with no one to look after them. It was here that they made the signs that the others discovered later—the arms of the Infant with his emblem and motto. Then, moving closer to the Cape, they waited to see if any canoes would approach them and anchored about a mile offshore. They didn't wait long before two boats, carrying ten Black men, set off from the beach and headed straight for the caravel, looking like they came in peace and friendship. When they got near, they started signaling for safe passage, which was responded to in kind, and then, without any further precaution, five of them boarded the caravel, where the captain welcomed them as best as he could, inviting them to eat and drink. They left, showing signs of great satisfaction, but it became clear later that they were plotting treachery. As soon as they reached the shore, they spoke with the other natives and figured they could easily take over the ship. With this plan, six boats set out with thirty-five to forty men, armed as if they were preparing to fight, but when they got closer, they got scared and hung back, not daring to attack. Seeing this, our men launched a boat on the opposite side of the caravel, where they couldn't be seen by the enemy, manned it with eight rowers, and waited for the canoes to approach the ship. Eventually, the Black men grew tired of waiting, and one of their canoes paddled closer with five strong warriors, and immediately our boat circled the caravel and cut them off. Thanks to our superior rowing skill, our men quickly reached them, and with no hope of defending themselves, the warriors jumped into the water as the other boats fled back to shore. Our men had a hard time catching those who were swimming away, as they dove just like cormorants, making it difficult to grab them. One was caught, but not easily, on the spot, and another, who fought like two men, was wounded, and with these two, the boat returned to the caravel."

"And for that they saw that it would not profit them to stay longer in that place, they resolved to see if they could find any new lands of which they might bring news to the Infant their lord. And so, sailing on again, they came to a cape, where they saw 'groves of palm trees dry and without branches, which they called the Cape of Masts.'" Here, a little farther along the coast, a reconnoitring party of seven landed and found four negro hunters sitting on the beach, armed with bows and arrows, who fled on seeing the strangers. "And as they were naked and their hair cut very short, they could not catch them," and only brought away their arrows for a trophy.

"And since they realized it wouldn't benefit them to stay any longer in that place, they decided to see if they could discover new lands to report back to their lord, the Infant. So, they set sail again and reached a cape, where they saw dry palm trees without branches, which they named the Cape of Masts." A little further along the coast, a group of seven went ashore for reconnaissance and encountered four Black hunters sitting on the beach, armed with bows and arrows, who fled when they saw the newcomers. "And since they were naked and had very short hair, they couldn't catch them," and only took their arrows as a trophy.

This Cape of Masts, or some point of the coast a[Pg 239] little to the south-east, was the farthest now reached by Zarco's caravel. "From here they put back and sailed direct to Madeira, and thence to the city of Lisbon, where the Infant received them with reward enough. For this caravel, of all those who had sailed at this time (1445), had done most and reached farthest."

This Cape of Masts, or some point of the coast a[Pg 239] little to the southeast, was the farthest reached by Zarco's caravel. "From here, they turned back and sailed straight to Madeira, and then to the city of Lisbon, where the Infante rewarded them generously. This caravel, more than any others that had sailed during this time (1445), had accomplished the most and traveled the farthest."

There was one contingent of the great armada yet unaccounted for, but they were sad defaulters. Three of the ships on the outward voyage which had separated from the main body and Lançarote's flagship, had the cowardice or laziness to give up the purpose of the voyage altogether; "they agreed to make a descent on the Canary Islands instead of going to Guinea at all that year."

There was one group from the large fleet that was still missing, but they were pretty disappointing. Three ships from the outbound journey that had parted ways with the main fleet, along with Lançarote's flagship, decided to either cowardly back out or just be lazy and abandon the mission entirely; "they agreed to head to the Canary Islands instead of going to Guinea that year."

Here they stayed some time, raiding and slave-hunting, but also making observations on the natives and the different natural features of the different islands, which, as we have them in the old chronicle, are not the least interesting part of the story of the Lagos Armada of 1445.[38]

Here they stayed for a while, raiding and hunting for slaves, but also observing the locals and the various natural features of the different islands, which, as noted in the old chronicle, are among the most interesting aspects of the story of the Lagos Armada of 1445.[38]

decorative illustration

decorative illustration


decorative illustration

decorative illustration

CHAPTER XIV.

VOYAGES OF 1446-8.

And yet, but for the enterprise of Zarco's crew, this expedition of 1445 that began with so much promise, and on which so much time and trouble had been spent, was almost fruitless of "novelties," of discoveries, of the main end and object of all the Prince's voyages.

AAnd yet, if it weren't for Zarco's crew, this expedition of 1445 that started with so much promise and on which so much time and effort had been invested, was almost pointless in terms of "novelties," discoveries, and the primary goal of all the Prince's voyages.

The next attempt, made by Nuno Tristam in 1446, ended in the most disastrous finish that had yet befallen the Christian seamen of Spain. Nuno, who had been brought up from boyhood at the Prince's court, "seeing how earnest he was that his caravels should explore the land of the Negroes, and knowing how some had already passed the River of Nile, thought that if he should not do something of right good service to the Infant in that land, he could in no wise gain the name of a brave knight.

The next attempt by Nuno Tristam in 1446 ended in the most disastrous outcome that had happened to the Christian sailors of Spain so far. Nuno, who had grown up at the Prince's court, "seeing how determined he was to have his caravels explore the land of the Negroes, and knowing that some had already crossed the River Nile, thought that if he didn't accomplish something worthwhile for the Infant in that land, he would never earn the title of a brave knight."

"So he armed a caravel and began sail, not stopping anywhere that he might come straight to the Black Man's land. And passing by Cape Verde he sailed on sixty leagues and found a river, where he judged there ought to be some people living. So he[Pg 241] bade them lower two small boats and put ten men in the one and twelve in the other, which pulled straight towards some huts they sighted ahead of them. But before they could jump on shore, twelve canoes came out on the other side, and seventy or eighty Blackmoors in them, with bows in their hands, who began to shoot at our people." As the tide rose, one of the Guinea boats passed them and landed its crew, "so that our men were between a fire from the land and a fire from the boats." They pulled back as hard as they could, but before they could get on board, four of them were lying dead.

"So he equipped a caravel and set sail, not stopping anywhere so he could go straight to the Black Man's land. After passing Cape Verde, he traveled for sixty leagues and found a river, where he thought there should be some people living. So he[Pg 241] ordered them to lower two small boats and sent ten men in one and twelve in the other, which headed directly toward some huts they spotted ahead. But before they could jump on shore, twelve canoes came out from the opposite side, with seventy or eighty Blackmoors in them, armed with bows, who started shooting at our men." As the tide rose, one of the Guinea boats passed by and unloaded its crew, "so our men were caught between fire from the land and fire from the boats." They pulled back as hard as they could, but before they could get on board, four of them were dead.

"And so they began to make sail home again, leaving the boats in that they were not able to take charge of them. For of the twenty-two who went to land in them there did not escape more than two; nineteen were killed, for so deadly was the poison that with a tiny wound, a mere scratch that drew blood, it could bring a man to his last end. But above and beyond these was killed our noble knight, Nuno Tristam, earnestly desiring life, that he might die not a shameful death like this, but as a brave man should." Of seven who had been left in the caravel, two had been struck by the poisoned arrows as they tried to raise the anchors, and were long in danger of death, lying a good twenty days at the last gasp, without the power to raise a finger to help the others who were trying to get the caravel home, so that only five were left to work the ship.

"And so they started to set sail for home again, leaving the boats behind because they couldn't manage them. Out of the twenty-two who landed in them, only two made it back; nineteen were killed, as the poison was so lethal that even a tiny wound, just a scratch that drew blood, could be fatal. But even more tragic was the death of our noble knight, Nuno Tristam, who desperately wanted to live, wishing to avoid a shameful death like this and die like a brave man instead." Of the seven who had stayed behind in the caravel, two were hit by the poisoned arrows while trying to raise the anchors, and they spent nearly twenty days in danger of dying, unable to lift a finger to help the others working to get the caravel home, leaving only five to manage the ship.

Nuno's men were saved by the energy and skill of one—a mere boy, a page of the Infant's House—who took charge of the ship, and steered its course[Pg 242] due north, then north by east, so that in two months' time they were off the coast of Portugal. But they were absolutely helpless and hopeless, knowing nothing of their whereabouts, for in all those two months they had had no glimpse of land,—so that when at last they caught sight of an armed fusta, they were "much troubled," supposing it to be a Moorish cruiser. When it came near and shewed itself to be a Gallician pirate, the poor fellows were almost wild with delight, still more when they found they were not far from Lagos. They had had a terrible time; first they were almost poisoned by the dead bodies of Nuno Tristam and the victims of the savages' poisoned arrows; then, when at last they had "thrown their honour to the winds and those bodies to the fishes," shamefaced and utterly broken in spirit, the five wretchedly ignorant seamen, who were now left alone, drifted, with the boundless and terrible ocean on one side, and the still more dangerous and unknown coast of Africa on the other, for sixty days. A common sailor, "little enough skilled in the art of sailing"; a groom of the Prince's chamber, the young hero who saved the ship; a negro boy, who was taken with the first captives from Guinea; and two other "little lads small enough,"—this was the crew. As for the rest, Beati mortui qui in Domino moriuntur, Blessed are the dead that die in the Lord, cries the chronicler in that outburst of bewildered grief with which he ends his story. There were widows and orphans left for the Prince to care for, and "of these he took especial charge."[Pg 243]

Nuno's men were saved by the energy and skill of one person—a mere boy, a page of the Infant's House—who took control of the ship and steered its course[Pg 242] due north, then north by east, so that in two months' time they were off the coast of Portugal. But they were completely lost and hopeless, knowing nothing of their location, as they hadn't seen any land in those two months. When they finally spotted an armed fusta, they were "much troubled," thinking it was a Moorish cruiser. When it got closer and turned out to be a Gallician pirate, the poor men were almost wild with joy, especially when they learned they were not far from Lagos. They had endured a terrible ordeal; first, they were nearly poisoned by the dead bodies of Nuno Tristam and the victims of the savages' poisoned arrows. Then, after they had "thrown their honour to the winds and those bodies to the fishes," feeling ashamed and utterly defeated, the five wretchedly ignorant seamen who were left alone drifted for sixty days, with the boundless and terrible ocean on one side and the even more dangerous and unknown coast of Africa on the other. The crew consisted of a common sailor "little enough skilled in the art of sailing"; a groom from the Prince's chamber, the young hero who saved the ship; a black boy, captured along with the first prisoners from Guinea; and two other "little lads small enough." As for the rest, Beati mortui qui in Domino moriuntur, Blessed are the dead that die in the Lord, cries the chronicler in that flood of bewildered grief with which he ends his story. There were widows and orphans left for the Prince to care for, and "of these he took especial charge."[Pg 243]

But all people were not so unlucky as Nuno Tristam. The caravel of Zarco of Madeira, which under Zarco's nephew, Alvaro Fernandez, had already passed beyond every other in the year of the great armada, 1445, was sent back again on its errand "of doing service in the unknown lands of Guinea to the Lord Don Henry," in the black year, 1446. Its noble and valiant owner now "charged the aforesaid" Alvaro Fernandez, with the ship well armed, to go as far as he could, and to try and make some booty, that should be so new and so splendid that it would be a sign of his good-will to serve the Lord who had made him. So they sailed on straight to Cape Verde, and beyond that to the Cape of Masts (or Spindle Palms), their farthest of the year before, but they did not turn back here, in spite of unfriendly natives and unknown shores. Still coasting along, they found tracks of men, and a little farther on a village, "where the people came out as men who shewed that they meant to defend their homes; in front of them was a champion, with a good target on his arm and an assegai in his hand. This fellow our captain rushed upon, and with a blow of his lance struck him dead upon the ground. Then, running up, he seized his sword and spear, and kept them as trophies to be offered to the Lord Infant." The negroes fled, and the conquerors turned back to their ship and sailed on. Next day they came to a land where they saw certain of the women of those negroes, and seized one who was of age about thirty, with her child a baby of two, and another, a young girl of fourteen, "the which had a good enough pres[Pg 244]ence and beauty for that country"; but the strength of the woman was so wonderful, that she gave the three men who held her trouble enough to lift her into the boat. And seeing how they were kept struggling on the beach, they feared that some of the people of the country might come down upon them. So one of them put the child into the boat, and love of it forced the mother to go likewise, without much more pushing.

But not everyone was as unfortunate as Nuno Tristam. The caravel of Zarco from Madeira, which under Zarco's nephew, Alvaro Fernandez, had already outperformed all others in the year of the great armada, 1445, was sent back on its mission "to serve in the unknown lands of Guinea for Lord Don Henry" in the grim year of 1446. Its noble and brave owner now instructed Alvaro Fernandez to set out with the ship well armed, to go as far as possible and attempt to capture something so new and remarkable that it would demonstrate his loyalty to the Lord who had created him. They sailed straight to Cape Verde and further to the Cape of Masts (or Spindle Palms), their farthest point from the previous year, but they did not turn back here, despite facing unwelcoming locals and unfamiliar shores. Continuing along the coast, they found signs of people, and a little further on, a village, "where the inhabitants came out like warriors ready to defend their homes; in front of them was a champion, with a good shield on his arm and a spear in his hand. Our captain charged at him and, with a lance strike, killed him instantly. He then ran up, grabbed the man's sword and spear, and kept them as trophies to present to the Lord Infant." The locals fled, and the conquerors returned to their ship and sailed on. The next day, they arrived at a place where they encountered some of the women from that community and captured one who was about thirty years old, with her two-year-old baby, and another young girl of fourteen, "who was quite presentable and beautiful for that region"; but the woman's strength was so impressive that she gave the three men holding her a tough time trying to lift her into the boat. Seeing how much they were struggling on the beach, they worried that some of the locals might come after them. So, one of the men placed the child in the boat, and the mother, driven by love for her child, followed without much coaxing.

Thence they went on, pursues the story, till they came to a river, into which they made an entrance with a boat, and carried off a woman that they found in a house. But going up the river somewhat farther, with a mind to make some good booty, there came out upon them four or five canoes full of negroes, armed as men who would fight for their country, whose encounter our men in the boat did not wish to await in face of the advantage of the enemy, and fearing above all the great peril of poisoned arrows. So they began to pull down stream as hard as they could towards the caravel; but as one of the canoes distanced the others and came up close to them, they turned upon it and in the fight one of the negroes shot a dart, that wounded the captain, Alvaro Fernandez, in the foot. But he, as he had been already warned of the poison, drew out the arrow very quickly and bathed it with acid and oil, and then anointed it well with theriack, and it pleased God that he passed safely through a great trouble, though for some days he lay on the point of death. And so they got back to the caravel.[Pg 245]

Then they continued on, as the story goes, until they reached a river, where they entered with a boat and took a woman they found in a house. However, as they went further up the river, hoping to find more loot, they were confronted by four or five canoes full of armed locals, ready to fight for their territory. Our men in the boat didn't want to face the enemy, especially fearing the danger of poisoned arrows. So, they started rowing downstream as fast as they could toward the caravel. But one of the canoes sped ahead and got close to them, so they turned to fight it, and during the battle, one of the locals shot a dart that hit their captain, Alvaro Fernandez, in the foot. Since he had already been warned about the poison, he quickly removed the arrow and treated the wound with acid and oil, then applied theriack. Thankfully, he managed to survive a serious ordeal, although he remained close to death for several days. They eventually made it back to the caravel.[Pg 245]

But though the captain was so badly wounded, the crew did not stop in following the coast and went on (all this was over quite new ground) till they came to a certain sand-spit, directly in front of a great bay. Here they launched a boat, and rowed out to see the land they had come to, and at once there came out against them full 120 negroes, some with bows, others with shields and assegais, and when they reached the edge of the sea, they began to play and dance about, "like men clean wearied of all sadness, but our men in the boat wishing to be excused from sharing in that festival of theirs, turned and rowed back to the ship."

But even though the captain was seriously injured, the crew kept following the coast and continued on (all of this was through completely uncharted territory) until they reached a sandbank right in front of a large bay. Here, they launched a boat and rowed out to explore the land they had discovered, and soon they were confronted by about 120 locals, some armed with bows, others with shields and spears. When they reached the shore, the locals started to dance and celebrate, "like people completely free of any sadness, but our crew in the boat, wanting nothing to do with their celebration, turned around and rowed back to the ship."

Now all this was a good 110 leagues,—320 miles beyond Cape Verde, "mostly to the south of the aforesaid cape" (that is, about the place of Sierra Leone on our maps), and this caravel remained a longer time abroad and went farther than any other ship of that year, and but for the sickness of the wounded captain they would not have stopped there. But as it was they came straight back to the Bank of Arguin, "where they met that chief Ahude Meymam, of whom we have spoken before," in the story of Joan Fernandez. And though they had no interpreter, by whom they might do their business, by signs they managed so that they were able to buy a negress, in exchange for certain cloths that they had with them. And so they came safe home. There was not much trouble now in getting volunteers for the work of discovery, and a reward of 200 doubloons—100 from Prince Henry, 100 more from the Regent Don Pedro—to the last bold[Pg 246] explorers who had got fairly round Senegambia, added zest to enterprise.

Now all this was a good 110 leagues—320 miles beyond Cape Verde, "mostly to the south of the mentioned cape" (which means around the area of Sierra Leone on our maps). This caravel stayed out longer and traveled farther than any other ship that year, and if it weren't for the sickness of the wounded captain, they wouldn't have stopped there. Instead, they headed straight back to the Bank of Arguin, "where they met that chief Ahude Meymam, of whom we previously spoke," in the story of Joan Fernandez. Even without an interpreter to help with their business, they managed to buy a woman, using some cloths they had as trade. And so, they returned home safely. There was now not much trouble getting volunteers for the exploration work, and a reward of 200 doubloons—100 from Prince Henry and another 100 from Regent Don Pedro—to the last daring explorers who made it around Senegambia added excitement to the venture.

In this same year 1446-7, no fewer than nine caravels sailed to Guinea from Portugal in another armada, on the track of Zarco's successful crew. At Madeira they were joined by two more, and the whole fleet sailed through the Canary island group to Cape Verde. Eight of them passed sixty leagues, 180 miles, beyond, and found a river, the Rio Grande, "of good size enough," up which they sailed, except one ship, belonging to a Bishop—the Bishop of Algarve—"for that this happened to run upon a sand-bank, in such wise, that they were not able to get her off, though all the people on board were saved with the cargo. And while some of them were busy in this, others landed and found the country just deserted by its inhabitants, and going on to find them, they soon perceived that they had found a track, which they had chanced on near the place where they landed."

In the year 1446-7, nine caravels set sail from Portugal to Guinea in another armada, following in the footsteps of Zarco's successful crew. They met up with two more caravels at Madeira, and the whole fleet continued through the Canary Islands to Cape Verde. Eight of the ships traveled sixty leagues, or 180 miles, further and discovered a river, the Rio Grande, "of good size enough," which they sailed up, except for one ship belonging to a Bishop—the Bishop of Algarve—"because it ran aground on a sandbank, making it impossible to get her off, although all the people on board were rescued along with the cargo. While some were busy with this issue, others went ashore and found the area just deserted by its inhabitants, and as they searched for them, they quickly realized they had stumbled upon a path near where they had landed."

They followed this track recklessly enough, and nearly met the fate of Nuno Tristam. "For as they went on by that road, they came to a country with great sown fields, with plantations of cotton trees and rice plots, in a land full of hills like loaves, after which they came to a great wood," and as they were going into the wood, the Guineas came out upon them in great numbers, with bows and assegais and saluted them with a shower of poisoned arrows. The first five Europeans fell dead at once, two others were desperately wounded, the rest escaped to the ships, and the ships went no farther that year.[Pg 247]

They recklessly followed this path and almost shared the same fate as Nuno Tristam. "As they continued along the road, they arrived in a region filled with vast cultivated fields, cotton plantations, and rice paddies, in a land dotted with hills like loaves, after which they entered a large forest." Just as they were stepping into the woods, the Guineas ambushed them in large numbers, armed with bows and assegais, greeting them with a barrage of poisoned arrows. The first five Europeans dropped dead immediately, two others were severely injured, and the rest managed to escape to their ships, which did not venture any farther that year.[Pg 247]

Still worse was the fate of Vallarte's venture in the early months of 1448. Vallarte was a nobleman of the Court of King Christopher of Denmark, who had been drawn to the Court of Henry at Sagres by the growing fame of the Prince's explorations, and who came forward with the stock request, "Give me a caravel to go to the land of the negroes."

Still worse was the fate of Vallarte's venture in the early months of 1448. Vallarte was a nobleman in the Court of King Christopher of Denmark, who had been attracted to Henry's Court at Sagres by the increasing fame of the Prince's explorations, and who came forward with the usual request, "Give me a caravel to go to the land of the negros."

A little beyond Cape Verde, Vallarte went on shore with a boat's crew and fell into the trap which had caught the exploring party of the year before. He and his men were surrounded by negroes and were shot down or captured to a man. But one escaped, swimming to the ship, and told how as he looked back over his shoulder to the shore, again and again, he saw Vallarte sitting a prisoner in the stern of the boat.

A bit past Cape Verde, Vallarte went ashore with a crew and fell into the same trap that had caught the exploring party the year before. He and his men were surrounded by locals and were either shot down or captured. However, one man escaped, swimming back to the ship, and reported that as he looked back at the shore, over and over, he saw Vallarte sitting as a prisoner in the back of the boat.

"And when the chronicle of these voyages was in writing at the end of the self-same year, there were brought certain prisoners from Guinea to Prince Henry, who told him that in a city of the upland, in the heart of Africa, there were four Christian prisoners." One had died, three were living, and in these four, men in Europe believed they had news of Vallarte and his men.

"And when the record of these voyages was completed at the end of that same year, certain prisoners from Guinea were brought to Prince Henry, who informed him that in a highland city in the heart of Africa, there were four Christian prisoners." One had died, three were alive, and among these four, people in Europe believed they had news of Vallarte and his men.

But between the last voyage of Zarco's caravel in 1446 and the first voyage of Cadamosto in 1455, there is no real advance in exploration.

But between Zarco's last caravel voyage in 1446 and Cadamosto's first voyage in 1455, there was no significant progress in exploration.

The "third armada," as it was called, that is the fleet of the nine caravels of 1446-7, the voyage of Gomes Pires to the Rio d'Ouro at the same time, the trading ventures of the Marocco coast which were the means of bringing the first lion to Portugal[Pg 248] in 1447, the expeditions to the Rio d'Ouro and to Arguin in the course of the same year, are not part of the story of discovery, but of trade. There is hardly a suspicion of exploring interest about most of them. Even Vallarte's venture in 1448 has nothing of the novelty which so many went out to find "for the satisfaction of the Lord Henry." Guinea voyages are frequent, almost constant, during these years, and this frequency has at any rate the point of making Europeans thoroughly familiar with the coast already explored, if it did little or nothing to bring in new knowledge.

The "third armada," as it was called, referring to the fleet of nine caravels from 1446-7, the voyage of Gomes Pires to the Rio d'Ouro during the same period, and the trading ventures along the Morocco coast that led to the first lion being brought to Portugal in 1447, along with the expeditions to the Rio d'Ouro and Arguin later that same year, are not part of the discovery narrative but rather of trade. There is hardly any sense of exploration in most of these undertakings. Even Vallarte's expedition in 1448 lacks the novelty that many were seeking "for the satisfaction of Lord Henry." Voyages to Guinea are frequent, almost constant, during these years, and this regularity at least ensures that Europeans became quite familiar with the already explored coast, even if it contributed little to new knowledge.

But the value and meaning of Henry's life and work was not after all in commerce, except in a secondary sense; and these voyages of purely trading interest, with no design or at any rate no result of discovery, do not belong to our subject. Each one of them has its own picturesque beauty in the pages of the old chronicle of the Conquest of Guinea, but measured by its importance to the general story of the expansion of Europe, there is no lasting value in any one of the last chapters of Azurara's voyages,—his description of the Canaries, and of the "Inferno" of Teneriffe, "of how Madeira was peopled, and the other islands that are in that part, of how the caravel of Alvaro Dornellas took certain of the Canarians, of how Gomes Pires went to the Rio d'Ouro and of the Moors that he took, of the caravel that went to Meça (in Marocco) and of the Moors that were taken, of how Antam Gonsalvez received the island of Lançarote in the name of the Prince."

But the value and meaning of Henry's life and work wasn't really in commerce, except in a secondary way; and these voyages focused solely on trade, without any intent or results of discovery, aren't really relevant to our topic. Each of them has its own vivid beauty in the pages of the old account of the Conquest of Guinea, but when you consider their significance to the broader story of Europe’s expansion, none of the last chapters of Azurara's voyages holds lasting value—his descriptions of the Canaries, the "Inferno" of Teneriffe, how Madeira was settled, and the other islands in that region, how Alvaro Dornellas' caravel captured some of the Canarians, how Gomes Pires went to the Rio d'Ouro and captured Moors, how the caravel went to Meça (in Morocco) and the Moors that were captured, and how Antam Gonsalvez received the island of Lançarote on behalf of the Prince.

Only the chronicler's summary of results, up to the[Pg 249] year 1446, the year of Nuno Tristam's failure, is of wider interest. "Till then there had been fifty-one caravels to those parts, which had gone 450 leagues (1350 miles) beyond the Cape (Boyador). And as it was found that the coast ran southward with many points, the Prince ordered these to be added to the sailing chart. And here it is to be noted, that what was clearly known before of the coast of the great sea was 200 leagues (600 miles), which have been increased by these 450. Also what had been laid down upon the Mappa Mundi was not true but was by guess work, but now 't is all from the survey by the eyes of our seamen. And now seeing that in this history we have given account sufficient of the first four reasons which brought our noble Prince to his attempt, it is time we said something of the accomplishment of his fifth object, the conversion of the Heathen, by the bringing of a number of infidel souls from their lands to this, the which by count were nine hundred and twenty-seven, of whom the greater part were turned into the true way of salvation. And what capture of town or city could be more glorious than this."

Only the chronicler's summary of results, up to the[Pg 249] year 1446, the year of Nuno Tristam's failure, is of wider interest. "Until then, there had been fifty-one caravels that reached those areas, traveling 450 leagues (1350 miles) beyond the Cape (Boyador). It was discovered that the coastline continued southward with many points, so the Prince ordered these to be added to the sailing chart. It's important to note that what was previously known about the coast of the great sea was 200 leagues (600 miles), which has now been extended by these 450. The information shown on the Mappa Mundi was inaccurate and based on guesswork, but now it is all based on the observations of our seamen. Now that we have sufficiently discussed the first four reasons that motivated our noble Prince in his endeavor, it's time to mention the achievement of his fifth objective, the conversion of the Heathen, by bringing a total of nine hundred twenty-seven infidel souls from their lands to this place, most of whom were led into the true path of salvation. And what capture of a town or city could be more glorious than this?"

decorative illustration

decorative illustration


decorative illustration

decorative illustration

CHAPTER XV.

THE AZORES.

1431-1460.

We have now come very nearly to the end of the voyages that are described in the old Chronicle of the Discovery and Conquest of Guinea, and setting aside the story of the famous Venetian Cadamosto, this is also the end of the African mainland-coasting of Henry's seamen. Though he did not die till 1460, and we have now only reached the year 1448, for Azurara's solemn catalogue of negroes brought to Europe is reckoned only up to that year—"nine hundred and twenty-seven who had been turned into the true path of salvation,"—yet there is no more exploration in the last ten years of Henry's life worth noting, except what falls into this and two of the following chapters.

WWe have almost reached the end of the journeys described in the old Chronicle of the Discovery and Conquest of Guinea. Aside from the tale of the famous Venetian Cadamosto, this marks the conclusion of the African mainland exploration by Henry's sailors. Although he didn't pass away until 1460, and we've only gotten to the year 1448, Azurara's detailed record of the Africans brought to Europe only goes up to that year—"nine hundred and twenty-seven who had been led onto the true path of salvation." Still, there isn't any notable exploration in the last decade of Henry's life, except for what is covered in this chapter and a couple of the following ones.

The first of these is Cadamosto's own record of his two voyages along the Guinea coast, in which he is supposed to have reached Cape Palmar, some five hundred miles beyond Cape Verde, and certainly reached the Gambia, whose great mouth, "like an arm of the sea," is well described in his journal.[Pg 251]

The first of these is Cadamosto's own account of his two trips along the Guinea coast, where he is believed to have reached Cape Palmar, about five hundred miles past Cape Verde, and definitely reached the Gambia, whose large entrance, "like an arm of the sea," is well described in his journal.[Pg 251]

The second is the "true account of the finding of the Cape Verde islands by Diego Gomez, servant of Don Henry," who writes the story of the Prince's death and was as faithful a servant as he had at his Court. But there is one other chapter of the exploration directed from Sagres and described by Azurara, which must find its place, and is best spoken of here and now, in the interval between the two most active periods of African coasting voyages. This is the story of the colonisation of the Azores, of the Western or Hawk islands, known to map-makers at least as early as 1351, for they figure clearly enough on the great Florentine chart of that year, though not reclaimed for Europe and Christendom till somewhere about 1430. These islands were found, says a legend, on the Catalan map of 1439, by Diego de Sevill, pilot of the King of Portugal, in 1427. But these islands were after all only two groups of the Archipelago, and the rediscovery or finding of the rest fell between the years 1432 and 1450.

The second is the "true account of the discovery of the Cape Verde islands by Diego Gomez, servant of Don Henry," who narrates the story of the Prince's death and was as loyal a servant as he had at his Court. However, there is one more chapter of the exploration directed from Sagres, described by Azurara, that should be included here, especially during the time between the two most active periods of African coastal voyages. This is the story of the colonization of the Azores, or the Western or Hawk islands, which were known to map-makers as early as 1351, as they clearly appear on the great Florentine chart of that year, although they were not reclaimed for Europe and Christendom until around 1430. According to legend, these islands were found on the Catalan map of 1439 by Diego de Sevill, the pilot of the King of Portugal, in 1427. However, those islands were only two groups of the Archipelago, and the rediscovery or finding of the rest took place between the years 1432 and 1450.

The voyage of Diego de Sevill and Gonzalo Velho Cabral to the Azores, that is to the island of St. Mary and the Formigas, has been alluded to as among the earliest of Prince Henry's successes. But as it was out of this first attempt that the discovery of the whole group resulted, it has been necessary to refer to it again. Cabral, rewarded by his lord with the gift of his discoveries and living in St. Mary's island as "Captain Donatory" or Lord of the Land, was in charge of the colonisation of the islands he had already found, and of as many others as might come[Pg 252] to light. He spent three years (1433-6) collecting men and means in Portugal and then settled in the "Western Isles" with some of the best families in this country.

The journey of Diego de Sevill and Gonzalo Velho Cabral to the Azores, specifically the island of St. Mary and the Formigas, is often mentioned as one of Prince Henry's early achievements. However, since this initial venture led to the discovery of the entire island group, it’s important to revisit it. Cabral, honored by his lord with the acknowledgment of his discoveries and living on St. Mary's island as "Captain Donatory" or Lord of the Land, was responsible for colonizing the islands he had found and any others that might be discovered[Pg 252]. He spent three years (1433-6) gathering people and resources in Portugal before settling in the "Western Isles" with some of the most prominent families from his homeland.

With this, discovery seemed to have come to a standstill, but years after, somewhere about 1440-1 an odd chance started exploration westward once more. There was a hunt after a runaway slave, a negro, of course, from the continent, who had escaped to the top of the highest mountain in St. Mary. The weather was of the clearest, and he fancied that he saw far off on the horizon the outline of an unknown land. Was it another island? He knew his masters were there as explorers quite as much as colonisers, and he must often have heard their talk about the finding of new lands, and the will of their Lord the Prince that those new lands should at all costs be found, was no secret. That will had sent them there; that same will would secure their slave's pardon, if he came back from hiding with the news of a real discovery.

With this, discovery seemed to hit a pause, but years later, around 1440-1, an unexpected event reignited exploration westward. They were searching for a runaway slave, a Black man from the mainland, who had escaped to the peak of the highest mountain in St. Mary. The weather was clear, and he believed he spotted the outline of an unknown land on the horizon. Could it be another island? He knew his masters were explorers as much as they were colonizers, and he must have often heard them discuss finding new lands. It was no secret that their Lord the Prince was determined to have these new lands discovered at all costs. That determination had brought them there; that same desire would ensure his pardon if he returned from hiding with news of a real discovery.

So he reasoned to himself; and he was right. The Prince, hearing the news, instantly consulted his ancient maps and found that these hinted at lands in the same direction as the slave had pointed out. He ordered Cabral to start at once in search of them. Cabral tried and missed. Then came a wonderful test of Henry's knowledge; he who had never been within a thousand miles of the place, proved to his captain that he had passed between St. Mary and the unknown land, and correcting his course sent him out again, to seek and to find.[Pg 253]

So he thought to himself, and he was right. The Prince, hearing the news, immediately looked at his old maps and found that they pointed to lands in the same direction as the slave had indicated. He ordered Cabral to set out right away to find them. Cabral tried but failed. Then came an impressive test of Henry's knowledge; even though he had never been within a thousand miles of the place, he showed his captain that he had passed between St. Mary and the unknown land, corrected the course, and sent him out again to search and discover.[Pg 253]

On the 8th of May, 1444, the new island was found "on the day of the apparition of St. Michael," and named after the festival. It is our modern "St. Michael of the Oranges."

On May 8, 1444, the new island was discovered "on the day of the apparition of St. Michael," and was named after the festival. Today, we know it as "St. Michael of the Oranges."

As with the other islands so with this, colonisation followed discovery. On the 29th of September, 1445, Cabral returned with Europeans, having before left only a few Moors to open up the country. Now on his return he found these wretched men frightened almost to death by the earthquakes that had kept them trembling since they first landed. "And if they had been able to get a boat, even the lightest, they would certainly have escaped in it." Cabral's pilot also, who had been with him before to that same island, declared that of the two great mountain peaks which he had noticed at the two ends of the island, east and west, only the Eastern was now standing. The slang name of "Azores" or "Hawks" now began to take the place of the old term of "Western" islands, from the swarms of hawks or kites that were found in the new discovered St. Michael, and in the others which came to light soon after. For the Third Group, "Terceira," was sighted between 1444-50, and added to the Portugal that was thus creeping slowly out towards the unknown West, as if in anticipation of Columbus, throwing its outposts farther and farther into the ocean, as its pioneers grew more and more sure of their ground outside the Straits of Gibraltar. Some seamen of Prince Henry's, returning from "Guinea" to Spain, some adventurer trying to "win fame for himself with the Lord Infant," some merchants[Pg 254] sent out to try their luck on the western side as so many had tried on the southern, some African coasters driven out of sight of land by contrary winds;—it may have been any of these, it must have been some one of them, who found the rest of the Azores, Terceira or the island of Jesus, St. George, Graciosa, Fayal, Flores, and Corvo.

As with the other islands, colonization followed discovery. On September 29, 1445, Cabral returned with Europeans, having previously left only a few Moors to explore the country. Upon his return, he found these unfortunate men nearly terrified from the earthquakes that had been shaking them since their arrival. "And if they had been able to get a boat, even the smallest one, they would definitely have escaped in it." Cabral's pilot, who had previously visited that same island, reported that of the two major mountain peaks he had noticed at either end of the island, only the Eastern one was still standing. The nickname "Azores" or "Hawks" began replacing the old name "Western" islands, due to the numerous hawks or kites found in the newly discovered St. Michael and the other islands that emerged shortly after. The Third Group, "Terceira," was sighted between 1444-50, adding to Portugal's gradual expansion toward the unknown West, as if anticipating Columbus, pushing its frontiers further into the ocean as its explorers became increasingly confident just outside the Straits of Gibraltar. Some sailors from Prince Henry’s fleet returning from "Guinea" to Spain, an adventurer seeking to "gain fame for himself with the Lord Infant," some merchants[Pg 254] sent out to try their luck on the western side like many had done on the southern, or some African coasters pushed beyond sight of land by contrary winds; it could have been any of them, it must have been one of them, who discovered the remaining Azores: Terceira or the island of Jesus, St. George, Graciosa, Fayal, Flores, and Corvo.

Who were the discoverers is absolutely unknown. At this day we have only a few traces of the first colonisation, but of two things we may be pretty certain. First, that the Azores were all found and colonised in Henry's lifetime, and for the most part between 1430 and 1450. Second, that no definite purpose was formed of pushing discovery beyond this group across the waste of waters to the west, and so of finding India from the "left" hand. Henry and all his school were quite satisfied, quite committed, to the south-east route. By coasting round the continent, not by venturing across the ocean, they hoped and meant to find their way to Malabar and Cathay. As to the settlement of these islands, a copy is still left of Henry's grant of the Captaincy of Terceira to the Fleming Jacques de Bruges.

Who the discoverers were is completely unknown. Today, we only have a few remnants of the initial colonization, but we can be fairly certain of two things. First, the Azores were discovered and settled during Henry's lifetime, mostly between 1430 and 1450. Second, there was no clear intention to extend exploration beyond this group across the vast ocean to the west in search of India from the "left" side. Henry and his followers were fully satisfied and committed to the southeast route. By navigating along the coastline rather than crossing the ocean, they aimed to reach Malabar and Cathay. Regarding the settlement of these islands, a copy still exists of Henry's grant of the Captaincy of Terceira to the Fleming Jacques de Bruges.

The facts of the case were these. Jacques came to the Prince one day with a little request about the Hawk islands—that "within the memory of man the aforesaid islands had been under the aggressive lordship of none other than the Prince, and as the third of these islands called the island of Jesu Christ, was lying waste, he the said Jacques de Bruges begged that he might colonise the same. Which was granted[Pg 255] to him with the succession to his daughters, as he had no heirs male."

The facts of the case were these. One day, Jacques approached the Prince with a small request about the Hawk islands—that "in living memory, the said islands had been under the aggressive control of none other than the Prince, and since the third of these islands, called the island of Jesu Christ, was uninhabited, he, Jacques de Bruges, requested permission to settle there. This was granted[Pg 255] to him with the succession to his daughters, as he had no male heirs."

For Jacques was a rich Fleming, who had come into the Prince's service, it would seem, with the introduction of the Duchess of Burgundy, Don Henry's niece. Since then he had married into a noble house of Portugal, and now he was offering to take upon himself all the charges of his venture. Such a man was not lightly to be passed over. His design was encouraged, and more than this his example was followed. An hidalgo named Sodré—Vincent Gil Sodré—took his family and adherents across to Terceira, the island of Jesu Christ, and from thence went on and settled in Graciosa, while another Fleming, Van der Haager, joining Van der Berge or De Bruges in Terceira with two ships "fitted out at his own cost and filled with his own people and artisans, whom he had brought to work as in a new land," tried though unsuccessfully to colonise the island of St. George.

For Jacques was a wealthy Fleming who seemed to have entered the Prince's service with the introduction of the Duchess of Burgundy, Don Henry's niece. Since then, he had married into a noble house in Portugal, and now he was offering to take on all the expenses of his venture. A man like him was not to be ignored. His plan was encouraged, and even more, his example inspired others. A gentleman named Sodré—Vincent Gil Sodré—took his family and supporters over to Terceira, the island of Jesu Christ, and from there, he moved on to settle in Graciosa. Meanwhile, another Fleming, Van der Haager, teamed up with Van der Berge or De Bruges in Terceira, bringing along two ships he had outfitted at his own expense and filled with his own people and craftsmen, whom he had brought to work in this new land. He attempted, though unsuccessfully, to colonize the island of St. George.

The first Captain Donatory of Fayal was another Fleming—Job van Heurter, Lord of Moerkerke—and there is a special interest in his name. For it is through him that we get in 1492 the long and interesting notice of the first settlement of the Azores on the globe of Martin Behaim, now at Nuremberg, the globe which was made to play such a curious part, as undesigned as it was ungenerous, in the Columbus controversy.

The first Captain Donatory of Fayal was another Fleming—Job van Heurter, Lord of Moerkerke—and his name is particularly noteworthy. It’s through him that we have, in 1492, the detailed and intriguing record of the first settlement of the Azores on Martin Behaim's globe, currently in Nuremberg. This globe played a surprisingly notable role, both unintentional and unkind, in the Columbus debate.

"These islands," says the tablet attached to them on the map, "these Hawk islands, were colonised in 1466, when they were given by the King of Por[Pg 256]tugal to his sister Isabel, Duchess of Burgundy, who sent out many people of all classes, with priests and everything necessary for the maintenance of religion. So that in 1490 there were there some thousands of souls, who had come out with the noble knight, Job de Heurter, my dear father-in-law, to whom the islands were given in perpetuity by the Duchess.

"These islands," says the tablet attached to them on the map, "these Hawk islands, were colonized in 1466, when they were given by the King of Portugal to his sister Isabel, Duchess of Burgundy, who sent out many people of all classes, along with priests and everything necessary for the maintenance of religion. By 1490, there were several thousand souls living there, who had arrived with the noble knight, Job de Heurter, my dear father-in-law, to whom the islands were granted in perpetuity by the Duchess."

"Now in 1431, Prince Henry provisioned two ships for two years and sent them to the lands beyond Cape Finisterre, and they, sailing due west for some five hundred leagues, found these islands, ten in number, all desert without quadrupeds or men, only tenanted by birds, and these so tame that they could be caught by the hand. So they called these 'the Islands of the Hawks' (Azores).

"Now in 1431, Prince Henry equipped two ships for a two-year mission and sent them to the territories beyond Cape Finisterre. After sailing due west for about five hundred leagues, they discovered ten islands, all uninhabited, with no animals or people, only occupied by birds, which were so tame that they could be easily caught by hand. They named these 'the Islands of the Hawks' (Azores)."

"And next year (1432), by the King's orders, sixteen vessels were sent out from Portugal with all kinds of tame animals, that they might breed there."

"And the following year (1432), under the King's orders, sixteen ships were sent from Portugal carrying all sorts of domesticated animals, so they could breed there."

Of the first settlement of Flores and Corvo, the two remaining islands of the group, still less is known, but in any case it seems not to have been fully carried out till the last years of the Prince's life, possibly it was the work of his successor in the Grand Mastership of the Order of Christ, which now took up a sort of charge to colonise outlying and new discovered lands. For among the Prince's last acts was his bequest of the islands, which had been granted to himself by his brother, King Edward, in 1433, to Prince Ferdinand, his nephew, whom he had adopted with a view of making him his successor in aims as well as in office, in leading the progress of discovery as well as in the headship of the Order of Christ.

Of the initial settlement of Flores and Corvo, the two remaining islands in the group, even less is known, but it seems to have not been fully completed until the last years of the Prince's life. It was likely the responsibility of his successor in the Grand Mastership of the Order of Christ, which had taken on a mission to colonize outlying and newly discovered lands. Among the Prince's final actions was his bequest of the islands, which had been granted to him by his brother, King Edward, in 1433, to Prince Ferdinand, his adopted nephew, whom he intended to make his successor in both goals and position, in leading the progress of discovery as well as in the leadership of the Order of Christ.


decorative illustration

decorative illustration

CHAPTER XVI.

THE TROUBLES OF THE REGENCY AND THE FALL OF DON PEDRO.

1440-9.

Don Pedro had been nominated sole Regent of Portugal on November 1, 1439, and by the end of the next year all the unsettlement consequent on the change at court seemed to be at an end. But a deep hatred continued between the various parties.

DDom Pedro was appointed the sole Regent of Portugal on November 1, 1439, and by the end of the following year, all the turmoil resulting from the changes at court appeared to be over. However, a strong animosity persisted among the different factions.

First of all, the Count of Barcellos, natural son of John I., created Duke of Braganza by Affonso V., had taken up a definite policy of supplanting the Regent. The Queen Mother had not forgotten or forgiven Don Pedro's action at Edward's death, and the young King himself, though engaged to the Regent's daughter, was already distrustful, was fitting himself to lead the Barcellos party against the Prince.

First of all, the Count of Barcellos, the illegitimate son of John I, who was made Duke of Braganza by Affonso V, had adopted a clear strategy to replace the Regent. The Queen Mother had not forgotten or forgiven Don Pedro's actions after Edward's death, and the young King himself, although engaged to the Regent's daughter, was already suspicious and preparing to lead the Barcellos faction against the Prince.

On February 18, 1445, died the Queen Leonor, with suspicions of poison, diligently fostered by the malcontents. Next year (1446) Affonso, now fourteen, came of age, and his uncle proposed at once to resign all actual power and retire to his estates as[Pg 258] Duke of Coimbra. But the King was either not yet prepared to part with him, or still felt some gratitude to his guardian, "the wisest head in Spain."

On February 18, 1445, Queen Leonor passed away, amid rumors of poison, which were eagerly spread by the discontented. The next year (1446), Affonso, now fourteen, reached adulthood, and his uncle immediately suggested stepping down from all real power and retiring to his lands as[Pg 258] Duke of Coimbra. However, the King was either not ready to let him go or still felt some gratitude toward his guardian, "the wisest head in Spain."

He begged him to keep the chief direction of affairs, thanked him for the past, and promised to help him in the future. More than this, he protested that he wished to be married to his cousin, Pedro's daughter Isabel. They had been formally betrothed four years; now Affonso called on his nobles and the deputies of Cortés to witness the marriage.

He urged him to take charge of the main issues, expressed gratitude for what had happened before, and promised to support him going forward. Additionally, he declared his desire to marry his cousin, Pedro's daughter Isabel. They had been officially engaged for four years; now Affonso called on his nobles and the representatives of Cortés to witness the marriage.

In May, 1447, this royal wedding was celebrated, but coldly and poorly, as nephew and uncle had now drifted quite apart. The more the younger disliked and suspected the elder, the more vehement became his protestations of regard. But he bitterly resented the Duke's action in holding him to his promise, and he made up his mind before the marriage that he would henceforth govern as well as reign.

In May 1447, this royal wedding took place, but it was celebrated in a cold and lackluster way, as the nephew and uncle had grown quite distant. The younger man disliked and suspected the elder more and more, yet his claims of affection became increasingly forceful. However, he was deeply unhappy about the Duke insisting that he keep his promise, and he decided before the wedding that he would not only rule but also govern from then on.

The Regent just prevented his dismissal by laying down his offices; the King seemed almost to relent in parting from his guardian, who had kept the kingdom in such perfect peace and now resigned so well discharged a duty; but even his wife could not prevent the coming storm. She struggled hard to reconcile her father and her husband, but the mischief-makers were too hard for her. Persuaded that the Duke was a traitor, the King allowed himself to be used to goad him into revolt. "Your father wishes to be punished," he said fiercely to the Queen, "and he shall be punished."

The Regent just avoided his dismissal by stepping down from his positions; the King seemed almost to soften at the thought of parting from his guardian, who had maintained the kingdom in such perfect peace and now resigned from a duty so well fulfilled; but even his wife couldn't stop the approaching storm. She fought hard to bring her father and her husband back together, but the troublemakers were too strong for her. Believing that the Duke was a traitor, the King let himself be used to push him into rebellion. "Your father wants to be punished," he said fiercely to the Queen, "and he will be punished."

HENRY IN MORNING DRESS, WITH GREAT HAT.

HENRY IN MORNING DRESS, WITH GREAT HAT.

HENRY IN MORNING DRESS, WITH GREAT HAT.

HENRY IN MORNING ATTIRE, WITH A LARGE HAT.

If Henry, who in the last six years had only once left Sagres, to knight Don Pedro's eldest son at Coimbra[Pg 259] in 1445, had now been able, in presence as well as writing, to stand by his brother in this crisis, the Regent might have been saved. As it was, Pedro had hardly settled down in his exile at Coimbra, when he found himself charged with the secret murders of King Edward, Queen Leonor, and Prince John. The more monstrous the slander, the more absurd and self-contradictory it might be, the more eagerly it was made.

If Henry, who had only left Sagres once in the last six years to knight Don Pedro's oldest son at Coimbra[Pg 259] in 1445, had been able to support his brother during this crisis, both in person and through writing, the Regent might have been saved. However, just as Pedro was trying to settle into his exile in Coimbra, he was suddenly accused of the secret murders of King Edward, Queen Leonor, and Prince John. The more outrageous the slander was, no matter how absurd or contradictory, the more eagerly it was spread.

Persecution as petty and grinding as that which hunted Wolsey to death, at last drove Pedro to take arms. His son, knighted by Henry himself for the high place of Constable of the Realm, had been forced into flight, the arms of Coimbra Arsenal seized for the King's use, his letters to his nephew opened and answered, it was said by his enemies, who wrote back in the sovereign's name, as he would write to an open rebel. All this the Prince bore, but when he heard that his bastard brother of Braganza, who had betrayed and maligned and ruined him, was on the march to plunder his estates, like an outlaw's, he collected a few troops and barred his way. At this Affonso was persuaded to declare war.

Persecution as petty and relentless as what drove Wolsey to his death finally pushed Pedro to take up arms. His son, knighted by Henry himself for the significant role of Constable of the Realm, had been forced to flee. The arms of Coimbra Arsenal were seized for the King's use, and it was said that his letters to his nephew were opened and replied to by his enemies, who wrote back in the sovereign's name, as he would to an open rebel. The Prince endured all this, but when he learned that his illegitimate brother of Braganza, who had betrayed, slandered, and ruined him, was on the way to plunder his estates, he gathered a few troops and blocked his path. This led Affonso to declare war.

Only one great noble stood by the fallen Regent, but this was his friend Almada, the Spanish Hercules, his sworn brother in arms and in travels, one of the Heroes of Christendom, who had been made a Count in France and a Knight of the Garter in England. It was he who now escaped from honourable imprisonment at Cintra, joined Pedro in Coimbra, and proposed to him that they should go together to Court and demand justice[Pg 260] and a fair trial, but sword in hand and with their men at their back. Was it not better to die as soldiers than as traitors without a hearing?

Only one great noble stood by the fallen Regent, and that was his friend Almada, the Spanish Hercules, his sworn brother in arms and in adventures, one of the Heroes of Christendom, who had been made a Count in France and a Knight of the Garter in England. It was he who had now escaped from honorable imprisonment at Cintra, joined Pedro in Coimbra, and proposed that they go together to Court and demand justice[Pg 260] and a fair trial, but with swords drawn and their men at their backs. Was it not better to die as soldiers than as traitors without a chance to be heard?

So on May 5, 1449, the Duke left Coimbra with his little army of vassals, 1000 horse and 5000 foot and passed by Batalha, where he stopped to revisit the great church and the tombs of his father and his brothers. Thence he marched straight on Lisbon, which the King covered from Santarem with 30,000 men. At the rivulet of Alfarrobeira the armies met; a lance thrust or a cross-bow shot killed the Infant; a common soldier cut off his head and carried it to Affonso in the hope of knighthood. Almada, who fought till he could not stand from loss of blood, died with his friend. Hurling his sword from him, he threw himself on the ground, with a scornful, "Take your fill of me, Varlets," and was cut to pieces.

On May 5, 1449, the Duke left Coimbra with his small army of vassals—1,000 cavalry and 5,000 infantry—and stopped by Batalha to visit the grand church and the tombs of his father and brothers. Then he marched straight to Lisbon, where the King was stationed in Santarem with 30,000 men. The two armies met at the stream of Alfarrobeira; a lance thrust or a crossbow shot killed the Infant. A common soldier cut off his head and took it to Affonso in hopes of being knighted. Almada, who fought until he could no longer stand from blood loss, died alongside his friend. Throwing his sword away, he fell to the ground, declaring with disdain, "Take your fill of me, Varlets," before being cut to pieces.

Though at first leave could hardly be got to bury Don Pedro's body, as time went on his name was cleared. His daughter bore a son to the King, and the proofs of his loyalty, the indignant warnings of foreign Courts, the entreaties of the Queen, at last brought Affonso to something like repentance and amendment. He buried the Regent at Batalha and pardoned his friends, those who were left from the butchery of Alfarrobeira.

Though initially it was difficult to get permission to bury Don Pedro's body, over time his reputation was restored. His daughter had a son with the King, and the evidence of his loyalty, the furious warnings from foreign Courts, and the Queen's pleas finally led Affonso to feel a sense of remorse and to make amends. He buried the Regent at Batalha and forgave his friends, those who survived the massacre at Alfarrobeira.

decorative illustration

decorative illustration


decorative illustration

decorative illustration

CHAPTER XVII.

CADAMOSTO.

1455-6.

We have now come to the voyages of the Venetian Cadamosto, in the service of Prince Henry. And though these were far from being the most striking in their general effect, they are certainly the most famous, the best known, of all the enterprises of these fifty years (1415-1460). It is true that Cadamosto fairly reached Sierra Leone and, passing the farthest mark of the earlier Portuguese caravels, coasted along many miles of that great eastern bend of the West African coast which we call the Gulf of Guinea. But it is to his general fame as a seaman, his position in Italy, and the interest he aroused by his written and published story that he owed his greater share of attention.

WWe have now arrived at the voyages of the Venetian Cadamosto, serving Prince Henry. While these voyages might not have been the most impressive overall, they are definitely the most famous and widely recognized among all the endeavors of these fifty years (1415-1460). It’s true that Cadamosto successfully reached Sierra Leone and, surpassing the farthest point of the earlier Portuguese caravels, traveled along many miles of the significant eastern curve of the West African coast known as the Gulf of Guinea. However, it was his reputation as a skilled seaman, his standing in Italy, and the interest generated by his written and published accounts that garnered him the most attention.

When I first set my mind, begins his narrative, on sailing the ocean between the Strait of Cadiz and the Fortunate Islands, the one man who had tried to enter the aforesaid ocean, since the days of our Father Adam, was the Infant Don Henry of[Pg 262] Portugal, whose illustrious and almost countless deeds I pass over, excepting only his zeal for the Christian faith and his freedom from the bonds of matrimony. For his father, King John, had not given up the ghost before he had warned his son Henry with saving precepts, that the aforesaid Holy Faith he should foster with a dauntless mind and not fail in his vows of warring down the foes of Christ.

When I first decided, he begins his story, to sail the ocean between the Strait of Cadiz and the Fortunate Islands, the only person who had attempted to enter that ocean since the days of our Father Adam was the Infant Don Henry of[Pg 262] Portugal. I won't go into detail about his many remarkable accomplishments, except to mention his dedication to the Christian faith and his commitment to remaining unmarried. His father, King John, had not passed away before he advised his son Henry with wise counsel, urging him to boldly uphold the Holy Faith and to never waver in his dedication to fighting the enemies of Christ.

Therefore every year did Don Henry, as it were, challenging and hurling defiance at the Moors, persist in sending out his caravels as far as the headland called the Cape of Non (Not), from the belief that beyond the said Cape there is "No" return possible. And as for a long time the ships of the Prince did not dare to pass that point, Henry roused himself to accomplish this feat, seeing that his caravels did much excel all other sailing ships afloat, and strictly enjoined his captains not to return before they had passed the said Cape. Who steadily pressing on, and never leaving sight of the shore, did in truth pass near one hundred miles beyond, finding nothing but desert land.

So every year, Don Henry, as if he were challenging and defying the Moors, kept sending out his caravels as far as the headland called the Cape of Non (Not), believing that beyond this Cape there was "No" chance of return. For a long time, the Prince's ships didn’t dare to go past that point, but Henry was determined to achieve this challenge, knowing that his caravels were far superior to all other sailing ships. He instructed his captains not to come back until they had passed this Cape. They pushed on steadily, never losing sight of the shore, and managed to go nearly one hundred miles beyond, finding nothing but uninhabited land.

Beyond this again, for the space of one hundred and fifty miles, the Prince then sent another fleet, which fared no better, and finding no trace of men or of tillage, returned home. And Don Henry, growing ever keener for discovery, and excited by the opposition as it were of nature, sent out again and again till his sailors had reached beyond the Desert Coast to the land of the Arabs and of those new races called Azaneguys, people of a tawny colour.[Pg 263]

Beyond that, for a distance of one hundred and fifty miles, the Prince sent out another fleet, which had no better luck, finding no signs of people or farming, and returned home. Don Henry, growing more eager for discovery and motivated by the challenges posed by nature, continued to send out expeditions until his sailors reached beyond the Desert Coast to the land of the Arabs and the new people known as Azaneguys, who had a tawny skin tone.[Pg 263]

And finally there appeared to these bold mariners the land of Æthiopia, which lies upon the shore of the Southern ocean, and here again from day to day the explorers discovered new races and new lands.

And finally these daring sailors saw the land of Ethiopia, which is located along the Southern Ocean. Here, day after day, the explorers found new cultures and new territories.

"Now I, Luigi Ca da Mosto, who had sailed nearly all the Mediterranean coasts, once leaving Venice for 'Celtogallia' (France), but being caught by a storm off C. St. Vincent, had to take refuge in the Prince's town, near the said Cape, and was here told of the glorious and boundless conquests of the Prince, whence accrued such gain that from no traffic in the world could the like be had.

Now I, Luigi Ca da Mosto, who has sailed along nearly all the Mediterranean coasts, once left Venice for 'Celtogallia' (France), but was caught in a storm off Cape St. Vincent and had to take refuge in the Prince's town near that Cape. Here, I learned about the glorious and far-reaching conquests of the Prince, which brought in such immense profits that nothing else in the world could compare.

"The which," continues the candid trader, "did exceedingly stir my soul, eager as it was for gain above all things else; and so I made suit to be brought before the Prince, if so be that I might gain leave to sail in his service, for since the profit of this voyage is subject to his pleasure, he doth guard his monopoly with no small care."

"The thing," the straightforward trader continues, "really stirred my soul, which was eager for profit above everything else; so I requested to be brought before the Prince, hoping to get permission to sail in his service, since the profit from this voyage depends on his approval, and he fiercely protects his monopoly."

With the Prince, at last, Cadamosto made terms: either that he, the adventurer, should furnish the ships at his own cost, and take the whole risk upon himself, and of the merchandise that he might gain a fourth part to go to his lord; or that the Prince should bear the cost of equipment and should have half the profits. But in any case, if there was no profit, the whole expense should fall upon the trader. The Prince added that he would heartily welcome any other volunteers from Venice, and on Cadamosto himself he urged an immediate start. "As for me," repeats the sailor, "my age, my vigour, my skill equal to any toil, above all my passionate desire to[Pg 264] see the world and explore the unknown, set me all on fire with eagerness. And especially the fact that no countryman of mine had ever tried the like, and my certainty of winning the highest honour and gain from such a venture, made me forward to offer myself. I only stayed to enquire from veteran Portuguese what merchandise was the most highly prized among the Æthiopians and people of the furthest South, and then went home to find the best light craft for the ocean coasting that I had in mind." Meantime the Prince ordered a caravel to be equipped, which he gave to one Vincent, a native of Lagos, as captain, and caused to be armed to the teeth, as was required, and on the 21st of March, 1455, Cadamosto sailed for Madeira. On the 25th they were off Porto Santo, and the Venetian stops to give us a description of the island, which, he says in passing, had been found and colonised by the Prince's seamen twenty-seven years before. It was worth the settling. Every kind of grain and fruit was easily raised, and there was a great trade in dragon's blood, "which is made from the tears of a tree."

With the Prince's approval, Cadamosto made arrangements: either he, the adventurer, would provide the ships at his own expense and take all the risks, keeping a quarter of any merchandise he earned for his lord; or the Prince would cover the costs of outfitting the ships and receive half of the profits. However, in either case, if there were no profits, all expenses would fall on the trader. The Prince also mentioned that he would be glad to welcome any other volunteers from Venice and urged Cadamosto to start immediately. "As for me," the sailor said again, "my age, my energy, my skills fit for any challenge, and especially my intense desire to see the world and explore the unknown, make me eager to go. And the fact that no one from my country has ever attempted this, along with my belief that I could achieve the greatest honor and rewards from such an endeavor, made me keen to volunteer. I just needed to ask experienced Portuguese traders what goods were most valued by the Ethiopians and people from the furthest South, and then I went home to find the best light vessel for the coastal journey I had in mind." In the meantime, the Prince ordered a caravel to be outfitted, which he gave to a man named Vincent, a native of Lagos, as captain, and equipped it thoroughly, as needed. On March 21, 1455, Cadamosto set sail for Madeira. By the 25th, they were near Porto Santo, and the Venetian paused to describe the island, noting that it had been discovered and settled by the Prince's sailors twenty-seven years earlier. It was definitely worth settling. All kinds of grains and fruits were easily grown, and there was a thriving trade in dragon's blood, "which comes from the sap of a tree."

On March 27th, Cadamosto sailed from Porto Santo to Madeira, forty miles distant, and easily seen from the first island when the weather was cloudy, and here the narrative stops some time to describe and admire sufficiently. Madeira had been colonised under the lead and action of the Prince four and twenty years before, and was now thickly peopled by the Portuguese settlers. Beyond Portugal its existence was hardly known. Its name was[Pg 265] "from its woodland,"—here Cadamosto repeats the traditional falsehood about the place,—but the first settlers had destroyed most of this in trying to clear an open space by fire. The whole island had once been in flames, the colonists only saved their lives by plunging into the rivers, and even Zarco, the chief discoverer, with his wife and children had to stand in a torrent bed for two whole days and nights before they could venture on dry land again.

On March 27th, Cadamosto set sail from Porto Santo to Madeira, which was forty miles away and clearly visible from the first island when it was cloudy. Here, the story pauses for a while to describe and admire the place. Madeira had been colonized under the guidance of the Prince twenty-four years earlier and was now densely populated by Portuguese settlers. Outside of Portugal, not many people knew about it. Its name meant "from its woodland,"—here, Cadamosto repeats the traditional misconception about the area—but the first settlers had destroyed most of the woods while trying to clear land by fire. The whole island had once been consumed by flames, and the colonists only saved themselves by jumping into the rivers. Even Zarco, the chief discoverer, along with his wife and children, had to stand in a riverbed for two whole days and nights before they could safely return to solid ground.

The island was forty miles round; like Porto Santo, it was without a harbour, but not without convenient roads for ships to lie in; the soil was fertile, well watered by eight rivers that flowed through the island. "Various kinds of carved wood are exported, so that almost all Portugal is now adorned with tables and other furniture made from these woods."

The island was forty miles in circumference; like Porto Santo, it didn't have a harbor, but it did have suitable places for ships to anchor; the land was fertile, watered by eight rivers that ran across the island. "Different types of carved wood are shipped out, so almost everywhere in Portugal now features tables and other furniture made from these woods."

"Hearing of the great plenty of water in the island, the Prince ordered all the open country to be planted with sugar-cane and with vines imported from Crete, which do excellent well in a climate so well suited to the grape; the vine staves make good bows, and are exported to Europe like the wine, red and white alike, but especially the red. The grapes are ripe about Easter in each year," and this vintage, as early as Cadamosto's day, was evidently the main interest of the islanders, who had all the enthusiasm of a new venture in their experiment, "for no one had ever tried his hand upon the soil before."

"Hearing about the abundant water on the island, the Prince ordered all the open land to be planted with sugarcane and grapevines imported from Crete, which thrive in a climate perfect for grapes; the vine staves make good bows and are exported to Europe along with the wine, both red and white, but especially the red. The grapes ripen around Easter each year," and this harvest, as far back as Cadamosto’s time, was clearly the main focus for the islanders, who showed all the excitement of embarking on a new endeavor in their experiment, "since no one had ever cultivated the land before."

From Madeira the caravel sailed on 320 miles to the Canaries, of which says our Venetian, there are ten, seven cultivated and three[Pg 266] still desert; and of the seven inhabited four are Christian, three Heathen, even now, fifty years after De Béthencourt's conquest. Neither wine nor grain can be produced on this soil, and hardly any fruit, only a kind of dye, used for clothes in Portugal; goat's flesh and cheese can also be exported, and something, Cadamosto fancies, might be made of the wild asses that swarm in the islands.

From Madeira, the caravel sailed 320 miles to the Canaries, which our Venetian traveler mentions there are ten in total: seven cultivated and three still deserted[Pg 266]. Out of the seven inhabited islands, four are Christian and three are pagan, even fifty years after De Béthencourt's conquest. This land cannot produce wine or grain, and hardly any fruit, only a type of dye that's used for clothing in Portugal. Goat meat and cheese can be exported, and Cadamosto thinks there might be something useful that could come from the wild donkeys that roam the islands.

Each of these Canary islands being some forty miles from the next, the people of one do not understand the speech of their neighbours. They have no walls, but open villages; watch towers are placed on the highest mountains to guard the people of one village from the attacks of the next, for a guerilla warfare, half marauding, half serious civil war, is the order of the day.

Each of these Canary Islands is about forty miles apart from the next, so the people on one island don’t understand the language of their neighbors. They have no walls, just open villages; watchtowers are set up on the highest mountains to protect the people of one village from attacks by the next, as a guerrilla conflict, part raiding and part serious civil war, is the norm.

Speaking of the three heathen islands, "which were also the most populous," Cadamosto stops a little over the mention of Teneriffe, "wonderful among the islands of the earth, and able to be seen in clear weather for a distance of seventy Spanish leagues, which is equal to two hundred and fifty miles. And what makes it to be seen from so far, is that on the top is a great rock of adamant, like a pyramid, which stone blazes like the mountain of Ætna, and is full fifteen miles from the plain, as the natives say."

Speaking of the three heathen islands, "which were also the most populated," Cadamosto pauses briefly after mentioning Teneriffe, "amazing among the islands on Earth, and visible in clear weather from a distance of seventy Spanish leagues, which is about two hundred and fifty miles. What allows it to be seen from so far away is that on the top there's a huge rock made of adamant, shaped like a pyramid, which shines like Mount Etna, and is about fifteen miles above the plain, according to the locals."

These natives have no iron weapons, but fight with stones and wooden daggers; they go naked except for a defensive armour of goat-skins, which they wear in front and behind. Houses they have none, not even the poorest huts, but live in mountain[Pg 267] caves, without faith, without God. Some indeed worship the sun and moon, and others planets, reverence certain idols; in their marriage customs the chiefs have the first right by common consent, and at the graves of their dead chiefs are most of their religious sacrifices; the islanders have only one art, that of stone-slinging, unless one were to count their mountain-climbing and skill in running and in all bodily exercises, in which nature has created these Canarians to excel all other mortals.

These natives don’t have iron weapons, but they fight with stones and wooden daggers; they go naked except for protective armor made from goat skins that they wear in front and behind. They have no houses, not even the simplest huts, but live in mountain caves, without faith, without God. Some do worship the sun and moon, and others worship planets, showing respect for certain idols; in their marriage customs, the chiefs have the first right by common agreement, and at the graves of their deceased chiefs, they perform most of their religious sacrifices. The islanders only have one skill, that of stone-slinging, unless you count their mountain climbing and abilities in running and other physical activities, in which nature has made these Canarians better than any other humans.

They paint their bodies with the juice of plants in all sorts of colours and think this the highest point of perfection, to be decked out on their skins like a garden bed.

They cover their bodies with plant juices in all kinds of colors and believe this is the ultimate form of perfection, looking like a garden bed with their skin adorned.

From the Canaries, Cadamosto sails to the White Cape, C. Blanco, on the mainland, some way beyond Bojador, "towards Æthiopia," passing the bay and isles of Arguin on the way, where the crews found such quantities of sea-birds that they brought home two ship-loads. And here it is to be noticed, says the narrative, that in sailing from the parts of Cadiz to that Æthiopia which faces to the south, you meet with nothing but desert lands till you come to Cape Cantin, from which it is a near course to C. Blanco. These parts towards the south do run along the borders of the negroes' land, and this great tract of white and arid land, full of sand, very low lying at a dead level, it would be a quick thing to cross in sixty days. At C. Blanco some hills begin to rise out of the plain, and this cape was first found by the Portuguese, and on it is nothing but sand, no trace of grass or trees; it is seen from far, being very sharply[Pg 268] marked, three-sided, and having on its crest three pyramids, as they may be called, each one a mile from its neighbour. A little beyond this great desert tract is a vast sea and a wondrous concourse of rivers, where only explorers have reached. At C. Blanco there is a mart of Arab traders, a station for the camels and caravans of the interior, and those pass by the cape who are coming from Negro-land and going to the Barbary of North Africa. As one might expect on such a barren stony soil, no wine or grain can be raised; the natives have oxen and goats, but very few; milk of camels and others is their only drink; as for religion, the wretches worship Mahomet and hate Christians right bitterly. What is of more interest to the Venetian merchant, the traders of these parts have plenty of camels which carry loads of brass and silver, and even of gold, brought from the negroes to the people of our parts.

From the Canaries, Cadamosto sails to the White Cape, C. Blanco, on the mainland, further beyond Bojador, "towards Ethiopia," passing the bay and islands of Arguin along the way, where the crews found so many sea-birds that they returned with two shiploads. The narrative notes that when sailing from the areas of Cadiz to that Ethiopia in the south, you encounter nothing but desert lands until you reach Cape Cantin, from which it's a short distance to C. Blanco. These southern areas border the land of the black people, and this vast expanse of dry, sandy land, which is very flat, could be crossed in about sixty days. At C. Blanco, some hills start to rise from the plain. This cape was first discovered by the Portuguese and consists solely of sand, with no grass or trees; it is easily visible from a distance, being sharply marked, triangular, and featuring three pyramids on its peak, each a mile apart. Just beyond this large desert area is a huge sea and an amazing network of rivers, accessible only to explorers. At C. Blanco, there's a marketplace for Arab traders, a stop for camels and caravans coming from the interior, and those who pass by the cape are traveling from Negro-land to the Barbary of North Africa. As you'd expect in such barren, rocky soil, no wine or grain can be cultivated; the locals have a few oxen and goats, but not many; their only drink comes from the milk of camels and other animals; in terms of religion, the unfortunate people worship Muhammad and harbor a deep hatred for Christians. More importantly for the Venetian merchant, traders in this region have many camels that carry loads of brass, silver, and even gold, brought from the black people to those in our parts.

The natives of C. Blanco are black as moles, but dress in white flowing robes, after the Moorish fashion, with a turban wound round the head; and indeed plenty of Arabs are always hovering off the cape and the bay of Arguin for the sake of trade with the Infant's ships, especially in silver, grain, and woven stuffs, and above all in slaves and gold. To protect this commerce, the Prince some time since (1448), built a fort in the bay, and every year the Portuguese caravels that come here lie under its protection and exchange the negro slaves that they have captured farther south for Arab horses, one horse against ten or fifteen slaves, or for silks and woven stuffs from Morocco and Granada, from Tunis[Pg 269] and the whole land of Barbary. The Arabs on their side sell slaves, that they have driven from the upland, to the Portuguese at Arguin, in all nearly a thousand a year, so that the Europeans, who used to plunder all this coast as far as the Senegal, now find it more profitable to trade.

The people of C. Blanco are as black as moles but wear long white robes in the Moorish style, with turbans wrapped around their heads. In fact, many Arabs can often be seen near the cape and the bay of Arguin, looking to trade with the Prince's ships, particularly in silver, grain, textiles, and especially in slaves and gold. To protect this trade, the Prince built a fort in the bay some time ago (1448), and every year, the Portuguese caravels that come here operate under its protection, exchanging the African slaves they captured further south for Arab horses—one horse for ten or fifteen slaves—or for silks and textiles from Morocco and Granada, and from Tunis[Pg 269] and the entire region of Barbary. The Arabs, for their part, sell slaves they've captured from the highlands to the Portuguese at Arguin, totaling nearly a thousand a year. As a result, Europeans, who once plundered this coast all the way to Senegal, now find it more profitable to trade.

The mention of the Senegal brings Cadamosto to the next stage of his voyage, to the great river, "which divides the Azaneguys, Tawny Moors, from the First Kingdom of the Negroes."

The mention of Senegal leads Cadamosto to the next part of his journey, to the great river, "which separates the Azaneguys, Tawny Moors, from the First Kingdom of the Negroes."

The Azaneguys, Cadamosto goes on to define more exactly as a people of a colour something between black and ashen hue, whom the Portuguese once plundered and enslaved but now trade with peacefully enough. "For the Prince will not allow any wrong-doing, being only eager that they should submit themselves to the law of Christ. For at present they are in a doubt whether they should cleave to our faith or to Mahomet's slavery." But they are a filthy race, continues the traveller, all of them mean and very abject, liars and traitorous knaves, squat of figure, noisome of breath, though of a truth they cover their mouths as of decency, saying that the mouth is a very cesspool and sewer of impurity. They oil their hair with a foul-smelling grease, which they think a great virtue and honour. Much do they make also of their gross fat women, whose breasts they deform usually, that they may hang out the more, straining their bodies (when) at seventeen years of age with ropes.

The Azaneguys, Cadamosto further specifies, are a people with a skin tone that falls between black and gray, who the Portuguese once plundered and enslaved, but now trade with peacefully enough. "For the Prince will not allow any wrongdoing, as he only wants them to embrace the law of Christ. At present, they are unsure whether to stick with our faith or to accept Mahomet's slavery." However, the traveler continues, they are a dirty people, entirely mean and very lowly, deceitful and treacherous, short in stature, foul-smelling, though they do cover their mouths out of decency, claiming that the mouth is a major source of impurity. They apply a smelly grease to their hair, which they believe is a great virtue and honor. They also take pride in their excessively fat women, whose breasts they often deform to make them hang more, straining their bodies when they are just seventeen years old using ropes.

Ignorant and brutal as they are, they know no other Christian people but the Portuguese, who have[Pg 270] enslaved and plundered them now fourteen years. This much is certain, that when they first saw the ships of Don Henry sailing past, they thought them to be birds coming from far and cleaving the air with white wings. When the crews furled sail and drew in to the shore, the natives changed their minds and thought they were fishes; some, who first saw the ships sailing by night, believed them to be phantoms gliding past. When they made out the men on board of them, it was much debated whether these men could be mortal; all stood on the shore, stupidly gazing at the new wonder.

Ignorant and brutal as they are, they know no other Christian people besides the Portuguese, who have[Pg 270] enslaved and exploited them for the past fourteen years. It's clear that when they first spotted Don Henry's ships sailing by, they thought they were birds coming from afar, slicing through the air with white wings. When the crews lowered their sails and came ashore, the natives changed their minds and thought the ships were fish; some, who had initially seen them sailing at night, believed they were ghosts gliding by. Once they realized there were men on board, there was much debate about whether these men could actually be human; everyone stood on the shore, staring in awe at this new wonder.

The centre of power and of trade in these parts was not on the coast, but some way inland. Six days' journey up the country is the place called Tagaza, or the Gold-Market, whence there is a great export of salt and metals which are brought on the camels of the Arabs and Azaneguys down to the shore. Another route of merchants is inland to the Negro Empire of Melli and the city of Timbuctoo, where the heat is such that even animals cannot endure to labour and no green thing grows for the food of any quadruped, so that of one hundred camels bearing gold and salt (which they store in two hundred or three hundred huts) scarce thirty return home to Tagaza, for the journey is a long one, 'tis forty days from Tagaza to Timbuctoo and thirty more from Timbuctoo to Melli.

The center of power and trade in this region wasn’t on the coast, but further inland. Six days' journey into the country is a place called Tagaza, or the Gold Market, from which a significant amount of salt and metals are exported by Arab and Azaneguy camels down to the shore. Another trading route leads inland to the Negro Empire of Melli and the city of Timbuktu, where the heat is so intense that even animals can't bear to work and nothing green grows for the food of any four-legged creature. So, out of a hundred camels carrying gold and salt (which they store in two or three hundred huts), only about thirty make it back to Tagaza, because the journey is long—it's forty days from Tagaza to Timbuktu and thirty more from Timbuktu to Melli.

"And how comes it," proceeds Cadamosto, "that these people want to use so much salt?" and after some fanciful astrological reasoning he gives us his practical answer, "to cool their blood in the extreme[Pg 271] heat of the sun": and so much is it needed that when they unload their camels at the entrance of the kingdom of Melli, they pack the salt in blocks on men's heads and these last carry it, like a great army of footmen, through the country. When one negro race barters the salt with another, the first party comes to the place agreed on, and lays down the salt in heaps, each man marking his own heap by some token. Then they go away out of sight, about the time of midday sun, when the second party comes up, being most anxious to avoid recognition and places by each heap so much gold as the buyer thinks good. Then they too go away. The sellers come back in the evening, each one visits his pile, and where the gold is enough for the seller's wishes, he takes it, leaves the salt and goes away for good; where it is not enough, he leaves gold and salt together and only goes away to wait again till the buyers have paid a second visit. Now, the second party coming up again, take away the salt where the gold has been accepted, but where it still lies, refused, they either add more or take their money away altogether, according to what they think to be the worth of the salt.

"And how is it," Cadamosto continues, "that these people need so much salt?" After some imaginative astrological reasoning, he gives us his practical answer: "to cool their blood in the intense[Pg 271] heat of the sun." It is so essential that when they unload their camels at the entrance of the kingdom of Melli, they pack the salt in blocks on men's heads, who then carry it like a large army of foot soldiers through the land. When one group of Africans trades the salt with another, the first group arrives at the agreed location and sets the salt down in heaps, each man marking his own pile with some token. Then they leave, out of sight, around midday, when the second group comes along, eager to avoid being recognized, and places gold next to each heap according to what they believe the salt is worth. They too then depart. The sellers return in the evening, each one checking their pile, and if the gold meets the seller's expectations, they take it, leave the salt, and leave for good; if it falls short, they leave both the gold and the salt and wait until the buyers come back again. When the second group returns, they take away the salt from the heaps where the gold has been accepted, but where it remains unclaimed, they either add more or take their money back, depending on how they assess the value of the salt.

Once the King of Melli, who sent out a party with salt to exchange for gold, ordered his men to make captive some of the negroes who concealed themselves so carefully. They were to wait till the buyers should come up to put down their gold; then they were to rush out and seize all they could. In this way one man and only one was taken, who refused all food and died on the third day after his[Pg 272] capture, without uttering a word, "whereby the King of Melli did not gain much," but which induced the men of Melli to believe that the other people were naturally dumb. The captors described the appearance of those who escaped their hands, "men of fine build and height, more than a palm's length greater than their own, having the lower lip brought out and hung down even to the breast, red and bleeding and disclosing their teeth which were larger than the common, their eyes black, prominent, and fierce-looking."

Once the King of Melli, who had sent a group to trade salt for gold, ordered his men to capture some of the Africans who were hiding so well. They were supposed to wait until the buyers arrived to put down their gold; then they would rush out and grab as many as they could. This way, only one man was captured, who refused all food and died on the third day after his[Pg 272] capture, without saying a word, "which meant the King of Melli didn’t gain much," but it led the people of Melli to think that others were naturally mute. The captors described the look of those who escaped their grasp, "men of strong build and height, more than a hand's length taller than they were, with lower lips protruding and hanging down to their chests, red and bleeding, revealing larger-than-usual teeth, their eyes black, prominent, and fierce-looking."

For this treachery the trade was broken off three whole years, till the great want of salt compelled the injured negroes to resume, and since then the business had gone on as before.

For this betrayal, the trade was completely halted for three years until the severe shortage of salt forced the affected Black people to return, and since then, the business continued as it had before.

The gold thus gained is carried by the men of Melli to their city, and then portioned out in three parts; one part goes by the caravan route towards Syria, the other two thirds go to Timbuctoo, and are there divided once again, part going to Tunis, the head of Barbary, and part to the regions of Marocco, over against Granada, and without the strait of the Pillars of Hercules (Gibraltar). And to those parts come Christian merchants, and especially Italians, to buy the gold in exchange for merchandise of every sort. For among the negroes and Azaneguys there is no coinage of gold or of silver, no money token of metal, but the whole is simply matter for exchange.

The gold they collect is taken by the people of Melli back to their city, where it is divided into three parts. One part is sent via caravan route to Syria, while the other two-thirds head to Timbuktu, where they're split again—some goes to Tunis, the main city of Barbary, and the rest to the areas of Morocco, across from Granada and outside of the Strait of Gibraltar. Christian merchants, especially from Italy, come to these regions to buy the gold in exchange for all kinds of goods. The locals, both negroes and Azaneguys, don't use gold or silver coins; they rely completely on bartering.

From the trade, Cadamosto changes to discourse of the politics of the natives, their manners and customs. Their government for the most part is not monarchy, but a tyranny of the richest and most[Pg 273] powerful caste. Their wars are waged only with offensive arms, light spears and swords; they have no defensive armour, but use horses, which they sit as the Moors do. Their ordinary garments are of cotton.

From trade, Cadamosto shifts to discussing the politics of the locals, their customs and traditions. Their government is generally not a monarchy, but a rule by the wealthiest and most powerful group. Their wars are fought only with offensive weapons, like light spears and swords; they don’t use defensive armor, but ride horses in the same way the Moors do. Their everyday clothing is made of cotton.

The plague of excessive drought during all the year, except from August to October, is aggravated at certain seasons by the worse plague of locusts, "and I myself have seen them flying by troops upon the sea and shore like an army, but of countless number." After this long digression Cadamosto comes back to the Gulf of Senegal. "And this," says he, "is the chief river of the Region of the Negroes, dividing them from the Tawny Moors." The mouth of the estuary is a mile wide, but an island lying in mid-channel divides the river into two parts just where it enters the sea. Though the central channel is deep enough, the entrance is made difficult to strangers by the shallows and sand banks on either side; every six hours the river rises and falls with the flow and ebb of the ocean, and where it pours out its waters into the sea, the flux and reflux of waters reaches to a distance of sixty miles, as say the Portuguese who have watched it. The Senegal is nearly four hundred miles beyond Cape Blanco; a sandy shore stretches between the two; up to the river the sailor sees from the shore only the wandering Azaneguys, tawny, squat, and miserable savages; across the stream to the south are the real Blacks, "well built noble-looking men," and after so long a stretch of arid and stony desert, there is now a beautiful green land, covered with fruit-[Pg 274]bearing trees, the work of the river, which, men say, comes from the Nile, being one of the four most glorious rivers of earth that flow from the Garden of Eden and earthly paradise. For as the eastern Nile waters Egypt, so this doth water Æthiopia.

The ongoing drought throughout the year, except from August to October, is made worse at certain times by the added problem of locusts. "I've seen them swarm over the sea and shore like a massive, endless army." After this lengthy aside, Cadamosto returns to the Gulf of Senegal. "And this," he states, "is the main river of the Region of the Negroes, separating them from the Tawny Moors." The mouth of the estuary is a mile wide, but an island in the middle divides the river into two channels as it flows into the sea. While the central channel is deep enough, the entrance poses challenges for newcomers due to shallow areas and sandbanks on either side; every six hours, the river rises and falls with the ocean's tide, and the water flow extends up to sixty miles out to sea, according to the Portuguese who have observed it. The Senegal is nearly four hundred miles past Cape Blanco; a sandy shoreline stretches between the two points. From the shore, sailors can only see the wandering Azaneguys, who are tanned, short, and somewhat wretched; across the river to the south are the true Blacks, "well-built and noble-looking men," and after such a long stretch of dry, rocky desert, there is now a stunning green land filled with fruit-bearing trees, thanks to the river, which some say originates from the Nile, one of the four most glorious rivers on earth that flow from the Garden of Eden and earthly paradise. Just as the Nile nourishes Egypt, this river nourishes Ethiopia.

Now the land of these negroes is at the entering in of Æthiopia, from which to Cape Verde the land is all level, where the King of Senegal, reigning over people that have no cities, but only scattered huts, lives by the presents that his subjects bring him. Such are oxen, goats, and horses, which are much valued for their scarceness, but used without saddle, bridle, or trappings. To these presents the King adds what he can plunder by his own strength, especially slaves, of which the Blacks have a great trade with the Azaneguys. Their horses they sell also to the Christian traders on the coast. The King can have as many wives as he likes (and always keeps well above his minimum of thirty), to each of whom is assigned a certain estate with slaves and cattle, but not equal; to some more, to others less. The King goes the round of these farms at will, and lives upon their produce. Any day you may see hosts of slaves bringing fruits of all sorts to the King, as he goes through the country with his motley following, all living at free quarters.

Now, the land of these Black people is at the entrance to Ethiopia, where from there to Cape Verde, the land is all flat. The King of Senegal rules over a people who don’t have cities, just scattered huts, and he lives off the gifts his subjects bring him. These gifts include valued items like oxen, goats, and horses, which are rare and used without saddles, bridles, or decorations. To these gifts, the King adds anything he can take by force, especially slaves, with which the locals have a significant trade with the Azaneguys. They also sell horses to Christian traders along the coast. The King can have as many wives as he wants (and he usually keeps at least thirty), with each wife assigned a specific estate complete with slaves and cattle, though the allocations aren’t equal; some get more, others less. The King visits these farms whenever he likes and lives off their produce. Any day you could see groups of slaves bringing various fruits to the King as he travels through the land with his diverse entourage, all living off the generosity of others.

Of the negroes of these parts most go naked, but the chiefs and great men use cotton shirts, as the country abounds in this sort of stuff. Cadamosto describes in great detail the native manufacture of garments, and the habits of the women; barefoot and bare-headed they go always, dressed in linen, elegant[Pg 275] enough in apparel, vile in life and diet, always chattering, great liars, treacherous and deceitful to the last degree. Bloody and remorseless are the wars the princes of these barbarians carry on against one another. They have no horsemen or body armour, but use darts and spears, barbed with many poisonous fangs, and several kinds of arrows, as with us. From the beginning of the world they knew nothing of ships before the Portuguese came; they only used light canoes or skiffs, each of which can be carried by three men, and in which they fish and go from place to place on the river.

Most of the local Black people go without clothing, but the chiefs and prominent figures wear cotton shirts since the area has plenty of that material. Cadamosto provides a detailed description of how the locals make their clothes and the customs of the women; they go barefoot and without head coverings, always dressed elegantly in linen[Pg 275], though their lifestyle and diet are poor. They are constantly talking, often dishonest, and highly deceitful. The wars between the tribal leaders are violent and merciless. They don’t have cavalry or body armor, instead relying on darts, spears with poisonous tips, and various types of arrows similar to those we use. They were unaware of ships until the Portuguese arrived; they only used small canoes or skiffs, which can be carried by three people, to fish and travel along the river.

The boundaries of the kingdom of Senegal are the ocean on the west, the land of Gambra on the south, the inland Blackman's country on the east, and on the north the River Niger (Senegal), which, "as I have said before, divides the Azaneguys from the First Kingdom of the Negroes. And the said river," concludes Cadamosto, "five years before my coming, had been explored by the Portuguese, who hoped to open up a great commerce in those parts. So that every year from that time their ships had been off that coast to trade."

The borders of the kingdom of Senegal are the ocean to the west, the land of Gambra to the south, the inland Black man's territory to the east, and the River Niger (Senegal) to the north, which, as I mentioned earlier, separates the Azaneguys from the First Kingdom of the Negroes. And the river," Cadamosto concludes, "was explored by the Portuguese five years before I arrived, as they aimed to establish a significant trade in the region. Since then, their ships have been visiting that coast every year to trade."

Cadamosto determined to push farther up the river than any had done before, and so to come to the land of Budomel, one of the great negro princes and kingdoms, for it was the name both of place and person. When he came there he found an "Emperor so honest that he might have been an example to any Christian," who exchanged his horses, wool-fells, and linen goods for the strangers' merchandise and slaves, with deeds as[Pg 276] honourable as his words. Our adventurer was so taken with "Lord Budomel" that he gladly went with him two hundred and fifty miles up country, on his promising a supply of negro slaves, black but comely, and none of them more than twelve years old.

Cadamosto decided to travel further up the river than anyone had before, aiming to reach the land of Budomel, home to one of the great African princes and kingdoms, as it referred to both the place and the person. When he arrived, he encountered an "Emperor so honest that he could have been an example to any Christian," who traded his horses, wool, and linen goods for the strangers' merchandise and slaves, with actions as[Pg 276] honorable as his words. Our adventurer was so impressed with "Lord Budomel" that he happily accompanied him two hundred and fifty miles inland, in exchange for a promise of a supply of attractive negro slaves, none older than twelve years.

On this adventurous journey, of which we are next given a full account, Cadamosto is taken charge of by Bisboror, the Prince's nephew, "through whom I saw many things worth noting." The Venetian was not anxious to put off to sea, as the weather was very rough, so rough indeed that no boat could venture off from the bank at the river's mouth to where the ships lay, and the captain had to send word to his crews by negro swimmers, who could pass any surf, "for that they excel all other living men in the water and under it, for they can dive an hour without rising."

On this adventurous journey, which we will now hear all about, Cadamosto is guided by Bisboror, the Prince's nephew, “through whom I saw many things worth noting.” The Venetian wasn't eager to set sail, as the weather was very rough—so rough that no boat could safely leave the riverbank to reach the ships, and the captain had to send messages to his crews through African swimmers, who could handle any surf, “because they excel all other living men in the water and under it, as they can dive for an hour without coming up.”

It is not worth while to follow Cadamosto in all his long account of what he saw and heard of negro life in the course of this journey; it is as unsavoury as it is commonplace. He repeats very much of what he has said before about the Azaneguys, of their servility to their Princes, "who are to them as mortal Gods"; of the everlasting progresses and wanderings of those Princes round their kingdoms, from kraal to kraal, living on the stores each wife has provided; of the kraals themselves, no towns or castles, as people at home might think, says Cadamosto, but merely collections of forty and fifty huts, with a hedge of living trees round, intertwined, and the royal palace in the middle.[Pg 277]

It's not worth following Cadamosto in his lengthy description of what he saw and heard about African life during his journey; it's as unpleasant as it is ordinary. He repeats a lot of what he has said before about the Azaneguys, their servitude to their princes, "who are like mortal gods" to them, and the ongoing travels and wanderings of those princes around their kingdoms, from camp to camp, relying on the supplies each wife has gathered; about the camps themselves, which are not towns or castles, as people back home might think, says Cadamosto, but simply clusters of forty to fifty huts surrounded by a living fence of trees, with the royal palace in the center.[Pg 277]

The Prince of Budomel has a bodyguard of two hundred men, besides the volunteer guard of his innumerable children, who are broken up in two groups, one always at Court, "and these are made the most of," the other scattered up and down the country, as a sort of royal garrison. The wretched subjects, who "suffer more from their King with a good will than they would from any stranger under force," are punished with death for the smallest things. Only two small classes have any privileges: ministers of religion share with the greatest nobles the sole right of access to the person of the "Mortal God."

The Prince of Budomel has a bodyguard of two hundred men, in addition to the volunteer guard made up of his countless children, who are divided into two groups: one always at Court, "and these are favored," and the other spread throughout the country, acting as a sort of royal garrison. The unfortunate subjects, who "suffer more from their King willingly than they would from any stranger by force," are punished with death for the slightest offenses. Only two small classes have any privileges: ministers of religion share with the highest nobles the exclusive right to access the person of the "Mortal God."

Cadamosto set up a mart in the upland and made what profits he could from their miserable poverty, making exchanges with cottons, cloths, oil, millet, skins, palm-leaves, and vegetables, and above all, of course, with gold, what little there was to be had. "Meantime the negroes came stupidly crowding about me, wondering at our Christian symbols; our white colour, our dress and shape of body, our Damascenes, garments of black silk and robes of blue cloth or dyed wool, all amazed them; some insisted that the white colour of the strangers was not natural but put on"; as with Cook and so many others the savages now behaved with Cadamosto. They spat upon his arm and tried to rub off the white paint; then they wondered more than ever when they found the flesh itself was white.

Cadamosto set up a market in the highlands and tried to make whatever profits he could from their dire poverty, trading in cottons, cloths, oil, millet, skins, palm leaves, vegetables, and especially gold, however little was available. "Meanwhile, the locals gathered around me, amazed by our Christian symbols; our white skin, our clothing and body shape, our Damascene garments of black silk and robes of blue fabric or dyed wool, all fascinated them. Some insisted that the white skin of the strangers was fake." Just like with Cook and many others, the locals treated Cadamosto the same way. They spat on his arm and tried to wipe off the white paint, and then they were even more astonished when they discovered that the skin underneath was really white.

Of gold after all not much was to be got, and the exploring party was not long in returning to the caravels and pushing on beyond Cape Verde. To[Pg 278] the last the ships and their instruments were the chief terror and delight of the negroes and above all of the negro women; the whole thing was the work of demons, they said, not of men, seeing that our engines of war could fell one hundred men at one discharge; the trumpets sounding they took to be the yells of a living and furious beast of prey. Cadamosto gave them a trumpet that they might see it was made by art; they changed their minds accordingly, and decided that such things were directly made by God himself, above all admiring the different tones, and crying loudly that they had never seen anything so wonderful.

There wasn't much gold to be found after all, and the exploring party quickly returned to the caravels and moved on past Cape Verde. To[Pg 278] the end, the ships and their instruments were both a source of fear and fascination for the Africans, especially the African women; they believed it was all the work of demons, not humans, since our weapons could take down a hundred men in a single shot; the sound of the trumpets was perceived as the screams of a fierce, living predator. Cadamosto gave them a trumpet so they could see it was crafted by humans; this changed their perspective, and they concluded that such things were created directly by God himself, marveling at the different tones and exclaiming loudly that they had never seen anything so amazing.

The women looked through every part of the ship—masts, helm, anchors, sails, and oars. The eyes painted on the bow excited them: the ship had eyes and could see before it, and the men who used it must be wonderful enchanters like the demons. "This specially they wondered, that we could sail out of all sight of land and yet know well enough where we were, all which, said they, could not happen, without black art. Scarcely less was their wonder at the sight of lighted candles, as they had never before seen any light but that of fire, when I shewed them how to make candles from wax which before they had always thrown aside as worthless, they were still more amazed, saying there was nothing we did not know."

The women searched every part of the ship—masts, helm, anchors, sails, and oars. They were thrilled by the eyes painted on the bow: the ship seemed to have eyes and could see ahead, and the men who operated it must be incredible sorcerers like the demons. "What amazed them most was that we could sail far out of sight of land and yet know exactly where we were, which, they said, could only happen through dark magic. They were almost as astonished by the sight of lit candles, as they had never seen any light other than that from fire. When I showed them how to make candles from wax, which they had always discarded as useless, they were even more amazed, saying there was nothing we didn't know."

And now Cadamosto was ready to put off from the coast into the ocean and strike south for the kingdom of Gambro, as he had been charged by the Prince, who had told him it was not far from the[Pg 279] Senegal, as the negroes had reported to him at Sagres. And that kingdom, he had been told, was so rich in gold that if Christians could reach it they would gain endless riches.

And now Cadamosto was ready to set sail from the coast into the ocean and head south for the kingdom of Gambro, as he had been instructed by the Prince, who had informed him it was not far from the[Pg 279] Senegal, according to the reports from the locals at Sagres. He was told that this kingdom was so rich in gold that if Christians could reach it, they would acquire endless wealth.

So with two aims, first to find the golden land, and second to make discoveries in the unknown, the Venetian was just beginning to start afresh, when he was joined by two more ships from Portugal, and they agreed to round Cape Verde together. It was only some forty miles beyond Budomel and the caravels reached it next day.

So, with two goals in mind—first to find the golden land and second to make discoveries in the unknown—the Venetian was just about to start anew when two more ships from Portugal joined him, and they decided to sail around Cape Verde together. It was only about forty miles past Budomel, and the caravels reached it the next day.

Cape Verde gets its name from its green grass and trees, like C. Blanco from its white sand. Both are very prominent, lofty, and seen from a great distance, as they run out far into the sea, but Cape Verde is more picturesque, dotted as it is with little native villages on the side of the ocean, and with three small desert islands a short distance from the mainland, where the sailors found birds' nests and eggs in thousands, of kinds unknown in Europe, and, above all, enormous shell-fish (turtles), of twelve pounds' weight.

Cape Verde gets its name from its green grass and trees, just like C. Blanco comes from its white sand. Both are very prominent, towering, and visible from far away as they extend out into the sea, but Cape Verde is more picturesque, dotted with small native villages along the ocean. There are also three small desert islands not far from the mainland, where sailors discovered thousands of bird nests and eggs of species unknown in Europe, and, most impressively, huge shellfish (turtles) weighing twelve pounds.

Soon after passing C. Verde, the coast makes a great sweep to the east, still covered with evergreen trees, coming down in thick woods to within a bowshot of the sea, so that from a distance the forest line seems to touch the high-water mark, "as we thought at first looking on ahead from our ships. Many countries have I been in to East and West, but never did I see a prettier sight."

Soon after passing C. Verde, the coast curves significantly to the east, still filled with evergreen trees, coming down in thick woods close to the sea, so that from a distance the forest line looks like it touches the high-water mark, "as we thought at first looking ahead from our ships. I have traveled to many countries in the East and West, but I have never seen a prettier sight."

From the place the description again changes to the people, and we are told once more with wearisome[Pg 280] repetitions about the people beyond C. Verde, in most ways like the negroes of the Senegal but "not obedient to that kingdom and abhorring the tyranny of the negro Princes, having no King or laws themselves, worshipping idols, using poisoned arrows which kill at once, even though they drew but little blood,"—in short a most truculent folk, but very fine of stature, black and comely. The whole coast east of C. Verde was found unapproachable, except for certain narrow harbours, till "with a south wind we reached the mouth of a river, called Ruim, a bowshot across at the mouth. And when we sighted this river, which was sixty miles beyond C. Verde, we cast anchor at sunset in ten or twelve paces of water, four or five miles from the shore, but when it was day, as the look-out saw there was a reef of rocks on which the sea broke itself, we sailed on and came to the mouth of another river as large as the Senegal, with trees growing down to the water's edge and promising a most fertile country." Cadamosto determined to land a scout here, and caused lots cast among his slave-interpreters which was to land. "And of these slaves, negroes whom the native kings in the past had sold to Portuguese and who had then been trained in Europe I had many with me who were to open the country for our trade and to parley between us and the natives. Now the lot fell upon the Genoese caravel (which had joined the explorers), to draw into the shore and land a prisoner, to try the good will of the natives before any one else ventured." The poor wretch, instructed to enquire about the races living on the[Pg 281] river and their manners, polity, King's name and capital, gold supply, and other matters of commerce, had no sooner swum ashore than he was seized and cut to pieces by some armed savages, while the ships sailed on with a south wind, making no attempt to avenge their victim, till after a lovely coast, fringed with trees, low-lying, and rich exceedingly, they came to the mouth of the Gambra, three or four miles across, the haven where they would be, and where Cadamosto expected his full harvest of gold and pepper and aromatics.

From this point, the narrative shifts back to the people, and we are told once again, with tedious[Pg 280] repetitions, about the inhabitants beyond C. Verde. They are quite similar to the people of Senegal but "not loyal to that kingdom and despising the tyranny of the African princes, having no king or laws themselves, worshipping idols, and using poisoned arrows that kill instantly, even if they draw very little blood"—in short, a fierce group, but tall, black, and attractive. The entire coast east of C. Verde proved to be inaccessible, except for a few narrow harbors, until "with a south wind we reached the mouth of a river called Ruim, which was a bowshot wide at its entrance. When we spotted this river, sixty miles beyond C. Verde, we dropped anchor at sunset in ten or twelve fathoms of water, four or five miles from shore. However, at daybreak, as the lookout saw a reef of rocks where the sea crashed, we sailed on and arrived at the mouth of another river as big as the Senegal, with trees that reached the water's edge, promising a very fertile land." Cadamosto decided to send a scout ashore and had his slave-interpreters draw lots to determine who would go. "Among these slaves were many African men sold to the Portuguese by local kings in the past, who had then been trained in Europe, and they were to facilitate our trade and communicate between us and the locals. The lot fell upon the Genoese caravel (which had joined the expedition) to approach the shore and land a man, to gauge the natives' goodwill before anyone else dared." The unfortunate man, instructed to inquire about the ethnic groups living along the[Pg 281] river, their customs, political structure, the king's name and capital, gold resources, and other trade information, had no sooner swum ashore than he was captured and brutally killed by some armed savages, while the ships continued on with the south wind, making no effort to avenge their comrade, until after passing a beautiful coast, lined with trees, low-lying and exceedingly rich, they reached the mouth of the Gambra, three or four miles wide, the harbor they sought, where Cadamosto anticipated a bountiful harvest of gold, pepper, and spices.

The smallest caravel started at once the very next morning after the discovery to go upstream, taking a boat with it, in case the stream should suddenly get too shallow for anything larger, while the sailors were to keep sounding the river with their poles all the way. Everybody too kept a sharp look-out for native canoes. They had not long to wait. Two miles up the river three native "Almadias" came suddenly out upon them and then stopped dead, too astonished at the ship and the white men in it to offer to do more, though they had at first a threatening look and were now invited to a parley by the Europeans with every sign that could be thought of.

The smallest caravel set off the very next morning after the discovery to go upstream, taking a small boat with it in case the water got too shallow for anything bigger. The sailors were tasked with sounding the river with their poles the whole way. Everyone also kept a close watch for native canoes. They didn't have to wait long. Two miles up the river, three native "Almadias" suddenly appeared and then froze in place, too surprised by the ship and the white men aboard to do anything, even though they initially looked threatening. The Europeans signaled for a discussion using every gesture they could think of.

As the natives would not come any nearer, the caravel returned to the mouth of the river, and next morning at about nine o'clock the whole fleet started together upstream to explore "with the hope of finding some more friendly natives by the kind care of Heaven." Four miles up the negroes came out upon them again in greater force, "most of them[Pg 282] sooty black in colour, dressed in white cotton, with something like a German helmet on their heads, with two wings on either side and a feather in the middle. A Moor stood in the bow of each Almadia, holding a round leather shield and encouraging his men in their thirteen canoes to fight and to row up boldly to the caravels. Now their oars were larger than ours and in number they seemed past counting." After a short breathing space, while each party glared upon the other, the negroes shot their arrows and the caravels replied with their engines, which killed a whole rank of the natives. The savages then crowded round the little caravel and set upon her; they were at last beaten off with heavy loss and all fled; the slave interpreters shouting out to them as they rowed away that they might as well come to terms with men who were only there for commerce, and had come from the ends of the earth to give the King of Gambra a present from his brother of Portugal, "and for that we hoped to be exceeding well loved and cherished by the king of Gambra. But we wanted to know who and where their king was, and what was the name of this river. They should come without fear and take of us what they would, giving us in return of theirs."

As the natives wouldn’t come any closer, the caravel went back to the river's mouth, and the next morning around nine o'clock, the whole fleet set off upstream to explore "with the hope of finding some more friendly natives by the kind care of Heaven." Four miles up, the negroes appeared again in greater numbers, "most of them[Pg 282] sooty black in color, dressed in white cotton, with something resembling a German helmet on their heads, featuring two wings on either side and a feather in the middle. A Moor stood at the front of each Almadia, holding a round leather shield and urging his men in their thirteen canoes to fight and row up boldly to the caravels. Their oars were larger than ours, and they seemed to have countless numbers." After a brief pause, while both sides stared each other down, the negroes fired their arrows, and the caravels responded with their weapons, which wiped out a whole line of the natives. The savages then swarmed around the little caravel and attacked; they were eventually driven off with significant losses and all fled, with the slave interpreters calling out to them as they rowed away that they might as well negotiate with people who were only there for trade, having come from distant lands to present the King of Gambra with a gift from his brother in Portugal, "and for that we hoped to be well-liked and valued by the King of Gambra. But we wanted to know who their king was, where he was, and what the name of this river was. They should come without fear and take what they wanted, giving us in return what they could."

The negroes shouted back that they could not be mistaken about the strangers, they were Christians. What could they have to do with them; they knew how they had behaved to the King of Senegal. No good men could stand Christians who ate human flesh. What else did they buy negro slaves for? Christians were plundering brigands too and had[Pg 283] come to rob them. As for their king, he was three days' journey from the river, which was called Gambra.

The Black people shouted back that they were sure about the strangers; they were Christians. What could they possibly want with them? They knew how poorly the Christians had treated the King of Senegal. No good people could tolerate Christians who ate human flesh. What else would they use Black slaves for? Christians were also looting bandits and had[Pg 283] come to rob them. As for their king, he was three days' journey from the river, which was called Gambra.

When Cadamosto tried to come to closer quarters, the natives disappeared, and the crews refused to venture any farther upstream. So the caravels turned back, sailed down the river, and coasted away west to Cape Verde, and so home to Portugal. But before the Venetian ends his journal, he tells us how near Prince Henry's ships had now come to the Equator. "When we were in the river of Gambra, once only did we see the North Star, which was so low that it seemed almost to touch the sea." To make up for the loss of the Pole Star—sunk to "the third part of a lance's length above the edge of the water,"—Cadamosto and his men had a view of six brilliant stars, "in form of a cross," while the June night was "of thirteen hours and the day of eleven."

When Cadamosto tried to get closer, the locals vanished, and the crews refused to go any farther upstream. So the caravels turned around, sailed down the river, and headed west to Cape Verde, eventually returning home to Portugal. But before the Venetian finishes his journal, he notes how close Prince Henry's ships had come to the Equator. "When we were in the river of Gambra, we only saw the North Star once, which was so low that it seemed almost to touch the sea." To make up for the loss of the Pole Star—dipping to just "the third part of a lance's length above the water's edge"—Cadamosto and his crew saw six bright stars, "shaped like a cross," while the June night lasted "thirteen hours and the day eleven."

Cadamosto only went home to refit for a second voyage. Though at first he had been baffled by the "savagery of the men of Gambra" from finding out much about them, he resolved to try again, sailed out the very next year by way of the Canaries and Cape Blanco, and found, after three days' more sailing, certain islands off Cape Verde, where no one had been before. The lookouts saw two very large islands, towards the larger of which they sailed at once, in the hope of finding good anchorage and friendly natives. But no one, friend or foe, seemed to live there.

Cadamosto went home to prepare for a second voyage. Although he had initially been puzzled by the "savagery of the people of Gambra" after learning more about them, he decided to try again. He set sail the very next year via the Canaries and Cape Blanco, and after three more days of sailing, he discovered some islands off Cape Verde where no one had been before. The lookouts spotted two very large islands, and they headed straight for the larger one, hoping to find good anchorage and friendly locals. However, it seemed that no one—friend or foe—actually lived there.

So next morning, says Cadamosto, that I might satisfy my own mind, I bade ten of my men, armed[Pg 284] with missiles and cross-bows, to explore the inland. They crossed the hills that cut off the interior from the coast, but found nothing except doves, who were so tame that they could be caught in any number by the hand.

So the next morning, Cadamosto says that to clarify things for myself, I asked ten of my men, equipped with missiles and crossbows, to explore the inland area. They crossed the hills that separated the interior from the coast, but found nothing except for doves, which were so tame that they could be easily caught by hand.

And now from another side of the first island they caught sight of three others towards the north, and of two more towards the west, which could not be clearly seen because of the great distance. "But for the matter of that, we did not care to go out of our way to find what we now expected, that all these other islands were desolate like the first. So we went on our way (due south) and so passed another island, and, coming to the mouth of a river, landed in search of fresh water and found a beautiful and fruitful country covered with trees. Some sailors who went inland found cakes of salt, white and small, by the side of the river, and immense numbers of great turtles, with shells of such size that they could make very good shields for an army."

And now, from another side of the first island, they spotted three more to the north, and two additional ones to the west, which weren’t clearly visible due to the great distance. "Still, we didn’t feel like going out of our way to discover what we expected—that all these other islands would be just as desolate as the first. So we continued in our direction (due south) and passed another island, finally reaching the mouth of a river. We landed in search of fresh water and found a beautiful, fertile area filled with trees. Some sailors ventured inland and discovered small, white cakes of salt by the riverbank, along with a huge number of large turtles, whose shells were big enough to serve as excellent shields for an army."

Here they stayed a couple of days, exploring in the country and fishing in the river, which was so broad and deep that it would easily bear a ship of one hundred and fifty tons burden and a full bowshot would not carry across it. Then, naming their first discovered island Boa Vista, and the largest of the group St. James, because it was on the feast of the Apostle they found it, they sailed on along the coast of the mainland, till they came to the Place of the Two Palms, between the Senegal and Cape Verde, "and since the whole land was known to us before, we did not stay, but boldly rounded C. Verde and[Pg 285] ran along to the Gambra." Up this they at once began to steer.

Here they stayed for a couple of days, exploring the countryside and fishing in the river, which was so wide and deep that it could easily support a ship weighing one hundred and fifty tons, and a full bowshot wouldn't carry across it. Then, naming their first discovered island Boa Vista and the largest one in the group St. James because they found it on the feast of the Apostle, they sailed along the coast of the mainland until they reached the Place of the Two Palms, situated between Senegal and Cape Verde. "And since we already knew the whole land, we didn’t stop, but boldly rounded C. Verde and[Pg 285] made our way to the Gambra." They immediately began steering up the Gambra.

No canoes came out upon them this time, and no natives appeared, except a few who hung about some way off and did not offer to stop them. Ten miles up they found a small island, where one of the sailors died of a fever, and they called the new discovered land "St. Andrew," after him. The natives were now much more approachable and Cadamosto's men conversed with the bolder ones who came close up to the caravel. Like the men of Senegal, two things above all astonished and confounded them, the white sails of the ships and the white skins of the sailors. After much debate, carried on by yelling from boat to boat, one of the negroes came on board the caravel and was loaded with presents, to make him more communicative. The ruse was successful. The string of his tongue was quite loosed and he chattered along freely enough. The country, like the river, was called "Gambra"; its king, Farosangul, lived ten days' journey toward the south, but he was himself under the Emperor of Melli, chief of all the negroes.

No canoes came out this time, and no locals showed up, except for a few who lingered some distance away and didn’t try to stop them. Ten miles in, they found a small island, where one of the sailors died of a fever, and they named the newly discovered land "St. Andrew" after him. The locals were now much more approachable, and Cadamosto's men talked with the bolder ones who came close to the caravel. Like the people of Senegal, two things amazed and confused them the most—the white sails of the ships and the white skin of the sailors. After a lot of shouting back and forth between boats, one of the locals came on board the caravel and was showered with gifts to encourage him to speak more. The plan worked. He opened up and chatted easily. The country, like the river, was called "Gambra"; its king, Farosangul, lived ten days’ journey to the south, but he was under the rule of the Emperor of Melli, the chief of all the locals.

Was there no one nearer than Farosangul? Oh, yes, there was Battimansa, "King Batti," and a good many other princes who lived quite close to the river. Would he guide them to Battimansa? Yes, safe enough, his country was only some forty miles from the mouth of the Gambra.

Was there no one closer than Farosangul? Oh, yes, there was Battimansa, "King Batti," along with several other princes who lived near the river. Would he lead them to Battimansa? Yes, it was safe enough; his land was just about forty miles from where the Gambra River meets the sea.

"And so we came to Battimansa, where the river was narrowed down to about a mile in breadth," where Cadamosto offered presents to the King, and[Pg 286] made a great speech before the negro magnates, which is abridged in the narrative, "lest the matter should become a great Iliad." King Batti returned the Portuguese presents with gifts of slaves and gold, but the Europeans were sadly disappointed with the gold. It was not at all equal to what they expected, or what the people of Senegal had talked of; "being poor themselves, they had fancied their neighbours must be rich." On the other hand, the negroes of Gambra would give almost any price for trinkets and worthless toys, because they were new. Fifteen days, or nearly that, did the Portuguese stay there trading, and immense was the variety of their visitors in that time. Most came on board simply from wonder and to stare at them, others to sell their cotton cloths, nets, gold rings, civet and furs, baboons and marmots, fruit and especially dates. Each canoe seemed to differ in its build and its crew from the last. The river, crowded with this light craft, was "like the Rhone, near Lyons," but the natives worked their boats like gondolas, standing, one rowing and another steering with oars, that were like half a lance in shape, a pace and a half long, with a round board like a trencher tied at the end. "And with these they make very good pace, being great coasting voyagers, but not venturing far out to sea or away from their own country, lest they should be seized and sold for slaves to the Christians."

"And so we arrived at Battimansa, where the river narrowed down to about a mile wide," where Cadamosto gave gifts to the King, and[Pg 286] delivered a grand speech in front of the African leaders, which is summarized in the story, "to prevent the situation from turning into a lengthy saga." King Batti returned the Portuguese gifts with presents of slaves and gold, but the Europeans were quite disappointed with the gold. It was nowhere near what they had anticipated or what the people of Senegal had claimed; "being lacking in wealth themselves, they imagined their neighbors must be prosperous." On the flip side, the people of Gambra would pay almost any price for trinkets and useless toys simply because they were new. The Portuguese stayed there trading for about fifteen days, and the variety of their visitors during that time was enormous. Most came on board just out of curiosity to gawk at them, while others came to sell their cotton fabrics, nets, gold rings, civet, furs, baboons, marmots, fruits, and especially dates. Every canoe appeared to vary in its design and crew from the last. The river, filled with these small crafts, was "like the Rhone near Lyons," but the locals operated their boats like gondolas, with one person standing to row and another steering using oars shaped like half a lance, about a pace and a half long, with a round board like a plate tied to the end. "And with these, they move at a good pace, being skilled coastal navigators, but they don't venture far out to sea or away from their own land, for fear of being captured and sold into slavery by Christians."

After the fortnight's stay in Battimansa's country, the crews began to fall ill and Cadamosto determined to drop down the river once more to the coast, noting as he did so all the habits of the natives. Most of[Pg 287] them were idolaters, nearly all had implicit faith in charms, some worshipped "Mahmoud most vile," and some were Nomades like the Gypsies of Europe. For the most part the people of the Gambra lived like those of the Senegal, dressing in cotton and using the same food, except that they ate dog's flesh and were all tattooed, women as well as men.

After staying in Battimansa's country for two weeks, the crews started to get sick, and Cadamosto decided to head back down the river to the coast, taking notes on the local people's habits. Most of them were idol worshippers, nearly all believed in charms, some worshipped "Mahmoud most vile," and some were nomadic like the Gypsies of Europe. Generally, the people of the Gambra lived similarly to those of Senegal, wearing cotton and eating the same foods, except they consumed dog meat and were all tattooed, both women and men.

We need not follow Cadamosto in his accounts of the great trees, the wild elephants, great bats and "horse-fish" of the country. A chief called Gnumi-Mansa, "King Gnumi," living near the mouth of the Gambra, took him on an elephant-hunt, in which he got the trophies, foot, trunk, and skin, that he took home and presented to Prince Henry.

We don't have to believe Cadamosto's stories about the huge trees, wild elephants, giant bats, and "horse-fish" in the area. A chief named Gnumi-Mansa, "King Gnumi," who lived near the mouth of the Gambra, took him on an elephant hunt, where he got trophies—foot, trunk, and skin—that he brought back and presented to Prince Henry.

On descending the Gambra, the caravel tried to coast along the unexplored land, but was driven by a storm into the open sea. After driving about some time and nearly running on a dangerous coast, they came at last to the mouth of a great river which they called Rio Grande, "for it seemed more like a gulf or arm of the sea than a river, and was nearly twenty miles across, some twenty-five leagues beyond the Gambra." Here they met natives in two canoes, who made signs of peace, but could not understand the language of the interpreters. The new country was absolutely outside the farthest limits of earlier exploration, and discovery would have to begin afresh. Cadamosto had no mind to risk anything more. His crew were sick and tired, and he turned back to Lisbon, observing, before he left the Ra or Rio Grande, as he noticed in his earlier voyage, that the North Star almost touched the horizon and that[Pg 288] "the tides of that coast were very marvellous. For instead of flow and ebb being six hours each, as at Venice, the flow here was but four, and the ebb eight, the tide rising with such force that three anchors could hardly hold the caravel."

As they descended the Gambra, the caravel attempted to navigate along the unexplored land but was pushed into the open sea by a storm. After struggling for a while and nearly crashing on a dangerous shore, they finally reached the mouth of a large river, which they named Rio Grande, "since it resembled more of a gulf or an arm of the sea than a river, and was nearly twenty miles wide, about twenty-five leagues beyond the Gambra." There, they encountered locals in two canoes who signaled peace but couldn’t understand the interpreters’ language. This new land was completely beyond the furthest reaches of previous explorations, meaning they would have to start discovering all over again. Cadamosto was unwilling to risk anything further. His crew was worn out and weary, so he decided to head back to Lisbon. Before leaving the Ra or Rio Grande, he noted, as he had on his earlier trip, that the North Star was nearly touching the horizon and that[Pg 288] "the tides along that coast were quite extraordinary. Instead of having six hours for each flow and ebb like in Venice, the flow here lasted only four hours, while the ebb took eight, with the tide rising so powerfully that three anchors could barely keep the caravel in place."

decorative illustration

decorative illustration


decorative illustration

decorative illustration

CHAPTER XVIII.

VOYAGES OF DIEGO GOMEZ.

1458-60.

The last voyage of Henry's lifetime was that of his faithful servant, Diego Gomez, by which the Cape Verde islands first became clearly and fully known. It followed close upon Cadamosto's venture.

TThe final journey of Henry's life was undertaken by his loyal servant, Diego Gomez, which is when the Cape Verde islands were really discovered and understood. This occurred shortly after Cadamosto's expedition.

"No long time after, the Prince equipped at Lagos a caravel, called the Wren, and set over it Diego Gomez, with two other caravels, of which the same Gomez was captain-in-chief. Their orders were to go as far as they could.

"No long after, the Prince equipped at Lagos a caravel, called the Wren, and set over it Diego Gomez, with two other caravels, of which the same Gomez was captain-in-chief. Their orders were to go as far as they could."

"But after passing a great river beyond the Rio Grande, we met such strong currents in the sea that no anchor could hold. The other captains and their men were much alarmed, thinking we were at the end of the ocean, and begged me to put back. In the mid-current the sea was very clear and the natives came off from the shore and brought us their merchandise, cotton cloth, ivory, and a quart measure of malaguette pepper, in grain and in its pods as it grows, which delighted us.[Pg 290]

"But after crossing a large river beyond the Rio Grande, we encountered such strong currents in the sea that no anchor could keep us steady. The other captains and their crews were very worried, thinking we were at the end of the ocean, and they begged me to turn back. In the middle of the current, the water was very clear, and the locals came from the shore to bring us their goods, including cotton cloth, ivory, and a quart of malaguette pepper, both in grains and in its pods as it grows, which we found delightful.[Pg 290]

"As the current prevented our going farther, and even grew stronger, we put back and came to a land where there were groves of palms near the shore with their branches broken, so tall that from a distance I thought they were the masts or spars of negroes' vessels.

"As the current kept us from going any further and even got stronger, we turned back and arrived at a place with palm groves near the shore, their branches broken. They were so tall that from a distance, I thought they were the masts or spars of African ships."

"So we went there and found a great plain covered with hay and more than five thousand animals like stags, but larger, who shewed no fear of us. Five elephants came out of a small river that was fringed by trees, three full grown, with two young ones, and on the shore we saw holes of crocodiles in plenty. We went back to the ships and next day made our way from Cape Verde and saw the broad mouth of a great river, three leagues in width, which we entered and guessed to be the Gambia. Here wind and tide were in our favour, so we came to a small island in mid-stream and rested there the night. In the morning we went farther in, and saw a crowd of canoes full of men, who fled at the sight of us, for it was they who had killed Nuno Tristam and his men. Next day we saw beyond the point of the river some natives on the right-hand bank, who welcomed us. Their chief was called Frangazick and he was the nephew of Farosangul, the great Prince of the Negroes. There they gave us one hundred and eighty pounds worth of gold, in exchange for our goods. The lord of the country had a negro with him named Buka, who knew the tongue only of Negroland, and finding him perfectly truthful, I asked him to go with me to Cantor and promised him all he needed. I made the same promise to his chief and kept it.

"So we went there and found a vast plain covered with hay and more than five thousand animals similar to stags, but larger, that showed no fear of us. Five elephants emerged from a small river lined with trees, three adults and two young ones, and on the shore, we saw plenty of crocodile holes. We returned to the ships and the next day headed out from Cape Verde, spotting the wide mouth of a great river, three leagues across, which we entered and believed to be the Gambia. Here, the wind and tide were in our favor, so we reached a small island in the middle of the river and rested there for the night. In the morning, we ventured further in and saw a group of canoes filled with men who fled at the sight of us, as they were the ones who had killed Nuno Tristam and his men. The next day, beyond the river's point, we saw some natives on the right bank who welcomed us. Their chief was named Frangazick, and he was the nephew of Farosangul, the great Prince of the Negroes. They gave us gold worth one hundred and eighty pounds in exchange for our goods. The lord of the area had a Black man with him named Buka, who spoke only the language of Negroland. Finding him completely honest, I asked him to accompany me to Cantor and promised him everything he needed. I made the same promise to his chief and kept it."

THE BORGIAN MAP OF 1450.

THE BORGIAN MAP OF 1450.

THE BORGIAN MAP OF 1450.
(see list of maps)

THE BORGIAN MAP OF 1450.
(see list of maps)

"We went up the river as far as Cantor, which is a large town near the river-side. Farther than this the ships could not go, because of the thick growth of trees and underwood, but here I made it known that I had come to exchange merchandise, and the natives came to me in very great numbers. When the news spread through the country that the Christians were in Cantor, they came from Tambucatu in the North, from Mount Gelu in the South, and from Quioquun, which is a great city, with a wall of baked tiles. Here, too, I was told, there is gold in plenty and caravans of camels cross over there with goods from Carthage, Tunis, Fez, Cairo and all the land of the Saracens. These are exchanged for gold, which comes from the mines on the other side of Sierra Leone. They said that range ran southwards, which pleased me very greatly, because all the rivers coming from thence, as far as could be known, ran westward, but they told me that other very large rivers ran eastward from the other side of the ridge.

"We traveled up the river as far as Cantor, which is a big town by the riverside. Beyond that, the ships couldn’t go due to the dense trees and underbrush, but here I announced that I had come to trade goods, and the locals gathered around in large numbers. When word got out across the region that Christians were in Cantor, people came from Tambucatu in the North, from Mount Gelu in the South, and from Quioquun, which is a major city with walls made of baked tiles. I was informed that there is a lot of gold here, and caravans of camels come through with goods from Carthage, Tunis, Fez, Cairo, and all the lands of the Saracens. These goods are traded for gold, which is sourced from the mines on the other side of Sierra Leone. They mentioned that mountain range extended to the south, which excited me greatly because all the rivers known to flow from that area ran westward, but they also told me that other large rivers flowed eastward from the other side of the ridge."

"There was also, they said, East of these mountains, a great lake, narrow and long, on which sailed canoes like ships. The people on the opposite sides of this lake were always at war; and those on the eastern side were white. When I asked who ruled in those parts, they answered that one chief was a negro, but towards the East was a greater lord who had conquered the negroes a short time before.

"There was also, they said, east of these mountains, a great lake, narrow and long, where canoes sailed like ships. The people on the opposite sides of this lake were always at war; and those on the eastern side were white. When I asked who ruled in those areas, they replied that one chief was Black, but to the east was a more powerful lord who had conquered the Black people not long ago."

"A Saracen told me he had been all through that land and had been present at the fighting, and when I told this to the Prince, he said that a merchant in[Pg 292] Oran had written him two months before about this very war, and that he believed it.

"A Saracen told me he had traveled all through that land and had witnessed the fighting, and when I relayed this to the Prince, he mentioned that a merchant in[Pg 292] Oran had written to him two months earlier about this very war, and that he believed it."

"Such were the things told me by the negroes at Cantor; I asked them about the road to the gold country, and who were the lords of that country. They told me the King lived in Kukia, and was lord of all the mines on the right side of the river of Cantor, and that he had before the door of his palace a mass of gold just as it was taken from the earth, so large that twenty men could hardly move it, and that the King always fastened his horse to it and kept it as a curiosity on account of its size and purity. The nobles of his Court wore in their nostrils and ears ornaments of gold.

"These are the things the Black people at Cantor told me. I asked them about the road to the gold country and who ruled there. They said the King lived in Kukia and was the lord of all the mines on the right side of the Cantor River. They also mentioned that in front of his palace, there was a mass of gold exactly as it was dug up, so massive that twenty men could barely move it. The King would always tie his horse to it and kept it as a curiosity because of its size and purity. The nobles in his court wore gold ornaments in their noses and ears."

"The parts to the East were full of gold mines, but the men who went into the pits to get gold did not live long, because of the foul air. The gold sand was given to women to wash the gold from it.

"The areas to the East were rich in gold mines, but the workers who went into the pits to extract gold didn't survive long due to the toxic air. The gold dust was handed over to women to separate the gold from it."

"I enquired the road from Cantor to Kukia and was told the road ran eastward; where was great abundance of gold; as I can well believe, for I saw the negroes who went by those roads laden with it.

"I asked about the road from Cantor to Kukia and was told it went east; there was a lot of gold there, which I can believe since I saw the Black people traveling those roads carrying it."

"While I was thus trafficking with these negroes of Cantor, my men became worn out with the heat and so we returned towards the ocean. After I had gone down the river fifty leagues, they told me of a great chief living on the South side, who wished to speak with me.

"While I was dealing with these black traders from Cantor, my crew got exhausted from the heat, so we headed back toward the ocean. After traveling down the river for fifty leagues, they informed me about a powerful chief living on the south side who wanted to speak with me."

"We met in a great wood on the bank, and he brought with him a vast throng of people armed with poisoned arrows, assegais, swords and shields. And[Pg 293] I went to him, carrying some presents and biscuit and some of our wine, for they have no wine except that made from the date-palm, and he was pleased and extremely gracious, giving me three negroes and swearing to me by the one only God that he would never again make war against Christians, but that they might trade and travel safely through all his country.

"We met in a large forest by the riverbank, and he brought with him a huge crowd of people armed with poisoned arrows, spears, swords, and shields. And[Pg 293] I approached him, bringing some gifts, biscuits, and some of our wine, since they only have wine made from date palms. He was pleased and exceptionally gracious, giving me three Black men and swearing to me by the one true God that he would never again wage war against Christians, but that they could trade and travel safely throughout his entire territory."

"Being desirous of putting to proof this oath of his, I sent a certain Indian named Jacob whom the Prince had sent with us, in order that in the event of our reaching India, he might be able to hold speech with the natives, and I ordered him to go to the place called Al-cuzet, with the lord of that country, to find Mount Gelu and Timbuctoo through the land of Jaloffa. A knight had gone there with him before.

"Wanting to test this oath of his, I sent an Indian named Jacob, whom the Prince had sent with us, so that if we reached India, he could talk to the locals. I instructed him to go to a place called Al-cuzet, with the lord of that area, to locate Mount Gelu and Timbuctoo through the land of Jaloffa. A knight had gone there with him before."

"This Jacob, the Indian, told me that Al-cuzet was a very evil land, having a river of sweet water and abundance of lemons; and some of these he brought to me. And the lord of that country sent me elephants' teeth and four negroes, who carried one great ivory tusk to the ship.

"This Jacob, the Indian, told me that Al-cuzet was a very bad place, with a river of fresh water and a lot of lemons; and some of these he brought to me. And the lord of that country sent me elephant tusks and four Black men, who carried one large ivory tusk to the ship."

"Now the houses here are made of seaweed, covered with straw, and while I stayed here (at the river mouth) three days, I learned that all the mischief that had been done to the Christians had been done by a certain king called Nomimansa, who has the country near the great headland by the mouth of the river Gambia. So I took great pains to make peace with him, and sent him many presents by his own men in his own canoes, which were going for salt[Pg 294] along the coast to his own country, for this salt is plentiful there and of a red colour. Now Nomimansa was in great fear of the Christians, lest they should take vengeance upon him.

"Now the houses here are made of seaweed, covered with straw, and while I stayed here (at the river mouth) for three days, I learned that all the trouble caused to the Christians had been due to a certain king named Nomimansa, who controls the land near the big headland at the mouth of the river Gambia. So I worked hard to make peace with him and sent him many gifts through his own men in their canoes, which were heading for salt[Pg 294] along the coast to his territory, because this salt is abundant there and has a red color. Now Nomimansa was very afraid of the Christians, worried they might retaliate against him."

"Then I went on to a great harbour where I had many negroes come to me, sent by Nomimansa to see if I should do anything, but I always treated them kindly. When the King heard this, he came to the river side with a great force and sitting down on the bank, sent for me. And so I went and paid him all respect. There was a Bishop there of his own faith who asked me about the God of the Christians, and I answered him as God had given me to know; and then I questioned him about Mahomet, whom they believe. At last the King was so pleased with what I said that he sprang to his feet and ordered the Bishop to leave his country within three days, and swore that he would kill any one who should speak the name of Mahomet from that day forward. For he said he trusted in the one only God and there was no other but He, whom his brother Prince Henry worshipped.

"Then I went to a large harbor where a lot of Black people came to me, sent by Nomimansa to see if I needed anything, but I always treated them kindly. When the King heard about this, he came to the riverbank with a large group of people and, sitting down on the bank, called for me. So, I went and showed him all the respect I could. There was a Bishop of his own faith there who asked me about the Christian God, and I answered him as best as I could. Then I asked him about Muhammad, whom they believe in. Eventually, the King was so pleased with what I said that he jumped to his feet and ordered the Bishop to leave his country within three days, swearing that he would kill anyone who mentioned the name of Muhammad from that day on. He said he trusted in the one true God and that there was no one else but Him, whom his brother Prince Henry worshipped."

"Then calling the Infant his brother, he asked me to baptize him and all his lords and women. He himself would have no other name than Henry, but his nobles took our names, like James and Nuno. So I remained on shore that night with the King but did not baptize him, as I was a layman. But next day I begged the King with his twelve chief men and eight of his wives to dine with me on my caravel; and they all came unarmed and I gave them fowls and meat and wine, white and red, as much as[Pg 295] they could drink, and they said to one another that no people were better than the Christians.

"Then, calling the infant his brother, he asked me to baptize him and all his nobles and women. He insisted on keeping the name Henry, but his nobles took on our names, like James and Nuno. So, I stayed on shore that night with the King but didn’t baptize him since I was just a layman. The next day, I invited the King, along with his twelve chief men and eight of his wives, to have lunch with me on my caravel; and they all came unarmed. I served them chicken, meat, and wine, both white and red, as much as[Pg 295] they could drink, and they remarked to each other that no people were better than the Christians."

"Then again on shore the King asked me to baptize him but I said I had not leave from the Pope; but I would tell the Prince, who would send a priest. So Nomimansa at once wrote to Prince Henry to send him a priest and some one to teach him the faith, and begged him to send him a falcon with the priest, for he was amazed when I told him how we carried a bird on the hand to catch other birds. And with these he asked the Prince to send him two rams and sheep and geese and ganders and a pig, and two men to build houses and plan out his town. And all these wishes of his I promised him that the Prince would grant. And he and all his people made a great noise at my going but I left the King at Gambia and started back for Portugal. One caravel I sent straight home, but with the others I sailed to Cape Verde.

"Later, on shore, the King asked me to baptize him, but I told him I didn’t have permission from the Pope. I said I would inform the Prince, who would send a priest. So, Nomimansa immediately wrote to Prince Henry asking him to send a priest and someone to teach him about the faith, and he also requested a falcon to go along with the priest because he was fascinated when I explained how we trained a bird to catch other birds. Along with that, he asked the Prince to send him two rams, some sheep, geese, a gander, a pig, and two men to build houses and plan out his town. I promised him that the Prince would fulfill all his requests. He and all his people made a lot of noise when I was leaving, but I left the King at Gambia and headed back to Portugal. I sent one caravel straight home, but with the others, I sailed to Cape Verde."

"And as we came near the sea-shore we saw two canoes putting out to sea; but we sailed between them and the shore, and so cut them off. Then the interpreter came to me and said that Bezeghichi, the lord of the land and an evil man, was in one of them.

"And as we approached the shore, we saw two canoes heading out to sea; we sailed between them and the shore, cutting them off. Then the interpreter came to me and said that Bezeghichi, the lord of the land and a wicked man, was in one of them."

"So I made them come into the caravel and gave them to eat and drink with a double share of presents, and making as if I did not know him to be the chief, I said 'Is this the land of Bezeghichi?' He answered 'Yes, it is.' And I, to try him, exclaimed 'Why is he so bitter against the Christians? He would do far better to have peace with them, so that they might trade in his land and bring him horses[Pg 296] and other things, as they do for other lords of the negroes. Go and tell your lord Bezeghichi that I have taken you and for love of him have let you go.'

"So I invited them into the caravel and offered them food and drinks along with extra gifts. Pretending not to recognize him as the chief, I asked, 'Is this the land of Bezeghichi?' He replied, 'Yes, it is.' To test him, I said, 'Why is he so hostile toward the Christians? He would be better off making peace with them, so they could trade in his land and bring him horses[Pg 296] and other items, like they do for the other lords of the region. Go and tell your lord Bezeghichi that I've taken you and have released you out of goodwill for him.'"

"At this he was very cheerful and he and his men got into their canoes, as I bade them, and as they all were standing by the side of the caravel, I called out 'Bezeghichi, Bezeghichi, do not think I did not know thee. I could have done to thee what I would, and now, as I have done to thee, do thou also to our Christians.'

"At this, he became very cheerful, and he and his men got into their canoes, just like I told them to. As they stood by the side of the caravel, I shouted, 'Bezeghichi, Bezeghichi, don’t think I didn’t recognize you. I could have done whatever I wanted to you, and now, since I’ve done this to you, you should also do the same for our Christians.'"

"So they went off, and we came back to Arguin and the Isle of the Herons, where we found flocks of birds of every kind, and after this came home to Lagos, where the Prince was very glad of our return.

"So they left, and we returned to Arguin and the Isle of the Herons, where we discovered flocks of birds of every kind, and then we went home to Lagos, where the Prince was really happy to see us back."

"Then after this for two years no one went to Guinea, because King Affonso was at war in Africa and the Prince was quite taken up with this. But after he had come back from Alcaçer, I reminded him of what King Nomimansa had asked of him; and the Prince sent him all he had promised, with a priest, the Abbot of Soto de Cassa, and a young man of his household named John Delgado. This was in 1458.

"After that, for two years, no one went to Guinea because King Affonso was fighting in Africa, and the Prince was completely focused on that. But when he returned from Alcaçer, I reminded him of King Nomimansa's request. The Prince sent everything he had promised, along with a priest, the Abbot of Soto de Cassa, and a young man from his household named John Delgado. This was in 1458."

"Two years afterwards King Affonso equipped a large caravel and sent me out as captain, and I took with me ten horses and went to the land of the Barbacins, which is near the land of Nomimansa. And these Barbacins had two kings, but the King of Portugal gave me power over all the shores of that sea, that any ships I might find off the coast of Guinea should be under me, for he knew that there[Pg 297] were those who sold arms to the Moors, and he bade me to seize such and bring them bound to Portugal.

"Two years later, King Affonso fitted out a large caravel and appointed me as captain. I took ten horses with me and set off to the land of the Barbacins, which is close to the land of Nomimansa. The Barbacins had two kings, but the King of Portugal granted me authority over all the shores of that sea, declaring that any ships I encountered off the coast of Guinea would be under my command. He was aware that some were selling weapons to the Moors, and he instructed me to capture them and bring them back to Portugal."

"And by the help of God I came in twelve days to this land (of the Barbacins), and found two ships there,—one under Gonzalo Ferreira, of Oporto, of the Household of Prince Henry, that was conveying horses; the other was under Antonio de Noli, of Genoa. These merchants injured our trade very much, for the natives used to give twelve negroes for one horse, and now gave only six.

"And with God's help, I arrived in twelve days to this land (of the Barbacins) and found two ships there—one captained by Gonzalo Ferreira from Oporto, a member of Prince Henry's court, that was transporting horses; the other was led by Antonio de Noli from Genoa. These merchants hurt our trade a lot because the locals used to offer twelve slaves for one horse, but now they only offered six."

"And while we were there, a caravel came from Gambia, which brought us news that a captain called De Prado was coming with a richly laden ship, and I ordered Ferreira to go to Cape Verde and look for that ship and seize it, on pain of death and loss of all his goods. And he did so, and we found a great prize, which I sent home with Ferreira to the King. And then I and Antonio de Noli left that coast, and sailed two days and one night towards Portugal, and we sighted islands in the ocean, and as my ship was lighter and faster than the rest, I came first to one of those islands, to a good harbour, with a beach of white sand, where I anchored. I told all my men and the other captains that I wished to be first to land, and so I did.

"And while we were there, a caravel arrived from Gambia, bringing news that a captain named De Prado was coming with a heavily loaded ship. I ordered Ferreira to head to Cape Verde, look for that ship, and capture it, threatening him with death and confiscation of all his belongings if he failed. He complied, and we found a huge treasure, which I sent back home with Ferreira to the King. After that, Antonio de Noli and I left that coast and sailed for two days and one night towards Portugal. We spotted islands in the ocean, and since my ship was lighter and faster than the others, I reached one of those islands first. It had a good harbor with a white sand beach where I anchored. I informed all my crew and the other captains that I wanted to be the first to land, and that’s exactly what I did."

"We saw no trace of natives, and called the island Santiago, as it is still known. There were plenty of fish there and many strange birds, so tame that we killed them with sticks. And I had a quadrant with me, and wrote on the table of it the altitude of the Arctic Pole, and I found it better than the chart, for[Pg 298] though you see your course of sailing on the chart well enough, yet if once you get wrong, it is hard by map alone to work back into the right course.

"We didn't see any signs of people living there and named the island Santiago, which it’s still called today. There were a lot of fish and many unusual birds, so friendly that we killed them with sticks. I had a quadrant with me, and I recorded the altitude of the Arctic Pole on its table, finding it more reliable than the chart, for[Pg 298] while the chart shows you your sailing route clearly enough, if you stray off course, it’s tough to navigate back using just the map."

"After this we saw one of the Canary islands, called Palma, and so came to the island of Madeira; and then adverse winds drove me to the Azores, but Antonio de Noli stayed at Madeira, and, catching the right breeze, he got to Portugal before me, and begged of the King the captaincy of the island of Santiago, which I had found, and the King gave it him, and he kept it till his death.

"After this, we saw one of the Canary Islands, called Palma, and then we arrived at the island of Madeira. However, strong winds pushed me to the Azores, while Antonio de Noli remained at Madeira. Catching the right wind, he reached Portugal before me and requested the captaincy of the island of Santiago, which I had discovered. The King granted it to him, and he held onto it until his death."

"But De Prado, who had carried arms to the Moors, lay in irons and the King ordered him to be brought out. And then they martyrised him in a cart, and threw him into the fire alive with his sword and gold."

"But De Prado, who had fought against the Moors, was chained up, and the King ordered him to be brought out. They then tortured him in a cart and threw him into the fire alive, along with his sword and gold."

decorative illustration

decorative illustration


COIMBRA UNIVERSITY OF WHICH HENRY WAS THE OFFICIAL PATRON.

COIMBRA UNIVERSITY OF WHICH HENRY WAS THE OFFICIAL PATRON.

COIMBRA UNIVERSITY OF WHICH HENRY WAS THE OFFICIAL PATRON.

COIMBRA UNIVERSITY, WHICH HENRY WAS THE OFFICIAL PATRON OF.


decorative illustration

decorative illustration

CHAPTER XIX.

HENRY'S LAST YEARS AND DEATH.

1458-60.

While Cadamosto and Diego Gomez were carrying the Prince's flag farther from the shores of Europe "than Alexander or Cæsar had ever ventured," the Prince himself was getting more and more absorbed in the project of a new Holy War against the Infidel.

WWhile Cadamosto and Diego Gomez were taking the Prince's flag further from the shores of Europe "than Alexander or Caesar had ever gone," the Prince himself was becoming increasingly focused on launching a new Holy War against the Infidels.

The fall of Constantinople in 1453 into the hands of the Ottoman Turks, had at least the effect of frightening and almost of rousing Western Christendom at large. In the most miserably divided of Latin states there was now a talk about doing great things, though the time, the spirit for actually doing them, had long passed by, or was not yet come. Spain, the one part of the Western Church and State, which was still living in the crusading fervour of the twelfth century, was alone ready for action. The Portuguese kingdom in particular, under Affonso V., had been keeping up a regular crusade in Marocco, and was willing and eager to spend men and treasure in a great Levantine enterprise. So[Pg 300] the Pope's Legate was welcomed when he came in 1457 to preach the Holy War. Affonso promised to keep up an army of twelve thousand men for war against the Ottoman, and struck a new gold coinage—the Cruzado—to commemorate the year of Deliverance.

The fall of Constantinople in 1453 to the Ottoman Turks had a powerful effect of alarming and almost awakening Western Christendom as a whole. Even the most deeply divided Latin states began to talk about achieving great things, although the time and spirit for actually doing them had either long passed or had not yet arrived. Spain, the one part of the Western Church and State still inspired by the crusading zeal of the twelfth century, was ready for action. The Portuguese kingdom, in particular, under Affonso V, had been actively conducting a campaign in Morocco and was eager to invest resources in a major Levantine venture. So, the Pope's Legate was welcomed when he arrived in 1457 to promote the Holy War. Affonso promised to maintain an army of twelve thousand men for the fight against the Ottomans and introduced a new gold coin—the Cruzado—to commemorate the year of Deliverance.

But Portugal by itself could not deliver New Rome or the Holy Land, and when the other powers of the West refused to move, Affonso had to content himself with the old crusade in Africa, but he now pushed on even more zealously than before his favourite ambition, a land empire on both sides of the Straits, and Prince Henry's last appearance in public service was in his nephew's camp in the Marocco campaign of 1458. In the siege of Alcaçer the Little, the "Lord Infant" forced the batteries, mounted the guns, and took charge of the general conduct of the siege. A breach was soon made in the walls, and the town surrendered on easy terms, "for it was not," said Henry, "to take their goods or force a ransom from them that the King of Portugal had come against them, but for the service of God." They were only to leave behind in Alcaçer their Christian prisoners; for themselves, they might go, with their wives, their children, and their property.

But Portugal alone couldn't bring about New Rome or reclaim the Holy Land, and when the other Western powers refused to take action, Affonso had to settle for the old crusade in Africa. However, he now pursued his goal of establishing a land empire on both sides of the Straits with even greater determination. Prince Henry's last public involvement was in his nephew's camp during the Moroccan campaign of 1458. During the siege of Alcaçer the Little, the "Lord Infant" took charge of the siege operations, set up the artillery, and led the overall efforts. A breach in the walls was quickly achieved, and the town surrendered under favorable conditions. "It was not," Henry stated, "to plunder or demand a ransom that the King of Portugal came against them, but for the service of God." They were only required to leave their Christian prisoners behind in Alcaçer; as for themselves, they could depart with their wives, children, and belongings.

The stout-hearted veteran Edward Menezes became governor of Alcaçer, and held the town with his own desperate courage against all attempts to recover it. When the besiegers offered him terms, he offered them in return his scaling ladders that they might have a fair chance; when they were[Pg 301] raising the siege he sent them a message, Would they not try a little longer? It had been a very short affair.

The brave veteran Edward Menezes became the governor of Alcaçer and defended the town with his own fierce courage against all efforts to take it back. When the besiegers presented him with terms, he responded by giving them his scaling ladders so they could have a fair shot; when they were[Pg 301] planning to lift the siege, he sent them a message asking if they would consider trying a little longer since it had been a very brief encounter.

Meantime Henry, returning to Europe by way of Ceuta, re-entered his own town of Sagres for the last time. His work was nearly done, and indeed, of that work there only remains one thing to notice. The great Venetian map, known as the Camaldolese Chart of Fra Mauro, executed in the convent of Murano just outside Venice, is not only the crowning specimen of mediæval draughtsmanship, but the scientific review of the Prince's exploration. As Henry himself closes the middle age of exploration and begins the modern, so this map, the picture and proof of his discoveries, is not only the last of the older type of plan, but the first of the new style—the style which applied the accurate and careful methods of Portolano-drawing to a scheme of the whole world. It is the first scientific atlas.

Meanwhile, Henry, returning to Europe via Ceuta, entered his hometown of Sagres for the last time. His work was nearly complete, and indeed, only one thing remains to highlight. The great Venetian map, known as the Camaldolese Chart of Fra Mauro, created in the convent of Murano just outside Venice, is not only the pinnacle of medieval cartography but also the scientific summary of the Prince's exploration. Just as Henry himself marks the end of the Middle Ages of exploration and the beginning of the modern era, this map—showing and validating his discoveries—is not only the last of the old-style plans but the first of the new style—the style that used the precise and careful methods of Portolano drawing to depict the entire world. It is the first scientific atlas.

But its scale is too vast for anything of a detailed account: it measures six feet four inches across, and in every part it is crammed with detail, the work of three years of incessant labour (1457-9) from Andrea Bianco and all the first coasters and draughtsmen of the time. In general, there is an external carefulness as well as gorgeousness about the workmanship; the coasts, especially in the Mediterranean and along the west coast of Europe, would almost suit a modern Admiralty Chart, while its notice, the first notice, of Prince Henry's African and Atlantic discoveries is the special point of the whole work.[Pg 302]

But its size is too huge for a detailed description: it measures six feet four inches across and is packed with intricate details, the result of three years of nonstop work (1457-9) by Andrea Bianco and all the top coastmasters and draftsmen of that time. Overall, the craftsmanship shows both care and beauty; the coasts, especially in the Mediterranean and along the west coast of Europe, could almost be used as a modern Admiralty Chart, while its mention— the first mention— of Prince Henry's African and Atlantic discoveries is the main highlight of the entire work.[Pg 302]

There is a certain disposition to exaggerate the size of rivers, mountains, towns, and the whole proportion of things, as we get farther away from the well-known ground of Europe; Russia and the north and north-east of Asia are somewhat too large, but along the central belt, it is fair to say that the whole of the country west of the Caspian is thoroughly sound, the best thing yet done in any projection.

There’s a tendency to overstate the size of rivers, mountains, towns, and everything else as we move further from the familiar landscape of Europe. Russia and the northern and northeastern parts of Asia seem a bit too big, but overall, it’s fair to say that the entire area west of the Caspian Sea is quite accurate; it's the best projection done so far.

No one could look at Fra Mauro's map and fail to see at a glance a picture of the Old World; and the more it is looked at, the more reliable it will prove to be, by the side of all earlier essays in this field. No one can look at the Arabic maps and their imitations in mediæval Christendom, whether conscious or unconscious (as in the Spanish example of 1109), without despair. It is almost hopeless to try and recognise in these anything of the shape, the proportions, or the distribution of the parts of the world which are named, and which one might almost fancy it was meant to represent at the time.

No one can look at Fra Mauro's map and not immediately see a depiction of the Old World; and the more you examine it, the more trustworthy it appears in comparison to all the earlier attempts in this area. Looking at the Arabic maps and their medieval Christian versions, whether intentional or not (like the Spanish example from 1109), is disheartening. It's nearly impossible to identify any of the shapes, proportions, or arrangements of the regions that are labeled, which you might think they were intended to represent back then.

Place the map of 1459 by the side of the Hereford map of 1300 or of Edrisi's scheme of 1130 (made at the Christian Court of Sicily), or in fact beside any of the theoretical maps of the thousand years that had gone to make the Italy and the Spain of Fra Mauro and Prince Henry, and it will seem to be almost absurd to ask the question: Do these belong to the same civilisation, in any kind of way? What would the higher criticism answer, out of its infallible internal evidence tests? Of course, these are quite different. The one is merely a collection of the[Pg 303] scratchings of savages, the other is the prototype of modern maps. Yet the Christian world is answerable for both kinds; it had struggled through ignorance and superstition and tradition into clearer light and truer knowledge.

Place the map from 1459 next to the Hereford map from 1300 or Edrisi's design from 1130 (created at the Christian Court of Sicily), or really beside any of the theoretical maps developed over the thousand years that contributed to the Italy and Spain of Fra Mauro and Prince Henry, and it would almost seem ridiculous to ask: Do these belong to the same civilization in any way? What would higher criticism conclude based on its infallible internal evidence tests? Clearly, these are quite different. One is just a collection of the[Pg 303] scrawls of primitive people, while the other is a prototype of modern maps. Yet, the Christian world is responsible for both types; it fought through ignorance, superstition, and tradition to reach clearer understanding and truer knowledge.

WESTERN SECTION OF THE MAPPE-MONDE OF FRA MAURO. 1457-9.

WESTERN SECTION OF THE MAPPE-MONDE OF FRA MAURO. 1457-9.

WESTERN SECTION OF THE MAPPE-MONDE OF FRA MAURO. 1457-9.
(see list of maps)

WESTERN SECTION OF THE MAPPE-MONDE OF FRA MAURO. 1457-9.
(see list of maps)

And when Greek geography came to be reprinted and revived, this was in part at least a consequence of that revival of true science which had begun in that very dark time, the night of the twelfth century, where we are not likely to see any signs of dawn till we look, not so much at what is written now, as at what the poor besotted savages of the ages of Abelard and Bernard and Aquinas and Dante have left to bear witness of themselves.

And when Greek geography was reprinted and brought back to life, this was at least partly due to the revival of true science that started during that very dark time, the night of the twelfth century, when we probably won’t see any signs of improvement until we examine not just what is written now, but what the unfortunate, misguided people of the ages of Abelard, Bernard, Aquinas, and Dante have left to testify about themselves.

Between Henry's return from Alcaçer and his death, while the great Venetian map was in making, two years went by, years in which Diego Gomez was finding the Cape Verde islands and pushing the farthest south of European discovery still farther south, but of the Prince's own working, apart from that of his draughtsmen, we have little or nothing, but a set of charters. These charters were concerned with the trade profits of the Guinea commerce and the settlers in the new found lands off the continent—Madeira, the Azores, the Canaries,—and have an interest as being a sort of last will and testament of the Prince to his nation, settling his colonies, providing for the working of the lands he had explored, before it should be too late. Already on the 7th June, 1454, Affonso had granted to the Order of Christ, for the explorations "made and to be made at the expense of the aforesaid Order," the spiritual[Pg 304] jurisdiction of Guinea, Nubia, and Ethiopia, with all rights as exercised in Europe and at the Mother house of Thomar.

Between Henry's return from Alcaçer and his death, two years passed while the great Venetian map was being created. During this time, Diego Gomez was discovering the Cape Verde islands and pushing the boundaries of European exploration even further south. However, we have very little from the Prince's own efforts, aside from a set of charters. These charters dealt with the trade profits from the Guinea commerce and the settlers in the newly found lands off the continent—Madeira, the Azores, the Canaries—and are significant as a sort of last will and testament of the Prince to his nation, establishing his colonies and outlining the development of the lands he had explored before it was too late. As early as June 7, 1454, Affonso granted the Order of Christ the spiritual jurisdiction over Guinea, Nubia, and Ethiopia, along with all rights as practiced in Europe and at the Mother house of Thomar.

Now on the 28th December, 1458, Prince Henry granted "in his town" that "the said Order should receive one twentieth of all merchandise from Guinea," slaves, gold and all other articles; the rest of the profit to fall to the Prince's successor in this "Kingdom of the Seas." In the same way on the 18th September, 1460, the Prince grants away the Church Revenues of Porto Santo and Madeira to the Order of Christ, and the temporalities to the Crown of Portugal. It was his to give, for by Royal Decree of September 15, 1448, the whole control of the African and ocean trade and colonies had been expressly conferred upon the Infant. No ships as we have seen could sail beyond Bojador without his permit; whoever transgressed this forfeited his ship; and all ships sailing with his permit were obliged to pay him one fifth or one tenth of the value of their freight.

Now, on December 28, 1458, Prince Henry declared "in his town" that "the said Order should receive one-twentieth of all merchandise from Guinea," including slaves, gold, and all other items; the remaining profits would go to the Prince's successor in this "Kingdom of the Seas." Similarly, on September 18, 1460, the Prince granted the Church Revenues of Porto Santo and Madeira to the Order of Christ, and the temporalities to the Crown of Portugal. It was his to give, because by Royal Decree on September 15, 1448, full control of the African and ocean trade and colonies had been explicitly given to the Infant. As we have seen, no ships could sail beyond Bojador without his permission; anyone who broke this rule would lose their ship, and all ships sailing with his permission were required to pay him one-fifth or one-tenth of the value of their cargo.

But the end was in sight. The Prince was now sixty-six, and he had spent himself too strenuously for there to be much hope of a long life in him. Of late years, pressed by the increasing claims of his work, he had borrowed enormous sums from his half brother, the millionaire Duke of Braganza. Now his body failed him like his treasures.

But the end was near. The Prince was now sixty-six, and he had exhausted himself too much to have much hope for a long life. In recent years, burdened by the growing demands of his work, he had borrowed huge amounts of money from his half-brother, the millionaire Duke of Braganza. Now his body was giving out just like his wealth.

SKETCH-MAP OF FRA MAURO'S MAPPE-MONDE.

SKETCH-MAP OF FRA MAURO'S MAPPE-MONDE.

SKETCH-MAP OF FRA MAURO'S MAPPE-MONDE.
(see list of maps)

SKETCH-MAP OF FRA MAURO'S WORLD MAP.
(see list of maps)

What we know of his death is mainly from his body servant, Captain Diego Gomez, who was with him at the last. "In the year of Christ 1460, the Lord Infant Henry fell sick in his own town, on[Pg 305] Cape St. Vincent, and of that sickness he died on Thursday, November 13th, in the selfsame year. And King Affonso, who was then at Evora with all his men, made great mourning on the death of a Prince so mighty, who had sent out so many fleets, and had won so much from Negro-land, and had fought so constantly against the Saracens for the Faith.

What we know about his death mostly comes from his body servant, Captain Diego Gomez, who was with him at the end. "In the year of Christ 1460, Lord Infant Henry got sick in his own town, on[Pg 305] Cape St. Vincent, and he died from that illness on Thursday, November 13th, in the same year. King Affonso, who was then in Evora with all his men, mourned deeply for the death of such a powerful Prince, who had sent out many fleets, gained so much from Negro-land, and fought bravely against the Saracens for the Faith.

"And at the end of the year, the King bade me come to him. Now till then I had stayed in Lagos by the body of the Prince my lord, which had been carried into the Church of St. Mary in that town. And I was bidden to look and see if the body of the Prince were at all corrupted, for it was the wish of the King to remove it to the Monastery of Batalha which D. Henry's father King John had built. But when I came and looked at the body, I found it dry and sound, clad in a rough shirt of horse-hair. Well doth the Church repeat 'Thou shalt not suffer thine Holy One to see corruption.'

"And at the end of the year, the King asked me to meet with him. Until then, I had stayed in Lagos by the body of the Prince, which had been taken into the Church of St. Mary in that town. I was told to check if the body of the Prince had decayed at all, as the King wanted to move it to the Monastery of Batalha that King John's father, D. Henry, had built. But when I arrived and examined the body, I found it dry and intact, dressed in a rough shirt made of horsehair. The Church wisely repeats, 'You shall not let your Holy One see decay.'

"For how the Lord Infant had been chaste, a virgin to the day of his death, and what and how many good deeds he had done in his life, is to be remembered, though it is not for me here to speak of this. For that would be a long tale. But the King Affonso had the body of his uncle carried to Batalha and laid in the chapel that King John had built, where also lie buried the aforesaid King John and his Queen Phillipa, mother of my lord the Prince, and all the five brothers of the Infant."

"For how the Lord Infant remained chaste, a virgin until the day he died, and all the good deeds he accomplished in his life, are worth remembering, although it's not my place to discuss them here. That would take too long. However, King Affonso had his uncle's body brought to Batalha and buried in the chapel that King John built, where the aforementioned King John, his Queen Phillipa, the mother of my lord the Prince, and all five brothers of the Infant are also laid to rest."

He was brawny and large of frame, says Azurara, strong of limb as any. His complexion was fair by[Pg 306] nature, but by his constant toil and exposure of himself it had become quite dark. His face was stern and when angry, very terrible. Brave as he was in heart and keen in mind, he had a passion for the doing of great things. Luxury and avarice never found lodgment within him. For from a youth, he quite left off the use of wine, and more than this, as it was commonly reported, he passed all his days in unbroken chastity. He was so generous that no other uncrowned Prince in Europe had so noble a household, so large and splendid a school for the young nobles of his country.

He was big and muscular, says Azurara, as strong as anyone. His skin was naturally fair, but due to his constant hard work and exposure to the elements, it had become quite dark. His face was serious, and when he was angry, it was quite fearsome. Though he was brave at heart and sharp-minded, he had a strong desire to accomplish great things. He had no place for luxury or greed. From a young age, he completely stopped drinking wine, and as was often said, he lived his life in complete chastity. He was so generous that no other uncrowned prince in Europe had such a noble household or such a large and impressive school for the young nobles of his country.

For all the best men of his nation and still more those who came to him from foreign lands were welcomed at his Court, so that often the medley of tongues and peoples and customs to be heard and seen there was a wonder. And none who worthily came to him left the Court without some proof of his kindness.

For all the best men of his nation, and even more those who traveled from foreign lands, were welcomed at his Court, so that often the mix of languages, cultures, and traditions that could be heard and seen there was astonishing. And no one who truly deserved it ever left the Court without some sign of his generosity.

THE RECUMBENT STATUE OF PRINCE HENRY. FROM HIS TOMB IN BATALHA CHURCH.

THE RECUMBENT STATUE OF PRINCE HENRY. FROM HIS TOMB IN BATALHA CHURCH.

THE RECUMBENT STATUE OF PRINCE HENRY.
from his tomb in batalha church.

THE RECUMBENT STATUE OF PRINCE HENRY.
from his tomb in Batalha Church.

Only to himself was he severe. All his days were spent in work, and it would not easily be believed how often he passed the night without sleep, so that by his untiring industry he conquered the impossibilities of other men. His virtues and graces it is too much to reckon up; wise and thoughtful, of wonderful knowledge and calm bearing, courteous in language and manner and most dignified in address, yet no subject of the lowest rank could show more obedience and respect to his sovereign than this uncle to his nephew, from the very beginning of his reign, while King Affonso was still a minor. Constant in adversity and humble in prosperity, my[Pg 307] Lord the Infant never cherished hatred or ill will against any, even though they had grievously offended him, so that some, who spoke as if they knew everything, said that he was wanting in retributive justice, though in all other ways most impartial. Thus they complained that he forgave some of his soldiers who deserted him in the attack on Tangier, when he was in the greatest danger. He was wholly given up to the public service, and was always glad to try new plans for the welfare of the Kingdom at his own expense. He gloried in warfare against the Infidels and in keeping peace with all Christians. And so he was loved by all, for he loved all, never injuring any, nor failing in due respect and courtesy towards any person however humble, without forgetting his own position. A foul or indecent word was never heard to issue from his lips.

He was only hard on himself. He spent all his days working, and it’s hard to believe how often he went without sleep, conquering what others thought were impossible through his relentless effort. It's too much to list his virtues and qualities; he was wise and thoughtful, with incredible knowledge and a calm demeanor, polite in both speech and action, and very dignified in his presence. Yet, no one of low rank could show more loyalty and respect to his king than this uncle showed to his nephew from the very start of his reign, while King Affonso was still a minor. Steady in tough times and humble in good ones, my[Pg 307] Lord the Infant never held onto hatred or resentment, even towards those who wronged him. Some who thought they knew everything claimed he lacked a sense of retributive justice, even though he was fair in all other aspects. They complained that he forgave certain soldiers who deserted him during the attack on Tangier when he was in serious danger. He was completely dedicated to public service and was always eager to try new approaches to benefit the Kingdom at his own expense. He took pride in fighting against the Infidels and maintaining peace with all Christians. Because of this, he was loved by everyone, as he loved everyone in return, never harming anyone, and always showing respect and courtesy to even the humblest person, without forgetting his own status. A foul or offensive word was never heard from his lips.

To Holy Church, above all, he was most obedient, attending all its services and in his own chapel causing them to be rendered as solemnly as in any Cathedral Church. All holy things he reverenced, and he delighted to shew honour and to do kindness to all the ministers of religion. Nearly one half of the year was passed by him in fasting, and the hands of the poor never went out empty from his presence. His heart never knew fear except the fear of sin.

To the Holy Church, above all, he was very obedient, attending all its services and ensuring that they were conducted as solemnly in his own chapel as in any Cathedral Church. He respected all holy things and took pleasure in showing honor and being kind to all religious ministers. He spent nearly half the year fasting, and the hands of the poor never left his presence empty. His heart knew no fear except the fear of sin.

decorative illustration

decorative illustration


decorative illustration

decorative illustration

CHAPTER XX.

THE RESULTS OF PRINCE HENRY'S WORK.

Henry's own life is in one way the least important part of him. We have seen how many were the lines of history and of progress—in Christendom, in Portugal, in Science—that met in him; how Greek and Arabic geography, both knowledge and practical exploration, was as much a part of what he found to work with as the memoirs of Christian pilgrims, traders, and travellers for a thousand years; how the exploring and expanding energy which the Northmen poured into Europe, leading directly to the Crusading movement, was producing in the Portugal of the fifteenth century the very same results as in the France and Italy and England of the twelfth and thirteenth: and now, on the failure of the Syrian crusades, the Spanish counterpart of those crusades, the greatest of social and religious upheavals in the Middle Ages, had reached such a point of success that the victorious Christians of Spain could look out for new worlds to conquer. Again we have seen how the twelfth, thirteenth, and fourteenth century progress in science, especially[Pg 309] in geographical maps and plans, the great extension of land travel and the new beginnings of ocean voyaging during the same time, must be taken into any view of the Prince's life and work. We have now to look for a moment at the immense results of that same life which had so vast and so long a preparation.

HHenry's own life is, in a way, the least significant part of him. We've seen how many lines of history and progress—in Christendom, in Portugal, in Science—intersected in him; how Greek and Arabic geography, along with knowledge and practical exploration, were just as much a part of what he could work with as the accounts of Christian pilgrims, traders, and travelers over the past thousand years; how the exploring and expanding energy that the Northmen brought to Europe, which directly fueled the Crusading movement, was creating similar outcomes in fifteenth-century Portugal as in twelfth and thirteenth-century France, Italy, and England. Now, after the failure of the Syrian crusades, the Spanish version of those crusades, which marked the greatest social and religious upheavals of the Middle Ages, had reached such a level of success that the victorious Christians of Spain could start looking for new worlds to conquer. We've also observed that progress in science during the twelfth, thirteenth, and fourteenth centuries—especially in geographical maps and plans, along with the significant expansion of land travel and the new beginnings of ocean voyaging at that time—must be factored into any understanding of the Prince's life and work. Now we need to briefly consider the enormous outcomes of that same life, which had such a vast and lengthy preparation.

For just as we cannot see how that work of his could have been done without each and every part of that many-sided preparation in the history of the past, so it is quite as difficult to see how the great achievements of the generation that followed him and of the century, that wonderful sixteenth century, which followed the age of Henry's courtiers and disciples, could have been realised without the impetus he had given and the knowledge he had spread.

For just as we can’t see how his work could have been done without every aspect of that complex preparation in history, it’s just as hard to understand how the remarkable achievements of the generation that came after him, and of the incredible sixteenth century that followed the era of Henry’s courtiers and followers, could have happened without the push he provided and the knowledge he shared.

For it was not merely that his seamen had broken down the middle wall of superstitious terror and had pierced through into the unknown South for a distance of nearly two thousand miles; it was not merely that between 1412 and 1460 Europeans passed the limits of the West and of the South, as legend had so long fixed them; not merely that the most difficult part of the African coast, between Bojador and the Gulf of Guinea, had been fairly passed and that the waterway to India was more than half found. This was true enough. When Vasco da Gama was once round the South Cape, he soon found himself not in an unknown and untraversed ocean, but embarked upon one of the great trade routes of the Mahometan world. The main part of the distance between the Prince's farthest[Pg 310] and the southern Cape of Good Hope, was passed in two voyages, in four years (1482-6).

For it wasn't just that his sailors had broken through the deep-seated fear of the unknown and journeyed into the uncharted South for nearly two thousand miles; it wasn't just that between 1412 and 1460, Europeans had crossed the previously accepted boundaries of the West and the South, as legends had long stated; and it wasn't just that the toughest stretch of the African coast, from Bojador to the Gulf of Guinea, had been navigated and that the route to India was largely discovered. This was certainly true. When Vasco da Gama rounded the South Cape, he quickly realized he was not in an uncharted ocean but rather on one of the major trade routes of the Islamic world. The main distance between the Prince's furthest[Pg 310] point and the southern Cape of Good Hope was covered in two voyages over four years (1482-6).

But there was more than this. Henry did not only accomplish the first and most difficult steps of his own great central project, the finding of the way round Africa to India; he not only began the conversion of the natives, the civilisation of the coast tribes and the colonisation of certain trading sites; he also founded that school of thought and practice which made all the great discoveries that have so utterly eclipsed his own.

But there was more to it. Henry didn’t just take the first and hardest steps toward his major goal of finding a route around Africa to India; he didn’t just start converting the natives, civilizing the coastal tribes, and colonizing certain trading posts; he also established a way of thinking and practicing that led to all the amazing discoveries that have completely overshadowed his own.

From that school came Columbus, who found a western route to India, starting from the suggestion of Henry's attempt by south and east; Bartholomew Diaz, who reached and rounded the southernmost point of the old-world continent and laid open the Indian Ocean to European sailors; Da Gama, who was the first of those sailors to reap the full advantage of the work of ninety years, the first who sailed from Lisbon to Calicut and back again; Albuquerque, who founded the first colonial empire of Modern Europe, the first great out-settlement of Christendom, the Portuguese trade dominion in the East; Magellan, who finally proved what all the great discoverers were really assuming—the roundness of the world; the nameless adventurers who seem to have touched Australia some time before 1530; the draughtsmen who left us our first true map of the globe. So it is not in the actual things done by the Prince's efforts that we can measure his importance in history. It is because his work was infinitely suggestive, because he laid a right foundation for the[Pg 311] onward movement of Europe and Christendom, because he was the leader of a true Renaissance and Reformation, that he is so much more than a figure in the story of Portugal.

From that school came Columbus, who discovered a westward route to India, building on Henry's earlier attempts to go south and east; Bartholomew Diaz, who reached and rounded the southernmost point of the old-world continent and opened up the Indian Ocean to European sailors; Da Gama, who was the first to fully benefit from the work of ninety years, the first to sail from Lisbon to Calicut and back; Albuquerque, who established the first colonial empire of Modern Europe, the first major outpost of Christendom, the Portuguese trade dominance in the East; Magellan, who finally proved what all the great explorers had been assuming—the roundness of the world; the unknown adventurers who apparently landed in Australia sometime before 1530; the cartographers who gave us our first accurate map of the globe. So, it's not in the specific achievements made through the Prince's efforts that we can gauge his significance in history. It's because his work was immensely influential, as he laid a solid foundation for the[Pg 311] onward movement of Europe and Christendom, and because he was the leader of a true Renaissance and Reformation, that he is much more than just a figure in the story of Portugal.

COLUMBUS AS S. CHRISTOPHER, CARRYING THE CHRISTIAN FAITH, IN THE FORM OF THE INFANT JESUS, ACROSS THE OCEAN.

COLUMBUS AS S. CHRISTOPHER, CARRYING THE CHRISTIAN FAITH, IN THE FORM OF THE INFANT JESUS, ACROSS THE OCEAN.

COLUMBUS AS S. CHRISTOPHER, CARRYING THE CHRISTIAN FAITH, IN THE FORM OF THE INFANT JESUS, ACROSS THE OCEAN.

COLUMBUS AS S. CHRISTOPHER, CARRYING THE CHRISTIAN FAITH, IN THE FORM OF THE INFANT JESUS, ACROSS THE OCEAN.

There are figures which are of national interest: there are others which are less than that, figures of family or provincial importance; others again which are always dear to us as human beings, as men who felt the ordinary wants and passions and lived the ordinary life of men with a brilliancy and an intense power that was all their own; there are other men who stand out as those who have changed more or less, but changed vitally and really, the course of the world's history; without whom the whole of our modern society, our boasted civilisation, would have been profoundly different.

There are figures that capture national interest; then there are those of lesser significance, important to family or local communities. Additionally, there are those who resonate with us as humans, as individuals who experienced everyday needs and passions and lived life with a brilliance and intensity unique to them. Some individuals stand out because they have significantly altered the course of history, changing it in vital and meaningful ways. Without these figures, our modern society and the civilization we take pride in would be remarkably different.

For after all the modern Christian world of Europe has something to boast of, though its writers spend much of their time in reviling and decrying it. It is something that our Western world has conquered or worsted every other civilisation upon earth; that with the single exception of China, it has made everyone of the coveted tracts of Asia its own; that it has discovered, settled, and developed a new continent to be the equal of the old; that it has won not a complete but a good working knowledge of the whole surface of the globe. We are at home in the world now, we say, and if we would know what that means, we must look at the Europe of the tenth or even the fourteenth century, look at the theoretic maps of the Middle Ages, look at the legends and the pseudo-science of a civilisation which was shut[Pg 312] up within itself and condemned for so long to fight in a narrowing circle against incessant attacks from without and the barbarism which this state of things kept alive within. Then perhaps we shall take things a little less for granted, and perhaps also we shall begin to think that if this great advance, the greatest thing in Modern History as we know it, that which is the distinction and glory of the last three hundred years, is at all due to the inspiration and the action of Henry of Portugal, an obscure Prince of the fifteenth century, that obscure Prince may possibly belong to the rank of the great civilisers, the men who have most altered society and advanced it, men like Alexander and Cæsar and the founders of the great world religions.

Because the modern Christian world of Europe has something to be proud of, even though its writers often criticize and belittle it. Our Western world has defeated or outdone every other civilization on the planet; with the exception of China, it has claimed every desirable part of Asia for itself; it has explored, settled, and developed a new continent to rival the old; it has gained not complete but a substantial understanding of the entire surface of the globe. We say we are at home in the world now, and to understand what that means, we should look at Europe in the tenth or even the fourteenth century, examine the theoretical maps of the Middle Ages, and consider the myths and pseudo-science of a civilization that was trapped within itself, forced for so long to struggle in a shrinking circle against constant external threats and the barbarism that this situation kept alive. Then maybe we’ll take things a bit less for granted, and we might also start to believe that if this significant progress, the most remarkable achievement in Modern History as we know it, is at all thanks to the vision and actions of Henry of Portugal, an obscure prince from the fifteenth century, then this obscure prince could indeed be among the great civilizers, those who have significantly changed and advanced society, like Alexander, Caesar, and the founders of the major world religions.

It may be as well to trace out very shortly the evidence for such a claim as this and to see, how the Prince's work was followed up, first on his own lines to south and east; second, on other lines, which his own suggested, to west and north.

It might be helpful to briefly outline the evidence for this claim and to examine how the Prince's efforts were continued, first following his own path to the south and east; second, along other routes that he inspired, to the west and north.

1. King Affonso V., Henry's nephew, though rather more of a hard fighter and tournament king than a man who could fully take up his uncle's plans, had yet caught enough of his inspiration to push on steadily, though slowly, the advance round Africa. He had already done his best to get the great map of Fra Mauro finished: this, which embodied all the achievements of the Navigator and gave the most complete and perfect view of the world that had ever yet appeared, had come out in 1459, just before Henry's death, the last tribute of science to the Prince's work.[Pg 313]

1. King Affonso V, Henry's nephew, was more of a tough fighter and tournament king than someone who could completely carry on his uncle's plans. However, he had absorbed enough of his inspiration to steadily, if slowly, continue the push into Africa. He had already done his best to complete the great map of Fra Mauro, which showcased all of the Navigator's achievements and provided the most complete and accurate view of the world that had ever been created. This map was released in 1459, just before Henry's death, marking the last scientific tribute to the Prince's work.[Pg 313]

Now, in 1461, left alone to deal with the discovery and conquest of Guinea, Affonso repaired Henry's fort in the Bay of Arguin and sent one Pedro de Cintra to survey the coast beyond the Rio Grande, the farthest point of Cadamosto in his first voyage, as generally known. Pedro went six hundred miles into the Bight of Benin, passed a mountain range called Sierra Leone from the lion-like growl of the thunder on its summits, and turned back near the point afterwards known as Fort La Mina (1461). Some time in the next few years, another courtier, one Sueiro da Costa followed Pedro de Cintra to Guinea, but without any new results; when Cadamosto left Portugal (Feb. 1, 1463), he tells us "there were no more voyages to the new-found parts."

Now, in 1461, left alone to handle the discovery and conquest of Guinea, Affonso repaired Henry's fort in the Bay of Arguin and sent a man named Pedro de Cintra to explore the coast beyond the Rio Grande, which was the farthest point reached by Cadamosto on his first voyage. Pedro traveled six hundred miles into the Bight of Benin, passed a mountain range called Sierra Leone, named for the lion-like roar of the thunder at its peaks, and turned back near the spot that would later be known as Fort La Mina (1461). In the following years, another courtier, Sueiro da Costa, followed Pedro de Cintra to Guinea, but without any new findings; when Cadamosto left Portugal (Feb. 1, 1463), he noted that "there were no more voyages to the newly discovered areas."

The slave-trade nearer home was now, indeed, absorbing all energies and Affonso's main relation with African voyaging is to be found in his regulations for the security of this trade.

The slave trade closer to home was now, in fact, taking up all efforts, and Affonso's primary connection to African exploration is in his rules for the safety of this trade.

But in 1471 there was another move in the line of further discovery. For exploring energy was not dead or worn out, but only waiting a leader. Fernando Po now reached the island in the farthest inlet of the Gulf of Guinea, which is still called after him, finding as he went on that the eastern bend of Africa, which men had followed so confidently since 1445, the year of the rounding of Cape Verde, now ended with a sharp turn to the south. It was a great disappointment. But in spite of this discouragement, at the very same time two of the foremost of the Portuguese pilots, Martin Fernandez and Alvaro Esteeves, passed the whole of the Guinea[Pg 314] Coast, the Bights of Benin and of Biafra, and crossed the Equator, into a new Heaven and a new Earth, on the edge of which the caravels of Portugal had long been hovering, as they saw like Cadamosto, stars unknown in the Northern Hemisphere and more and more nearly lost sight of the Northern Pole.

But in 1471, there was another move toward further discovery. Exploring energy wasn’t dead or exhausted; it was just waiting for a leader. Fernando Po reached the island in the farthest inlet of the Gulf of Guinea, which is still named after him. As he traveled, he found that the eastern bend of Africa, which people had confidently followed since 1445, the year they rounded Cape Verde, now took a sharp turn to the south. It was a big disappointment. However, at the same time, two of the top Portuguese pilots, Martin Fernandez and Alvaro Esteeves, navigated the entire Guinea[Pg 314] Coast, the Bights of Benin and Biafra, and crossed the Equator into a new Heaven and a new Earth, where the caravels of Portugal had long been lingering, seeing unknown stars in the Northern Hemisphere and gradually losing sight of the Northern Pole.

In 1475 Cape St. Catherine, two degrees south of the Line, was reached and then after six more years of languishing exploration and flourishing trade, King John II. succeeded Affonso V. and took up the work, in the spirit of Prince Henry the Navigator.

In 1475, Cape St. Catherine, two degrees south of the equator, was reached. After six more years of slow exploration and thriving trade, King John II succeeded Affonso V and continued the work in the spirit of Prince Henry the Navigator.

Now in six short years, exploration carried out the main part of the design of so many years, the southern Cape of Africa was rounded and the way to India laid open. For the time had come, and the man, John, added a new chapter to discovery by the travellers he sent across the Dark Continent and the sailors he despatched to the Arctic Seas to find a north-east passage to China.

Now, in just six short years, exploration completed the main goal of so many years: the southern tip of Africa was rounded, and the route to India was opened up. The time had come, and the man, John, added a new chapter to discovery through the travelers he sent across the Dark Continent and the sailors he dispatched to the Arctic Seas in search of a northeast passage to China.

He died just as he was fitting up the expedition that was to enter upon the promised land, and the glory of Da Gama's voyage fell to one who had not laboured, but entered upon the fruits of the toil of other men, the palace-king, Emanuel the Fortunate. But at least the names of Diaz, and Diego Cam, and Covilham, the rounding of the Cape of Storms, the first journey (though an overland one), straight from Lisbon to Malabar, belong to the second founder of Portuguese and European discovery, John the Perfect.

He died right as he was preparing the expedition that was set to enter the promised land, and the glory of Da Gama's voyage went to someone who hadn't worked for it, but instead reaped the rewards of others' efforts—Emanuel the Fortunate, the palace-king. But at least the names of Diaz, Diego Cam, and Covilham, the rounding of the Cape of Storms, and the first journey (even though it was overland) straight from Lisbon to Malabar, belong to the second founder of Portuguese and European discovery, John the Perfect.

VASCO DA GAMA. FROM THE PORTRAIT IN POSSESSION OF COUNT OF LAVRADIO.

VASCO DA GAMA. FROM THE PORTRAIT IN POSSESSION OF COUNT OF LAVRADIO.

VASCO DA GAMA.
from the portrait in possession of count of lavradio.

VASCO DA GAMA.
from the portrait owned by the Count of Lavradio.

Less than four months after his father's death, John, who as heir apparent, had drawn part of his income from the African trade and its fisheries, sent out Diego de Azambuga with ten caravels to superintend three undertakings: first the construction of a fort at St. George da Mina, to secure the trade of the Guinea Coast; second, the rebuilding of Henry's old fort at Arguin; third, the exploration of the yet unknown coast as far as possible. For this, stones, brick, wood, mortar, and tools for building were sent out with the fleet, and carved pillars were taken to be set up in all fresh discovered lands, instead of the wooden crosses that had previously done duty. Each pillar was fourteen hands high, was carved in front with the royal arms and on the sides with the names of the King and the Discoverer, with the date of discovery in Latin and Portuguese.

Less than four months after his father's death, John, who was the heir apparent and had been earning part of his income from the African trade and its fisheries, sent out Diego de Azambuga with ten caravels to oversee three projects: first, building a fort at St. George da Mina to secure trade along the Guinea Coast; second, renovating Henry's old fort at Arguin; and third, exploring the unknown coast as far as possible. To support this, stones, bricks, wood, mortar, and tools for construction were sent with the fleet, and carved pillars were taken to be erected in all newly discovered lands, replacing the wooden crosses that had been used before. Each pillar stood fourteen hands high, was carved on the front with the royal arms, and on the sides with the names of the King and the Discoverer, along with the date of discovery in Latin and Portuguese.

Azambuga's fleet sailed on the 11th of December, 1480, made a treaty with the chief Bezeghichi, near Cape Verde, and reached La Mina, on the south coast of Guinea, on January 19, 1482, after a year spent in fort building and treaty making with the natives of north-west Africa. Fort and church at La Mina were finished in twenty days, and Azambuga sent back his ships with a great cargo in slaves and gold, but without any news of fresh discovery. John was not disposed to be content with this. In 1484, Diego Cam was ordered to go as far to the south as he could, and not to "wait anywhere for other matters." He passed Cape St. Catherine, just beyond the Line, which since 1475 had been the limit of knowledge, and continuing south, reached the[Pg 316] mighty river Congo, called by the natives Zaire, and now known as the second of African rivers, the true counterpart of that western Nile, which every geographer since Ptolemy had reproduced and which, in the Senegal, the Gambia, and the Niger, the Portuguese had again and again sought to find their explanation.

Azambuga's fleet set sail on December 11, 1480, made a treaty with Chief Bezeghichi near Cape Verde, and arrived at La Mina on the south coast of Guinea on January 19, 1482, after spending a year building forts and negotiating with the native tribes of north-west Africa. The fort and church at La Mina were completed in twenty days, and Azambuga sent his ships back loaded with a large cargo of slaves and gold, but without any news of new discoveries. John was not satisfied with this. In 1484, Diego Cam was ordered to go as far south as possible and not to "wait anywhere for other matters." He passed Cape St. Catherine, just beyond the equator, which had been the limit of knowledge since 1475, and continued south to reach the[Pg 316] mighty river Congo, known by the natives as Zaire, now recognized as the second-largest river in Africa, the true counterpart of the western Nile, which every geographer since Ptolemy had depicted, and which the Portuguese had repeatedly sought to understand in the Senegal, the Gambia, and the Niger.

Cam, by agreement with the natives, took back four hostages to act as interpreters and next year returned to and passed the Congo, and sailed two hundred leagues beyond, to the site of the modern Walvisch Bay (1485).

Cam, as agreed with the locals, brought back four hostages to serve as interpreters and the following year returned, passed the Congo, and sailed two hundred leagues further to the location of what is now Walvisch Bay (1485).

Here, as the coast seemed to stretch interminably south, though he had now really passed quite nine-tenths of the distance to the southern Cape, Cam turned back to the Congo, where he persuaded the King and people to profess themselves Christians and allies of Portugal. Already, in 1484, a native embassy to King John had brought such an account of an inland prince, one Ogane, a Christian at heart, that all the Court of Lisbon thought he must be the long lost Prester John, and the Portuguese monarch, all on fire with this hope, sent out at once in search of this "great Catholic lord," by sea and land.

Here, as the coast seemed to stretch endlessly south, although he had actually covered almost ninety percent of the distance to the southern Cape, Cam turned back to the Congo, where he convinced the King and the people to identify as Christians and allies of Portugal. By 1484, a local delegation had gone to King John with reports about an inland prince named Ogane, who was a Christian at heart, leading the entire Court of Lisbon to believe he might be the long-lost Prester John. Fueled by this hope, the Portuguese king immediately sent out expeditions by sea and land in search of this "great Catholic lord."

Bartholomew Diaz sailed in August, 1486, with two ships, first to search for the Prester, and then to explore as much new land and sea as he could find within his reach. Two envoys, Covilham and Payva, were sent on the same errand, by way of Jerusalem, Arabia, and Egypt; another expedition was sent to ascend the Senegal to its junction with the Nile; a[Pg 317] fourth party started to find the way to Cathay by the North-east passage.

Bartholomew Diaz set sail in August 1486 with two ships, initially to search for the Prester, and then to explore as much new land and sea as he could reach. Two envoys, Covilham and Payva, were dispatched on the same mission through Jerusalem, Arabia, and Egypt; another expedition was sent to navigate the Senegal River to its junction with the Nile; a[Pg 317] fourth group was launched to find a route to Cathay via the Northeast Passage.

Camoëns has sung of the travels of Covilham, who first saw cloves and cinnamon, pepper and ginger, and who pined away in a state of confinement at the Prester's Abyssinian Court, but the voyage of Diaz hardly finds a place in the Lusiads and the very name of the discoverer is generally forgotten. Vasco da Gama has robbed him only too successfully.

Camoëns wrote about the adventures of Covilham, who was the first to discover cloves, cinnamon, pepper, and ginger, and who sadly wasted away while confined at the Prester's Abyssinian Court. However, Diaz's journey barely gets mentioned in the Lusiads, and most people have forgotten his name altogether. Vasco da Gama has overshadowed him far too effectively.

John Diaz had been the second captain to double Bojador; Diniz Diaz, in 1445, had been the discoverer of Senegal and of Cape Verde; now, forty years later, Bartholomew Diaz achieved the greatest feat of discovery in all history, before Columbus; for the Northmen's finding America was an unknown and transitory good fortune, while the voyage of 1486 changed directly or indirectly the knowledge, the trade, the whole face of the world at once and forever.

John Diaz was the second captain to sail around Bojador; Diniz Diaz discovered Senegal and Cape Verde in 1445. Now, forty years later, Bartholomew Diaz accomplished the most significant discovery in history, even before Columbus. While the Northmen's discovery of America was an obscure and fleeting success, the voyage of 1486 fundamentally transformed knowledge, trade, and the entire landscape of the world, permanently and profoundly.

Sailing with "two little friggits," each of fifty tons burden, in the belief that ships which sailed down the coast of Guinea might be sure of reaching the end of the continent, by persisting to the south, Diaz, in one voyage of sixteen months, performed the main task which Henry seventy years ago had set before his nation.

Sailing with "two little frigates," each weighing fifty tons, believing that ships traveling down the coast of Guinea were guaranteed to reach the end of the continent by continuing south, Diaz, in a journey of sixteen months, accomplished the primary goal that Henry had established for his nation seventy years earlier.

Passing Walvisch Bay and the farthest pillar of Diego Cam, he reached a headland where he set up his first new pillar at what is still known as Diaz Point. Still coasting southwards and tacking frequently, he passed the Orange River, the northern limit of the present Cape Colony. Then putting well out to sea Diaz ran thirteen days before the wind[Pg 318] due south, hoping by this wide sweep to round the southern point of the continent, which could not now be far off. Finding the cold become almost Arctic and buffeted by tremendous seas, he changed his course to east, and then as no land appeared after five days, to north. The first land seen was a bay where cattle were feeding, now called Flesh Bay, which Diaz named from the cows and cowherds he saw there. After putting ashore two natives, some of those lately carried from Guinea or Congo to Portugal, and sent out again to act as scouts for the European colonies, the ships sailed east, seeking in vain for the land's end, till they found the coast tend gradually but steadily towards the north.

Passing Walvis Bay and the outermost point of Diego Cam, he arrived at a headland where he set up his first new marker at what is still called Diaz Point. Continuing southward and frequently adjusting his course, he passed the Orange River, which marks the northern boundary of today's Cape Colony. Then, heading further out to sea, Diaz sailed for thirteen days with the wind at his back, going due south, hoping that this wide arc would lead him around the southern tip of the continent, which couldn't be far away. As he experienced frigid conditions almost like the Arctic and faced massive waves, he changed his direction to east, and then, seeing no land after five days, switched to north. The first land he spotted was a bay with cattle grazing, now known as Flesh Bay, which Diaz named after the cows and herders he encountered there. After landing two locals, some of those recently taken from Guinea or Congo to Portugal and sent back to scout for the European colonies, the ships continued east, searching in vain for the edge of the land until they noticed the coast gradually but steadily turning north.

Their last pillar was set up in Algoa Bay, the first land trodden by Christians beyond the Cape. At the Great Fish River, sixty miles farther on and quite five hundred miles beyond the point that Diaz was looking for so anxiously, the crew refused to go any farther and the Admiral turned back, only certain of one thing, that he had missed the Cape, and that all his trouble was in vain. Worn out with the worry of his bitter disappointment and incessant useless labour, he was coasting slowly back, when one day the veil fell from his eyes. For there came in sight that "so many ages unknown promontory" round which lay the way to India, and to find which had been the great ambition of all enterprise since the expansion of Europe had begun afresh in the opening years of that fifteenth century.

Their last pillar was set up in Algoa Bay, the first land walked on by Christians beyond the Cape. At the Great Fish River, sixty miles further along and quite five hundred miles past the point that Diaz was searching for so desperately, the crew refused to go any further and the Admiral turned back, only certain of one thing: he had missed the Cape, and all his efforts were in vain. Exhausted from the strain of his deep disappointment and endless pointless work, he was slowly sailing back when one day clarity struck him. For there appeared in sight that "mysterious promontory" that had been unknown for so many ages, around which lay the route to India, and to find this had been the great ambition of every venture since the resurgence of European exploration in the early years of the fifteenth century.

AFFONSO D' ALBUQUERQUE.

AFFONSO D' ALBUQUERQUE.

AFFONSO D' ALBUQUERQUE.

AFFONSO D'ALBUQUERQUE.

While Diaz was still tossing in the storms off the Great Cape, Covilham and his friends had started[Pg 319] from Lisbon to settle the course of the future sea-route to India by an "observation of all the coasts of the Indian Ocean," to explore what they could of Upper Africa, to find Prester John, and to ally the Portuguese experiment with anything they could find of Christian power in Greater or Middle or Further India.

While Diaz was still struggling with the storms off the Great Cape, Covilham and his companions had set[Pg 319] out from Lisbon to determine the future sea route to India by "observing all the coasts of the Indian Ocean," exploring as much as they could of Upper Africa, searching for Prester John, and connecting the Portuguese endeavor with any Christian influence they could find in Greater, Middle, or Further India.

As King John's Senegal adventurers had been exploring the Niger, the Sahara caravan routes, the city of Timbuctoo and the fancied western Nile, so the Abyssinian travellers surveyed all the ground of Africa and Malabar which the first fleet that could round the Cape of Storms must come to. "Keep southward," Covilham wrote home from Cairo after his first visit to Calicut on one side and to Mozambique on the other, "if you persist, Africa must come to an end. And when ships come to the Eastern Ocean let them ask for Sofala and the island of the Moon (Madagascar), and they will find pilots to take them to Malabar."

As King John's explorers in Senegal were checking out the Niger, the Sahara trade routes, the city of Timbuktu, and the imagined western Nile, the Abyssinian travelers were surveying all the areas of Africa and Malabar that the first fleet able to round the Cape of Storms would reach. "Keep heading south," Covilham wrote back home from Cairo after his initial trip to Calicut on one side and Mozambique on the other, "if you keep at it, Africa has to come to an end. And when ships arrive at the Eastern Ocean, they should look for Sofala and the island of the Moon (Madagascar), and they will find pilots to guide them to Malabar."

Yet another chapter of discoveries was opened by King John's Cathay fleet. He failed to get news of a North-east passage, but beyond the north coast of Asia there was found a frozen island whose name of Novaia Zemlaia or Nova Zembla still keeps the memory of the first Portuguese attempts on the road where so many Dutch and English seamen perished in after years.

Yet another chapter of discoveries was opened by King John's Cathay fleet. He couldn't find any information about a Northeast passage, but beyond the north coast of Asia, they discovered a frozen island called Novaia Zemlaia or Nova Zembla, which still remembers the first Portuguese attempts on the route where many Dutch and English sailors lost their lives in later years.

The great voyage of Vasco da Gama (1497-9), the empire founded by Albuquerque (1506-15) in the Indian seas, were the other steps in the complete achievement of Prince Henry's ambition. When in[Pg 320] the early years of the sixteenth century a direct and permanent traffic was fairly started between Malabar and Portugal, when European settlements and forts controlled the whole eastern and western coasts of Africa from the mouth of the Red Sea to the mouth of the Mediterranean, and the five keys of the Indies—Malacca, Goa, Ormuz, Aden, and Ceylon—were all in Christian hands, when the Moslem trade between east Africa and western India had passed into a possession of the Kings of Lisbon, Don Henry might see of the travail of his soul and be well satisfied.

The significant journey of Vasco da Gama (1497-9) and the empire established by Albuquerque (1506-15) in the Indian Ocean were other milestones in fulfilling Prince Henry's vision. By the early years of the sixteenth century, a regular and lasting trade route was established between Malabar and Portugal, with European settlements and forts dominating the entire eastern and western coasts of Africa from the Red Sea to the Mediterranean. The five key locations in the Indies—Malacca, Goa, Ormuz, Aden, and Ceylon—were all under Christian control, and the Muslim trade between East Africa and Western India had shifted into the hands of the Kings of Lisbon. Don Henry could finally see the fruits of his labor and feel a sense of fulfillment.

The supposed discovery of Australia about 1530, or somewhat earlier, and the travels of Ferdinand Mendez Pinto in Japan and the furthest East, the opening of the trade with China in 1517, and the complete exploration of Abyssinia, the Prester's kingdom, in 1520, by Alvarez and the other Catholic missionaries, the millions converted by Francis Xavier and the Jesuit preachers in Malabar, and the union of the old native Christian Church of India with the Roman (1599), were other steps in the same road. All of them, if traced back far enough, bring us to the Court of Sagres, and the same is true of Spanish and French and Dutch and English empires in the southern and eastern world. Henry built for his own nation, but when that nation failed from the exhaustion of its best blood, other peoples entered upon the inheritance of his work.

The supposed discovery of Australia around 1530, or perhaps a bit earlier, along with Ferdinand Mendez Pinto's travels in Japan and the far East, the start of trade with China in 1517, and the thorough exploration of Abyssinia, the Prester's kingdom, in 1520 by Alvarez and other Catholic missionaries, the millions converted by Francis Xavier and Jesuit preachers in Malabar, and the unification of the ancient native Christian Church of India with the Roman Church (1599), were all part of the same journey. All these events, when traced back far enough, lead us to the Court of Sagres. The same can be said for the Spanish, French, Dutch, and English empires in the southern and eastern parts of the world. Henry built for his own nation, but when that nation weakened from the loss of its best people, other nations inherited his legacy.

But though he was not able himself to see the fulfilment of his plans, both the method of a South-east passage, and the men who followed it out to com[Pg 321]plete success, were his,—his workmanship and his building.

But even though he couldn't see his plans come to fruition himself, both the strategy of a Southeast passage and the men who carried it out to complete success were his—his creation and his accomplishment.

Da Gama, Diego Cam, the Diaz family, and most of the great seamen who followed the path they had traced, were either "brought up from boyhood in the Household of the Infant," as the Chronicle of the Discovery tells us of each new figure that comes upon the scene, or looked to him as their master, owed to the School of Sagres their training, and began their practical seamanship under his leave and protection. Even the lines upon which the national expansion and exploration went on were so strictly and exclusively the same as he had followed, that when a different route to the Indies was suggested after his death by Christopher Columbus, the Court of John II. refused to treat it seriously. And this brings us to the other, the indirect side of Henry's influence.

Da Gama, Diego Cam, the Diaz family, and most of the great sailors who followed the path they charted were either "raised from childhood in the House of the Infant," as the Chronicle of the Discovery states about each new figure that appears, or looked to him as their leader, having received their training at the School of Sagres, and began their practical seamanship with his approval and guidance. Even the direction in which national expansion and exploration progressed was so closely aligned with what he had pursued that when Christopher Columbus proposed a different route to the Indies after his death, the Court of John II. dismissed it as a serious option. This brings us to the other, more indirect aspect of Henry's influence.

"It was in Portugal," (says Ferdinand Columbus, in his Life of the Admiral, his father,) "that the Admiral began to think, that if men could sail so far south, one might also sail west and find lands in that quarter." The second great stream of modern discovery can thus be traced to the "generous Henry" of Camoëns' Lusiads no less plainly, though more indirectly, than the first; the Western path was suggested by his success in the Eastern.

"It was in Portugal," Ferdinand Columbus says in his Life of the Admiral about his father, "that the Admiral started to think that if people could sail so far south, they could also sail west and discover lands in that direction." The second major wave of modern exploration can be traced back to "generous Henry" in Camoëns' Lusiads, just as clearly, though more indirectly, as the first; his success in the East suggested the Western route.

But that success had turned the heads of his own people. When Columbus, the son of the Genoese wool-comber, who had been a resident in Lisbon since 1470, submitted to the Court of John II. some time before 1484 a proposal to find Marco Polo's[Pg 322] Cipangu by a few weeks' sail west, from the Azores, he was treated as a dreamer. John, as Henry's disciple and successor, was, like other disciples, narrower than his master in the master's own way.

But that success caught the attention of his own people. When Columbus, the son of a wool comb maker from Genoa, who had been living in Lisbon since 1470, proposed to the Court of John II. sometime before 1484 that he could reach Marco Polo's[Pg 322] Cipangu by sailing a few weeks west from the Azores, he was dismissed as a dreamer. John, being Henry's follower and successor, was, like other followers, more limited than his master in the same way.

He was ready for any expense and trouble, but no novelty. He would only go on as he had been taught. He had reason to be confident, and his scientific Junto of four, Martin Behaim of Nuremburg among them, to whom Columbus was referred, were too much elated with their new improvements in the astrolabe, and the now assured confidence that the Southern Cape would soon be passed. They could not endure with patience the vehement dogmatism of an unknown theorist.

He was prepared for any costs and challenges, but not for anything new. He would stick to what he had learned. He had every reason to be confident, and his group of four scientists, including Martin Behaim from Nuremberg, whom Columbus consulted, were too excited about their recent upgrades to the astrolabe and their newfound certainty that they would soon pass the Southern Cape. They had no patience for the forceful opinions of an unknown theorist.

But as he was too full of his message to be easily shaken off, he was treated with the basest trickery. At the suggestion of the Bishop of Ceuta, Columbus was kept waiting for his answer, and asked to furnish his plans in detail with charts and illustrations. He did so, and while the Council pretended to be poring over these for a final decision, a caravel was sent to the Cape Verde islands to try the route he had suggested,—a trial with the pickings of Italian brains.

But since he was too determined to be dismissed easily, he was met with the lowest form of deceit. Following the Bishop of Ceuta's advice, Columbus was made to wait for a response and was asked to provide his plans in detail, complete with maps and illustrations. He complied, and while the Council pretended to carefully review these for a final decision, a caravel was dispatched to the Cape Verde Islands to test the route he had proposed, with help from the best Italian minds.

The Portuguese sailed westward for several days till the weather became stormy; then, as their heart was not in the venture, they put back to Europe with a fresh stock of the legends Henry had so heartily despised. They had come to an impenetrable mist, which had stopped their progress; apparitions had warned them back; the sea in those parts swarmed with monsters; it became impossible to breathe.

The Portuguese sailed west for several days until the weather turned stormy; then, not really feeling committed to the journey, they returned to Europe with a new collection of the legends that Henry had so strongly disdained. They had encountered an impenetrable fog that halted their progress; apparitions had warned them to turn back; the sea in that area was filled with monsters; it became hard to breathe.

MAP OF 1492.

MAP OF 1492.

MAP OF 1492.
(see list of maps)

MAP OF 1492.
(see list of maps)

[Pg 323]Columbus learned how he had been used, and his wife's death helped to decide him, in his disgust for place and people. Towards the end of 1484, he left Lisbon. Three years later, when he had become fully as much disgusted with the dilatory sloth and tricks of Spain, he offered himself again to Portugal. King John had repented of his meanness; on March 20, 1488, he wrote in answer to Columbus, eagerly offering on his side to guarantee him against any suits that might be taken against him in Lisbon. But the Court of Castille now became, in its turn, afraid of quite losing what might be infinite advantage; Columbus was kept in the service of Ferdinand and Isabella; and at last in August, 1492, the "Catholic Kings" sent him out from Palos to discover what he could on his own terms.

[Pg 323]Columbus discovered how he had been treated, and the death of his wife pushed him toward a deep disillusionment with the place and the people. By the end of 1484, he left Lisbon. Three years later, after becoming thoroughly frustrated with the slow pace and deceitfulness of Spain, he offered his services to Portugal again. King John had regretted his previous actions; on March 20, 1488, he responded to Columbus with eagerness, offering to protect him from any legal issues that might arise in Lisbon. However, the Court of Castille became concerned about potentially losing a chance for great advantage; Columbus was kept in the service of Ferdinand and Isabella, and ultimately in August 1492, the "Catholic Kings" sent him out from Palos to explore on his own terms.

What followed, the discovery of America, and all the subsequent ventures of the Cabots, of Amerigo Vespucci, of Cortés and Pizarro, De Soto and Raleigh and the Pilgrim Fathers, are not often connected in any way with the slow and painful beginnings of European expansion in the Portugal of the fifteenth century, but it is a true and real connection all the same. The whole onward and outward movement of the great exploring age was set in motion by one man. It might have come to pass without him, but the fact is simply that through him it did, as a matter of history, result. "And let him that did more than this, go before him."[Pg 324]

What followed was the discovery of America and all the later adventures of the Cabots, Amerigo Vespucci, Cortés, Pizarro, De Soto, Raleigh, and the Pilgrim Fathers. These events aren't often linked to the slow and difficult beginnings of European expansion in 15th-century Portugal, but they are indeed connected. The entire movement of the great age of exploration was initiated by one man. It might have happened without him, but the reality is that it happened because of him, as a matter of history. "And let him that did more than this, go before him."[Pg 324]

FOOTNOTES:

[1] From a water-colour.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ From a watercolor.

[2] From Major's Life of Henry the Navigator.

[2] From Major's Life of Henry the Navigator.

[3] From the Hakluyt Society's Select Letters of Columbus.

[3] From the Hakluyt Society's Select Letters of Columbus.

[4] From the Hakluyt Society's edition of Three Voyages of Vasco da Gama.

[4] From the Hakluyt Society's edition of Three Voyages of Vasco da Gama.

[5] From the Hakluyt Society's edition of Albuquerque's Commentaries.

[5] From the Hakluyt Society's edition of Albuquerque's Commentaries.

[6] [Missing] (Please see the Transcriber's Note.)

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ [Missing] (See the __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__.)

[7] Compare Archer and Kingsford, The Crusades, in the Stories of the Nations.

[7] Compare Archer and Kingsford, The Crusades, in the Stories of the Nations.

[8] Rejecting the old idea of an encircling ocean as the girdle or limit of the known world, and replacing it with a new fancy of unbounded continent (on all sides except the north-west)—a fancy which the vast extension of Roman Dominion under the Empire may have fostered.

[8] Rejecting the old notion of a surrounding ocean as the boundary of the known world and replacing it with a new idea of an endless continent (everywhere except the northwest)—an idea that may have been encouraged by the vast expansion of Roman control during the Empire.

[9] In using the expressions "Chart," or "Map" of Strabo's description (c. a.d. 20), it is not meant to imply that Strabo himself left more than a written description from which a plan was afterwards prepared: "The world according to Strabo." The same applies to Eratosthenes (c. b.c. 200) and all pre-Ptolemaic Greek geographers. Ptolemy's Atlas, probably, and the Peutinger Table, more certainly, are maps really drawn by ancient designers; but these are the only ones that have survived from a much larger number.

[9] When we use the terms "Chart" or "Map" in relation to Strabo's description (c. AD 20), we don't mean to suggest that Strabo himself produced more than a written description that was later used to create a plan: "The world according to Strabo." The same goes for Eratosthenes (c. B.C. 200) and all the Greek geographers before Ptolemy. Ptolemy's Atlas likely, and the Peutinger Table definitely, are maps actually created by ancient cartographers; however, these are the only ones that have survived out of a much larger collection.

[10] In which the habitable quarter of the world, situated mainly in the Northern Hemisphere, was just about twice as long as it was broad.

[10] In which the area of the world where people can live, primarily located in the Northern Hemisphere, was roughly twice as long as it was wide.

[11] In Columbus' letters to Queen Isabella in 1498, we catch, as it were, the last echo of the Arabic mélange of Moses and Greek geography, along with the results of Roger Bacon's corrections of Ptolemy. "The Old Hemisphere," he writes "which has for its centre the isle of Arim, is spherical, but the other (new) Hemisphere has the form of the lower half of a pear. Just one hundred leagues west of the Azores the earth rises at the Equator and the temperature grows keener. The summit is over against the mouth of the Orinoco."

[11] In Columbus' letters to Queen Isabella in 1498, we catch, so to speak, the last traces of the Arabic blend of Moses and Greek geography, along with the results of Roger Bacon's corrections of Ptolemy. "The Old Hemisphere," he writes, "which centers around the island of Arim, is spherical, but the other (new) Hemisphere is shaped like the bottom half of a pear. Just one hundred leagues west of the Azores, the earth rises at the Equator and the temperature becomes more intense. The peak is across from the mouth of the Orinoco."

[12] "The Obliquity of the Ecliptic, the Eccentricity of the Sun, the Precession of the Equinoxes."

[12] "The tilt of the Earth's axis, the Sun's orbit variation, the shift of the equinoxes."

[13] "With the Sinbad story is connected the historical extension of the Arab settlements in the East African coast through the enterprise of the Emosaid family."

[13] "The Sinbad story is linked to the historical spread of Arab settlements along the East African coast, driven by the efforts of the Emosaid family."

[14] The school of Persian mathematicians who produced the maps of Alestakliry-Ibn-Hankal, the book of latitudes and longitudes, ascribed by Abulfeda to Alfaraby the Turk, was the immediate descendant of Albyrouny.

[14] The group of Persian mathematicians that created the maps of Alestakliry-Ibn-Hankal, the book on latitudes and longitudes, attributed to Abulfeda and credited to Alfaraby the Turk, was the direct successor of Albyrouny.

[15] The world he divided by climates in the Greek manner, taking no account of political divisions, or of those resting on language or religion. Each climate was further subdivided into ten sections. In the shape of Africa he followed Ptolemy.

[15] He divided the world by climate like the Greeks, ignoring political borders or divisions based on language or religion. Each climate was split into ten sections. For the outline of Africa, he followed Ptolemy.

[16] Yacout "the ruby," originally a Greek slave, who made a brave but fruitless attempt to change his name into Yacoub or Jacob, became one of the greatest of Arab encyclopædists, was checked by the hordes of Genghiz-Khan in his exploration of Central Asia, and died 1229.

[16] Yacout "the ruby," originally a Greek slave, who made a courageous but unsuccessful attempt to change his name to Yacoub or Jacob, became one of the greatest Arab encyclopedists. He was halted by the forces of Genghiz-Khan during his exploration of Central Asia and died in 1229.

[17] By some supposed to be S. Carolina, by others the Canaries.

[17] Some think it's South Carolina, while others believe it’s the Canaries.

[18] From St. James of Compostella.

From St. James of Compostela.

[19] Unless White Man's Land and Great Ireland are the Canaries. See above, p. 63.

[19] Unless White Man's Land and Great Ireland are the Canaries. See above, p. 63.

[20] Camoëns, Lusiads, (Barton's trans.).

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Camoëns, Lusiads, (Barton’s translation).

[21] And a certain number of Viking sailors seem to have preceded Ohthere on his voyage to the Dwina.

[21] And several Viking sailors appear to have arrived before Ohthere on his journey to the Dwina.

[22] As completed about a.d. 1000-1040.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Completed around 1000-1040 AD.

[23] As in 1071, when they crushed Romans and the Byzantines in the battle of Manzikert.

[23] Just like in 1071, when they defeated the Romans and the Byzantines in the battle of Manzikert.

[24] "Tartari fecerunt equos nostros trotare."

[24] "The Tartars made our horses trot."

In Xanadu, Kublai Khan A grand pleasure-dome decree, Where Alph, the sacred river, flowed,
Through endless caverns to man,
To a sacred sea.

Coleridge: Kublai Khan.

Coleridge: Kublai Khan.

[26] Probably the Andamans.

Probably the Andamans.

[27] This new knowledge had been really gained from the gradual spread of the Arab settlements down the south-east coast of Africa, during four centuries, from Guardafui, the Cape of spices, to the Channel of Mozambique.

[27] This new knowledge came from the slow spread of Arab settlements along the southeast coast of Africa over four centuries, from Guardafui, the Cape of Spices, to the Channel of Mozambique.

[28] Cape Non = Fish Cape. But Latini took it as = Not, "from the fact that beyond it there is no return possible." And so the rhyme "Who pass Cape Non—Must turn again, or else begone" (lit. "or not," i.e., will not be able to return).

[28] Cape Non = Fish Cape. But Latini interpreted it as meaning "Not," because beyond it, there is no way to return. And so the rhyme goes, "Who passes Cape Non—Must turn back, or else be gone" (literally, "or not," meaning, you won't be able to return).

[29] Of 1306, 1351, 1367, 1375, 1380, 1436, 1448, 1459.

[29] Of 1306, 1351, 1367, 1375, 1380, 1436, 1448, 1459.

[30] See Note 1, page 137.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ See Note 1, p. 137.

[31] W.H. Lecky, Rationalism.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ W.H. Lecky, Rationalism.

[32] See Note 2, page 137.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ See Note 2, p. 137.

[33] Except the draughtsmen of the Portolani.

[33] Except for the mapmakers of the Portolani.

[34] City of "Seven" Hills, as some have derived it.

[34] City of "Seven" Hills, as some have interpreted it.

[35] The attempts of Henry and his family to conquer a land-empire in northern Africa are not to be separated from the maritime and coasting explorations. They were two aspects of one idea, two faces of the same enterprise.

[35] Henry and his family's efforts to establish a land empire in northern Africa are closely linked to their maritime and coastal explorations. These were two sides of the same concept, two parts of the same venture.

In the same way the new bishopric of Ceuta, now founded, was a first step towards the organised conversion of the Heathen of the South. The Franciscans had founded the See of Fez and Morocco in 1233, but it had not till now been followed up.

In the same way, the newly established bishopric of Ceuta marked an initial step towards the organized conversion of the non-Christians in the South. The Franciscans had established the See of Fez and Morocco in 1233, but it had not been pursued until now.

[36] In 1418 and 1424-5 Henry purchased and tried to secure certain rights of possession in the Canaries, conceded by De Béthencourt; and these attempts were repeated in 1445 and 1446.

[36] In 1418 and 1424-5, Henry bought and sought to secure specific possession rights in the Canaries, granted by De Béthencourt; and these efforts were repeated in 1445 and 1446.

[37] Camoëns' Lusiads, iv., 52.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Camoëns' Lusiads, Book IV, Line 52.

[38] The date of this voyage is brought down as late as 1447 by Santarem Oliveiro Martins.

[38] Santarem Oliveiro Martins records this voyage as occurring as late as 1447.


decorative illustration

decorative illustration

INDEX.

  • A
  • Abulfeda, 28
  • Adelard, of Bath, geographical postulates, 9, 10
  • Adelard or Athelard, 84
  • Affonso, comes of age, 257;
  • marries his cousin Isabel, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • forces Pedro to rebel and declare war against him, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
  • sends out Gomez on a large caravel, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • Prince Henry's body is laid to rest in the chapel at Batalha, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • continues the work of his uncle, Prince Henry, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
  • is succeeded by King John II., __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Africa, shape of, 13
  • Albateny, determined problems of astronomical geography, 19
  • Albertus Magnus, geographical postulates, 9, 11
  • Albuquerque, 125
  • Albyrouny, work of, 21
  • Alfarrobeira, battle of, 260
  • Alfred the Great, credit due to, for discoveries, 72;
  • efforts in exploration and spreading religion, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Al Heravy, life of, 26
  • Almada, the Hercules of Portugal, 184;
  • stands by Pedro, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • dies, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Almamoun, age of, 18
  • Almanack, Arab, Latin translation of, 21
  • Ant islands discovered, 160
  • Antoninus the Martyr, an older Mandeville, 34;
  • legends of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Arctic colonies checked, 59
  • Arculf, 42;
  • travels of __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Arguin, fort built in the bay of, 205
  • Arim, "World's Summit," 8;
  • measured as locations, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • double, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Armada of Lagos, 228-239;
  • "the third," __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Athelard, or Adelard, 84
  • Aviz, House of. See John, the King of Good Memory.
  • Azambuga, Diego de, 315
  • Azaneguys described by Cadamosto, 269
  • Azores, colonisation of, 251;
  • the whole group found, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Azurara, chronicler of voyages of Henry, 157
  •  
  • B
  • Bacon, Roger, geographical postulates, 9, 11
  • Baldaya, Affonso, sent out with Gil Eannes, 173;
  • his second trip, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-176
  • Batti, King, 285, 286
  • Batuta, Ibn, 27
  • Beginnings of the art and science of discovery, 145
  • Benjamin of Tudela, 88
  • Bernard, "the French monk," route of, 46
  • Bezeghichi, meets Gomez, 295;
  • makes a deal with Azambuga, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Bjarni Herjulfson driven to new country, 56
  • Blanco, Cape, visited by Cadamosto, 267
  • Boa Vista, 284
  • Bojador, southmost point of Christian knowledge, 170;
  • legends about, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • doubled by Gil Eannes, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Bruges, Jacques de, receives a grant of Captaincy of Terceira, 254
  •  
  • C
  • Cabral, Gonzalo, discovers Formiga group of islands and Santa Maria, 169;
  • Captain Donatory on St. Mary's Island, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • settled in the Western Isles, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • sent to look for land beyond St. Mary, misses it, and is sent again, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • discovers St. Michael, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • returns to St. Michael with Europeans, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Cadamosto, record of his two voyages, 250;
  • his story, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
  • is presented to the Prince, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • visits Madeira, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
  • goes on to the Canaries, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-267;
  • to Cape Blanco, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-269;
  • reaches Senegal, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • describes Azaneguys, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • pushes on to the land of Budomel, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-278;
  • reaches Cape Verde, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • describes people outside, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • explores the Gambra, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
  • returns to Portugal, gets repairs, and departs on the second voyage, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • explores islands near Cape Verde, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
  • names Boa Vista and St. James, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • sails up the Gambra and names St. Andrew, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • visits Battimansa, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__,
  • and Gnumimansa, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • returns to Lisbon, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • leaving Portugal, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Camaldolese chart of Fra Mauro, 301
  • Cam, Diego, 315;
  • reaches the Congo and Walvis Bay, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Canaries, visited by Cadamosto, 265
  • Cantor, visited by Gomez, 291
  • Cape Cod, reached by Scandinavian migration, 65
  • Cape St. Vincent, modern name for "Sacred Cape" and Sagres, 160
  • Carpini, John de Plano, 90;
  • his Book of the Tartars, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Ceuta, King John plans an attack on, 148;
  • situation, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • left in charge of Menezes, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • safe in Christian hands, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Chart of Fra Mauro, 301
  • Christian pilgrimage begins with Constantine, 32
  • Cintra, Gonsalo de, 197;
  • leaves for Guinea, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • is killed by Moors, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Cintra, Pedro de, 313
  • Columbus, influenced by Imago Mundi, 11;
  • at Portuguese Court, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • at Spanish Court, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Constantine, Christian pilgrimage begins with, 32
  • Corvo, 254, 256
  • Cosmas Indicopleustes, 34;
  • theory of __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • interest to us, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Costa, Sueiro da, 313
  • Covilham, 316
  • Crossness, place called from dead chief, 59
  • Crusades and land travel, 76;
  • results of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Crusading movement, results of, 78
  • Cruzado, the, 300
  •  
  • D
  • Daniel of Kiev, Abbot, 85
  • Death, Black, in Portugal, 127
  • De Prado, taken captive, 297;
  • martyred, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Diaz, Bartholomew, 316;
  • makes the greatest discovery in all history before Columbus, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Diaz, Diniz, enters mouth of the Senegal, 220;
  • reaches Cape Verde, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • leads a section of the fleet dispatched from Lagos, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • reaches Cabo Verde, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Diaz, Lawrence, 230
  • Diaz, Vincent, 233
  •  
  • E
  • Eannes, Gil, makes a voyage to the Canaries, 170;
  • rounds Cape Bojador, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • sails with Lagos fleet, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Edrisi, Arabic Ptolemy, the, 21;
  • birth and life, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • account of the voyage of the Lisbon "Wanderers," __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • "Traveler's Doctorate," in the time of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • map replaced, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Edward, eldest son of King John, 136;
  • becomes King, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • dies, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Emosaid, family, 24;
  • set themselves up as traders, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • England, Vikings first landed in, 52
  • English-born travellers, first of, 45
  • Eratosthenes, geography of, 5
  • Eric the Red, renames Greenland, 55;
  • leads settlers, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Esteeves, Alvaro, crosses the equator, 314
  • Europe, compacted together in spiritual federation, 76
  • European development, pilgrim stage of, 42
  • European expansion, beginnings of, 50
  • Europeans, first landing of, on coasts of unknown Africa, 175;
  • break into Muslim trade, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  •  
  • F
  • Farosangul, King of Gambra, 285
  • Fayal, 254;
  • first Captain Donatory of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Ferdinand, fourth son of King John, 136;
  • revives plan for African conflict, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • sails to Tangier, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • is held as hostage, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • dies a captive, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Ferdinand the Handsome, last of House of Burgundy to reign in Lisbon, 131
  • Fernandez, Alvara, commands the caravel of his uncle, Zarco, 229;
  • is once again sent out with the caravel, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • the journey, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-245
  • Fernandez, Joan, left as hostage at Bank of Arguin, 219;
  • taken home, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • his story, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__
  • Fernandez, Martin, crosses the equator, 314
  • Ferrer, Jayme, explorer, 108
  • Fidelis, the monk, travels of, 46
  • Flores, 254, 256
  • Formigas discovered by Cabral, 169
  • Frangazick, nephew of Farosangul, 290
  • Freitas, Alvara de, 232
  • Freydis, daughter of Red Eric, tries to colonise Vinland, 62
  •  
  • G
  • Gama, Vasco da, 125
  • Geographical record, last before age of Northmen, 47
  • Geography, first Christian, 33;
  • from the eighth and ninth centuries of Christianity, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Gerard of Cremona, geographical postulates, 9, 10
  • Gnumi, King, 287
  • Gog and Magog, wall to shut off, 13
  • Gold dust, first ever brought by Europeans direct from Guinea coast, 203;
  • effect, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Gomez, Diego, 251;
  • sets out in command of the caravel the Wren, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • his story, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-298;
  • visits Cantor, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • converts Nomimansa, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-295;
  • meets Bezeghichi, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • returns to Lagos, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • is sent out by Affonso and goes to the land of the Barbacins, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • discovers Santiago, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • returns to Portugal, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • describes the final illness and death of Prince Henry, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__
  • Gonsalvez, Antam, sent out by Henry, 193;
  • his journey, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-195;
  • takes the first captives, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • is knighted by Nuno Tristam, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • returns to Portugal, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • returns to Africa with the captive prince, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • trades two boys for ten prisoners, gold dust, and ostrich eggs, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • applies for command of ships, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Graciosa, 254;
  • settled, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Greenland, sighted by Gunnbiorn and renamed by Eric, 55;
  • colonized, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Green sea of darkness, 13, 14
  • Gregory X., Pope, 93
  •  
  • H
  • Harold Hardrada, 68;
  • type of all Vikings, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Helluland, or Slate-land, 56
  • Henry, the Navigator, special interest of the life and work, 29;
  • author of discovering movement, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • preparing for work of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • predecessors of sailors, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-112;
  • first trip, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • maps used by, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-122;
  • Hero of Portugal, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • inspires his fellow countrymen with a love for exploration, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • his brother Pedro is his right-hand man, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • birth, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • his goals, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • looks for a route from Africa to India, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • his exploration laid the groundwork for an empire for his country, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • a crusader and a missionary, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • sets the standard for organized exploration, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • the teacher and mentor of more successful explorers, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • sends out caravels beyond Cape Non, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • brings the Portuguese fleet into the harbor at Ceuta, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • anchors near Ceuta, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • leads the attack on Ceuta and is reported dead, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • is knighted, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • starts cruising trips, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • is sent to help Ceuta, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • plans to gain control of Gibraltar, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • returns to court, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • is made Duke of Viseu and Lord of Covilham, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • reasons to explore Guinea, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • Sagres his chosen home, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • is appointed Governor for life of the Algarves, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • his buildings at Sagres, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • his research, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • results of the settlement at Cape St. Vincent, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • sends out men and ships to colonize Porto Santo, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • colonizes Madeira, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • leads captains to Azores, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • impatience with superstitions and the fears of navigators, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • receives a charter for Madeira, Porto Santo, and the Desertas, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • sends out Gil Eannes, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • sends Baldaya, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • involved in politics, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • respect shown to him, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • plans and organizes African war, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • heads to Ceuta, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • pushes forward along inland routes, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • attacks and blockades Tangier, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • lifts the siege, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • signs a truce with Moors, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • shuts himself in Ceuta, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • is called back to Portugal, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • made one of the guardians of Affonso V., __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • works out a compromise between Pedro and Leonor, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • requests treasure from the Holy Father to support the crusades, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • grants permission to sail to the coast of Guinea for Lançarote, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • his motives in the slave trade, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • keeps pirates in check, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • differs from West Indian farmers, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • gives a caravel to Gonsalo de Cintra, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • allows Lagos to prepare and dispatch a fleet for a trip to Guinea, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • takes special care of the widows and orphans left by Nuno Tristam's expedition, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • gives a reward to explorers, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • his impressive knowledge demonstrated in correcting Cabral's course, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • grants the captaining position of Terceira to Jacques de Bruges, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • his story in the narrative by Cadamosto, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • focused on the new Holy War against the Infidel, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • his final appearance in public service, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • creates a set of charters, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • provides grants to the Order of Christ and to the Crown of Portugal, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • his illness and death, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
  • His body is laid to rest in the chapel at Batalha, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • his looks, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • his character, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • results of his life, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-312, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__
  • Heravy, Al, life of, 26
  • Hereford Mappa Mundi, 120
  • Heurter, Job van, notice of first settlement of Azores, 255
  • Hippalus, discovery of monsoon, 17
  • Hope, country re-named, 60
  •  
  • I
  • Ibn Batuta, 27
  • Iceland, sighted by Nadodd, 54;
  • colonized, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Imago Mundi, influence on Columbus, 11
  • Isidore of Seville, belief of, 40
  • Italian, merchants, first, who opened Court of Great Khan to Venice and Genoa, 90;
  • age of South Atlantic and African voyages, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  •  
  • J
  • Jacome from Majorca, 161
  • Japan discovered by Kublai Khan, 99
  • Jerusalem, loss of, 90
  • John de Plano Carpini, first papal legate to the Tartars, 90;
  • provides the first real account of Tartary, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • the first true explorer of Christian Europe, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • John, fourth son of King John I., 136;
  • succeeds Affonso V., adds a new chapter to exploration, dies, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • John, the King of Good Memory, transition figure, 133;
  • personal work and its results, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-135;
  • sons of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • plans attack on Ceuta, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • speech when he learns about the death of his two sons, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • dies, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Jordanus, 104
  •  
  • K
  • Karlsefne, Thorfinn, greatest of the Vinland sailors, 60
  • Keel-Ness (Kjalarness), 58
  • Kublai Khan, 93-98
  •  
  • L
  • Labrador, possible discovery of, 56;
  • reached by Scandinavian migration, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Lagos equips and sends out a fleet, 229
  • La Mina, 315
  • Lançarote, obtains grant to sail to coast of Guinea, 206;
  • his journey, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-214;
  • landing in Lagos and sale of slaves captured by __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • Admiral of the fleet dispatched from Lagos, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • holds a meeting with his captains, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • decides to head to the Nile, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Latini, Brunetto, describes the magnet, 116
  • Leif, a son of Red Eric, starts for discovery, 56
  • Leonora Telles, evil genius of Ferdinand and Portugal, 131;
  • marries the King of Portugal, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • people rise up against, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Leonor of Aragon, attempts to be regent, 189;
  • yields to Henry's persuasions, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • dies, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Lion, first one brought to Portugal, 247
  • Lisbon, capture of, 128
  •  
  • M
  • Machin, Robert, 110
  • Madagascar, first known to Europe, 102
  • Madeira, discovered and named by the Portuguese, 165;
  • island's nature, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • visited by Cadamosto, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Magellan, 125, 310
  • Magnet, earliest mention of, 115
  • Magnus the Good, 68
  • Mandeville, Sir Henry, 105
  • Mappa Mundi, Hereford, 120
  • Maps, of fourteenth and early fifteenth centuries, 118
  • Marabout, or Prophet Bird, 230
  • Markland (Woodland), 57
  • Massoudy, visited various countries, 19;
  • problem discussion, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • the most significant figure of the early period of Arabic geography, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
  • Masts, Cape of, 238
  • Mauro, Fra, Camaldolese chart of, 301
  • Melli, negro empire of, 270;
  • salt trade in, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Menezes, Edward, 300
  • Menezes, Pedro de, is left in command of Ceuta, 155
  • Meymam, Ahude, 223, 224, 245
  • Mythology, geographical, gradual development of, 7
  •  
  • N
  • Noli, Antonio de, sails with Gomez, 297;
  • becomes captain of Santiago, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Nomimansa converted by Gomez, 293-295
  • Norse, discoveries, 50, 51;
  • early settlements, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • farthest point of the northern advance in Europe, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • race, kind of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Northern, advance, lines of, 53;
  • effects of invasions, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Northmen, countries made known to Europe through, 67;
  • definite advances into the unknown, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  •  
  • O
  • Odjein, Aryn, or Arim, 8
  • Ogane, 316
  • Ohthere, 70;
  • service of, to western geography, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Olaf Trygveson, 68
  •  
  • P
  • Pacheco, Gonsalo, unlucky expedition of, 225;
  • meets Diaz on the way home and decides to turn back, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Papal Court sends missions to convert Tartars, 90
  • Payva, 316
  • Pedro the Traveller, 136;
  • joins attack on Ceuta, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-153;
  • is knighted, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • is granted the title of Duke of Coimbra and Lord of the Principality, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • returns from travels, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • becomes regent, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • gives a charter to Henry, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • offers a reward to explorers, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • resigns the regency, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • takes up arms against Affonso, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • marches on Lisbon and gets killed, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Philippa, Queen, character and death, 149
  • Pilgrims, primitive, 34;
  • pioneers of the growth of Europe and Christianity, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Pilgrim stage of European development, 42
  • Pires, Gomes, goes on toward the Nile, 232;
  • attacks locals, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Po Fernando, 313
  • Polo, Marco, makes journey to the East with uncles, 94;
  • appointed commissioner of Imperial Council, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • memoirs of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • heard and wrote about Madagascar and Zanzibar, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • Herodotus of the Middle Ages, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • Polo, Nicolo and Matteo, traders to Crimea and Southern Russia, 93;
  • make a second trip to the farthest East, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • consulting engineers for Mongol Court, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • dismissed, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Pope, decides question of reviving African war, 181
  • Portolani, superseded map of Edrisi, 27;
  • drawn with a compass, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Portolano, Laurentian, 118
  • Portugal, chief points in story of, 123;
  • guide to Europe in the broader world, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • medieval history of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-133
  • Portuguese give a value to the art and science of discovery, 145
  • Prado De, 297, 298
  • Prophet bird, or marabout, 230
  • Ptolemy, chart of, 2;
  • "Habitable Zone" of the world, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  •  
  • R
  • Rio Grande, 246;
  • passed by Gomez, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Rubruquis, William de, 92, 93
  •  
  • S
  • St. George, 254, 255
  • St. James, 284
  • St. Michael, island of, discovered, 253
  • St. Silvia, of Aquitaine, travels of, 33
  • "Sacred Cape" of the Romans or Sagres, 160
  • Sæwulf of Worcester, 81;
  • pilgrimage to, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • groups of pilgrim-crusaders during the time of __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Sagres, chosen home of Henry, 160;
  • systematic study of applied science established again at __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Santa Maria discovered, 169
  • Santiago discovered by Gomez, 297
  • Sanuto, Marino, Venetian map of, 118
  • Senegal, reached by Cadamosto, 269;
  • the region around the gulf he described, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-275
  • Sinbad Saga, 19
  • Slate-land or Helluland, 56
  • Slaves, beginning of trade in, as a part of European commerce, 207;
  • sale description of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
  • treatment for __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • trade-in excuse, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Strabo, geography of, 5
  •  
  • T
  • Tagaza, or the Gold-Market, 270
  • Tangier, siege of, 183
  • Tarik, the rock of (Gibraltar), 156
  • Terceira, sighted, 253;
  • Jacques de Bruges is captain, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Theodosius, early pilgrim, 34
  • Thorfinn Karlsefne, greatest of the Vinland sailors, 60
  • Thorstein, third son of Red Eric, puts to sea, 59
  • Thorvald Ericson, puts to sea, 57;
  • voyages of __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • death, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Timbuctoo, inland route of merchants to, 270
  • Tristam, Nuno, meets Antam Gonsalvez, 196;
  • helps capture locals, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-199;
  • continues the journey and returns to Portugal, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • embarks on another journey, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • sails into the bay of Arguin, takes captives and returns, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • makes a third trip, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • reaches Cape Palmar, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • arms a caravel and sets sail, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • is killed by Blackmoors, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Trygveson, Olaf, 68
  •  
  • V
  • Vallarte, his expedition and fate, 247
  • Vaz, Tristam, sets out to explore as far as the coast of Guinea, 163;
  • is rewarded, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • heads three ships from Madeira in Lagos fleet, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Vergil, Irish missionary, 40
  • Vikings, highest type of explorers, 31;
  • Norse discoveries, conquests, and colonies, the start of European expansion, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • voyages of __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • struggle with Eskimos, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • rename visited locations, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • work in the south and southwest is not for exploration, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • type of all, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • credit where credit is due, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • their territories during Alfred's time, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Vinland, discovery of, 57;
  • renamed, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • visited and ghosted by Thorfinn, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • recolonized by Freydis, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • fragmented updates on, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  •  
  • W
  • "Wanderers," Lisbon, account of, 23
  • William de Rubruquis, sent by St. Louis on errand of conversion and discovery, 92;
  • interest in his work, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  • Willibald, 44
  • Wulfstan, 70;
  • tells of journeys, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • service of, to western geography, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
  •  
  • Y
  • Yacout, the Roman, Dictionary of, 26
  • Yang-Tse-Kiang, 96
  •  
  • Z
  • Zarco, John Gonsalvez, sets out to explore as far as the coast of Guinea, 163;
  • his travels, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-166;
  • returns to Madeira, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • sends his caravel with his nephew alongside the Lagos fleet, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
  • the journey, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-239;
  • same caravel sent out again, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__

decorative illustration

decorative illustration



decorative illustration


decorative illustration

The Story of the Nations.

Messrs. G. P. Putnam's Sons take pleasure in announcing that they have in course of publication, in co-operation with Mr. T. Fisher Unwin, of London, a series of historical studies, intended to present in a graphic manner the stories of the different nations that have attained prominence in history.

Gentlemen. G. P. Putnam's Sons are excited to announce that they are publishing, in collaboration with Mr. T. Fisher Unwin of London, a series of historical studies aimed at vividly showcasing the stories of various nations that have made their mark in history.

In the story form the current of each national life is distinctly indicated, and its picturesque and noteworthy periods and episodes are presented for the reader in their philosophical relation to each other as well as to universal history.

In the story, the essence of each nation's life is clearly shown, and its striking and significant moments and events are presented to the reader in their philosophical connection to one another as well as to world history.

It is the plan of the writers of the different volumes to enter into the real life of the peoples, and to bring them before the reader as they actually lived, labored, and struggled—as they studied and wrote, and as they amused themselves. In carrying out this plan, the myths, with which the history of all lands begins, will not be overlooked, though these will be carefully distinguished from the actual history, so far as the labors of the accepted historical authorities have resulted in definite conclusions.

It is the intention of the writers of the various volumes to delve into the real lives of the people and present them to the reader as they truly lived, worked, and fought—how they learned and created, as well as how they enjoyed their leisure time. In executing this plan, the myths that form the foundation of the history of all regions will not be ignored, although they will be clearly separated from actual history, based on the findings of credible historical scholars.

The subjects of the different volumes have been planned to cover connecting and, as far as possible, consecutive epochs or periods, so that the set when completed will present in a comprehensive narrative the chief events in the great Story of the Nations; but it is, of course not always practicable to issue the several volumes in their chronological order.

The topics of the various volumes have been organized to include related and, whenever possible, consecutive time periods, so that when the entire set is finished, it will provide a complete narrative of the main events in the great Nation Stories; however, it’s not always feasible to release the individual volumes in their chronological order.

The "Stories" are printed in good readable type, and in handsome 12mo form. They are adequately illustrated and furnished with maps and indexes. Price, per vol., cloth, $1.50 Half morocco, gilt top, $1.75

The "Stories" are printed in a clear, easy-to-read font and are nicely formatted in 12mo size. They have plenty of illustrations along with maps and indexes. Price per volume: cloth, $1.50; half morocco with gilt top, $1.75.

The following volumes are now ready (Jan., 1895):

The following volumes are now ready (Jan., 1895):

THESTORYOFGREECE. Prof. Jas. A. Harrison.
"""ROME. Arthur Gilman.
"""THE JEWS. Prof. James K. Hosmer.
"""CHALDEA. Z.A. Ragozin.
"""GERMANY. S. Baring-Gould.
"""NORWAY. Hjalmar H. Boyesen.
"""SPAIN. Rev. E.E. and Susan Hale.
"""HUNGARY. Prof. A. Vámbéry.
"""CARTHAGE. Prof. Alfred J. Church.
"""THE SARACENS. Arthur Gilman.
"""THE MOORS IN SPAIN. Stanley Lane-Poole.
"""THE NORMANS. Sarah Orne Jewett.
"""PERSIA. S.G.W. Benjamin.
"""ANCIENT EGYPT. Prof. Geo. Rawlinson.
"""ALEXANDER'S EMPIRE. Prof. J.P. Mahaffy.
"""ASSYRIA. Z.A. Ragozin.
"""THE GOTHS. Henry Bradley.
"""IRELAND. Hon. Emily Lawless.
"""TURKEY. Stanley Lane-Poole.
"""MEDIA, BABYLON, AND PERSIA. Z.A. Ragozin.
"""MEDIÆVAL FRANCE. Prof. Gustave Masson.
"""HOLLAND. Prof. J. Thorold Rogers.
"""MEXICO. Susan Hale.
"""PHŒNICIA. Prof. Geo. Rawlinson.
"""THE HANSA TOWNS. Helen Zimmern.
"""EARLY BRITAIN. Prof. Alfred J. Church.
"""THE BARBARY CORSAIRS. Stanley Lane-Poole.
"""RUSSIA. W. R. Morfill.
"""THE JEWS UNDER ROME. W.D. Morrison.
"""SCOTLAND. John Mackintosh.
"""SWITZERLAND. R. Stead and Mrs. A. Hug.
"""PORTUGAL. H. Morse Stephens.
"""THE BYZANTINE EMPIRE. C.W.C. Oman.
"""SICILY. E.A. Freeman.
"""THE TUSCAN REPUBLICS. Bella Duffy.
"""POLAND. W.R. Morfill.
"""PARTHIA. Prof. George Rawlinson.
"""JAPAN. David Murray.
"""THE CHRISTIAN RECOVERY OF SPAIN. H.E. Watts.
"""AUSTRALASIA. Greville Tregarthen.
"""SOUTHERN AFRICA. Geo. M. Theal.
"""VENICE. Alethea Wiel.
"""THE CRUSADES. T.S. Archer and C.L. Kingsford.


decorative illustration


decorative illustration

Heroes of the Nations.

EDITED BY

EVELYN ABBOTT, M.A., Fellow at Balliol College, Oxford.

A series of biographical studies of the lives and work of a number of representative historical characters about whom have gathered the great traditions of the Nations to which they belonged, and who have been accepted, in many instances, as types of the several National ideals. With the life of each typical character will be presented a picture of the National conditions surrounding him during his career.

A collection of biographical studies focusing on the lives and work of various significant historical figures, whose great traditions are tied to the nations they belonged to and who are often viewed as exemplars of their respective national ideals. Accompanying each prominent figure's life is an overview of the national circumstances surrounding them throughout their careers.

The narratives are the work of writers who are recognized authorities on their several subjects, and, while thoroughly trustworthy as history, will present picturesque and dramatic "stories" of the Men and of the events connected with them.

The stories are created by writers who are acknowledged experts on their topics, and while they are completely reliable as history, they will offer vivid and dramatic "tales" about the men and the events related to them.

To the Life of each "Hero" will be given one duodecimo volume, handsomely printed in large type, provided with maps and adequately illustrated according to the special requirements of the several subjects. The volumes will be sold separately as follows:

To each "Hero's" life, there will be one duodecimo volume, nicely printed in large type, equipped with maps and properly illustrated according to the specific needs of each subject. The volumes will be sold separately as follows:

Cloth extra$1.50
Half morocco, uncut edges, gilt top1.75
Large paper, limited to 250 numbered copies for subscribers to the series. These may be obtained in sheets folded, or in cloth, uncut edges.3.50

The first group of the Series comprises the following volumes:

The first group of the Series includes the following volumes:

Nelson, and the Naval Supremacy of England. By W. Clark Russell, author of "The Wreck of the Grosvenor," etc.

Nelson and England's Naval Supremacy. By W. Clark Russell, author of "The Wreck of the Grosvenor," etc.

Gustavus Adolphus, and the Struggle of Protestantism for Existence. By C.R.L. Fletcher, M.A., late Fellow of All Souls College, Oxford.

Gustavus Adolphus, and the Struggle of Protestantism for Existence. By C.R.L. Fletcher, M.A., former Fellow of All Souls College, Oxford.

Pericles, and the Golden Age of Athens. By Evelyn Abbott, M.A., Fellow of Balliol College, Oxford.

Pericles and the Golden Age of Athens. By Evelyn Abbott, Master's degree, Fellow of Balliol College, Oxford.

Theodoric the Goth, the Barbarian Champion of Civilisation. By Thomas Hodgkin, author of "Italy and Her Invaders," etc.

Theodoric the Goth, the Barbarian Champion of Civilization. By Thomas Hodgkin, author of "Italy and Her Invaders," etc.

Sir Philip Sidney, and the Chivalry of England. By H.R. Fox-Bourne, author of "The Life of John Locke," etc.

Sir Philip Sidney, and the Chivalry of England. By H.R. Fox-Bourne, author of "The Life of John Locke," etc.

Julius Cæsar, and the Organisation of the Roman Empire. By W. Warde Fowler, M.A., Fellow of Lincoln College, Oxford.

Julius Caesar and the Organization of the Roman Empire. By W. Warde Fowler, M.A., Fellow of Lincoln College, Oxford.

John Wyclif, Last of the Schoolmen and First of the English Reformers. By Lewis Sergeant, author of "New Greece," etc.

John Wyclif, Last of the Schoolmen and First of the English Reformers. By Lewis Sergeant, author of "New Greece," etc.

Napoleon, Warrior and Ruler, and the Military Supremacy of Revolutionary France. By W. O'Connor Morris, sometime Scholar of Oriel College, Oxford.

Napoleon, Warrior and Ruler, and the Military Supremacy of Revolutionary France. By W. O'Connor Morris, former Scholar of Oriel College, Oxford.

Henry of Navarre, and the Huguenots in France. By P.F. Willert, M.A., Fellow of Exeter College, Oxford.

Henry of Navarre and the Huguenots in France. By P.F. Willert, M.A., Fellow of Exeter College, Oxford.

Cicero, and the Fall of the Roman Republic. By J.L. Strachan Davidson, M.A., Fellow of Balliol College, Oxford.

Cicero, and the Fall of the Roman Republic. By J.L. Strachan Davidson, M.A., Fellow of Balliol College, Oxford.

Abraham Lincoln, and the Downfall of American Slavery. By Noah Brooks.

Abraham Lincoln and the End of American Slavery. By Noah Brooks.

Prince Henry (of Portugal) the Navigator, and the Age of Discovery. By C.R. Beazley, Fellow of Merton College, Oxford.

Prince Henry (of Portugal) the Navigator, and the Age of Discovery. By C.R. Beazley, Fellow of Merton College, Oxford.

Julian the Philosopher, and the Last Struggle of Paganism against Christianity. By Alice Gardner, Lecturer on Ancient History in Newnham College.

Julian the Philosopher, and the Last Struggle of Paganism against Christianity. By Alice Gardner, Lecturer on Ancient History at Newnham College.

Louis XIV., and the Zenith of the French Monarchy. By Arthur Hassall, M.A., Senior Student of Christ Church College, Oxford.

Louis XIV and the Peak of the French Monarchy. By Arthur Hassall, M.A., Senior Student of Christ Church College, Oxford.

To be followed by:

To be continued:

Saladin, the Crescent and the Cross. By Stanley Lane-Poole.

Saladin, the Crescent and the Cross. By Stanley Lane-Poole.

Joan of Arc. By Mrs. Oliphant.

Joan of Arc. By Mrs. Oliphant.

The Cid Campeador, and the Waning of the Crescent in the West. By H. Butler Clarke, Wadham College, Oxford.

The Cid Campeador and the Decline of the Crescent in the West. By H. Butler Clarke, Wadham College, Oxford.

Charlemagne, the Reorganiser of Europe. By Prof. George L. Burr, Cornell University.

Charlemagne, the Reorganizer of Europe. By Prof. George L. Burr, Cornell University.

Moltke, and the Founding of the German Empire. By Spenser Wilkinson.

Moltke and the Founding of the German Empire. By Spenser Wilkinson.

Oliver Cromwell, and the Rule of the Puritans in England. By Charles Firth, Balliol College, Oxford.

Oliver Cromwell and the Puritan Rule in England. By Charles Firth, Balliol College, Oxford.

Alfred the Great, and the First Kingdom in England. By F. York Powell, M.A., Senior Student of Christ Church College, Oxford.

Alfred the Great, and the First Kingdom in England. By F. York Powell, M.A., Senior Student of Christ Church College, Oxford.

Marlborough, and England as a Military Power. By C.W.C. Oman, A.M., Fellow of All Souls College, Oxford.

Marlborough, and England as a Military Power. By C.W.C. Oman, A.M., Fellow of All Souls College, Oxford.

Frederic the Second, the Wonder of the World. By A.L. Smith, of Balliol College, Oxford.

Frederic the Second, the Wonder of the World. By A.L. Smith, of Balliol College, Oxford.

Charles the Bold, and the Attempt to Found a Middle Kingdom. By R. Lodge, M.A., Fellow of Brasenose College, Oxford.

Charles the Bold, and the Attempt to Establish a Middle Kingdom. By R. Lodge, M.A., Fellow of Brasenose College, Oxford.

Alexander the Great, and the Extension of Greek Rule and of Greek Ideas. By Prof. Benjamin I. Wheeler, Cornell University.

Alexander the Great and the Expansion of Greek Rule and Ideas. By Prof. Benjamin I. Wheeler, Cornell University.

G. P. PUTNAM'S SONS
NEW YORKLONDON
27 WEST TWENTY-THIRD ST.   24 BEDFORD ST., STRAND

Transcriber's Note: A footnote for the anchor next to the "List of Maps" was not found in the print edition.

Transcriber's Note: A footnote for the link next to the "List of Maps" was not found in the printed version.

 

 



Download ePUB

If you like this ebook, consider a donation!